Home
  By Author [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Title [ A  B  C  D  E  F  G  H  I  J  K  L  M  N  O  P  Q  R  S  T  U  V  W  X  Y  Z |  Other Symbols ]
  By Language
all Classics books content using ISYS

Download this book: [ ASCII | HTML | PDF ]

Look for this book on Amazon


We have new books nearly every day.
If you would like a news letter once a week or once a month
fill out this form and we will give you a summary of the books for that week or month by email.

Title: The Master-Christian
Author: Corelli, Marie, 1855-1924
Language: English
As this book started as an ASCII text book there are no pictures available.


*** Start of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Master-Christian" ***


THE MASTER-CHRISTIAN

By MARIE CORELLI

AUTHOR OF

"Thelma," "Ardath," "Innocent," "The Treasure of Heaven," etc.



TO ALL THOSE CHURCHES WHO QUARREL IN THE NAME OF CHRIST

The Master-Christian.

I.

All the bells were ringing the Angelus. The sun was sinking;--and from
the many quaint and beautiful grey towers which crown the ancient city
of Rouen, the sacred chime pealed forth melodiously, floating with
sweet and variable tone far up into the warm autumnal air. Market women
returning to their cottage homes after a long day's chaffering disposal
of their fruit, vegetable, and flower-wares in the town, paused in
their slow trudge along the dusty road and crossed themselves
devoutly,--a bargeman, lazily gliding down the river on his flat
unwieldly craft, took his pipe from his mouth, lifted his cap
mechanically, and muttered more from habit than reflection--"Sainte
Marie, Mere de Dieu, priez pour nous!"--and some children running out
of school, came to a sudden standstill, listening and glancing at each
other, as though silently questioning whether they should say the old
church-formula among themselves or no? Whether, for example, it might
not be more foolish than wise to repeat it? Yes;--even though there was
a rumour that the Cardinal-Archbishop of a certain small,
half-forgotten, but once historically-famed Cathedral town of France
had come to visit Rouen that day,--a Cardinal-Archbishop reputed to be
so pure of heart and simple in nature, that the people of his far-off
and limited diocese regarded him almost as a saint,--would it be right
or reasonable for them, as the secularly educated children of modern
Progress, to murmur an "Angelus Domini," while the bells rang? It was a
doubtful point;--for the school they attended was a Government one, and
prayers were neither taught nor encouraged there, France having for a
time put God out of her national institutions. Nevertheless, the glory
of that banished Creator shone in the deepening glow of the splendid
heavens,--and--from the silver windings of the Seine which, turning
crimson in the light, looped and garlanded the time-honoured old city
as with festal knots of rosy ribbon, up to the trembling tops of the
tall poplar trees fringing the river banks,--the warm radiance
palpitated with a thousand ethereal hues of soft and changeful colour,
transfusing all visible things into the misty semblance of some divine
dwelling of dreams. Ding-dong--ding dong! The last echo of the last
bell died away upon the air--the last words enunciated by devout
priests in their cloistered seclusion were said--"In hora mortis
nostrae! Amen!"--the market women went on their slow way homeward,--the
children scampered off in different directions, easily forgetful of the
Old-World petition they had thought of, yet left unuttered,--the
bargeman and his barge slipped quietly away together down the windings
of the river out of sight;--the silence following the clangour of the
chimes was deep and impressive--and the great Sun had all the heaven to
himself as he went down. Through the beautiful rose-window of the
Cathedral of Notre Dame, he flashed his parting rays, weaving bright
patterns of ruby, gold and amethyst on the worn pavement of the ancient
pile which enshrines the tomb of Richard the Lion-Hearted, as also that
of Henry the Second, husband to Catherine de Medicis and lover of the
brilliant Diane de Poitiers,--and one broad beam fell purpling aslant
into the curved and fretted choir-chapel especially dedicated to the
Virgin, there lighting up with a warm glow the famous alabaster tomb
known as "Le Mourant" or "The Dying One." A strange and awesome piece
of sculpture truly, is this same "Mourant"!--showing, as it does with
deft and almost appalling exactitude, the last convulsion of a strong
man's body gripped in the death-agony. No delicate delineator of shams
and conventions was the artist of olden days whose ruthless chisel
shaped these stretched sinews, starting veins, and swollen eyelids
half-closed over the tired eyes!--he must have been a sculptor of
truth,--truth downright and relentless,--truth divested of all graceful
coverings, and nude as the "Dying One" thus realistically portrayed.
Ugly truth too,--unpleasant to the sight of the worldly and
pleasure-loving tribe who do not care to be reminded of the common fact
that they all, and we all, must die. Yet the late sunshine flowed very
softly on and over the ghastly white, semi-transparent form, outlining
it with as much tender glory as the gracious figure of Mary Virgin
herself, bending with outstretched hands from a grey niche, fine as a
cobweb of old lace on which a few dim jewels are sewn. Very beautiful,
calm and restful at this hour was "Our Lady's Chapel," with its high,
dark intertwisting arches, mutilated statues, and ancient tattered
battle-banners hanging from the black roof and swaying gently with
every little breath of wind. The air, perfumed with incense-odours,
seemed weighted with the memory of prayers and devotional
silences,--and in the midst of it all, surrounded by the defaced and
crumbling emblems of life and death, and the equally decaying symbols
of immortality, with the splendours of the sinking sun shedding roseate
haloes about him, walked one for whom eternal truths outweighed all
temporal seemings,--Cardinal Felix Bonpre, known favourably, and
sometimes alluded to jestingly at the Vatican, as "Our good Saint
Felix." Tall and severely thin, with fine worn features of ascetic and
spiritual delicacy, he had the indefinably removed air of a scholar and
thinker, whose life was not, and never could be in accordance with the
latter-day customs of the world; the mild blue eyes, clear and
steadfast, most eloquently suggested "the peace of God that passeth all
understanding";--and the sensitive intellectual lines of the mouth and
chin, which indicated strength and determined will, at the same time
declared that both strength and will were constantly employed in the
doing of good and the avoidance of evil. No dark furrows of hesitation,
cowardice, cunning, meanness or weakness marred the expressive dignity
and openness of the Cardinal's countenance,--the very poise of his
straight spare figure and the manner in which he moved, silently
asserted that inward grace of spirit without which there is no true
grace of body,--and as he paused in his slow pacing to and fro to gaze
half-wistfully, half-mournfully upon the almost ghastly artistic
achievement of "Le Mourant" he sighed, and his lips moved as if in
prayer. For the brief, pitiful history of human life is told in that
antique and richly-wrought alabaster,--its beginning, its ambition, and
its end. At the summit of the shrine, an exquisite bas-relief shows
first of all the infant clinging to its mother's breast,--a stage lower
down is seen the boy in the eager flush of youth, speeding an arrow to
its mark from the bent bow,--then, on a still larger, bolder scale of
design is depicted the proud man in the zenith of his career, a noble
knight riding forth to battle and to victory, armed cap-a-pie, his
war-steed richly caparisoned, his lance in rest,--and finally, on the
sarcophagus itself is stretched his nude and helpless form, with hands
clenched in the last gasping struggle for breath, and every muscle
strained and fighting against the pangs of dissolution.

"But," said the Cardinal half aloud, with the gentle dawning of a
tender smile brightening the fine firm curve of his lips,--"it is not
the end! The end here, no doubt;--but the beginning--THERE!"

He raised his eyes devoutly, and instinctively touched the silver
crucifix hanging by its purple ribbon at his breast. The orange-red
glow of the sun encompassed him with fiery rings, as though it would
fain consume his thin, black-garmented form after the fashion in which
flames consumed the martyrs of old,--the worn figures of mediaeval
saints in their half-broken niches stared down upon him stonily, as
though they would have said,--"So we thought,--even we!--and for our
thoughts and for our creed we suffered willingly,--yet lo, we have come
upon an age of the world in which the people know us not,--or knowing,
laugh us all to scorn."

But Cardinal Bonpre being only conscious of a perfect faith, discovered
no hints of injustice or despair in the mutilated shapes of the
Evangelists surrounding him,--they were the followers of Christ,--and
being such, they were bound to rejoice in the tortures which made their
glory. It was only the unhappy souls who suffered not for Christ at
all, whom he considered were truly to be compassionated.

"And if," he murmured as he moved on--"this knight of former days, who
is now known to us chiefly, alas! as 'Le Mourant', was a faithful
servant of our Blessed Lord, why then it is as well with him as with
any of the holy martyrs. May his soul rest in peace!"

Stopping an instant at the next sculptural wonder in his way--the
elaborately designed tomb of Cardinal Amboise, concerning the eternal
fate of which "brother in Christ" the good Felix had no scruples or
fears whatever, he stepped softly down from the choir-chapel where he
had been wandering to and fro for some time in solitary musings, and
went towards the great central nave. It was quite empty,--not even a
weary silk-weaver, escaped from one of the ever-working looms of the
city, had crept in to tell her beads. Broad, vacant, vast, and
suggestive of a sublime desolation, the grand length and width of the
Latin Cross which shapes the holy precincts, stretched into vague
distance, one or two lamps were burning dimly at little shrines set in
misty dark recesses,--a few votive candles, some lit, some smouldered
out, leaned against each other crookedly in their ricketty brass stand,
fronting a battered statue of the Virgin. The Angelus had ceased
ringing some ten minutes since,--and now one solemn bell, swinging high
up in the Cathedral towers, tolled forth the hour of six, slowly and
with a strong pulsating sound which seemed to shake the building down
to its very vaults and deep foundations. As the last stroke shivered
and thundered through the air, a strain of music, commencing softly,
then swelling into fuller melody, came floating from aloft, following
the great bell's vibration. Half way down the nave, just as he was
advancing slowly towards the door of egress, this music overtook the
Cardinal like an arresting angel, bringing him to a sudden pause.

"The organist practises late," he said aloud, as though speaking to
some invisible companion, and then was silent, listening. Round him and
above him surged the flood of rich and dulcet harmony,--the sunset
light through the blue and red stained-glass windows grew paler and
paler--the towering arches which sprang, as it were, from slender
stem-like side-columns up to full-flowering boughs of Gothic
ornamentation, crossing and re-crossing above the great High Altar,
melted into a black dimness,--and then--all at once, without any
apparent cause, a strange, vague suggestion of something supernatural
and unseen began suddenly to oppress the mind of the venerable prelate
with a curious sense of mingled awe and fear. Trembling a little, he
knew not why, he softly drew a chair from one of the shadowy corners,
where all such seats were piled away out of sight so that they might
not disfigure the broad and open beauty of the nave, and, sitting down,
he covered his eyes with one hand and strove to rouse himself from the
odd, half-fainting sensation which possessed him. How glorious now was
the music that poured like a torrent from the hidden organ-loft! How
full of searching and potential proclamation!--the proclamation of an
eternal, unguessed mystery, for which no merely human speech might ever
find fit utterance! Some divine declaration of God's absolute
omnipresence,--or of Heaven's sure nearness,--touched the heart of
Felix Bonpre, as he sat like an enchanted dreamer among the tender
interweavings of solemn and soothing sound;--carried out of himself and
beyond his own existence, he could neither pray nor think, till, all at
once, upon the peaceful and devout silence of his soul, some very old,
very familiar words struck sharply as though they were quite new,--as
though they were invested suddenly with strange and startling
significance--

"When the son of Man cometh, think ye He shall find faith on earth?"

Slowly he withdrew his hand from his eyes and gazed about him,
half-startled, half-appalled. Had anyone spoken these words?--or had
they risen of themselves as it were in letters of fire out of the sea
of music that was heaving and breaking tumultuously about him?

"WHEN THE SON OF MAN COMETH, THINK YE HE SHALL FIND FAITH ON EARTH?"

The question seemed to be whispered in his ears with a thrilling
intensity of meaning; and moved by a sudden introspective and
retrospective repentance, the gentle old man began mentally to grope
his way back over the past years of his life, and to ask himself
whether in very truth that life had been well or ill spent? Viewed by
his own inner contemplative vision, Cardinal Felix Bonpre saw in
himself nothing but wilful sin and total unworthiness;--but in the eyes
of those he had served and assisted, he was a blameless priest,--a man
beloved of God, and almost visibly encompassed by the guardianship of
angels. He had been singularly happy in his election to a diocese
which, though it had always had an Archbishop for its spiritual head,
boasted scarce as many inhabitants as a prosperous English
village,--and the result of this was that he had lived altogether away
from the modern world, passing most of his time in reading and
study,--while for relaxation, he permitted himself only the innocent
delight of growing the finest roses in his neighbourhood. But he had
pious scruples even about this rose-growing fancy of his,--he had a
lurking distrust of himself in it, as to whether it was not a purely
selfish pleasure,--and therefore, to somewhat smooth the circumstance,
he never kept any of the choice blooms for his own gratification, but
gave the best of them with a trust, as simple as it was beautiful, to
the altar of the Virgin, sending all the rest to the bedsides of the
sick and sorrowful, or to the coffins of the dead. It never once
occurred to him that the "Cardinal's roses," as they were called, were
looked upon by the poor people who received them as miraculous flowers
long after they had withered,--that special virtues were assigned to
them--and that dying lips kissed their fragrant petals with almost as
much devotion as the holy crucifix, because it was instinctively
believed that they contained a mystic blessing. He knew nothing of all
this;--he was too painfully conscious of his own shortcomings,--and of
late years, feeling himself growing old, and realising that every day
brought him nearer to that verge which all must cross in passing from
Time into Eternity, he had been sorely troubled in mind. He was wise
with the wisdom which comes of deep reading, lonely meditation, and
fervent study,--he had instructed himself in the modern schools of
thought as well as the ancient,--and though his own soul was
steadfastly set upon the faith he followed, he was compassionately
aware of a strange and growing confusion in the world,--a combination
of the elements of evil, which threatened, or seemed to threaten, some
terrible and imminent disaster. This sorrowful foreboding had for a
long time preyed upon him, physically as well as mentally; always thin,
he had grown thinner and more careworn, till at the beginning of the
year his health had threatened to break down altogether. Whereupon
those who loved him, growing alarmed, summoned a physician, who, (with
that sage experience of doctors to whom thought-trouble is an
inexplicable and incurable complication) at once pronounced change of
air to be absolutely necessary. Cardinal Bonpre must travel, he said,
and seek rest and minddistraction in the contemplation of new and
varying scenes. With smiling and resigned patience the Cardinal obeyed
not so much the command of his medical attendant, as the anxious desire
of his people,--and thereupon departed from his own Cathedral-town on a
tour of several months, during which time he inwardly resolved to try
and probe for himself the truth of how the world was going,--whether on
the downward road to destruction and death, or up the high ascents of
progress and life. He went alone and unattended,--he had arranged to
meet his niece in Paris and accompany her to her father's house in
Rome,--and he was on his way to Paris now. But he had purposely made a
long and round-about journey through France with the intention of
studying the religious condition of the people; and by the time he
reached Rouen, the old sickness at his heart had rather increased than
diminished. The confusion and the trouble of the world were not mere
hearsay,--they in very truth existed. And what seemed to the Cardinal
to be the chief cause of the general bewilderment of things, was the
growing lack of faith in God and a Hereafter. How came this lack of
faith into the Christian world? Sorrowfully he considered the
question,--and persistently the same answer always asserted
itself--that the blame rested principally with the Church itself, and
its teachers and preachers, and not only in one, but in all forms of
Creed.

"We have erred in some vital manner," mused the Cardinal, with a
feeling of strange personal contrition, as though he were more to blame
than any of his compeers--"We have failed to follow the Master's
teaching in its true perfection. We have planted in ourselves a seed of
corruption, and we have permitted--nay, some of us have encouraged--its
poisonous growth, till it now threatens to contaminate the whole field
of labour."

And he thought of the words of St. John the Divine to the Church of
Sardis--

"_I_ KNOW THY WORKS,--THAT THOU HAST A NAME THAT THOU LIVEST AND ART
DEAD.

"BE WATCHFUL, AND STRENGTHEN THE THINGS THAT REMAIN, THAT ARE READY TO
DIE,--FOR _I_ HAVE NOT FOUND THY WORKS PERFECT BEFORE GOD. REMEMBER
THEREFORE HOW THOU HAST RECEIVED AND HEARD, AND HOLD FAST AND REPENT.

"IF, THEREFORE, THOU SHALT NOT WATCH, _I_ WILL COME ON THEE AS A THIEF,
AND THOU SHALL NOT KNOW WHAT HOUR I WILL COME UPON THEE.

"THOU HAST A FEW NAMES EVEN IN SARDIS, WHICH HAVE NOT DEFILED THEIR
GARMENTS, AND THEY SHALL WALK WITH ME IN WHITE, FOR THEY ARE WORTHY.

"HE THAT OVERCOMETH, THE SAME SHALL BE CLOTHED IN WHITE RAIMENT; AND I
WILL NOT BLOT HIS NAME OUT OF THE BOOK OF LIFE, BUT I WILL CONFESS HIS
NAME BEFORE MY FATHER AND BEFORE HIS ANGELS."

Dimmer and duskier grew the long shadows now gathering in the
Cathedral,--two of the twinkling candles near the Virgin's statue
suddenly sank in their sockets with a spluttering noise and guttered
out,--the solemn music of the organ continued, growing softer and
softer as it sounded, till it crept through the vastness of the
building like a light breeze wafted from the sea, bringing with it
suggestions of far flower-islands in the tropics, golden shores kissed
by languid foam, and sweet-throated birds singing, and still the
Cardinal sat thinking of griefs and cares and inexplicable human
perplexities, which were not his own, but which seemed to burden the
greater portion of the world. He drew no comparisons,--he never
considered that, as absolutely as day is day and night is night, his
own beautiful and placid life, lived in the faith of God and Christ,
was tortured by no such storm-tossed tribulation as that which affected
the lives of many others,--and that the old trite saying, almost
despised because so commonplace, namely that "goodness makes
happiness," is as eternally true as that the sun shines in heaven, and
that it is only evil which creates misery. To think of himself in the
matter never occurred to him; had he for a moment entertained the
merest glimmering of an idea that he was better, and therefore happier
than most men, he would, in his own opinion, have been guilty of
unpardonable arrogance and presumption. What he saw, and what sincerely
and unselfishly grieved him, was that the people of this present age
were unhappy--discontented--restless,--that something of the simple joy
of existence had gone out of the world,--that even the brilliant
discoveries of science and the so-called "progress" of men only served
apparently to increase their discontent,--that when they were overcome
by sorrow, sickness, or death, they had little philosophy and less
faith to support them,--and that except in the few cases where Christ
was still believed in, they gave way altogether and broke down like
frightened children in a storm.

"Thou hast a few names, even in Sardis!" A few names! But how few!
Universal weariness of life seemed a disease of the time,--there was
nothing that seemed to satisfy--even the newest and most miraculous
results of scientific research and knowledge ceased to be interesting
after the first week of their triumphant public demonstration and
acceptance.

"The world must be growing old," said the Cardinal sadly,--"It must be
losing its vigour,--it is too tired to lift itself to the light; too
weary and worn out to pray. Perhaps the end of all present things is at
hand,--perhaps it is the beginning of the promised 'new heavens and new
earth.'"

Just then the organ-music ceased abruptly, and the Cardinal, waking
from his thoughts as from a trance, rose up slowly and stood for a
moment facing the great High Altar, which at that distance could only
just be discerned among its darkening surroundings by the little
flickering flame of the suspended lamp burning dimly before the holy
Tabernacle, wherein was locked with golden key behind snowy doors of
spotless marble, the sacred and mysterious Host.

"WHEN THE SON OF MAN COMETH, THINK YE HE SHALL FIND FAITH ON EARTH?"

Again that searching question repeated itself in his mind so distinctly
as to be echoed in his ears,--the deep silence around him seemed
waiting expectantly for some reply, and moved by a strange spirit of
exaltation within him, he answered half aloud--

"Yes! Surely He will find faith,--if only in the few! There are 'a few
names, even in Sardis!' In the sorrowful and meek,--in the poor and
patient and downtrodden martyrs of humanity, He will find faith;--in
the very people He died to save He will discover that most precious and
inspiring of all virtues! But in the so-called wise and brilliant
favourites of the world He will not find it,--in the teachers of the
people He will search for it in vain. By the writers of many books He
shall find Himself scorned and rejected,--in the cheap and spurious
philosophy of modern egotists He will see His doctrines mocked at and
denounced as futile. Few men there are in these days who would deny
themselves for His sake, or sacrifice a personal passion for the purer
honouring of His name. Inasmuch as the pride of great learning breeds
arrogance, so the more the wonder of God's work is displayed to us, the
more are we dazzled and confounded; and so in our blindness we turn
from the worship of the Creator to that of His creation, forgetting
that all the visible universe is but the outcome or expression of the
hidden Divine Intelligence behind it. What of the marvels of the
age!--the results of science!--the strange psychic prescience and
knowledge of things more miraculous yet to be!--these are but hints and
warnings of the approach of God himself--'coming in a cloud with power
and great glory'!"

As he thus spoke, he raised his hand out of old habit acquired in
preaching, and a ray from the after-glow of the sunken sun lit up the
jewel in the apostolic ring he wore, warming its pale green lustre to a
dim violet spark as of living fire. His fine features were for a moment
warm with fervour and feeling,--then,--suddenly, he thought of the
great world outside all creeds,--of the millions and millions of human
beings who neither know nor accept Christ,--of the Oriental races with
their intricate and beautiful systems of philosophy,--of savage tribes,
conquered and unconquered,--of fierce yet brave Turkish warriors who
are, with all their faults, at any rate true to the faith they
profess--and lastly--more than all--of the thousands upon thousands of
Christians in Christian lands, who no more believe in Him whose holy
name they take in vain, than in any Mumbo-Jumbo fetish of untaught
barbarians. Were these to perish utterly? Had THEY no immortal souls to
save? Had the churches been at work for eighteen hundred years and
more, to bring about no better results than this,--namely that there
were only "A FEW NAMES IN SARDIS"? If so, were not the churches
criminally to blame? Yea, even holy Mother-Church, whose foundation
rested on the memory of the Lying Apostle? Rapidly, and as if suggested
by some tormenting devil, these thoughts possessed the Cardinal's
brain, burning into it and teasing and agonising the tender fibres of
his conscience and his soul. Could God, the great loving Creator of
countless universes, be so cruel as to wantonly destroy millions of
helpless creatures in one small planet, because through ignorance or
want of proper teaching they had failed to find Christ?--was it
possible that he could only extend his mercy and forgiveness to the
"few names in Sardis"?

"Yet our world is but a pin's point in the eternal immensities," argued
the Cardinal almost wistfully--"Only a few can expect to be saved."

Nevertheless, this reasoning did not satisfy him. Again, what of these
millions? Were they to be forever lost? Then why so much waste of life?
Waste of life! There is no such thing as waste of life--this much
modern science the venerable Felix knew. Nothing can be wasted,--not a
breath, not a scene, not a sound. All is treasured up in Nature's
store-house and can be eternally reproduced at Nature's will. Then what
was to become of the myriads of human beings and immortal souls whom
the Church had failed to rescue? THE CHURCH HAD FAILED! Why had it
failed? Whose the fault?--whose the weakness?--for fault and weakness
were existent somewhere.

"WHEN THE SON OF MAN COMETH, THINK YE HE SHALL FIND FAITH ON EARTH?"

"No!" whispered the Cardinal, suddenly forced, as it were in his own
despite, to contradict his former assertion--"No!" He paused, and
mechanically making his way towards the door of the Cathedral, he
dipped his fingers into the holy water that glistened dimly in its
marble basin near the black oak portal, and made the sign of the cross
on brow and breast;--"He will not find faith where faith should be
pre-eminent. It must be openly confessed--repentingly admitted,--He
will NOT find faith even in the Church He founded,--I say it to our
shame!"

His head drooped, as though his own words had wounded him, and with an
air of deep dejection he slowly passed out. The huge iron-bound door
swung noiselessly to and fro behind him,--the grave-toned bell in the
tower struck seven. Outside, a tender twilight mellowed the atmosphere
and gave brightness to approaching evening; inside, the long shadows,
gathering heavily in the aisles and richly sculptured hollows of the
side-chapels, brought night before its time. The last votive candle at
the Virgin's shrine flickered down and disappeared like a firefly in
dense blackness,--the last echo of the bell died in a tremulous
vibration up among the high-springing roof-arches, and away into the
solemn corners where the nameless dead reposed,--the last impression of
life and feeling vanished with the retreating figure of the
Cardinal--and the great Cathedral, the Sanctuary and House of God, took
upon itself the semblance of a funeral vault,--a dark, Void, wherein
but one red star, the lamp before the Altar, burned.



II.

Lovely to a poet or an artist's eye is the unevenly-built and
picturesque square of Rouen in which the Cathedral stands,--lovely, and
suggestive of historical romance in all its remote corners, its
oddly-shaped houses, its by-ways and crooked little flights of steps
leading to nowhere, its gables and slanting roofs, and its utter
absence of all structural proportion. A shrine here, a broken statue
there,--a half-obliterated coat-of-arms over an old gateway,--a rusty
sconce fitted fast into the wall to support a lantern no longer needed
in these days of gas and electricity,--an ancient fountain overgrown
with weed, or a projecting vessel of stone for holy water, in which
small birds bathe and disport themselves after a shower of rain,--those
are but a few of the curious fragments of a past time which make the
old place interesting to the student, and more than fascinating to the
thinker and dreamer. The wonderful "Hotel Bourgtheroulde," dating from
the time of Francis the First, and bearing on its sculptured walls the
story of the Field of the Cloth of Gold, in company with the
strangely-contrasting "Allegories", from Petrarch's "Triumphs", is
enough in itself to keep the mind engrossed with fanciful musings for
an hour. How did Petrarch and the Field of the Cloth of Gold come
together in the brain of the sculptor who long ago worked at these
ancient bas-reliefs? One wonders, but the wonder is in vain,--there is
no explanation;--and the "Bourgtheroulde" remains a pleasing and
fantastic architectural mystery. Close by, through the quaint old
streets of the Epicerie and "Gross Horloge", walked no doubt in their
young days the brothers Corneille, before they evolved from their
meditative souls the sombre and heavy genius of French tragedy,--and
not very far away, up one of those little shadowy winding streets and
out at the corner, stands the restored house of Diane de Poitiers, so
sentient and alive in its very look that one almost expects to see at
the quaint windows the beautiful wicked face of the woman who swayed
the humours of a king by her smile or her frown.

Cardinal Bonpre, walking past the stately fourteenth-century Gothic
pile of the Palais de Justice, thought half-vaguely of some of these
things,--but they affected him less than they might have done had his
mind not been full of the grand music he had just heard in the
Cathedral, and of the darkness that had slowly gathered there, as
though in solemn commingling with the darkness which had at the same
time settled over his soul. A great oppression weighed upon
him;--almost he judged himself guilty of mortal sin, for had he not
said aloud and boldly, while facing the High Altar of the Lord, that
even in the Church itself faith was lacking? Yes, he, a
Cardinal-Archbishop, had said this thing; he had as it were proclaimed
it on the silence of the sacred precincts,--and had he not in this,
acted unworthily of his calling? Had he not almost uttered blasphemy?
Grieved and puzzled, the good Felix went on his way, almost unseeingly,
towards the humble inn where he had elected to remain for the brief
period of his visit to Rouen,--an inn where no one stayed save the very
poorest of travellers, this fact being its chief recommendation in the
eyes of the Cardinal. For it must be conceded, that viewed by our
latter-day ideas of personal comfort and convenience, the worthy
prelate had some very old-world and fantastic notions. One of these
notions was a devout feeling that he should, so far as it was humanly
possible, endeavour to obey the Master whose doctrine he professed to
follow. This, it will be admitted, was a curious idea. Considering the
bold and blasphemous laxity of modern Christian customs, it was surely
quite a fanatical idea. Yet he had his own Church-warrant for such a
rule of conduct; and chief among the Evangelic Counsels writ down for
his example was Voluntary Poverty. Yes!--Voluntary
Poverty,--notwithstanding the countless treasures lying idle and wasted
in the Vatican, and the fat sinecures enjoyed by bishops and
archbishops; which things exist in direct contradiction and
disobedience to the command of Christ. Christ Himself lived on the
earth in poverty,--He visited only the poorest and simplest
habitations,--and never did He set His sacred foot within a palace,
save the palace of the High Priest where He was condemned to die. Much
symbolic meaning did Cardinal Felix discover in this incident,--and
often would he muse upon it gravely.

"The Divine is condemned to die in all palaces," he would say,--"It is
only in the glorious world of Nature, under the sunlit or starlit
expanse of heaven, that the god in us can live; and it was not without
some subtle cause of intended instruction to mankind that the Saviour
always taught His followers in the open air."

There was what might be called a palace hard by, to which Bonpre had
been invited, and where he would have been welcome to stay as long as
he chose,--the house of the Archbishop of Rouen--a veritable abode of
luxury as compared with the Hotel Poitiers, which was a dingy little
tumble-down building, very old, and wearing a conscious air of
feebleness and decrepitude which was almost apologetic. Its small
windows, set well back in deeply hollowed carved arches had a
lack-lustre gleam, as of very aged eyes under shelving brows,--its
narrow door, without either bolts or bars, hung half-aslant upon
creaking rusty hinges, and was never quite shut either by day or
night,--yet from the porch a trailing mass of "creeping jenny" fell in
a gold-dotted emerald fringe over the head of any way-worn traveller
passing in,--making a brightness in a darkness, and suggesting
something not altogether uncheery in the welcome provided. They were
very humble folk who kept the Hotel Poitiers,--the host, Jean Patoux,
was a small market-gardener who owned a plot of land outside Rouen,
which he chiefly devoted to the easy growing of potatoes and
celery--his wife had her hands full with the domestic business of the
hotel and the cares of her two children, Henri and Babette, the most
incorrigible imps of mischief that ever lived in Rouen or out of it.
Madame Patoux, large of body, unwieldy in movement, but clean as a new
pin, and with a fat smile of perpetual contentment on her round visage,
professed to be utterly worn to death by the antics of these children
of hers,--but nevertheless she managed to grow stouter every day with a
persistency and fortitude which denoted the reserved forces of her
nature,--and her cooking, always excellent, never went wrong because
Babette had managed to put her doll in one of the saucepans, or Henri
had essayed to swim a paper boat in the soup. Things went on somehow;
Patoux himself was perfectly satisfied with his small earnings and
position in life--Madame Patoux felt that "le bon Dieu" was specially
engaged in looking after her,--and as long as the wicked Babette and
the wickeder Henri threw themselves wildly into her arms and clung
round her fat neck imploring pardon after any and every misdeed, and
sat for a while "en penitence" in separate corners reading the "Hours
of Mary", they might be as naughty as they chose over and over again so
far as the good-natured mother was concerned. Just now, however,
unusual calm appeared to have settled on the Patoux household,--an
atmosphere of general placidity and peace prevailed, which had the
effect of imparting almost a stately air to the tumble-down house, and
a suggestion of luxury to the poorly-furnished rooms Madame Patoux
herself was conscious of a mysterious dignity in her surroundings, and
moved about on her various household duties with less bounce and fuss
than was her ordinary custom,--and Henri and Babette sat quiet without
being told to do so, moved apparently by a sudden and inexplicable
desire to study their lessons. All this had been brought about by the
advent of Cardinal Bonpre, who with his kind face, gentle voice and
beneficent manner, had sought and found lodging at the Hotel Poitiers,
notwithstanding Madame Patoux's profuse apologies for the narrowness
and inconvenience of her best rooms.

"For look you, Monseigneur," she murmured, deferentially, "How should
we have ever expected such an honour as the visit of a holy
Cardinal-Archbishop to our poor little place! There are many new houses
on the Boulevards which could have accommodated Monseigneur with every
comfort,--and that he should condescend to bestow the blessing of his
presence upon us,--ah! it was a special dispensation of Our Lady which
was too amazing and wonderful to be at once comprehended!"

Thus Madame Patoux, with breathless pauses between her sentences, and
many profound curtseyings; but the good Cardinal waived aside her
excuses and protestations, and calling her "My daughter", signed the
cross on her brow with paternal gentleness, assuring her that he would
give her as little trouble as any other casual visitor.

"Trouble!--Ah, heaven!--could anything be a trouble for Monseigneur!"
and Madame Patoux, moved to tears by the quiet contentment with which
the Cardinal took possession of the two bare, common rooms which were
the best she could place at his disposal, hurried away, and hustling
Henri and Babette like two little roly-poly balls before her into the
kitchen, she told them with much emphasis that there was a saint in the
house,--a saint fit to be the holy companion of any of those who had
their niches up in the Cathedral near the great rose-window,--and that
if they were good children they would very likely see an angel coming
down from heaven to visit him. Babette put her finger in her mouth and
looked incredulous. She had a vague belief in angels,--but Henri, with
the cheap cynicism of the modern French lad was anything but sure about
them.

"Mother," said he, "There's a boy in our school who says there is no
God at all, and that it's no use having priests or Cardinals or
Cathedrals,--it's all rubbish and humbug!"

"Poor little miserable monster!" exclaimed Madame Patoux, as she peered
into the pot where the soup for the Cardinal's supper was
simmering--"He is arranging himself to become a thief or a murderer, be
sure of that, Henri!--and thou, who art trained in all thy holy duties
by the good Pere Laurent, who teaches thee everything which the school
is not wise enough to teach, ought never to listen to such wickedness.
If there were no God, we should not be alive at all, thou foolish
child!--for it is only our blessed Saviour and the saints that keep the
world going."

Henri was silent,--Babette looked at him and made a little grimace of
scorn.

"If the Cardinal is a saint," she said--"he should be able to perform a
miracle. The little Fabien Doucet has been lame for seven years; we
shall bring him to Monseigneur, and he will mend his leg and make him
well. Then we shall believe in saints afterwards."

Madame Patoux turned her warm red face round from the fire over which
she was bending, and stared at her precocious offspring aghast.

"What! You will dare to address yourself to the Cardinal!" she cried
vociferously--"You will dare to trouble him with such foolishness? Mon
Dieu!--is it possible to be so wicked! But listen to me well!--If you
presume to say one saucy word to Monseigneur, you shall be punished!
What have you to do with the little Fabien Doucet?--the poor child is
sickly and diseased by the will of God."

"I don't see why it should be God's will to make a boy sickly and
diseased--" began the irrepressible Henri, when his mother cut him
short with a stamp of her foot and a cry of--

"Tais-toi! Silence! Wicked boy!--thou wilt kill me with thy naughty
speeches! All this evil comes of the school,--I would thy father had
never been compelled to send thee there!"

As she said this with a vast amount of heat and energy, Henri, seized
by some occult and inexplicable emotion, burst without warning into
loud and fitful weeping, the sound whereof resembled the yelling of a
tortured savage,--and Babette, petrified at first by the appalling
noise, presently gave way likewise, and shrieked a wild accompaniment.

"What ails my children?" said a gentle voice, distinct and clear in its
calm intonation even in the midst of the uproar, and Cardinal Bonpre,
tall and stately, suddenly appeared upon the threshold--"What little
sorrows are these?"

Henri's roar ceased abruptly,--Babette's shrill wailing dropped into
awed silence. Both youngsters stared amazed at the venerable Felix,
whose face and figure expressed such composed dignity and sweetness;
and Madame Patoux, nastily and with frequent gasps for breath, related
the history of the skirmish.

"And what will become of such little devils when they grow older, the
Blessed Virgin only knows!" she groaned--"For even now they are so
suspicious in nature, that they will not believe in their dinner till
they see it!"

Something like a faint grin widened the mouths of Henri and Babette at
this statement made with so much distressed fervour by their angry
mother,--but the Cardinal did not smile. His face had grown very pale
and grave, almost stern.

"The children are quite right, my daughter," he said gently,--"I am no
saint! I have performed no miracles. I am a poor sinner,--striving to
do well, but alas!--for ever striving in vain. The days of noble living
are past,--and we are all too much fallen in the ways of error to
deserve that our Lord should bless the too often half-hearted and
grudging labour of his so-called servants. Come here, ma mignonne!" he
continued, calling Babette, who approached him with a curious air of
half-timid boldness--"Thou art but a very little girl," he said, laying
his thin white hand softly on her tumbled brown curls--"Nevertheless, I
should be a very foolish old man if I despised thee, or thy thoughts,
or thy desire to know the truth for truth's sake. Therefore to-morrow
thou shalt bring me this afflicted friend of thine, and though I have
no divine gifts, I will do even as the Master commanded,--I will lay my
hands on him in blessing and pray that he may be healed. More than this
is not in my power, my child!--if a miracle is to be worked, it is our
dear Lord only who can work it."

Gently he murmured his formal benediction,--then, turning away, he
entered his own room and shut the door. Babette, grown strangely
serious, turned to her brother and held out her hand, moved by one of
those erratic impulses which often take sudden possession of
self-willed children.

"Come into the Cathedral!" she whispered imperatively--"Come and say an
Ave."

Not a word did the usually glib Henri vouchsafe in answer,--but
clutching his sister's fingers in his own dirty, horny palm, he trotted
meekly beside her out of the house and across the Square into the
silence and darkness of Notre Dame. Their mother watched their little
plump figures disappear with a feeling of mingled amazement and
gratitude,--miracles were surely beginning, she thought, if a few words
from the Cardinal could impress Babette and Henri with an idea of the
necessity of prayer!

They were not long gone, however;--they came walking back together,
still demurely hand in hand, and settled themselves quietly in a corner
to study their tasks for the next day. Babette's doll, once attired as
a fashionable Parisienne, and now degenerated into a one-eyed laundress
with a rather soiled cap and apron, stuck out its composite arms in
vain from the bench where it sat all askew, drooping its head forlornly
over a dustpan,--and Henri's drum, wherewith he was wont to wake
alarming echoes out of the dreamy and historical streets of Rouen, lay
on its side neglected and ingloriously silent. And, as before said,
peace reigned in the Patoux household,--even the entrance of Papa
Patoux himself, fresh from his celery beds, and smelling of the earth
earthy, created no particular diversion. He was a very little, very
cheery, round man, was Papa Patoux; he had no ideas at all in his
bullet head save that he judged everything to be very well managed in
the Universe, and that he, considered simply as Patoux, was lucky in
his life and labours,--also that it was an easy thing to grow celery,
provided God's blessing was on the soil. For the rest, he took small
care; he knew that the world wagged in different ways in different
climates,--he read his half-penny journal daily, and professed to be
interested in the political situation just for the fun of the thing,
but in reality he thought the French Senate a pack of fools, and
wondered what they meant by always talking so much about nothing. He
believed in "La Patrie" to a certain extent,--but he would have very
much objected if "La Patrie" had interfered with his celery. Roughly
sneaking, he understood that France was a nation, and that he was a
Frenchman; and that if any enemies should presume to come into the
country, it would be necessary to take up a musket and fight them out
again, and defend wife, children, and celery-beds till the last breath
was out of his body. Further than this simple and primitive idea of
patriotism he did not go. He never bothered himself about dissentient
shades of opinion, or quarrels among opposing parties. When he had to
send his children to the Government school, the first thing he asked
was whether they would be taught their religion there. He was told
no,--that the Government objected to religious teaching, as it merely
created discussion and was of no assistance whatever in the material
business of life. Patoux scratched his head over this for a
considerable time and ruminated deeply,--finally he smiled, a dull fat
smile.

"Good!" said he--"I understand now why the Government makes such an ass
of itself now and then! You cannot expect mere men to do their duty
wisely without God on their side. But Pere Laurent will teach my
children their prayers and catechism,--and I dare say Heaven will
arrange the rest."

And he forthwith dismissed the matter from his mind. His children
attended the Government school daily,--and every Wednesday, Saturday,
and Sunday afternoons Pere Laurent, a kindly, simple-hearted old
priest, took them, with several other little creatures "educated by the
State", and taught them all he knew about the great France-exiled
Creator of the Universe, and of His ceaseless love to sinful and
blasphemous mankind.

So things went on;--and though Henri and Babette were being crammed by
the national system of instruction, with learning which was destined to
be of very slight use to them in their after careers, and which made
them little cynics before their time, they were still sustained within
bounds by the saving sense of something better than themselves,--that
Something Better which silently declares itself in the beauty of the
skies, the blossoming of the flowers, and the loveliness of all things
wherein man has no part,--and neither of them was yet transformed into
that most fearsome product of modern days, the child-Atheist, for whom
there is no greater God than Self.

On this particular night when Papa Patoux returned to the bosom of his
family, he, though a dull-witted man generally, did not fail to note
the dove-like spirit of calm that reigned over his entire household.
His wife's fat face was agreeably placid,--the children were in an
orderly mood, and as he sat down to the neatly spread supper-table, he
felt more convinced than ever that things were exceedingly well managed
for him in this best of all possible worlds. Pausing in the act of
conveying a large spoonful of steaming soup to his mouth he enquired--

"And Monseigneur, the Cardinal Bonpre,--has he also been served?"

Madame Patoux opened her round eyes wide at him.

"But certainly! Dost thou think, my little cabbage, thou wouldst get
thy food before Monseigneur? That would be strange indeed!"

Papa Patoux swallowed his ladleful of soup in abashed silence.

"It was a beautiful day in the fields," he presently observed--"There
was a good smell in the earth, as if violets were growing,--and late in
the autumn though it is, there was a skylark yet singing. It was a very
blue heaven, too, as blue as the robe of the Virgin, with clouds as
white as little angels clinging to it."

Madame nodded. Some people might have thought Papa Patoux inclined to
be poetical,--she did not. Henri and Babette listened.

"The robe of Our Lady is always blue," said Babette.

"And the angels' clothes are always white," added Henri.

Madame Patoux said nothing, but passed a second helping of soup all
round. Papa Patoux smiled blandly on his offspring.

"Just so," he averred--"Blue and white are the colours of the sky, my
little ones,--and Our Lady and the angels live in the sky!"

"I wonder where?" muttered Henri with his mouth half full. "The sky is
nothing but miles and miles of air, and in the air there are millions
and millions of planets turning round and round, larger than our
world,--ever so much larger,--and nobody knows which is the largest of
them all!"

"It is as thou sayest, my son," said Patoux confidently--"Nobody knows
which is the largest of them all, but whichever it may be, that largest
of them all belongs to Our Lady and the angels."

Henri looked at Babette, but Babette was munching watercress busily,
and did not return his enquiring glances. Papa Patoux, quite satisfied
with his own reasoning, continued his supper in an amiable state of
mind.

"What didst thou serve to Monseigneur, my little one?" he asked his
wife with a coaxing and caressing air, as though she were some delicate
and dainty sylph of the woodlands, instead of being the lady of massive
proportions which she undoubtedly was,--"Something of delicacy and fine
flavour, doubtless?"

Madame Patoux shook her head despondingly.

"He would have nothing of that kind," she replied--"Soup maigre, and
afterwards nothing but bread, dried figs, and apples to finish. Ah,
Heaven! What a supper for a Cardinal-Archbishop! It is enough to make
one weep!"

Patoux considered the matter solemnly.

"He is perhaps very poor?" he half queried.

"Poor, he may be," responded Madame,--"But if he is, it is surely his
own fault,--whoever heard of a poor Cardinal-Archbishop! Such men can
all be rich if they choose."

"Can they?" asked Henri with sudden vivacious eagerness. "How?"

But his question was not answered, for just at that moment a loud knock
came at the door of the inn, and a tall broadly built personage in
close canonical attire appeared in the narrow little passage of entry,
attended by another smaller and very much more insignificant-looking
individual.

Patoux hastily scrambled out of his chair.

"The Archbishop!" he whispered to his wife--"He himself! Our own
Archbishop!"

Madame Patoux jumped up, and seizing her children, held one in each
hand as she curtsied up and down.

"Benedicite!" said the new-comer, lightly signing the cross in air with
a sociable smile--"Do not disturb yourselves, my children! You have
with you in this house the eminent Cardinal Bonpre?"

"Ah, yes, Monseigneur!" replied Madame Patoux--"Only just now he has
finished his little supper. Shall I show Monseigneur to his room?"

"If you please," returned the Archbishop, still smiling
benevolently--"And permit my secretary to wait with you here till I
return."

With this, and an introductory wave of his hand in the direction of the
attenuated and sallow-faced personage who had accompanied him, he
graciously permitted Madame Patoux to humbly precede him by a few
steps, and then followed her with a soft, even tread, and a sound as of
rustling silk in his garments, from which a faint odour of some
delicate perfume seemed wafted as he moved.

Left to entertain the Archbishop's secretary, Jean Patoux was for a
minute or two somewhat embarrassed. Henri and Babette stared at the
stranger with undisguised curiosity, and were apparently not favourably
impressed by his appearance.

"He has white eyelashes!" whispered Henri.

"And yellow teeth," responded Babette.

Meanwhile Patoux, having scratched his bullet-head sufficiently over
the matter, offered his visitor a chair.

"Sit down, sir," he said curtly.

The secretary smiled pallidly and took the proffered accommodation.
Patoux again meditated. He was not skilled in the art of polite
conversation, and he found himself singularly at a loss.

"It would be an objection no doubt, and an irreverance perhaps to smoke
a pipe before you, Monsieur--Monsieur--"

"Cazeau," finished the secretary with another pallid smile--"Claude
Cazeau, a poor scribe,--at your service! And I beg of you, Monsieur
Jean Patoux, to smoke at your distinguished convenience!"

There was a faint tone of satire in his voice which struck Papa Patoux
as exceedingly disagreeable, though he could not quite imagine why he
found it so. He slowly reached for his pipe from the projecting shelf
above the chimney, and as slowly proceeded to fill it with tobacco from
a tin cannister close by.

"I do not think I have ever seen you in the town, Monsieur Cazeau," he
said--"Nor at Mass in the Cathedral either?"

"No?" responded Cazeau easily, in a half-querying tone--"I do not much
frequent the streets; and I only attend the first early mass on
Sundays. My work for Monseigneur occupies my whole time."

"Ah!" and Patoux, having stuffed his pipe sufficiently, lit it, and
proceeded to smoke peaceably--"There must be much to do. Many poor and
sick who need money, and clothes, and help in every way,--and to try
and do good, and give comfort to all the unhappy souls in Rouen is a
hard task, even for an Archbishop."

Cazeau linked his thin hands together with an action of pious fervour
and assented.

"There is a broken-hearted creature near us," pursued Patoux
leisurely--"We call her Marguerite La Folle;--I have often thought I
would ask Pere Laurent to speak to Monseigneur for her, that she might
be released from the devils that are tearing her. She was a good girl
till a year or two ago,--then some villain got the ruin of her, and she
lost her wits over it. Ah,'tis a sad sight to see her now--poor
Marguerite Valmond!"

"Ha!" cried Henri suddenly, pointing a grimy finger at Cazeau--"Why did
you jump? Did something hurt you?"

Cazeau had indeed "jumped," as Henri put it,--that is, he had sprung up
from his chair suddenly and as suddenly sat down again with an air of
impatience and discomfort. He rapidly overcame whatever emotion moved
him, however, and stretched his thin mouth in a would-be amiable grin
at the observant Henri.

"You are a sharp boy!" he observed condescendingly--"and tall for your
age, no doubt. How old are you?"

"Eleven," replied Henri--"But that has nothing to do with your jumping."

"True," and the secretary wriggled in his chair, pretending to be much
amused--"But my jumping had nothing to do with you either, my small
friend! I had a thought,--a sudden thought,--of a duty forgotten."

"Oh, it was a thought, was it?" and Henri looked incredulous. "Do
thoughts always make you jump?"

"Tais-toi! Tais-toi!" murmured Patoux gently, between two whiffs of his
pipe--"Excuse him, Monsieur Cazeau,--he is but a child."

Cazeau writhed amicably.

"A delightful child," he murmured--"And the little girl--his sister--is
also charming--Ah, what fine dark eyes!--what hair! Will she not come
and speak to me?"

He held out a hand invitingly towards Babette, but she merely made a
grimace at him and retired backwards. Patoux smiled benevolently.

"She does not like strangers," he explained.

"Good--very good! That is right! Little girls should always run away
from strangers, especially strangers of my sex," observed Cazeau with a
sniggering laugh--"And do these dear children go to school?"

Patoux took his pipe out of his mouth altogether, and stared solemnly
at the ceiling.

"Without doubt!--they are compelled to go to school," he answered
slowly; "but if I could have had my way, they should never have gone.
They learn mischief there in plenty, but no good that I can see. They
know much about geography, and the stars, and anatomy, and what they
call physical sciences;--but whether they have got it into their heads
that the good God wants them to live straight, clean, honest, wholesome
lives, is more than I am certain of. However, I trust Pere Laurent will
do what he can."

"Pere Laurent?" echoed Cazeau, with a wide smile--"You have a high
opinion of Pere Laurent? Ah, yes, a good man!--but ignorant--alas! very
ignorant!"

Papa Patoux brought his eyes down from the ceiling and fixed them
enquiringly on Cazeau.

"Ignorant?" he began, when at this juncture Madame Patoux entered, and
taking possession of Henri and Babette, informed Monsieur Cazeau that
the Archbishop would be for some time engaged in conversation with
Cardinal Bonpre, and that therefore he, Monsieur Cazeau, need not
wait,--Monseigneur would return to his house alone. Whereupon the
secretary rose, evidently glad to be set at liberty, and took his leave
of the Patoux family. On the threshold, however, he paused, looking
back somewhat frowningly at Jean Patoux himself.

"I should not, if I were you, trouble Monseigneur concerning the case
you told me of--that of--of Marguerite Valmond,"--he observed--"He has
a horror of evil women."

With that he departed, walking across the Square towards the
Archbishop's house in a stealthy sort of fashion, as though he were a
burglar meditating some particularly daring robbery.

"He is a rat--a rat!" exclaimed Henri, suddenly executing a sort of
reasonless war-dance round the kitchen--"One wants a cat to catch him!"

"Rats are nice," declared Babette, for she remembered having once had a
tame white rat which sat on her knee and took food from her
hand,--"Monsieur Cazeau is a man; and men are not nice."

Patoux burst into a loud laugh.

"Men are not nice!" he echoed--"What dost thou know about it, thou
little droll one?"

"What I see," responded Babette severely, with an elderly air, as of a
person who has suffered by bitter experience; and, undeterred by her
parents' continued laughter she went on--

"Men are ugly. They are dirty. They say 'Come here my little girl, and
I will give you something,'--then when I go to them they try and kiss
me. And I will not kiss them, because their mouths smell bad. They
stroke my hair and pull it all the wrong way. And it hurts. And when I
don't like my hair pulled the wrong way, they tell me I will be a great
coquette. A coquette is to be like Diane de Poitiers. Shall I be like
Diane de Poitiers?"

"The saints forbid!" cried Madame Patoux,--"And talk no more nonsense,
child,--it's bed-time. Come,--say good-night to thy father,
Henri;--give them thy blessing, Jean--and let me get them into their
beds before the Archbishop leaves the house, or they will be asking him
as many questions as there are in the catechism."

Thus enjoined, Papa Patoux kissed his children affectionately, signing
the cross on their brows as they came up to him in turn, after the
fashion of his own father, who had continued this custom up to his
dying day. What they thought of the benediction in itself might be
somewhat difficult to define, but it can be safely asserted that a
passion of tears on the part of Babette, and a fit of demoniacal
howling from Henri, would have been the inevitable result if Papa
Patoux had refused to bestow it on them. Whether there were virtue in
it or not, their father's mute blessing sent them to bed peaceably and
in good humour with each other, and they trotted off very contentedly
beside their mother, hushing their footsteps and lowering their voices
as they passed the door of the room occupied by Cardinal Bonpre.

"The Archbishop is not an angel, is he?" asked Babette whisperingly.

Her mother smiled broadly.

"Not exactly, my little one. Why such a foolish question?"

"You said that Cardinal Bonpre was a saint, and that perhaps we should
see an angel come down from heaven to visit him," replied Babette.

"Well, you could not have thought the Archbishop came from heaven,"
interpolated Henri, scornfully,--"He came from his own house over the
way with his own secretary behind him. Do angels keep secretaries?"

Babette laughed aloud,--the idea was grotesque. The two children were
just then ascending the wooden stairs to their bedroom, the mother
carrying a lighted candle behind them, and at that moment the rich
sonorous voice of the Archbishop, raised to a high and somewhat
indignant tone, reached them with these words--"I consider that you
altogether mistake your calling and position."

Then the voice died away into inaudible murmurings.

"They are quarrelling! The Archbishop is angry!" said Henri with a grin.

"Perhaps Archbishops do not like saints," suggested Babette.

"Tais-toi! Cardinal Bonpre is an archbishop himself, little silly,"
said Madame Patoux--"Therefore those great and distinguished
Monseigneurs are like brothers."

"That is why they are quarrelling!" declared Henri glibly,--"A boy told
me in school that Cain and Abel were the first pair of brothers, and
they quarrelled,--and all brothers have quarrelled ever since. It's in
the blood, so that boy says,--and it is his excuse always for fighting
HIS little brother. His little brother is six, and he is twelve;--and
of course he always knocks his little brother down. He cannot help it,
he says. And he gets books on physiology and heredity, and he learns in
them that whatever is IN the blood has got to come out somehow. He says
that it's because Cain killed Abel that there are wars between
nations;--if Cain and Abel had never quarrelled, there would never have
been any fighting in the world,--and now that it's in the blood of
every body--"

But further sapient discourse on the part of Henri was summarily put an
end to by his mother's ordering him to kneel down and say his prayers,
and afterwards bundling him into bed,--where, being sleepy, he speedily
forgot all that he had been trying to talk about. Babette took more
time in retiring to rest. She had very pretty, curly, brown hair, and
Madame Patoux took a pride in brushing and plaiting it neatly.

"I may be like Diane de Poitiers after all," she remarked, peering at
herself in the small mirror when her thick locks were smoothed and tied
back for the night--"Why should I not be?"

"Because Diane de Poitiers was a wicked woman," said Madame Patoux
energetically,--"and thou must learn to be a good girl."

"But if Diane de Poitiers was bad, why do they talk so much about her
even now, and put her in all the histories, and show her house, and say
she was beautiful?" went on Babette.

"Because people are foolish," said Madame, getting impatient--"Foolish
people run after bad women, and bad women run after foolish people. Now
say thy prayers."

Obediently Babette knelt down, shut her eyes close, clasped her hands
hard, and murmured the usual evening formula, heaving a small sigh
after her "act of contrition," and looking almost saintly as she
commended herself to her "angel guardian." Then her mother kissed her,
saying--

"Good-night, little daughter! Think of Our Lady and the saints, and
then ask them to keep us safe from evil. Good-night!"

"Good-night." responded Babette sleepily,--but all the same she did not
think of Our Lady and the saints half as much as of Diane de Poitiers.
There are few daughters of Eve to whom conquest does not seem a finer
thing than humility; and the sovereignty of Diane de Poitiers over a
king, seems to many a girl just conscious of her own charm, a more
emphatic testimony to the supremacy of her sex, than the Angel's
greeting of "Blessed art thou!" to the elected Virgin of the world.



III.

Meanwhile a somewhat embarrassing interview had taken place between the
Archbishop of Rouen and Cardinal Bonpre. The archbishop, seen by the
light of the one small lamp which illumined the "best room" of the
Hotel Poitiers was certainly a handsome and imposing personage,
broad-chested and muscular, with a massive head, well set on strong
square shoulders, admirably adapted for the wearing of the dark violet
soutane which fitted them as gracefully as a royal vesture draping the
figure of a king. One disproportionate point, however, about his attire
was, that the heavy gold crucifix which depended by a chain from his
neck, did not, with him, look so much a sacred symbol as a trivial
ornament,--whereas the simple silver one that gleamed against the rusty
black scarlet-edged cassock of Cardinal Bonpre, presented itself as the
plain and significant sign of holiness without the aid of jewellers'
workmanship to emphasize its meaning. This was a trifle, no
doubt;--still it was one of those slight things which often betray
character. As the most brilliant diamond will look like common glass on
the rough red hand of a cook, while common glass will simulate the
richness of the real gem on the delicate white finger of a
daintily-bred woman, so the emblem of salvation seemed a mere bauble
and toy on the breast of the Archbishop, while it assumed its most
reverent and sacred aspect as worn by Felix Bonpre. Yet judged by mere
outward appearance, there could be no doubt as to which was the
finer-looking man of the two. The Cardinal, thin and pale, with shadows
of thought and pain in his eyes, and the many delicate wrinkles of
advancing age marking his features, would never possess so much
attractiveness for worldly and superficial persons as the handsome
Archbishop, who carried his fifty-five years as though they were but
thirty, and whose fresh, plump face, unmarred by any serious
consideration, bespoke a thorough enjoyment of life, and the things
which life,--if encouraged to demand them,--most strenuously seeks,
such as good food, soft beds, rich clothing, and other countless
luxuries which are not necessities by any means, but which make the
hours move smoothly and softly, undisturbed by the clash of outside
events among those who are busy with thoughts and actions, and
who,--being absorbed in the thick of a soul-contest,--care little
whether their bodies fare ill or well. The Archbishop certainly did not
belong to this latter class,--indeed he considered too much thought as
mischievous in itself, and when thought appeared likely to break forth
into action, he denounced it as pernicious and well-nigh criminal.

"Thinkers," he said once to a young and ardent novice, studying for the
priesthood, "are generally socialists and revolutionists. They are an
offence to the Church and a danger to the community."

"Surely," murmured the novice timidly,--"Our Lord Himself was a
thinker? And a Socialist likewise?"

But at this the Archbishop rose up in wrath and flashed forth menace;--

"If you are a follower of Renan, sir, you had better admit it before
proceeding further in your studies," he said irately,--"The Church is
too much troubled in these days by the members of a useless and
degenerate apostasy!" Whereupon the young man had left his presence
abashed, puzzled, and humiliated; but scarcely penitent, inasmuch as
his New Testament taught him that he was right and that the Archbishop
was wrong.

Truth to tell, the Archbishop was very often wrong. Wrapped up in
himself and his own fixed notions as to how life should be lived, he
seldom looked out upon the larger world, and obstinately refused to
take any thoughtful notice of the general tendency of public opinion in
all countries concerning religion and morality. All that he was unable
to explain, he flatly denied,--and his prejudices were as violent as
his hatred of contradiction was keen. The saintly life and noble deeds
of Felix Bonpre had reached him from time to time through various
rumours repeated by different priests and dignitaries of the Church,
who had travelled as far as the distant little Cathedral-town embowered
among towering pines and elm trees, where the Cardinal had his abiding
seat of duty;--and he had been anxious to meet the man who in these
days of fastidious feeding and luxurious living, had managed to gain
such a holy reputation as to be almost canonized in some folks'
estimation before he was dead. Hearing that Bonpre intended to stay a
couple of nights in Rouen, he cordially invited him to spend that time
at his house,--but the invitation had been gratefully yet firmly
refused, much to the Archbishop's amazement. This amazement increased
considerably when he learned that the dingy, comfortless, little Hotel
Poitiers had been selected by the Cardinal as his temporary
lodging,--and it was not without a pious murmur concerning "the pride
which apes humility" that he betook himself to that ancient and
despised hostelry, which had nothing whatever in the way of a modern
advantage to recommend it,--neither electric light, nor electric bell,
nor telephone. But he felt it incumbent upon him to pay a fraternal
visit to the Cardinal, who had become in a manner famous without being
at all aware of his fame,--and when finally in his presence, he was
conscious not only of a singular disappointment, but an equally
singular perplexity. Felix Bonpre was not at all the sort of personage
he had expected to see. He had imagined that a Churchman who was able
to obtain a character for saintliness in days like these, must needs be
worldly-wise and crafty, with a keen perception and comprehension of
the follies of mankind, and an ability to use these follies
advantageously to further his own ends. Something of the cunning and
foresight of an ancient Egyptian sorcerer was in the composition of the
Archbishop himself, for he judged mankind alone by its general
stupidity and credulity;--stupidity and credulity which formed
excellent ground for the working of miracles, whether such miracles
were wrought in the name of Osiris or Christ. Mokanna, the "Veiled
Prophet," while corrupt to the core with unnameable vices, had managed
in his time to delude the people into thinking him a holy man;
and,--without any adequate reason for his assumption,--the Archbishop
had certainly prepared himself to meet in Felix Bonpre, a shrewd,
calculating, clever priest, absorbed in acting the part of an excessive
holiness in order to secure such honour in his diocese as should
attract the particular notice of the Vatican. "Playing for Pope," in
fact, had been the idea with which the archbishop had invested the
Cardinal's reputed sanctity, and he was astonished and in a manner
irritated to find himself completely mistaken. He had opened the
conversation by the usual cordial trivialities of ordinary greeting, to
which Bonpre had responded with the suave courtesy and refined
gentleness which always dignified his manner,--and then the Archbishop
had ventured to offer a remonstrance on the unconventional--"Shall we
call it eccentric?" he suggested, smiling amicably,--conduct of the
Cardinal in choosing to abide in such a comfortless lodging as the
Hotel Poitiers.

"It would have been a pleasure and an honour to me to welcome you at my
house"--he said--"Really, it is quite a violation of custom and usage
that you should be in this wretched place; the accommodation is not at
all fitted for a prince of the Church."

Cardinal Felix raised one hand in gentle yet pained protest.

"Pardon me!" he said, "I do not like that term, 'prince of the Church.'
There are no princes in the Church--or if there are, there should be
none."

The archbishop opened his eyes widely.

"That is a strange remark!" he ejaculated--"Princes of the Church there
have always been since Cardinals were created; and you, being a
Cardinal and an Archbishop as well, cannot be otherwise than one of
them."

Felix Bonpre sighed.

"Still, I maintain that the term is a wrong one," he answered, "and
used in the wrong place. The Church has nothing, or should have nothing
to do with differing titles or places. The ordinary priest who toils
among his congregation day and night, scarcely resting himself, working
and praying for the spiritual welfare of others, should to my thinking
be as greatly held in honour as the bishop who commands him and who
often--so it chances--is able to do less for our Lord than he. In
things temporal, owing to the constant injustice of man practised
against his brother-man, we can seldom attain to strict impartiality of
judgment,--but in things spiritual, there surely should be perfect
equality."

"Seriously speaking, are those your views?" enquired the Archbishop,
his features expressing more and more astonishment.

"Assuredly!" responded the Cardinal gently,--"Are they not yours? Did
not the Master Himself say 'Whosoever will be chief among you, let him
be your servant'? And 'Whosoever shall exalt himself shall be abased'?
These statements are plain and true,--there is no mistaking them."

The Archbishop was silent for a minute or so.

"Unfortunately we cannot apply our Lord's words literally to every-day
exigencies," he murmured suavely--"If we could do so--"

"We SHOULD do so," said the Cardinal with emphasis--"The outside world
may be disinclined to do so,--but we--we who are the representatives of
a God-given faith, are solemnly bound to do so. And I fear--I very much
fear--that it is because in many cases we have not shown the example
expected of us, that heresy and atheism are so common among the people
of the present day."

"Are you a would-be reformer?" asked the Archbishop good-humouredly,
yet not without a touch of satire in his tone,--"If so, you are not
alone--there have already been many!"

"Nay, I desire no reforms," responded the Cardinal, a faint flush
warming the habitual pallor of his cheeks--"I simply wish to
maintain--not alter--the doctrine of our Lord. No reform is necessary
in that,--it is clear, concise, and simple enough for a child to
understand. His command to His disciples was,--'Feed my sheep'--and I
have of late been troubled and perplexed, because it seems to me that
the sheep are not fed;--that despite churches and teachers and
preachers, whole flocks are starving."

The Archbishop moved uneasily in his chair. His habitual violent spirit
of contradiction rose up rebelliously in him, and he longed to give a
sharp answer in confutation of the Cardinal's words, but there was a
touch of the sycophant in his nature despite his personal pride, and he
could not but reflect that Cardinals ranked above Archbishops, and that
Felix Bonpre was in very truth a "prince of the Church" however much he
himself elected to disclaim the title. And as in secular affairs lesser
men will always bow the knee to royalty, so the Archbishop felt the
necessity of temporising with one who was spiritually royal. Therefore
he considered a moment before replying.

"I think," he said at last, in soft persuasive tones, "that your
conscience may perhaps be a little tender on this subject. But I cannot
agree with you in your supposition that whole flocks are starving;--for
Christianity dominates the better and more intellectual part of the
civilized world, and through its doctrines, men are gradually learning
to be more tolerant and less unjust. When we recollect the barbarous
condition of humanity before the coming of Christ--"

"Barbarous?" interrupted the Cardinal with half a smile,--"You would
hardly apply that term to the luxury-loving peoples of Tyre and
Babylon?--or to the ancient splendours of Athens and Rome?"

"They were heathens," said the Archbishop sententiously.

"But they were men and women," replied Bonpre, "And they too had
immortal souls. They were all more or less struggling towards the
fundamental Idea of good. Of course then, as now that Idea was
overgrown by superstitious myths and observances--but the working
tendency of the whole universe being ever towards Good, not Evil, an
impulse to press on in the right direction was always in the brain of
man, no matter how dimly felt. Primitive notions of honour were strange
indeed; nevertheless honour existed in the minds of the early
barbarians in a vague sense, though distorted out of shape and noblest
meaning. No,--we dare not take upon ourselves to assert that men were
altogether barbarous before the coming of Christ. They were cruel and
unjust certainly,--and alas! they are cruel and unjust still! Eighteen
hundred years of Christian teaching have not eradicated these ingrained
sins from any one unit of the entire mass."

"You are a severe judge!" said the Archbishop.

Cardinal Bonpre lifted his mild blue eyes protestingly.

"Severe? I? God forbid that I should be severe, or presume to sit in
judgment on any poor soul that sought my sympathy! I do not judge,--I
simply feel. And my feelings have for a long time, I confess, been
poignantly sorrowful."

"Sorrowful! And why?"

"Because the impression has steadily gained upon me that if our Church
were all it was originally intended to be by its Divine Founder, we
should at this time have neither heresies or apostasies, and all the
world would be gathered into the 'one fold under one Shepherd.' But if
we, who are its ministers, persist in occupying ourselves more with
'things temporal' than 'things spiritual,' we fail to perform our
mission, or to show the example required of us, and we do not attract,
so much as we repel. The very children of the present day are beginning
to doubt our calling and election."

"Oh, of course there are, and always have been heretics and atheists,"
said the Archbishop,--"And apparently there always will be."

"And I venture to maintain that it is our fault that heretics and
atheists continue to exist," replied the Cardinal; "If our Divine faith
were lived divinely, there would be no room for heresy or atheism. The
Church itself supplies the loophole for apostasy."

The Archbishop's handsome face crimsoned.

"You amaze me by such an expression!" he said, raising his voice a
little in the indignation he could scarcely conceal--"you talk--pardon
me--as if you yourself were uncertain of the Church's ability to
withstand unbelief."

"I speak but as I think," answered the Cardinal gently. "And I admit I
AM uncertain. In the leading points of reed I am very steadfastly
convinced;--namely, that Christ was divine, and that the following of
His Gospel is the saving of the immortal soul. But if you ask me
whether I think we do truly follow that Gospel, I must own that I have
doubts upon the matter."

"An elected favourite son of the Church should surely have no doubts!"
said the Archbishop.

"Ah, there you come back to the beginning from which we started, when I
ventured to object to your term 'prince of the Church.' According to
our Master, all men should be equal before Him; therefore we err in
marking differences of rank or favoritism in questions of religion. The
very idea of rank is anti-Christian."

At this the Archbishop began to look seriously annoyed.

"I am afraid you are indulging in very unorthodox ideas," he said with
impatience--"In fact I consider you altogether mistake your calling and
position."

These were the words which had reached the attentive ears of the Patoux
children on their way up to bed, and had caused Henri to declare that
the Archbishop and the Cardinal were quarrelling. Felix Bonpre took the
somewhat violent remark, however, with perfect equanimity.

"Possibly I may do so," he responded peaceably. "We are all subject to
error. My calling, as I take it, is that of a servant of Christ, whose
instructions for work are plainly set down in His own words. It is for
me to follow these instructions as literally and exactly as I can. With
regard to my position, I am placed as the spiritual head of a very
small diocese, where the people for the most part lead very innocent
and harmless lives. But I should be selfish and narrow in spirit if I
allowed myself to limit my views to my own circle of influence. My
flock are mere rustics in intellectual capacity, and have no conception
of the manner in which the larger tide of human events is flowing. Now
and then one or two of the people grow weary of their quiet pastures
and woodlands,--and being young, hopeful, and ardent, start forth into
the great world, there to seek fairer fortunes. Sometimes they come
back to their old homes. Far more frequently they never return. But
those who do come back are changed utterly. I recognise no more the
young men and maidens whom I confirmed in their faith, and laid my
hands on in blessing ere they fared forth to other lives and scenes.
The men are grown callous and worldly; without a heart,--without a
thought,--save for the gain or loss of gold. The women are--ruined!"

He paused a moment. The Archbishop said nothing.

"I love my people," went on the Cardinal pathetically--"No child is
baptised in our old Cathedral without my praying for its future
good,--without my hope that it may grow into that exquisite mingling of
the Divine and Human which our Lord taught us was the perfection of
life, and His desire to see fulfilled in those He called His own.
Yes,--I love my people!--and when any of them go away from me, and then
return to the scenes of their childhood broken-hearted, I cannot meet
them with reproach. My own heart is half broken to see them thus cast
down. And their sorrows have compelled me naturally to meditate on the
sorrows of others,--to consider what it is in the world which thus
corrodes the pure gold of innocence and robs life of its greatest
charm. For if Christ's spirit ruled us all, then innocence should be
held more sacred. Life should engender happiness. I have studied, read,
and thought long, upon these matters, so that I not only feel, but know
the truth of what I say. Brother!--" and the Cardinal, strongly moved,
rose suddenly and confronted the Archbishop with a passionate
gesture--"My great grief is that the spirit of Christ does NOT rule the
world! Christ is being re-crucified by this generation! And the Church
is looking on, and silently permitting His second murder!"

Startled by the force of this expression, the Archbishop sprang up in
his turn, his lips parted as if to speak--then--his angry glance met
the clear, calm, steadfast look of Felix Bonpre, and he faltered. His
eyes drooped--and his massive figure seemed for a moment to shrink with
a sort of abasement. Like an inspired apostle the Cardinal stood, one
hand outstretched,--his whole frame sentient with the strong emotion
which possessed him.

"You know that what I say is true," he continued in quieter but no less
intensely passionate accents--"You know that every day sees our Master
crowned with new thorns and exposed to fresh torture! You know that we
do nothing!--We stand beside Him in His second agony as dumb as though
we were unconscious of it! You know that we MIGHT speak and will not!
You know that we fear the ephemera of temporary governments, policies,
and social conventionalities, more than the great, real, and terrible
judgment of the world to come!"

"But all these things have been said before," began the Archbishop,
recovering a little from the confusion that had momentarily seized
him,--"And as I just now observed, you should remember that there have
always been heretics from the very beginning."

"Oh, I remember!" and the Cardinal sighed, "How is it possible that any
of us should forget! Heretics, whom we have tortured with unheard-of
agonies and burned in the flames, as a proof of our love and sympathy
with the tenderness of Christ Jesus!"

"You are going too far back in time!" said the Archbishop quickly. "We
erred in the beginning through excess of zeal, but now--now--"

"Now we do exactly the same thing," returned Bonpre--"Only we do not
burn physically our heretics, but morally. We condemn all who oppose
us. Good men and brave thinkers, whom in our arrogance we consign to
eternal damnation, instead of endeavouring to draw out the heart of
their mystery, and gather up the gems of their learning as fresh proofs
of the active presence of God's working in, and through all things!
Think of the Church's invincible and overpowering obstinacy in the case
of Galileo! He declared the existence of God to us by the utterance of
a Truth,--inasmuch as every truth is a new message from God. Had he
pronounced his theories before our divine Master, that Master would
have confirmed, not denied them! Have we one single example of Christ
putting to the torture any poor soul that did not believe in Him?
Nay--He Himself submitted to be tortured; but for those who wronged
Him, His prayer was only--'Father, forgive them, for they know not what
they do.' THEY KNOW NOT WHAT THEY DO! The ministers of truth should
rather suffer themselves than let others suffer. The horrors of the
Inquisition are a blot on religious history; our Master never meant us
to burn and torture men into faith. He desired us to love and lead them
into the way of life as the shepherd leads a flock into the fold. I
repeat again, there would have been no room for atheism if we--we--the
servants of Christ, had been strictly true to our vocation."

By this time the Archbishop had recovered his equanimity. He sat down
and surveyed the up-standing figure of the Cardinal with curiosity and
a touch of pity.

"You think too much of these things," he said soothingly--"You are
evidently overwrought with study and excessive zeal. Much that you say
may be true; nevertheless the Church--OUR Church--stands firm among
overwhelming contradictions,--and we, its ministers, do what we can. I
myself am disposed to think that the multitude of the saved is greater
than the multitude of the lost."

"I envy you the consolation such a thought must give," responded the
Cardinal, as he resumed his seat opposite his visitor--"I, on the
contrary, have the pained and bitter sense that we are to blame for all
this 'multitude of the lost,' or at any rate that we could have done
more in the way of rescue than we have done." He paused a moment,
passing one hand across his forehead wearily. "In truth this is what
has for a long time weighed upon my mind, and depressed my spirits even
to the detriment of bodily health. I am nearing the grave, and must
soon give an account of my stewardship;--and the knowledge of the
increasing growth of evil in the world is almost more than I can bear."

"But you are not to blame," said the Archbishop wonderingly,--"In your
own diocese you have fulfilled your duty; more than this is not
expected of you. You have done your best for the people you serve,--and
reports of your charities and good works are not lacking--"

"Do not credit such reports," interrupted the Cardinal, almost
sternly,--"I have done nothing--absolutely nothing! My life has been
too peaceful,--too many undeserved blessings have been bestowed upon
me. I much fear that the calm and quiet of my days have rendered me
selfish. I think I should long ago have sought some means of engaging
in more active duties. I feel as if I should have gone into the thick
of the religious contest, and spoken and fought, and helped the sick
and wounded of the mental battle,--but now--now it is too late!"

"Nothing is too late for one in your position," said the
Archbishop--"You may yet sit in St. Peter's chair!"

"God forbid!" ejaculated Bonpre fervently--"I would rather die! I have
never wished to rule,--I have only sought to help and to comfort. But
sixty-eight years of life weigh heavily on the faculties,--I cannot
wear the sword and buckler of energetic manhood. I am old--old!--and to
a certain extent, incapacitated for useful labour. Hence I almost
grudge my halcyon time spent among simple folk,--time made sweet by all
the surroundings of Nature's pastoral loveliness;--the sorrow of the
wider world knocks at my heart and makes it ache! I feel that I am one
of those who stand by, idly watching the Master's second death without
one word of protest!"

The archbishop listened in silence. There was a curious shamed look
upon his face, as if some secret sin within himself had suddenly been
laid bare in all its vileness to the light of day. The golden crucifix
he wore moved restlessly with a certain agitated quickness in his
breathing, and he did not raise his eyes, when, after a little pause,
he said--

"I tell you, as I told you before, that you think too much; you are
altogether too sensitive. I admit that at the present day the world is
full of terrible heresies and open blasphemy, but this is part of what
we are always bound to expect,--we are told that we must 'suffer for
righteousness' sake--'"

"We!" said the Cardinal--"Yes, WE! that is, OURSELVES;--the Church--WE
think, when we hear of heresies and blasphemies that it is we who are
'suffering for righteousness' sake,' but in our egotism we forget that
WE are not suffering at all if we are able to retain our faith! It is
the very heretics and blasphemers whom we condemn that are
suffering--suffering absolute tortures--perchance 'for righteousness'
sake'!"

"Dare we call a heretic 'righteous'?" enquired the Archbishop--"Is he
not, in his very heresy, accursed?"

"According to our Lord, no one is accursed save traitors,--that is to
say those who are not true. If a man doubts, it is better he should
admit his doubt than make a pretence of belief. The persons whom we
call heretics may have their conception of the truth,--they may say
that they cannot accept a creed which is so ignorant of its own tenets
as to condemn all those who do not follow it,--inasmuch as the very
Founder of it distinctly says--'If any man hear my words and believe
not, I judge him not; for I came not to judge the world, but to save
the world.' Now we, His followers, judge, but do not save. The atheist
is judged by us, but not rescued from his unbelief; the thinker is
condemned,--the scientist who reveals the beauty and wisdom of God as
made manifest in the composition of the lightning, or the germinating
of a flower, is accused of destroying religion. And we continue to pass
our opinion, and thunder our vetoes and bans of excommunication against
our fellowmen, in the full front of the plain command 'Judge not, that
ye be not judged'!"

"I see it is no use arguing with you," said the Archbishop, forcing a
smile, with a vexation the smile could not altogether conceal,--"You
are determined to take these sayings absolutely,--and to fret your
spirit over the non-performance of imaginary duties which do not exist.
This Church is a system,--founded on our Lord's teaching, but applied
to the needs of modern civilization. It is not humanly possible to
literally obey all Christ's commands."

"For the outside world I grant it may be difficult,--but for the
ministers of religion, however difficult it may be, it should be done,"
replied the Cardinal firmly. "I said this before, and I deliberately
maintain it. The Church IS a system,--but whether it is as much founded
on the teaching of our Lord, who was divine, as on the teaching of St.
Paul, who was NOT divine, is a question to me of much perplexity."

"St. Paul was directly inspired by our Lord," said the Archbishop--"I
am amazed that you should even hint a doubt of his apostleship!"

"I do not decry St. Paul," answered Bonpre quietly--"He was a gifted
and clever man, but he was a Man--he was not God-in-Man. Christ's
doctrine leaves no place for differing sects; St. Paul's method of
applying that doctrine serves as authority for the establishment of any
and every quarrelsome sect ever known!"

"I cannot agree with you," said the Archbishop coldly.

"I do not expect to be agreed with"--and Bonpre smiled a little--"An
opinion which excites no opposition at all is not worth having! I am
quite honest in my scruples, such as they are;--I do not think we fit,
as you say, the Church system to the needs of modern civilization. On
the contrary, we must fail in many ways to do this, else there would
not be such a crying out for help and comfort as there is at present
among all Christian peoples. We no longer speak with a grand certainty
as we ought to do. We only offer vague hopes and dubious promises to
those who thirst for the living waters of salvation and
immortality,--it is as if we did not feel sure enough of God ourselves
to make others sure. All this is wrong--wrong! It forebodes heavy
punishment and disaster. If I were younger, I could express perhaps my
meaning more clearly,--but as it is, my soul is weighted with
unutterable thoughts,--I would almost call them warnings,--of some
threatening evil;  . . . and today--only this afternoon--when I sat for
an hour in the Cathedral yonder and listened to the music of the great
organ--"

The Archbishop started.

"What did you say?"

The Cardinal repeated his words gently,--

"I said that I sat in the Cathedral and listened to the music of the
great organ--"

"The great organ!" interrupted the Archbishop,--"You must have been
dreaming! You could not possibly have heard the great organ,--it is old
and all out of gear;--it is never used. The only one we have for
service just now is a much smaller instrument in the left-hand
choir-chapel,--but no person could have played even on that without the
key. And the key was unobtainable, as the organist is absent from the
town to-day."

The Cardinal looked completely bewildered.

"Are you quite sure of this?" he asked falteringly.

"Sure--absolutely sure!" declared the Archbishop with a smile--"No
doubt you thought you heard music; overwrought nerves often play these
tricks upon us. And it is owing to this same cause that you are weary
and dispirited, and that you take such a gloomy view of the social and
religious outlook. You are evidently out of health and unstrung;--but
after you have had sufficient rest and change, you will see things in
quite a different aspect. I will not for a moment believe that you
could possibly be as unorthodox as your conversation would imply,--it
would be a total misconception of your true character," and the
Archbishop laughed softly. "A total misconception," he repeated,--"Why,
yes, of course it would be! No Cardinal-Archbishop of Holy Mother
Church could bring such accusations against its ministry as you would
have suggested, unless he were afflicted by nervous depression, which,
as we all know, has the uncomfortable effect of creating darkness even
where all is light. Do you stay long in Rouen?"

"No," replied the Cardinal abstractedly, answering the question
mechanically though his thoughts were far away--"I leave for Paris
to-morrow."

"For Paris? And then?"

"I go to Rome with my niece, Angela Sovrani,--she is in Paris awaiting
my arrival now."

"Ah! You must be very proud of your niece!" murmured the Archbishop
softly--"She is famous everywhere,--a great artist!--a wonderful
genius!"

"Angela paints well--yes," said the Cardinal quietly,--"But she has
still a great deal to learn. And she is unfortunately much more alone
now than she used to be,--her mother's death last year was a terrible
blow to her."

"Her mother was your sister?"

"My only sister," answered the Cardinal--"A good, sweet woman!--may her
soul rest in peace! Her character was never spoilt by the social life
she was compelled to lead. My brother-in-law, Prince Sovrani, kept open
house,--and all the gay world of Rome was accustomed to flock thither;
but now--since he has lost his wife, things have changed very
much,--sadness has taken the place of mirth,--and Angela is very
solitary."

"Is she not affianced to the celebrated Florian Varillo?"

A fleeting shadow of pain darkened the Cardinal's clear eyes.

"Yes. But she sees very little of him,--you know the strictness of
Roman etiquette in such matters. She sees little--and sometimes--so I
think--knows less. However, I hope all will be well. But my niece is
over sensitive, brilliantly endowed, and ambitious,--at times I have
fears for her future."

"Depression again!" declared the Archbishop, rising and preparing to
take his leave--"Believe me, the world is full of excellence when we
look upon it with clear eyes;--things are never as bad as they seem. To
my thinking, you are the last man alive who should indulge in
melancholy forebodings. You have led a peaceful and happy life, graced
with the reputation of many good deeds, and you are generally beloved
by the people of whom you have charge. Then, though celibacy is your
appointed lot, heaven has given you a niece as dear to you as any child
of your own could be, who has won a pre-eminent place among the world's
great artists, and is moreover endowed with beauty and distinction.
What more can you desire?"

He smiled expansively as he spoke; the Cardinal looked at him
steadfastly.

"I desire nothing!" he answered--"I never have desired anything! I told
you before that I consider I have received many more blessings than I
deserve. It is not any personal grief which at present troubles me,--it
is something beyond myself. It is a sense of wrong,--an appeal for
truth,--a cry from those who are lost in the world,--the lost whom the
Church might have saved!"

"Merely fancy!" said the Archbishop cheerily--"Like the music in the
Cathedral! Do not permit your imagination to get the better of you in
such matters! When you return from Rome, I shall be glad to see you if
you happen to come through Normandy on your way back to your own
people. I trust you will so far honour me?"

"I know nothing of my future movements," answered the Cardinal
gently,--"But if I should again visit Rouen, I will certainly let you
know, and will, if you desire it, accept your friendly hospitality."

With this, the two dignitaries shook hands and the Archbishop took his
leave. As he picked his way carefully down the rough stairs and along
the dingy little passage of the Hotel Poitiers, he was met by Jean
Patoux holding a lighted candle above his head to show him the way.

"It is dark, Monseigneur," said Patoux apologetically.

"It is very dark," agreed Monseigneur, stumbling as he spoke, and
feeling rather inclined to indulge in very uncanonical language. "It is
altogether a miserable hole, mon Patoux!"

"It is for poor people only," returned Jean calmly--"And poverty is not
a crime, Monseigneur."

"No, it is not a crime," said the stately Churchman as he reached the
door at last, and paused for a moment on the threshold,--a broad smile
wrinkling up his fat cheeks and making comfortable creases round his
small eyes--"But it is an inconvenience!"

"Cardinal Bonpre does not say so," observed Patoux.

"Cardinal Bonpre is one of two things--a saint or a fool! Remember
that, mon Patoux! Bon soir! Benedicite!"

And the Archbishop, still smiling to himself, walked leisurely across
the square in the direction of his own house, where his supper awaited
him. The moon had risen, and was clambering slowly up between the two
tall towers of Notre Dame, her pure silver radiance streaming mockingly
against the candle Jean Patoux still held in the doorway of his inn,
and almost extinguishing its flame.

"One of two things--a saint or a fool," murmured Jean with a
chuckle--"Well!--it is very certain that the Archbishop is neither!"

He turned in, and shut his door as far as it would allow him to do so,
and went comfortably to bed, where Madame had gone before him. And
throughout the Hotel Poitiers deep peace and silence reigned. Every one
in the house slept, save Cardinal Bonpre, who with the Testament before
him, sat reading and meditating deeply for an hour before retiring to
rest. A fresh cause of anxiety had come upon him in the idea that
perhaps his slight indisposition was more serious than he had deemed.
If, as the Archbishop had said, there could have been no music possible
in the Cathedral that afternoon, how came it that he had heard such
solemn and entrancing harmonies? Was his mind affected? Was he in truth
imagining what did not exist? Were the griefs of the world his own
distorted view of things? Did the Church faithfully follow the
beautiful and perfect teachings of Christ after all? He tried to reason
the question out from a different and more hopeful standpoint, but
vainly;--the conviction that Christianity was by no means the supreme
regenerating force, or the vivifying Principle of Human Life which it
was originally meant to be, was borne in upon him with increasing
certainty, and the more he read the Gospels, the more he became aware
that the Church--system as it existed was utterly opposed to Christ's
own command, and moreover was drifting further and further away from
Him with every passing year.

"The music in the Cathedral may have been my fancy," he said,--"But the
discord in the world sounds clear and is NOT imagination. A casuist in
religion may say 'It was to be';--that heresies and dissensions were
prophesied by Christ, when He said 'Because iniquity shall abound, the
love of many shall grow cold';--but this does not excuse the Church
from the sin of neglect, if any neglects exists. One thing we have
never seemed to thoroughly understand, and this is that Christ's
teaching is God's teaching, and that it has not stopped with the
enunciation of the Gospel. It is going on even now--in every fresh
discovery of science,--in every new national experience,--in everything
we can do, or think, or plan, the Divine instruction steadily continues
through the Divine influence imparted to us when the Godhead became
man, to show men how they might in turn become gods. This is what we
forget and what we are always forgetting; so that instead of accepting
every truth, we quarrel with it and reject it, even as Judaea rejected
Christ Himself. It is very strange and cruel;--and the world's
religious perplexities are neither to be wondered at nor blamed,--there
is just and grave cause for their continuance and increase."

He closed the Testament, and being thoroughly fatigued in body as well
as mind, he at last retired. Lying down contentedly upon the hard and
narrow bed which was the best the inn provided, he murmured his usual
prayer,--"If this should be the sleep of death, Jesus receive my
soul!"--and remained for a little while with his eyes open, looking at
the white glory of the moonlight as it poured through his lattice
window and formed delicate traceries of silver luminance on the bare
wooden floor. He could just see the dark towers of Notre Dame from
where he lay,--a black mass in the moonbeams--a monument of
half-forgotten history--a dream of centuries, hallowed or blasphemed by
the prayers and aspirations of dead and gone multitudes who had
appealed to the incarnate God-in-Man before its altars. God-in-Man had
been made manifest!--how long would, the world have to wait before
Man-in-God was equally created and declared? For that was evidently
intended to be the final triumph of the Christian creed.

"We should have gained such a victory long ago," mused Cardinal
Bonpre--"only that we ourselves have set up stumbling-blocks, and
rejected God at every step of the way."

Closing his eyes he soon slept; the rays of the moon fell upon his pale
face and silvery hair like a visible radiant benediction,--and the
bells of the city chimed the hours loudly and softly, clanging in every
direction, without waking him from his rest. But slumbering as he was,
he had no peace,--for in his sleep he was troubled by a strange vision.



IV.

As the terrors of imagined suffering are always worse than actual pain,
so dreams are frequently more vivid than the reality of life,--that is
we are sure that life is indeed reality, and not itself a dream within
a dream. Cardinal Bonpre's sleep was not often disturbed by affrighting
visions,--his methods of daily living were too healthy and simple, and
his conscience too clear;--but on this particular night he was visited
by an impression rather than a dream,--the impression of a lonely, and
terrifying dreariness, as though the whole world were suddenly emptied
of life and left like a hollow shell on the shores of time. Gradually
this first sense of utter and unspeakable loss changed into a startled
consciousness of fear;--some awful transformation of things familiar
was about to be consummated;--and he felt the distinct approach of some
unnameable Horror which was about to convulse and overwhelm all
mankind. Then in his dream, a great mist rose up before his eyes,--a
mingling as of sea-fog and sun-flame,--and as this in turn slowly
cleared,--dispersing itself in serpentine coils of golden-grey
vapour,--he found himself standing on the edge of a vast sea,
glittering in a light that was neither of earth nor of heaven, but that
seemed to be the inward reflection of millions of flashing sword
blades. And as he stood gazing across the width of the waters, the sky
above him grew black, and a huge ring of fire rose out of the east,
instead of the beloved and familiar sun,--fire that spread itself in
belching torrents of flame upward and downward, and began to absorb in
its devouring heat the very sea. Then came a sound of many thunders,
mingled with the roar of rising waters and the turbulence of a great
whirlwind,--and out of the whirlwind came a Voice saying--"Now is the
end of all things on the earth,--and the whole world shall be burnt up
as a dead leaf in a sudden flame! And we will create from out its ashes
new heavens and a new earth, and we will call forth new beings
wherewith to people the fairness of our fresh creation,--for the
present generation of mankind hath rejected God,--and God henceforth
rejecteth His faithless and unworthy creatures! Wherefore let now this
one dim light amid the thousand million brighter lights be
quenched,--let the planet known to all angels as the Sorrowful Star
fall from its sphere forever,--let the Sun that hath given it warmth
and nourishment be now its chief Destroyer, and let everything that
hath life within it, perish utterly and revive no more!"

And Cardinal Felix heard these words of doom. Powerless to move or
speak, he stood watching the terrible circle of fire, extend and
expand, till all the visible universe seemed melting in one red furnace
of flame;--and in himself he felt no hope,--no chance of rescue;--in
himself he knew that the appalling work of destruction was being
accomplished with a deadly swiftness that left no time for
lamentation,--that the nations of the world were as flying straws swept
into the burning, without space or moment for a parting prayer or
groan. Tortured by an excruciating agony too great for tears, he
suddenly found voice, and lifting his face towards the lurid sky he
cried aloud--

"God of Eternity, stay Thy hand! For one remaining Cause be merciful!
Doom not Thy creature Man to utter destruction!--but still remember
that Thou wast born even as he! As helpless, as wronged, as tempted, as
betrayed, as suffering, as prone to pain and death! Thou hast lived his
life and endured his sorrows, though in the perfect glory of Thy
Godhead Thou hast not sinned! Have patience yet, oh Thou great
Splendour of all worlds! Have patience yet, Thou outraged and
blasphemed Creator! Break once again Thy silence as of old and speak to
us!--pity us once again ere Thou slay us utterly,--come to us even as
Thou earnest in Judaea, and surely we will receive Thee and obey Thee,
and reject Thy love no more!"

As he thus prayed he was seized with a paralysing fear,--for suddenly
the red and glowing chaos of fire above him changed into soft skies
tinged with the exquisite pearl-grey hues of twilight, and he became
conscious of the approach of a great invisible Presence, whose awful
unseen beauty overwhelmed him with its sublimity and majesty, causing
him to forget altogether that he himself existed. And Someone
spoke,--in grave sweet accents, so soft and close to him that the words
seemed almost whispered in his ears,--

"Thy prayer is heard,--and once again the silence shall be broken.
Nevertheless remember that 'the light shineth in darkness and the
darkness comprehendeth it not'."

Deep silence followed. The mysterious Presence melted as it were into
space,--and the Cardinal awoke, trembling violently and bathed in a
cold perspiration. He gazed bewilderedly around him, his mind still
confused and dazzled by the strong visionary impression of the burning
heavens and sea,--and he could not for a moment realize where he was.
Then, after a while, he recognised the humble furniture of the room he
occupied, and through the diamond-shaped panes of the little lattice
window, perceived the towers of Notre Dame, now gleaming with a kind of
rusty silver in the broader radiance of the fully uplifted moon.

"It was a dream," he murmured,--"A dream of the end of the world!" He
shuddered a little as he thought of the doom pronounced upon the
earth,--the planet "known to all angels as the Sorrowful Star"--"Let
the Sun that hath given it warmth and nourishment be now its chief
Destroyer."

According to modern scientists, such was indeed the precise way in
which the world was destined to come to an end. And could anything be
more terrifying than the thought that the glorious Orb, the maker of
day and generator of all beauty, should be destined to hurl from its
shining centre death and destruction upon the planet it had from
creation vivified and warmed! The Vision had shown the devastating ring
of fire rising from that very quarter of the heavens where the sun
should have been radiantly beaming,--and as Felix Bonpre dwelt upon the
picture in his mind, and remembered his own wild prayer to the Eternal,
a great uneasiness and dread overwhelmed him.

"God's laws can never be altered;" he said aloud--"Every evil deed
brings its own punishment; and if the world's wickedness becomes too
great an offence in the eyes of the Almighty, it follows that the world
must be destroyed. What am I that I should pray against Divine Justice!
For truly we have had our chance of rescue and salvation;--the
Way,--the Truth,--and the Life have been given to us through Christ our
Redeemer; and if we reject Him, we reject all, and we have but
ourselves to blame."

At that moment a plaintive wailing, as of some human creature in
distress broke on his ears through the deep silence of the night. He
listened attentively, and the sorrowful sound was repeated,--a desolate
yet gentle cry as of some sick and suffering child. Moved by a sudden
impulse the Cardinal rose, and going to the window looked anxiously
out, and down into the street below. Not a living creature was to be
seen. The moonlight spread itself in a vast silver glory over the whole
width of the square, and the delicate sculpture of the great
rose-window of the Cathedral, centrally suspended between the two tall
towers, looked in the fine pale radiance like a giant spider's web
sparkling with fairy dew. Again--again!--that weary sobbing cry! It
went to the Cardinal's heart, and stirred him to singular pain and pity.

"Surely it is some lost or starving creature," he said--"Some poor soul
seeking comfort in a comfortless world." Hastily throwing on his
garments he left his room, treading cautiously in order not to disturb
the sleeping household,--and feeling his way down the short, dark
staircase, he easily reached the door and passed noiselessly out into
the square. Walking a few steps hurriedly he paused, once more
listening. The night was intensely calm;--not a cloud crossed the
star-spangled violet dome of air wherein the moon soared serenely,
bathing all visible things in a crystalline brilliancy so pure and
penetrative, that the finest cuttings on the gigantic grey facade of
Notre Dame could be discerned and outlined as distinctly as though
every little portion were seen through a magnifying glass. The
Cardinal's tall attenuated figure, standing alone and almost in the
centre of the square, cast a long thin black shadow on the glistening
grey stones,--and his dream-impression of an empty world came back
forcibly upon him,--a world as empty as a hollow shell! Houses there
were around him, and streets, and a noble edifice consecrated to the
worship of God,--nevertheless there was a sense of absolute desertion
in and through all. Was not the Cathedral itself the mere husk of a
religion? The seed had dropped out and sunk into the soil,--"among
thorns" and "stony places" indeed,--and some "by the wayside" to be
devoured by birds of prey. Darker and heavier grew the cloud of
depression on the Cardinal's soul,--and more and more passionate became
the protest which had for a long time been clamouring in him for
utterance,--the protest of a Churchman against the Church he served! It
was terrible,--and to a "prince of the Roman Church" hideous and
unnatural; nevertheless the protest existed, and it had in some
unaccountable way grown to be more a part of him than he himself
realized.

"The world is empty because God is leaving it," he said, sorrowfully
raising his eyes to the tranquil heavens,--"and the joy of existence is
departing because the Divine and Holy Spirit of things is being
withdrawn!"

He moved on a few paces,--and once more through the deep stillness the
little sobbing cry of sorrow was wafted tremulously to his ears. It
came or seemed to come from the Cathedral, and quickening his steps he
went thither. The deeply hollowed portal, full of black shadows, at
first showed nothing but its own massively sculptured
outlines--then--all at once the Cardinal perceived standing within the
embrasured darkness, the slight shrinking figure of a child. A boy's
desolate little figure,--with uplifted hands clasped appealingly and
laid against the shut Cathedral door, and face hidden and pressed hard
upon those hands, as though in mute and inconsolable despair. As the
Cardinal softly drew nearer, a long shuddering sigh from the solitary
little creature moved his heart anew to pity, and speaking in accents
of the utmost gentleness he said--

"My poor child, what troubles you? Why are you here all alone, and
weeping at this late hour? Have you no home?--no parents?"

Slowly the boy turned round, still resting his small delicate hands
against the oaken door of the Cathedral, and with the tears yet wet
upon his cheeks, smiled. What a sad face he had!--worn and weary, yet
beautiful!--what eyes, heavy with the dews of sorrow, yet tender even
in pain! Startled by the mingled purity and grief of so young a
countenance, the Cardinal retreated for a moment in amaze,--then
approaching more closely he repeated his former question with increased
interest and tenderness--

"Why are you weeping here alone?"

"Because I am left alone to weep," said the boy, answering in a soft
voice of vibrating and musical melancholy--"For me, the world is empty."

An empty world! His dream-impression of universal desolation and
desertion came suddenly back upon the prelate's mind, and a sudden
trembling seized him, though he could discover in himself no cause for
fear. Anxiously he surveyed the strange and solitary little wayfarer on
the threshold of the Cathedral, and while he thus looked, the boy said
wistfully--

"I should have rested here within, but it is closed against me."

"The doors are always locked at night, my child," returned the
Cardinal, recovering from his momentary stupor and bewilderment, "But I
can give you shelter. Will you come with me?"

With a half-questioning, half-smiling look of grateful wonder, the boy
withdrew his hands from their uplifted, supplicating and almost
protesting attitude against the locked Cathedral-door, and moving out
of the porch shadows into the wide glory of the moonlight, he
confronted his interlocutor--

"Will I come with you?" he said--"Nay, but I see you are a Cardinal of
the Church, and it is I should ask 'will you receive me?' You do not
know who I am--nor where I came from, and I, alas! may not tell you! I
am alone; all--all alone,--for no one knows me in the world,--I am
quite poor and friendless, and have nothing where--with to pay you for
your kindly shelter--I can only bless you!"

Very simply, very gravely the young boy spoke these words, his delicate
head uplifted, his face shining in the moon-rays, and his slight,
childish form erect with a grace which was not born of pride so much as
of endurance, and again the Cardinal trembled, though he knew not why.
Yet in his very agitation, the desire he had to persuade the tired
child to go with him grew stronger and overmastered every other feeling.

"Come then," he said, smiling and extending his hand, "Come, and you
shall sleep in my room for the remainder of the night, and to-morrow we
will talk of the future. At present you need repose."

The boy smiled gratefully but said nothing, and the Cardinal, satisfied
with the mere look of assent walked with his foundling across the
square and into the Hotel Poitiers. Arrived at his own bed-room, he
smoothed his couch and settled the pillows carefully with active zeal
and tenderness. The boy stood silently, looking on.

"Sleep now, my child," said the Cardinal,--"and forget all your
troubles. Lie down here; no one will disturb you till the morning."

"But you, my lord Cardinal," said the boy--"Are you depriving yourself
of comfort in order to give it to me? This is not the way of the world!"

"It is MY way," said the Cardinal cheerfully,--"And if the world has
been unkind to you, my boy, still take courage,--it will not always be
unjust! Do not trouble yourself concerning me; I shall sleep well on
the sofa in the next room--indeed, I shall sleep all the better for
knowing that your tears have ceased, and that for the present at least
you are safely sheltered."

With a sudden quick movement the boy advanced and caught the Cardinal's
hands caressingly in his own.

"Oh, are you sure you understand?" he said, his voice growing
singularly sweet and almost tender as he spoke--"Are you sure that it
is well for you to shelter me?--I--a stranger,--poor, and with no one
to speak for me? How do you know what I may be? Shall I not perhaps
prove ungrateful and wrong your kindness?"

His worn little face upturned, shone in the dingy little room with a
sudden brightness such as one might imagine would illumine the features
of an angel, and Felix Bonpre looked down upon him half fascinated, in
mingled pity and wonder.

"Such results are with God, my child," he said gently--"I do not seek
your gratitude. It is certainly well for me that I should shelter
you,--it would be ill indeed if I permitted any living creature to
suffer for lack of what I could give. Rest here in peace, and remember
it is for my own pleasure as well as for your good that I desire you to
sleep well."

"And you do not even ask my name?" said the boy, half smiling and still
raising his sorrowful deep blue eyes to the Cardinal's face.

"You will tell me that when you please," said Felix, laying one hand
upon the soft curls that clustered over his foundling's forehead--"I am
in no wise curious. It is enough for me to know that you are a child
and alone in the world,--such sorrow makes me your servant."

Gently the boy loosened his clasp of the Cardinal's hands.

"Then I have found a friend!" he said,--"That is very strange!" He
paused, and the smile that had once before brightened his countenance
shone again like a veritable flash of sunlight--"You have the right to
know my name, and if you choose, to call me by it,--it is Manuel."

"Manuel!" echoed the Cardinal--"No more than that?"

"No more than that," replied the boy gravely--"I am one of the world's
waifs and strays,--one name suffices me."

There followed a brief pause, in which the old man and the child looked
at each other full and steadfastly, and once again an inexplicable
nervous trembling seized the Cardinal. Overcoming this with an effort,
he said softly,--

"Then--Manuel!--good night! Sleep--and Our Lady's blessing be upon you!"

Signing the cross in air he retired, carefully shutting the door and
leaving his new-found charge to rest. When he was once by himself in
the next room, however, he made no attempt to sleep,--he merely drew a
chair to the window and sat down, full of thoughts which utterly
absorbed him. There was nothing unusual, surely, in his finding a small
lost boy and giving him a night's lodging?--then why was he so affected
by it? He could not tell. He fully realized that the plaintive beauty
of the child had its share in the powerful attraction he felt,--but
there was something else in the nature of his emotion which he found it
impossible to define. It was as though some great blankness in his life
had been suddenly filled;--as if the boy whom he had found solitary and
weeping within the porch of the Cathedral of Notre Dame, belonged to
him in some mysterious way and was linked to his life so closely and
completely as to make parting impossible. But what a fantastic notion!
Viewed by the light of calm reason, there was nothing in the occurrence
to give rise to any such sentiment. Here was a poor little wayfarer,
evidently without parents, home, or friends,--and the Cardinal had
given him a night's lodging, and to-morrow--yes, to-morrow, he would
give him food and warm clothing and money,--and perhaps a
recommendation to the Archbishop in order that he might get a chance of
free education and employment in Rouen, while proper enquiries were
being made about him. That was the soberly prosaic and commonplace view
to take of the matter. The personality of the little fellow was
intensely winning,--but after all, that had nothing to do with the
facts of the case. He was a waif and stray, as he himself had said; his
name, so far as he seemed to know it, was Manuel,--an ordinary name
enough in France,--and his age might be about twelve,--not more.
Something could be done for him,--something SHOULD be done for him
before the Cardinal parted with him. But this idea of "parting" was
just what seemed so difficult to contemplate! Puzzled beyond measure at
the strange state of mind in which he found himself, Felix Bonpre went
over and over again all the events of the day in order,--his arrival in
Rouen,--his visit to the Cathedral, and the grand music he had heard or
fancied he heard there,--his experience with the sceptical little
Patoux children and their mother,--his conversation with the
Archbishop, in which he had felt much more excitement than he was
willing to admit,--his dream wherein he had been so painfully impressed
with a sense of the desertion, emptiness, and end of the world, and
finally his discovery of the little lonely and apparently forsaken boy,
thrown despairingly as it were against the closed Cathedral, like a
frail human wreck cast up from the gulf of the devouring sea. Each
incident, trivial in itself, yet seemed of particular importance,
though he could not explain or analyse why it should be so.
Meditatively he sat and watched the moon sink like a silver bubble
falling downward in the dark,--the stars vanished one by one,--and a
faint brown-gold line of suggestive light in the east began the slow
creation of a yet invisible dawn. Presently, yielding to a vague
impulse of inexplicable tenderness, he rose softly and went to the
threshold of the room where his foundling slept. Holding his breath, he
listened--but there was no sound. Very cautiously and noiselessly he
opened the door, and looked in,--a delicate half-light came through the
latticed window and seemed to concentrate itself on the bed where the
tired wanderer lay. His fine youthful profile was distinctly
outlined,--the soft bright hair clustered like a halo round his broad
brows,--and the two small hands were crossed upon his breast, while in
his sleep he smiled. Always touched by the beauty, innocence and
helplessness of childhood, something in the aspect of this little lad
moved the venerable prelate's heart to an unwonted emotion,--and
looking upon him, he prayed for guidance as to what he should best do
to rescue so gentle and young a creature from the cruelties of the
world.



V.

"He has trusted me," said the Cardinal,--"I have found him, and I
cannot--dare not--forsake him. For the Master says 'Whosoever shall
receive one such little child in My name receiveth Me'."

The next morning broke fair and calm, and as soon as the Patoux
household were astir, Cardinal Bonpre sought Madame Patoux in her
kitchen, and related to her the story of his night's adventure. She
listened deferentially, but could not refrain from occasional
exclamations of surprise, mingled with suggestions of warning.

"It is like your good heart, Monseigneur," she said, "to give your own
bed to a stray child out of the street,--one, too, of whom you know
nothing,--but alas! how often such goodness is repaid by ingratitude!
The more charity you show the less thanks you receive,--yes, indeed, it
is often so!--and it seems as if the Evil One were in it! For look you,
I myself have never done a kindness yet without getting a cruelty in
exchange for it."

"That is a sad experience, my daughter," returned the Cardinal
smiling,--"Nevertheless, it is our duty to go on doing kindnesses, no
matter what the results to ourselves may be. It is understood--is it
not? that we are to be misjudged in this world. If we had nothing to
suffer, what would be the use of exercising such virtues as patience
and endurance?"

"Ah, Monseigneur, for you it is different," said Madame Patoux shaking
her head and sighing--"You are like the blessed saints--safe in a niche
of Holy Church, with Our Lady for ever looking after you. But for poor
people such as we are--we see the rough side of life, Monseigneur--and
we know that there is very little goodness about in the world,--and as
for patience and endurance!--why, no one in these days has the patience
to endure even the least contradiction! Two men,--aye even
brothers,--will fight for a word like mongrels quarrelling over a
bone;--and two women will scream themselves hoarse if one should have a
lover more than the other--asking your pardon, Monseigneur, for such
wicked talk! Still, wicked as it may be, it is true--and not all the
powers of Heaven seem to care about making things better. And for this
boy,--believe me,--you had better leave him to his own way--for there
will be no chance of getting such a poor little waif into the school
unless his father and mother are known, or unless someone will adopt
him, which is not likely . . . for Rouen is full of misery, and there
are enough mouths to feed in most families--and . . . mon Dieu!--is
that the child?"

Thus abruptly she broke off her speech, utterly taken aback as she
suddenly perceived the little Manuel standing before her. Poorly clad
in the roughest garments as he was, his grace and plaintive beauty
moved her heart to quick compassion for his loneliness as he came
towards the Cardinal, who, extending one hand, drew him gently to his
side and asked if he had slept well?

"Thanks to your goodness, my lord Cardinal," the boy replied, "I slept
so well that I thought I was in Heaven! I heard the angels singing in
my dreams;--yes!--I heard all the music of a happy world, in which
there never had been known a sin or sorrow!"

He rested his fair head lightly against the Cardinal's arm and smiled.
Madame Patoux gazed at him in fascinated silence,--gazed and
gazed,--till she found her eyes suddenly full of tears. Then she turned
away to hide them,--but not before Cardinal Bonpre had observed her
emotion.

"Well, good MOTHER" he said with gentle emphasis on the word--"Would
you have me forsake this child that I have found?"

"No, Monseigneur,--no," said Madame Patoux very softly and
tremulously--"It is almost as if he were a little lost Angel sent to
comfort you."

A curious thrill went through the Cardinal. An angel to comfort him! He
looked down at Manuel who still clung caressingly to his arm, and who
met his earnest scrutiny with a sweet candid smile.

"Where did you come from, Manuel?" asked Bonpre suddenly.

"I cannot tell you," the boy answered, straightly, yet simply.

The Cardinal paused a moment, his keen penetrating eyes dwelling kindly
on the noble young face beside him.

"You do not wish to tell me,--is that so?" he pursued.

"Yes," said Manuel quietly--"I do not wish to tell you. And if, because
of this, you regret your kindness to me, my lord Cardinal, I will go
away at once and trouble you no more."

But at these words the Cardinal felt such a sharp consciousness of pain
and loss that his nerves ached with positive fear.

"Nay, nay, my child," he said anxiously--"I cannot let you go. It shall
be as you please,--I will not think that you could do yourself or me a
wrong by concealing what would be right for you to tell. It is true
that you are alone in the world?"

"Quite, quite alone!" answered Manuel, a faint shadow darkening the
serenity of his eyes--"No one was ever more alone than I!"

Madame Patoux drew nearer and listened.

"And there is no person living who has the right to claim you?"

"None!"

"And is it not strange, Monseigneur," murmured Madame Patoux at this
juncture--"The little lad does not speak as if he were ignorant! It is
as though he had been well taught and carefully nurtured."

Manuel's deep eyes dwelt upon her with a meditative sweetness.

"I have taught myself;" he said simply--"Not out of books, perhaps, but
out of nature. The trees and rivers, the flowers and birds have talked
to me and explained many things;--I have learned all I know from what
God has told me."

His voice was so gentle and tender that Madame Patoux was infinitely
touched by its soft plaintiveness.

"Poor child!" she murmured,--"He has no doubt been wandering through
the country, without a soul to help him. Alas, that troubles should
begin for one so young! Perhaps he does not even know a prayer!"

"Oh yes!" said Manuel quickly--"Prayer is like thought,--God is so good
that it is only natural to thank and praise Him. Is it not so?"

"It should be natural, my boy," answered the Cardinal slowly and with a
slight accent of melancholy,--"But for many of us in these days I fear
it is more natural still to forget than to remember. Too often we take
gifts and ignore the giver. But come now and breakfast in my room;--for
the present you shall remain with me, and I will see what can best be
done for your future welfare."

And turning to Madame Patoux he added smilingly--"You, my daughter,
with children of your own to care for, will no longer blame me for my
interest in this child, who is without protection in a somewhat rough
world. We of the Church dare not 'offend one of these little ones'."

"Ah, Monseigneur!" murmured Madame,--"If all in the Church were like
you, some poor folks would believe in God more willingly. But when
people are starving and miserable, it is easy to understand that often
they will curse the priests and even religion itself, for making such a
mock of them as to keep on telling them about the joys of heaven, when
they are tormented to the very day of their death on earth, and are
left without hope or rescue of any kind--"

But the Cardinal had disappeared with his young charge and Madame's
speech was lost upon him. She had therefore to content herself with
relating the story of "Monseigneur's foundling" to her husband, who
just then came into the kitchen to take his breakfast before starting
off to work in his market-garden. He listened with interest and
attention.

"A boy is always a trouble," he said sententiously--"And it is likely
that so Monseigneur will find it. How old would the child be?"

"About twelve, I should say," answered Madame--"But beautiful as a
little angel, Jean!"

"That's a pity!" and Patoux shook his head ominously--"Tis bad enough
when a girl is beautiful,--but a boy!--Well, well! Monseigneur is a
wise man, and a saint they say,--he knows best,--but I fear he has
taken a burden upon himself which he will very soon regret! What dost
thou think of it, petite?"

Madame hesitated a moment before replying.

"Truly, I do not know what to think," she answered--"For myself, I have
not spoken to the child. I have seen him,--yes!--and at the sight of
him a something in my throat rose up and choked me as it were,--and
stopped me from saying a rough word. Such a lonely gentle lad!--one
could not be harsh with him, and yet--"

"Yet! Oh, yes, I know!" said Patoux, finishing his coffee at a gulp and
smiling,--"Women will always be women,--and a handsome face in girl or
boy is enough to make fools of them all. Where are the children? Are
they gone to school?"

"Yes--they went before the Cardinal was up. 'Tis a Saturday, and they
will be back early,--they are going to bring little Fabien Doucet to
Monseigneur."

"What for?" enquired Patoux, his round eyes opening widely in amazement.

"Oh, for a strange fancy! That he may bless the child and pray Our Lady
to cure him of his lameness. It was Babette's whim. I told her the
Cardinal was a saint,--and she said,--well! she said she would never
believe it unless he worked a miracle! The wicked mischief that girl
is!--as bad as Henri, who puts a doubt on everything!"

"'Tis the school," said Jean gloomily--"I must speak to Pere Laurent."

"Truly that would be well," said Madame--"He may explain what we
cannot. All the same, you may be sure the children WILL bring Fabien
Doucet to Monseigneur;--they have made up their minds about it,--and if
the little miserable's lameness gets no better, we shall have work
enough in future to make the saints respected!"

Patoux muttered something inaudible, and went his way. Life was in his
opinion, a very excellent thing,--nevertheless there were a few details
about it which occasionally troubled him, and one of these details was
decidedly the "national education" question. It struck him as
altogether remarkable that the State should force him to send his
children to school whether he liked it or no; and moreover that the
system of instruction at the said school should be totally opposed to
his own ideas. He would have certainly wished his son to learn to read
and write, and then to have been trained as a thorough florist and
gardener;--while for his daughter he also desired reading and writing
as a matter of course, and then a complete education in cooking and
domestic economy, so that she might be a useful and efficient wife and
mother when the proper time for such duties came. Astronomy he felt
they could both do without, and most of the "physical sciences."
Religion he considered an absolute necessity, and this was the very
thing that was totally omitted from the national course of education.
He was well aware that there are countless numbers of unhappy people
nowadays who despise religion and mock at the very idea of a God. Every
day he saw certain works exposed for sale on the out-of-door bookstalls
which in their very titles proclaimed the hideous tone of blasphemy
which in France is gradually becoming universal,--but this did not
affect his own sense of what was right and just. He was a very plain
common man, but he held holy things in reverence, and instinctively
felt that, if the world were in truth a bad place, it was likely to
become much worse if all faith in God were taken out of it. And when he
reached his plot of ground that morning, and set to work as usual, he
was, for a non-reflective man, very much absorbed in thought. His heavy
tramping feet over the soil startled some little brown birds from their
hidden nests, and sent them flying to and fro through the clear air
uttering sharp chirrups of terror,--and, leaning on his spade, he
paused and looked at them meditatively.

"Everything is afraid," he said,--"Birds, beasts, and men,--all are
afraid of something and cannot tell what it is that frightens them. It
seems hard sometimes that there should be so much trouble and struggle
just to live--however, the good God knows best,--and if we could not
think and hope and believe He knew best, we might just as well light up
a charcoal fire, shut all the doors and windows, and say 'Bon jour! Bon
jour, Monsieur le bon Dieu!--for if YOU do not know YOUR business, it
is evident we do not know ours, and therefore 'tis best for both our
sakes to make an end of sheer Stupidity!'"

He chuckled at his own reasoning, and moistening his hands vigorously,
seized his spade and began to bank up a ridge of celery, singing "Bon
jour, Monsieur le bon Dieu!" under his breath without the slightest
idea of irreverence. And looking up at the bright sky occasionally, he
wished he had seen the stray boy rescued from the streets by Cardinal
Bonpre.

"That he will be a trouble, there is no doubt," he said as he turned
and patted the rich dark earth--"Never was there a boy born yet into
the world that was not a trouble except our Lord, and even in His case
His own people did not know what to make of Him!"

Meantime, while Jean Patoux dug in his garden, and sang and
soliloquized, his two children, Henri and Babette, their school hours
being ended, had run off to the market, and were talking vivaciously
with a big brown sturdy woman, who was selling poultry at a stall,
under a very large patched red umbrella. She was Martine Doucet,
reported to have the worst temper and most vixenish tongue in all the
town, though there were some who said her sourness of humour only arose
from the hardships of her life, and the many troubles she had been
fated to endure. Her husband, a fine handsome man, earning good weekly
wages as a stone-mason, had been killed by a fall from a ladder, while
engaged in helping to build one of the new houses on the Boulevards,
and her only child Fabien, a boy of ten had, when a baby, tumbled from
the cart in which his mother was taking her poultry to market, and
though no injury was apparent at the time, had, from the effects of the
fall, grown into a poor little twisted mite of humanity with a bent
spine, and one useless leg which hung limply from his body, while he
could scarcely hobble about on the other, even with the aid of a
crutch. He had a soft, pretty, plaintive face of his own, the little
Fabien, and very gentle ways,--but he was sensitively conscious of his
misfortune, and in his own small secret soul he was always praying that
he might die while he was yet a child, and not grow up to be a burden
to his mother. Martine, however, adored him; and it was through her
intense love for this child of hers that she had, in a strange vengeful
sort of mood abandoned God, and flung an open and atheistical defiance
in the face of her confessor, who, missing her at mass, had ventured to
call upon her and seriously reproach her for neglecting the duties of
her religion. Martine had whirled round upon him,--a veritable storm in
petticoats.

"Religion!" she cried--"Oh--he! What good has it done for ME, if you
please! When I said my prayers night and morning, went to mass and
confession, and told my rosary every Mary-Feast, what happened? Was not
my man killed and my child crippled? And then,--(not to lose faith--)
did I not give the saints every chance of behaving themselves? For my
child's sake did I not earn good money and pay it to the Church in
special masses that he might be cured of his lameness? And Novenas in
plenty, and candles in plenty to the Virgin, and fastings of my own and
penitences? And is the child not as lame as ever? Look at him!--the
dear angel!--with never an evil thought or a wicked way,--and will you
try to make me believe there is a good God, when He will not help a
poor little creature like that, to be happy, though He is prayed to
night and morning for it! No--no! Churches are kept up for priests to
make a fat living out of,--but there is never a God in them that I can
see;--and as for the Christ, who had only to be asked in order to heal
the sick, there is not so much as a ghost of Him anywhere! If what you
priests tell us were true, poor souls such as I am, would get comfort
and help in our sorrows, but it is all a lie!--the whole thing!--and
when we are in trouble, we have got to bear it as best we can, without
so much as a kind word from our neighbours, let alone any pity from the
saints. Go to mass again? Not I!--nor to confession either!--and no
more of my earnings will click into your great brass collection plate,
mon reverend! Ah no!--I have been a foolish woman indeed, to trust so
long in a God who for all my tears and prayers never gives me a sign or
a hope of an answer,--and though I suppose this wretched world of ours
was made by somebody, whoever it is that has done it is a cruel
creature at best, so _I_ say,--without as much good feeling as there is
in the heart of an ordinary man, and without the sense of the man
either! For who that thinks twice about it would make a world where
everything is only born to die?--and for no other use at all! Bah! It
is sheer folly and wickedness to talk to me of a God!--a God, if there
were one, would surely be far above torturing the creatures He has
made, all for nothing!"

And the priest who heard this blasphemous and savage tirade on the part
of Martine Doucet, retreated from her in amazement and horror, and
presently gave out that she was possessed of a devil, and was unfit to
be admitted to the Holy Sacrament. Whereat, when she heard of it,
Martine laughed loudly and ferociously.

"Look you!--what a charitable creature a priest is!" she cried--"If you
don't do the things he considers exactly right and fitting, he tells
your neighbours that the devil has got you!--and so little does he care
to pick you out of the clutches of this same devil, that he refuses you
the Sacrament, though THAT is said to drive away Satan by the mere
touch of it! But wait till I ASK to have the Sacrament given to me!--it
will be time enough then to refuse it! Many a fat chicken of my stock
has the reverend father had as a free gift to boil in his soup maigre!"
and again she laughed angrily--"But no more of them does he get to
comfort his stomach while doing penance for his soul!--the hypocrite!
He must find another silly woman to cheat with his stories of a good
God who never does anything but kill and curse us every one!--he has
had all that he will ever get out of Martine Doucet!"

It was to this redoubtable virago that Henri and Babette had betaken
themselves in the market place directly school was over. She always
held the same stall in the same position on market days,--and she sat
under her red umbrella on a rough wooden bench, knitting rapidly, now
keeping an eye on her little lame son, coiled up in a piece of matting
beside her, and anon surveying her stock-in-trade of ducks and geese
and fowls, which were heaped on her counter, their wrung necks drooping
limply from the board, and their yellow feet tied helplessly together
and shining like bits of dull gold in the warm light of the September
sun. She listened with an impassive countenance while Babette poured
out her story of the great Cardinal,--the Cardinal Felix Bonpre, whom
people said was a saint,--how he had come unexpectedly to stay two
nights at the Hotel Poitiers,--how "petite maman" had declared he was
so good that even angels might visit him,--how kind and gentle and
grand he seemed,--"Yes," said Babette somewhat eagerly, "there was no
doubt that he LOOKED good,--and we have told him all about Fabien and
he has promised to bless him and ask Our Lord to cure his lameness."

"Well, and of what use is that, mignonne?" demanded Martine, clicking
her knitting-needles violently and stooping over her work to wink away
the sudden tears that had risen in her bold brown eyes at Babette's
enthusiastic desire to benefit her afflicted child.--"Asking our Lord
is poor business,--you may ask and ask, but you never get answered!"

Babette hung her curly brown head despondingly, and looked appealingly
at her brother. Now Henri was a decided cynic;--but his sister
exercised a weird fascination over him,--a sort of power to command
which he always felt more or less constrained to obey. He stared
solemnly at Martine, and then at the little Fabien, who, half rising
from his mat, had listened with a visibly painful interest to Babette's
story.

"I think you might let us take Fabien and see if a Cardinal CAN do
anything," he said with a kind of judicial air, as of one who, though
considering the case hopeless, had no objection to try a last desperate
remedy. "This one is a very old man, and he must know a good deal. He
could not do any harm. And I am sure Babette would like to find out if
there is any use at all in a Cardinal. I should like it too. You see we
went into Notre Dame last night,--Babette and I,--and everything was
dark,--all the candles were out at Our Lady's statue--and we had only
ten centimes between us. And the candles are ten centimes each. So we
could only light one. But we lit that one, and said an Ave for Fabien.
And the candle was all by itself in the Cathedral. And now I think we
ought to take him to the Cardinal."

Martine shook her head, pursed up her lips, and knitted more violently
than ever.

"It is all no use--no use!" she muttered--"There is no God,--or if
there is, He must be deaf as well as blind!"

But here suddenly the weak plaintive voice of Fabien himself piped out--

"Oh, mother, let me go!"

Martine looked down at him.

"Let thee go? To see the Cardinal? Why he is nought but an old man,
child, as helpless as any of us. What dost thou think he can do for
thee?"

"Nothing!" and the boy clambered up on his crutch, and stood
appealingly before his mother, his fair curls blowing back in the
breeze,--"But I SHOULD like to see him. Oh, do let me go!"

Babette caught him by the hand.

"Yes, oh yes, Martine!" she exclaimed--"Let him come with us!"

Martine hesitated a moment longer, but she could never altogether
resist an imploring look in her boy's eyes, or refuse any request he
made of her,--and gradually the hard lines of her mouth relaxed into a
half smile. Babette at once perceived this, and eagerly accepted it as
a sign that she had gained her point.

"Come, Fabien!" she exclaimed delightedly--"Thy mother says yes! We
will not be long gone, Martine! And perhaps we will bring him home
quite well!"

Martine shook her head sorrowfully, and paused for a while in her
knitting to watch the three children crossing the market-place
together, Henri supporting her little son on one side, Babette on the
other, both carefully aiding his slow and halting movements over the
rough cobbles of the uneven pavement. Then as they all turned a corner
and disappeared, she sighed, and a couple of bright tears splashed down
on her knitting. But the next moment her eyes were as bold and keen and
defiant as ever while she stood up to attend to two or three customers
who just then approached her stall, and her voice was as shrill and
sharp as any woman's voice could be in the noisy business of driving a
bargain. Having disposed of three or four fat geese and fowls at a good
profit, she chinked and counted the money in her apron pockets, hummed
a tune, and looked up at the genial sky with an expression of disfavour.

"Oh, yes, 'tis a fine day!" she muttered,--"And the heavens look as if
the saints lived in them;--but by and by the clouds will come, and the
cold!--the sleet, the snow, the frost and the bitterness of
winter!--and honest folk will starve while thieves make a good
living!--that is the way the wise God arranges things in this world."

She gave a short laugh of scorn, and resumed the clicking of her
needles, not raising her eyes from her work even when her neighbour,
the old woman who sold vegetables at the next stall, ventured to
address her.

"Where is thy unfortunate boy gone to, Martine?" she enquired,--"Is it
wise to let him be with the Patoux children? They are strong and quick
and full of mischief,--they might do him fresh injury in play without
meaning it."

"I will trust them," answered Martine curtly,--"They have taken him to
see a Cardinal."

"A Cardinal!" and the old woman craned her withered neck forward in
amazement and began to laugh feebly,--"Nom de Jesus! That is strange!
What does the Cardinal want with him?"

"Nothing," said Martine gruffly--"It seems that he is an old man who is
kind to children, and the girl Babette has a fancy to get his blessing
for my Fabien,--that is all."

"And that is little enough," responded the old vegetable-vendor, still
laughing, or rather chuckling hoarsely--"A blessing is not worth much
nowadays, is it Martine? It never puts an extra ounce of meat in the
pot-au-feu,--and yet it is all one gets out of the priests for all the
prayers and the praise. Last time I went to confession I accused myself
of the sin of envy. I said 'Look here, my father, I am a widow and very
old; and I have rheumatism in all my bones, and I have only a bit of
matting to sleep on at home, and if I have a bad day with the market I
can buy no food. And there is a woman living near me who has a warm
house, with a stove in it,--and blankets to cover her, and a bit of
money put by, and I envy her her blankets and her stove and her house
and her money. Is that a sin?' And he said it was a sin; but that he
would absolve me from it if I said ten Paters and ten Aves before Our
Lady of Bon-Secours. And then he gave me his blessing,--but no blankets
and no stove and no money. And I have not said ten Paters and Aves yet,
because my bones have ached too much all the week for me to walk up the
hill to Bon-Secours. And the blessing has been no use to me at all."

"Nor is it likely to be!" scoffed Martine--"I thought you had given up
all that Church-nonsense long ago."

"Nay--nay--not altogether,"--murmured the old woman timidly--"I am very
old,--and one never knows--there may be truth in some of it. It is the
burning and the roasting in hell that I think of,--you know that is
very likely to happen, Martine!--because you see, in this life we have
nothing but trouble,--so whoever made us must like to see us
suffering;--it must be a pleasure to God, and so it is sure to go on
and on always. And I am afraid!--and if a candle now and then to St.
Joseph would help matters, I am not the one to grudge it,--it is better
to burn a candle than burn one's self!"

Martine laughed loudly, but made no answer. She could not waste her
time arguing against the ridiculous superstitions of an old creature
who was so steeped in ignorance as to think that a votive candle could
rescue her soul from a possible hell. She went on knitting in silence
till a sudden shadow came between her and the sunlight, and a girl's
voice, harsh, yet with a certain broken sweetness in it, said--

"A fine morning's killing, aye! All their necks wrung,--all dead birds!
Once they could fly--fly and swim! Fly and swim! All dead now--and sold
cheap in the open market!"

A shrill laugh finished this outburst, but Martine knew who it was that
spoke, and maintained her equanimity.

"Is that you again, Marguerite?" she said, not unkindly--"You will tire
yourself to death wandering about the streets all day."

Marguerite Valmond, "la folle" as she was called by the townsfolk,
shook her head and smiled cunningly. She was a tall girl, with black
hair disordered and falling loosely about her pale face,--her eyes were
dark and lustrous, but wild, and with a hunted expression in them,--and
her dress was composed of the strangest remnants of oddly assorted
materials and colours pinned about her without any order or symmetry,
the very idea of decent clothing being hardly considered, as her bosom
was half exposed and her legs were bare. She wore no head-covering, and
her whole aspect was that of one who had suddenly awakened from a
hideous dream and was striving to forget its horrors.

"I shall never be tired!" she said--"If I could be tired I should
sleep,--but I never sleep! I am looking for HIM, you know!--it was at
the fair I lost him--you remember the great fair? And when I find him I
shall kill him! It is quite easy to kill--you take a sharp glittering
thing, so!" and she snatched up a knife that lay on Martine's
counter--"And you plunge it--so!" and she struck it down with singular
fury through the breast of one of the "dead birds" which were Martine's
stock-in-trade. Then she threw the knife on the ground--rubbed her
hands together, tossed her head, and laughed again--"That is how I
shall do it when I meet him!"

Martine said nothing. She simply removed the one stabbed bird from
among the others, and setting it aside, picked up the knife from the
ground and went on knitting as calmly as ever.

"I am going to see the Archbishop," proceeded Marguerite, tossing back
her dishevelled locks and making one or two fantastic dance-steps as
she spoke--"The great Archbishop of this wonderful city of Rouen! I
want to ask him how it happened that God made men. It was a mistake
which He must be sorry for! The Archbishop knows everything;--he will
tell me about it. Ah!--what a beautiful mistake is the Archbishop
himself!--and how soon women find it out! Bon jour, Martine!"

"Bon jour, Marguerite!" responded Martine quietly.

Singing to herself, the crazed girl sauntered off. Several of the
market women looked after her.

"She killed her child, they say," muttered the old
vegetable-seller--"But no one knows--"

"Sh--sh--sh!" hissed Martine angrily--"What one does not know one
should not say. Mayhap there never was a child at all. Whatever the
wrong was, she has suffered for it;--and if the man who led her astray
ever comes nigh her, his life is not worth a centime."

"Rough justice!" said one of the market porters, who had just paused
close by to light his pipe.

"Aye, rough justice!" echoed Martine--"When justice is not given to the
people, the people take it for themselves! And if a man deals ill by a
woman, he has murdered her as surely as if he had put a knife through
her;--and 'tis but even payment when he gets the knife into himself.
Things in this life are too easy for men and too hard for women; men
make the laws for their own convenience, and never a thought of us at
all in the making. They are a selfish lot!"

The porter laughed carelessly, and having lit his pipe to his
satisfaction went his way.

A great many more customers now came to Martine's stall, and for
upwards of an hour there was shrill argument and driving of bargains
till she had pretty well cleared her counter of all its stock. Then she
sat down again and looked to right and left of the market-place for any
sign of the Patoux children returning with her little son, but there
was not a glimpse of them anywhere.

"I wonder what they are doing!" she thought--"And I wonder what sort of
a Cardinal it is they have taken the child to see! These great princes
of the Church care nothing for the poor,--the very Pope allows half
Italy to starve while he shuts himself up with his treasures in the
Vatican;--what should a great Cardinal care for my poor little Fabien!
If the stories of the Christ were true, and one could only take the
child to Him, then indeed there might be a chance of cure!--but it is
all a lie,--and the worst of the lie is that it would give us all so
much comfort and happiness if it were only true! It is like holding out
a rope to a drowning man and snatching it away again. And when the rope
goes, the sooner one sinks under the waves the better!"



VI.

The Cardinal was still in his room alone with the boy Manuel, when
Madame Patoux, standing at her door under the waving tendrils of the
"creeping jenny" and shading her eyes from the radiance of the sun, saw
her children approaching with Fabien Doucet between them.

"Little wretches that they are!" she murmured--"Once let them get an
idea into their heads and nothing will knock it out! Now I shall have
to tell Monseigneur that they are here,--what an impertinence it
seems!--and yet he is so gentle, and has such a good heart that perhaps
he will not mind . . ."

Here she broke off her soliloquy as the children came up, Babette
eagerly demanding to know where the Cardinal was. Madame Patoux set her
arms akimbo and surveyed the little group of three half-pityingly, half
derisively.

"The Cardinal has not left his room since breakfast," she answered--"He
is playing Providence already to a poor lad lost in the streets, and
for that matter lost in the world, without father or mother to look
after him,--he was found in Notre Dame last night,--"

"Why, mother," interrupted Henri--"how could a boy get into Notre Dame
last night? When Babette and I went there, nobody was in the church at
all,--and we left one candle burning all alone in the darkness,--and
when we came out the Suisse swore at us for having gone in, and then
locked the door."

"Well, if one must be so exact, the boy was not found actually in Notre
Dame, obstinate child," returned his mother impatiently--"It happened
at midnight,--the good Cardinal heard someone crying and went to see
who it was. And he found a poor boy outside the Cathedral weeping as if
his heart were breaking, and leaning his head against the hard door for
a pillow. And he brought him back and gave him his own bed to sleep
in;--and the lad is with him now."

Little Fabien Doucet, leaning on his crutch, looked up with interest.

"Is he lame like me?" he asked.

"No, child," replied Madame compassionately--"He is straight and
strong. In truth a very pretty boy."

Fabien sighed. Babette made a dash forward.

"I will go and see him!" she said--"And I will call Monseigneur."

"Babette! How dare you! Babette!"

But Babette had scurried defiantly past her mother, and breathless with
a sense of excitement and disobedience intermingled, had burst into the
Cardinal's room without knocking. There on the threshold she
paused,--somewhat afraid at her own boldness,--and startled too at the
sight of Manuel, who was seated near the window opposite the Cardinal,
and who turned his deep blue eyes upon her with a look of enquiry. The
Cardinal himself rose and turned to greet her, and as the wilful little
maid met his encouraging glance and noted the benign sweetness of his
expression she trembled,--and losing nerve, began to cry.

"Monseigneur . . .  Monseigneur . . ." she stammered.

"Yes, my child,--what is it?" said the Cardinal kindly--"Do not be
afraid,--I am at your service. You have brought the little friend you
spoke to me of yesterday?"

Babette peeped shyly at him through her tears, and drooping her head,
answered with a somewhat smothered "Yes."

"That is well,--I will go to him at once,"--and the Cardinal paused a
moment looking at Manuel, who as if responding to his unuttered wish,
rose and approached him--"And you, Manuel--you will also come. You see,
my child," went on the good prelate addressing Babette, the while he
laid a gently caressing hand on her hair--"Another little friend has
come to me who is also very sad,--and though he is not crippled or ill,
he is all alone in the world, which is, for one so young, a great
hardship. You must be sorry for him too, as well as for your own poor
playmate."

But Babette was seized with an extraordinary timidity, and had much ado
to keep back the tears that rose in her throat and threatened to break
out in a burst of convulsive sobbing. She did not know in the least
what was the matter with her,--she was only conscious of an immense
confusion and shyness which were quite new to her ordinarily bold and
careless nature. Manuel's face frightened yet fascinated her; he
looked, she thought, like the beautiful angel of the famous stained
glass "Annunciation" window in the crumbling old church of St. Maclou.
She dared not speak to him,--she could only steal furtive glances at
him from under the curling length of her dark tear-wet lashes,--and
when the Cardinal took her by the hand and descended the staircase with
her to the passage where the crippled Fabien waited, she could not
forbear glancing back every now and then over her shoulder at the
slight, supple, almost aerial figure of the boy, who, noiselessly, and
with a light gliding step, followed. And now Madame Patoux came
forward;--a bulky, anxious figure of gesticulation and apology.

"Alas, Monseigneur!" she began plaintively--"It is too shameful that
your quiet should be disturbed in this way, but if you could only know
the obstinacy of these children! Ah yes!--if you knew all, you would
pity their parents!--you would indeed! And this is the unhappy little
creature they have brought to you, Monseigneur,--a sad sight
truly!--and afflicted sorely by the will of God,--though one could
hardly say that God was anywhere about when he fell, poor baby, from
his mother's cart and twisted his body awry,--one would rather think
the devil was in the business, asking your pardon, Monseigneur; for
surely the turning of a human creature into a useless lump has little
of good, or divine kindness in it! Now make thy best bow to the
Cardinal," went on Madame with a gasp for breath in her voluble speech,
addressing the little cripple--"And it is a pity them hast no time to
confess thy sins and take the Sacrament before so holy a man lay hands
on thee!"

But at these words Cardinal Bonpre turned to her with a reproving
gesture.

"I pray you do not call me holy, my daughter," he said earnestly, the
old shadows of pain and prote gathering in his eyes, "Nothing can make
me more sorrowful than to hear such an epithet applied to one who is so
full of errors and sins as myself. Try to look upon me just as I
am,--merely an old man, nearing the grave, with nothing of merit in me
beyond the desire to serve our Lord and obey His commands,--a desire
which is far stronger than the practical force to obey it. Much that I
would do I cannot; and in much that I attempt I fail. Come to me, my
child."

Here, interrupting himself, he bent down, and putting his arms tenderly
round Fabien, lifted him bodily, crutch and all, and carried him into
the next room, and as he did so, the young Manuel glided in before him,
and stood beside his chair, his blue eyes shining with a soft and eager
light of interest, and a little smile lifting the delicate upper curve
of his lips as he looked on. Fabien meanwhile, perched on the
Cardinal's knee, and held close in the Cardinal's arms, was not at all
frightened,--he simply sat, contented, gazing up confidingly at the
pale venerable face above him. Henri and Babette, having as they
considered, got their way, stayed at the door half afraid to enter, and
their mother peered over their heads at the little scene in mingled awe
and curiosity.

"My poor child," then said the Cardinal gently--"I want you to
understand quite clearly how sorry I am for you, and how willingly I
would do anything in the world to make you a strong, well, and happy
boy. But you must not fancy that I can cure you. I told your little
friends yesterday that I was not a saint, such as you read about in
story-books,--and that I could not work miracles, because I am not
worthy to be so filled with the Divine Spirit as to heal with a touch
like the better servants of our Blessed Lord. Nevertheless I firmly
believe that if God saw that it was good for you to be strong and well,
He would find ways to make you so. Sometimes sickness and sorrow are
sent to us for our advantage,--sometimes even death comes to us for our
larger benefit, though we may not understand how it is so till
afterwards. But in Heaven everything will be made clear; and even our
griefs will be turned into joys,--do you understand?"

"Yes," murmured Fabien gravely, but two large tears welled up in his
plaintive eyes as the faint glimmer of hope he had encouraged as to the
possibility of his being miraculously cured by the touch of a saintly
Cardinal, expired in the lonely darkness of his little afflicted soul.

"That is well," continued the Cardinal kindly--"And now, since it is so
difficult for you to kneel, you shall stay where you are in my
arms,--so!"--and he set him on his knee in a position of even greater
comfort than before, "You shall simply shut your eyes, and clasp your
little hands together as I put them here,"--and as he spoke he crossed
the child's hands on his silver crucifix-"And I will ask our Lord to
come and make you well,--for of myself I can do nothing."

At these words Henri and Babette glanced at each other questioningly,
and then as if simultaneously moved by some inexplicable emotion,
dropped on their knees,--their mother, too stout and unwieldy to do
this with either noiselessness or satisfaction to herself, was
contented to bend her head as low as she could get it. Manuel remained
standing. Leaning against the Cardinal's chair, his eyes fixed on the
crippled Fabien, he had the aspect of a young Angel of compassion,
whose sole immortal desire was to lift the burden of sorrow and pain
from the lives of suffering humanity. And after a minute or two passed
in silent meditation, the Cardinal laid his hands tenderly on Fabien's
fair curly head and prayed aloud.

"Oh merciful Christ! Most pitying and gentle Redeemer!--to Whom in the
days of Thy sacred life on earth, the sick and suffering and lame and
blind were brought, and never sent away unhealed or uncomforted;
consider, we beseech Thee, the sufferings of this Thy little child,
deprived of all the joys which Thou hast made so sweet for those who
are strong and straight in their youth, and who have no ailment to
depress their courage or to quench the ardour of their aspiring souls.
Look compassionately upon him, oh gentle King and Master of all such
children!--and even as Thou wert a child Thyself, be pleased to heal
him of his sad infirmity. For, if Thou wilt, Thou canst make this bent
body straight and these withered muscles strong,--from death itself
Thou canst ordain life, and nothing is impossible to Thee! But above
all things, gracious Saviour, we do pray Thee so to lift and strengthen
this child's soul, that if it is destined he should still be called
upon to bear his present pain and trouble, grant to him such perfection
in his inward spirit that he may prove worthy to be counted among Thy
angels in the bright Hereafter. To Thy care, and to Thy comfort, and to
Thy healing, great Master, we commend him, trusting him entirely to Thy
mercy, with perfect resignation to Thy Divine Will. For the sake and
memory of Thy most holy childhood mercifully help and bless this child!
Amen!"

A deep silence ensued. Only the slow ticking of the big old-fashioned
clock in Madame Patoux's kitchen, which was next door to the room they
were all in, could be distinctly heard. Henri and Babette were the
first to stir. They got up from their knees, brushed the dust of the
floor from their clothes, and stared curiously at Fabien. Was a miracle
going to happen? Fabien, however--still resting against the Cardinal's
breast, with his meagre little hands clasped tight on the Cardinal's
crucifix, kept his eyes solemnly shut and gave no sign, till the
Cardinal himself gently moved him and set him down. Then he glanced
around him bewilderingly, tottered, and would have fallen had he not
been given his little crutch for support. Very pathetic was the smile
which then quivered on his pale lips,--very doleful was the shake of
his head as he prepared to hobble away.

"Thank you very much, Monseigneur," he murmured gently--"I felt almost
cured while you were praying,--but I am afraid it is no use! You see
there are so many miserable people in the world,--many cripples,
too,--I am not the only one. Our Lord must have enough to do if He is
asked to heal them all! But I am sure you have done everything you can
for me, and I am grateful to you, Monseigneur. Good-bye!"

"Good-bye, my child!" and the Cardinal, strongly moved by the sight of
the little helpless twisted figure, and painfully impressed too by the
sense of his own entire powerlessness to remove the cause of the
trouble, bent down and kissed him--"Believe me, if the giving of my own
life could make you strong, you should have that life willingly. May
God bless and heal you!"

At that moment Manuel moved from the place he had kept near the
Cardinal's chair. With a light, eager step forward, he went up to the
little cripple, and putting his arms round him kissed him on the
forehead.

"Good-bye, dear little brother!" he said smiling--"Do not be sad! Have
patience! In all the universe, among all the millions and millions of
worlds, there is never a pure and unselfish prayer that the great good
God does not answer! Be sure of that! Take courage, dear little
brother! You will soon be well!"

Fabien stared, half amazed, at the gentle young face that shone upon
him with such an expression of hope and tenderness.

"You are very kind," he said--"And you are just a boy yourself,--so you
can perhaps guess how it must feel not to be like other boys who can
run and leap and walk for miles and miles through the fields and the
green shady forests where the birds sing,--and where there is so much
to see and think about,--when one is lame one cannot go far you
know--and then there is my mother--she is very sad about me,--and it
will be hard for her if I live to be a man and still can do nothing to
help her . . ."

His weak voice broke, and two large tears filled his eyes and brimmed
over, trickling slowly down his pale cheeks. Manuel took his hand and
pressed it encouragingly.

"Do not cry!" he said gently--"Believe in what I say--that you will
soon be quite well. The Cardinal has prayed for you as only good men
CAN pray,--without one selfish thought, in faith and deep
humility,--such prayers draw angels down! Be patient--be brave! Believe
in the best and the best will come!"

His words rang out with a sweet convincing clearness, and even Cardinal
Bonpre felt a sense of comfort as he listened. The little cripple
smiled through his tears.

"Oh, yes," he murmured--"I WILL hope and I WILL believe! I am always
sure God is near us, though my mother thinks He must be very far away.
Yes,--I will be as brave as I can. You are very good to me,--I know you
understand just how I feel, and I thank you very much. I hope you will
be happy yourself some day. Good-bye!" Then, turning to Henri and
Babette he asked, "Shall we go now?"

Henri's brows were drawn together in a dark frown.

"I suppose so," he replied--"I suppose there's nothing more to be
done?" This, with a somewhat sarcastic air of inquiry directed at the
Cardinal, who met his bold bright glance, mildly and half
compassionately.

"Nothing more my child"--he answered--"Did you expect a miracle? I told
you from the first that I was no saint,--I can do no good unless our
Lord wills it."

"The Pope believes in miracles"--said Henri, flushing as he spoke with
the heat of a sudden angry emotion--"But only those that are performed
on his own behalf! HE thinks that God's chief business is to look after
HIM!"

A silence ensued,--whether of horror or embarrassment could hardly be
determined. The Cardinal said nothing,--Babette trembled a
little,--what a dreadful boy Henri really was, she thought!--Madame
Patoux shut up her eyes in horror, crossed herself devoutly as against
some evil spirit, and was about to speak, when Henri, nothing daunted,
threw himself into the breach again, and turned with a fiery vehemence
of appeal towards the young and thoughtful-looking Manuel.

"It's just as I say!" he declared hotly--"The Pope is taken as much
care of as if he were a peach wrapped in wadding! Was Christ taken care
of? No,--He suffered all sorts of hardships and at last was crucified!
The Pope shuts himself up in the Vatican with millions and millions of
money's worth, while thousands of people around him in Italy alone, are
starving and miserable. Christ would not allow such a thing. Christ
said 'Sell half that thou hast and give to the poor'--now the Pope
doesn't sell half, nor a quarter, nor a bit of a quarter! He takes all
he can get and keeps it! And yet God is supposed to work miracles for
an old man like that!--Oh I know all about it! Boys read the newspapers
as well as grown men!"

"Henri!" gasped Madame Patoux, extending her fat arm and hand with a
solemn gesture of reproach--"Henri, thou art mad . . .  wicked . . ."

But Henri went on unheedingly, still addressing Manuel.

"Now you are a boy, and I daresay you can read and think,--you are
about my age I suppose. And you are left all alone in the world, with
nobody to care for you,--well, do you think that is well-arranged?--And
do you think there is any sense in believing in a God who does such a
lot of cruel things? And when He won't help us ever so little? How can
people be good if they keep on praying and praying, and hoping and
hoping, and working and working--and yet nothing comes of it all but
trouble and pain and loss . . ." He stopped for sheer lack of breath to
go on.

Manuel looked at him quietly, full in the eyes.

"Yes, it is hard!" he said--"Very hard! But it is not God who does any
cruel thing. God is Love,--and the Spirit of Love cannot be cruel. It
is the people of the world themselves,--the people who injure each
other in thought, word and deed,--and who have no spirit of love in
them,--these invite sorrow and pain, and rush upon misfortune. Then
they blame God for it! Ah, it is easy to blame God!--so much easier
than to blame one's self! And if you ask me if it is well for those who
suffer cruel things to still believe in God, I say yes, I do think it
well,--for it is the only chance they have of finding the right way of
life after much wandering in the wrong."

His sweet voice fell on the silence like a soft chime, and Henri, for
no particular reason that he could give, felt suddenly abashed.
Cardinal Bonpre listened to the words of this strange foundling with a
singular emotion,--an emotion too deep to find any outlet in speech.
Babette raised her brown trustful eyes, and timidly ventured to put in
her opinion.

"Yes"--she said--"I am sure that is true. You see Henri"--with a wise
glance at her brother--"you see it is always the same,--when anyone
suffers something unfortunate, there is certain to be some cause for
it. Now everybody says that if poor Martine had not put Fabien in the
cart to save herself the trouble of holding him on her knee, he would
not have tumbled out and been hurt. That was the beginning of it. And
that was not God's fault. Come Fabien!--we'll take you back now."

At this, Madame Patoux started from her stricken condition of horrified
dumbness into speech and action.

"Ah yes, it is indeed time!" she exclaimed--"Enough trouble has been
given, I am sure, to Monseigneur, and if such a prayer as his does not
reach Heaven, why then there is no Heaven at all, and it is no good
bothering ourselves about it. And what things have been said by my
son!--MY son!--against the Holy Father! Ah, mon Dieu! The wickedness of
it!--The horror! And if thou learnest such blasphemy from newspapers,
Henri, thou shalt not read them--"

"Who is to prevent me?" demanded Henri, his eyes sparkling defiantly.

"Hush--hush my child!" interposed the Cardinal quietly "Nothing indeed
can prevent thee,--no one can hinder thee from walking the world
according to thine own will and direction. Thou must take good and evil
as they come, and strive thy best to discern between them--and if the
love of God cannot help thee--well!--perchance the love of thy mother
may!"

There was a pause. Henri's head drooped, and quick tears filled his
eyes. He said nothing further, but turned to assist Babette in guiding
the little Fabien's hesitating steps as he hobbled from the room. The
emotional Madame Patoux choked back a rising sob.

"God bless you Monseigneur!" she murmured--"Henri will not forget those
words--the lad has a hasty temper, but a good heart--yes, believe me--a
good heart--"

"That I am sure of"--responded the Cardinal--"He is quick and
intelligent--and seeks to know the truth. If he could feel an asserted
'truth' to be really true, I am confident he would frame his life upon
it, and be a good, brave man. Yes--he is a clever lad,--and our modern
system of education pushes the brain to a precocity exceeding bodily
years,--his impatience and anger only come from puzzling over what he
finds it difficult to understand. It is all a puzzle to him--all a
puzzle!--as it is to most of us!" He sighed--then added in a lighter
tone--"I shall want nothing more at your kindly hands, my daughter. I
have decided to leave Rouen for Paris to-day and will take an early
afternoon train. Manuel"--and he hesitated a moment--"Manuel will go
with me."

Madame was scarcely surprised at this announcement. She had indeed
expected it. She glanced at Manuel himself to see how he accepted this
sudden change in his fortunes, but he was entirely absorbed in watching
Henri and Babette lead their little crippled friend away. After all,
there was nothing to be said. The Cardinal was a free agent,--he had a
perfect right to befriend a homeless boy and give him sustenance and
protection if he chose. He would make, thought Madame, a perfect
acolyte, and would look like a young angel in his little white
surplice. And so the good woman, deciding in her own mind that such was
the simple destiny for which the Cardinal intended him, smiled,
murmured something deferential and approving, and hastened from the
room, to prepare for Monseigneur, whether he asked for it or not, a
dish of her most excellent soup, to strengthen and support him before
starting on his journey. And ere four o'clock had chimed from all the
towers of the city, the Hotel Poitiers was deprived of its honoured
guest,--the Cardinal, accompanied by his foundling, had departed, and
the black, smoky, snake-like train had rushed with them through the
smiling peace of the Normandy pasture-lands on towards the brilliant
"city enthroned in wickedness," which sparkles like a jewel on the
borders of the Seine as gloriously as ever Babylon sparkled on the
shores of Euphrates. As godless, as hollow to the very core of
rottenness, as her sister of ancient days, wanton "Lutetia"
shines,--with the ghastly and unnatural lustre of phosphorescent
luminance arising from old graves--and as divinely determined as the
destruction of the old-time city splendid, is the approaching downfall
of the modern capital. To the inhabitants of Rouen, the very name of
Paris carries with it a kind of awe,--it excites various emotions of
wonder, admiration, longing, curiosity and even fear,--for Paris is a
witches' cauldron in which Republicanism, Imperialism, Royalism,
Communism and Socialism, are all thrown by the Fates to seethe together
in a hellish broth of conflicting elements--and the smoke of it ascends
in reeking blasphemy to Heaven. Not from its church-altars does the cry
of "How long, O Lord, how long!" ascend nowadays,--for its priests are
more skilled in the use of the witty bon-mot or the polished sneer than
in the power of the prophet's appeal,--it is from the Courts of Science
that the warning note of terror sounds,--the cold vast courts where
reasoning thinkers wander, and learn, and deeply meditate, knowing that
all their researches but go to prove the fact that apart from all creed
and all forms of creed, Crime carries Punishment as surely as the seed
is born with the flower,--thinkers who are fully aware that not all the
forces of all mankind, working with herculean insistence to support a
Lie, can drive back the storm-cloud of the wrath of that "Unknown
Quantity" called God, whose thunders do most terribly declare the truth
"with power and great glory." "How long O Lord, how long!" Not long, we
think, O friends!--not long now shall we wait for the Divine
Pronouncement of the End. Hints of it are in the air,--signs and
portents of it are about us in our almost terrific discoveries of the
invisible forces of Light and Sound,--we are not given such tremendous
powers to play with in our puny fashion for the convenience of making
our brief lives easier to live and more interesting,--no, there is some
deeper reason,--one, which in our heedless way of dancing over our own
Earth-grave, we never dream of. And we go on making our little plans,
building our ships and making loud brags of our armies, and our skill,
and our prowess both by land and sea, and our amazing importance to
ourselves and to others,--which importance has reached such a height at
the present day as to make of us a veritable spectacle for Olympian
laughter,--and we draw out our little sums of life from the Eternal
exchequer, and add them up and try to obtain the highest interest for
them, always forgetting to calculate that in making up the sum total,
that mysterious "Unknown Quantity" will have to come in, and (un less
it has been taken into due counting from the first) will be a figure
likely to swamp the whole banking business. And in this particular
phase of speculation and exchange, Paris has long been playing a losing
game. So steadily has she lost, in honour, in prestige, in faith, in
morals, in justice, in honesty and in cleanly living, that it does not
seem possible she can ever retrieve herself. Her men are
dissolute,--her women shameless--her youth of both sexes depraved,--her
laws are corrupt--her arts de cadent--her religion dead. What next can
be expected of her?--or rather to what extent will Destiny permit her
to go before the bolt of destruction falls? "Thus far, and no farther"
has ever been the Principle of Nature--and Paris has almost touched the
"Thus far."

Sitting quietly in her tidy kitchen near the open window, after the
Cardinal's departure, Madame Patoux knitted busily, her thoughts flying
faster than her glittering needles. A certain vague impression of
solemnity had been left on her mind by the events of the morning,--she
could not quite reason out the why or the wherefore of it--and yet--it
was a fact that after Monseigneur had gone, she had, when entering the
rooms he had vacated, felt a singular sense of awe.

"Almost as if one were in the Cathedral at the ringing of the
'Sanctus'" she murmured under her breath, glancing about timidly at the
plain furniture and bare walls. And after putting everything in order,
she closed and locked the doors jealously, with a determination that
she would not let those rooms to the first chance-comer for a long
time,--no, though she might have to lose money by her refusal. And now,
as she sat actively employed in knitting socks for Henri, whom she
could see sitting with his sister outside on the bench under the house
porch, reading or pretending to read, she began to wonder what opinion
those two young miscreants had formed in their minds respecting the
Cardinal, and also what they thought of the boy who had been taken so
suddenly under his protection. She was almost tempted to call Henri and
ask him a few questions on the subject,--but she had learnt to value
peace and quietness when she could secure those rare blessings at the
hands of her children, and when they were employed with a book and
visibly out of mischief she thought it wisest to leave them alone. And
so she left them in the present instance, pushing her window open as
she sat and knitted, for the air was warm and balmy, and the long rays
of sunshine streaming across the square were of the hue of a ripe
nectarine just gathered, and the delicate mouldings and traceries and
statues on the porch of the Cathedral appeared like so many twinings of
grey gossamer web glistening in a haze of gold. Now and then neighbours
passed, and nodded or called a greeting which Madame Patoux answered
cheerily, still knitting vivaciously; and the long shafts of sunshine
grew longer, casting deeper shadows as the quarters chimed. All at once
there was a cry,--a woman's figure came rushing precipitately across
the square,--Madame Patoux sprang up, and her children ran out of the
porch as they recognised Martine Doucet.

"Martine! Martine! What is it!" they all cried simultaneously.

Martine, breathless, dishevelled, laughing and sobbing alternately,
tried to speak, but could only gesticulate and throw up her hands in a
kind of ecstasy, but whether of despair or joy could not be guessed.
Madame Patoux shook her by the arm.

"Martine!--speak--what is it!"

Martine made a violent effort.

"Fabien!--Fabien--" she gasped, flinging herself to and fro and still
sobbing and laughing.

"Mon Dieu!" cried Madame in horror. "Is the child dead?"

"No, no!--" and Martine again tossed her arms aloft in a kind of
frenzy. "No--but look you!--there IS a God! Yes!--we thought He was an
invention of the priests--but no--He is a real God after all!--Oh mes
enfants!" and she tried to grasp the amazed Henri and Babette in her
arms, "You are two of His angels!--you took my boy to the Cardinal--"

The children glanced at each other.

"Yes--yes!" they murmured breathlessly.

"Well! and see what has happened!--See!--Here comes Fabien--!"

And as she spoke exultantly with an excitement that seemed to inspire
every nerve of her body, a little figure came running lightly towards
them,--the light strong figure of a boy with fair curls flying in the
wind, and a face in which the large, grey, astonished eyes flashed with
an almost divine joy.

"Mother!--Mother!" he cried.

Madame Patoux felt as though the heavens had suddenly opened to let the
angels down. Was this Fabien? Fabien, who had hobbled painfully upon
crutches all his life, and had left her house in his usual condition an
hour or so ago?--This straight-limbed child, running with the graceful
and easy movement of a creature who had never known a day's pain?

"Fabien, is it thou?" almost screamed Henri, "Speak, is it thou?"

"It is I" said Fabien, and he stopped, panting for breath,--then threw
his arms round his mother's neck and faced them,--"It is I--strong and
well!--thanks to God and the prayers of the Cardinal!"

For a moment there was a dead silence,--a silence of stupefied
amazement unbroken save by the joyful weeping of Martine. Then suddenly
a deep-toned bell rang from the topmost tower of Notre Dame--and in the
flame-red of the falling sun the doves that make their homes among the
pinnacles of the great Cathedral, rose floating in cloudy circles
towards the sky. One bell--and then another--yet another!--

"The Angelus!" cried Babette dropping on her knees and folding her
hands, "The Angelus!--Mother--Martine--Henri!--Fabien!--the Angelus!"--

Down they all knelt, a devotional group, in the porch through which the
good Cardinal had so lately passed, and the bells chimed sweetly and
melodiously as Fabien reverently repeated the Angelic Salutation amid
responses made with tears and thanksgiving, and neighbours and townfolk
hearing of the miracle came hastening to the Hotel Poitiers to enquire
into its truth, and pausing as they saw the cluster of kneeling figures
in the porch instinctively and without question knelt also,--then as
the news spread, group after group came running and gathering together,
and dropping on their knees amazed and awe-struck, till the broad
Square showed but one black mass of a worshipping congregation under
the roseate sky, their voices joining in unison with the clear accents
of one little happy child; while behind them rose the towers of Notre
Dame, and over their heads the white doves flew and the bells of the
Angelus rang. And the sun dropped slowly into the west, crimson and
glorious like the shining rim of a Sacramental Cup held out and then
drawn slowly back again by angel hands within the Veil of Heaven.



VII.

Meanwhile, unconscious of the miracle his prayer had wrought, Cardinal
Bonpre and his young charge Manuel, arrived in Paris, and drove from
the station direct to a house situated near the Bois du Boulogne, where
the Cardinal's niece, Angela Sovrani, only daughter of Prince Sovrani,
and herself famous throughout Europe as a painter of the highest
promise, had a suite of rooms and studio, reserved for her occasional
visits to the French capital. Angela Sovrani was a rare type of her
sex,--unlike any other woman in the world, so those who knew her best
were wont to declare. Without being actually beautiful, according to
the accepted lines and canons of physical perfection, she created
around her an effect of beauty, which was dazzling and exciting to a
singular degree,--people who came once within the charmed circle of her
influence could never forget her, and always spoke of her afterwards as
a creature apart;--a "woman of genius,--yes!"--they said, "But
something more even than that." And this "something more," was just the
inexplicable part of her which governed her whole being, and rendered
her so indescribably attractive. And she was not without beauty--or
perhaps it should be termed loveliness rather,--of an exquisitely
suggestive kind, which provoked the beholder into questioning where and
how the glamour of it fell. In her eyes, perhaps, the secret lay,--they
were violet-grey in hue, and drowsy-lidded, with long lashes that swept
the delicate pale cheeks in a dark golden fringe of shadow, through
which the sparkle of vision gleamed,--now warningly, now tenderly,--and
anon, these same half-shut and deep fringed lids would open wide,
letting the full brilliance of the soul behind the eyes pour forth its
luminance, in flashes of such lightning-like clearness and compelling
force, that it was impossible not to recognise something higher than
mere woman in the dazzle of that spiritual glory. In figure she was
wonderfully slight,--so slight indeed that she suggested a delicate
willow-withe such as can be bent and curved with one hand--yet this
slightness stood her in good stead, for being united with extreme
suppleness, it gave her a grace of movement resembling that of some
skimming mountain bird or sea-swallow, which flies with amazing
swiftness yet seeming slowness. Angela never moved quickly,--no one had
ever seen her in what is termed a "rush," or a vulgar hurry. She did
everything she had to do without haste, without noise, without
announcement or assertion of any kind;--and all that she did was done
as perfectly as her ability could warrant. And that ability was very
great indeed, and displayed itself in small details as well as large
attempts. Whether she merely twisted her golden-brown hair into a knot,
or tied a few flowers together and fastened them on her dress with a
pearl pin, either thing was perfectly done--without a false line or a
discordant hue. Her face, form, voice and colouring were like a chord
of music, harmonious,--and hence the impression of satisfaction and
composure her presence always gave. In herself she was a creature of
remarkable temperament and character;--true womanly in every delicate
sentiment, fancy and feeling, but with something of the man-hero in her
scorn of petty aims, her delight in noble deeds, her courage, her
ambition, her devotion to duty and her unflinching sense of honour.
Full of rare perceptions and instinctive knowledge of persons and
motives, she could only be deceived and blinded where her deepest
affections were concerned, and there she could certainly be fooled and
duped as completely as the wisest of us all. Looking at her now as she
stood awaiting her uncle's arrival in the drawing-room of her "suite,"
the windows of which faced the Bois, she expressed to the air and
surroundings the personality of a thoughtful, charming young woman,--no
more. Her black silk gown, cut simply in the prevailing mode of
definitely outlining the figure from throat to hips, and then springing
out in pliant folds of trailing drapery, had nothing remarkable about
it save its Parisian perfection of fit,--the pale "Gloire de France"
rose that rested lightly amongst the old lace at her neck, pinned, yet
looking as though it had dropped there merely out of a languid desire
to escape from further growing, was her only ornament. Her hair, full
of curious lights and shades running from brown to gold and gold to
brown again, in a rippling uncertain fashion, clustered thickly over
her brow and was caught back at the sides in a loose twist after the
style of the Greek vestals,--and her fine, small white hands and taper
fingers, so skilled in the use of the artist's brush, looked too tiny
and delicate to be of any service save to receive the kisses of a
lover's lips,--or to be raised, folded pure and calm, in a child-like
appeal to Heaven. Certainly in her fragile appearance she expressed
nothing save indefinable charm--no one, studying her physiognomy, would
have accredited her with genius, power, and the large conceptions of a
Murillo or a Raphael;--yet within the small head lay a marvellous
brain--and the delicate body was possessed by a spirit of amazing
potency to conjure with. While she watched for the first glimpse of the
carriage which was to bring her uncle the Cardinal, whom she loved with
a rare and tender devotion, her thoughts were occupied with a letter
she had received that morning from Rome,--a letter "writ in choice
Italian," which though brief, contained for her some drops of the
essence of all the world's sweetness, and was worded thus--

"MY OWN LOVE!--A century seems to have passed away since you left Rome.
The hours move slowly without you--they are days,--even years!--but I
feel your spirit is always with me! Absence for those who love, is not
absence after all! To the soul, time is nothing,--space is
nothing,--and my true and passionate love for you makes an invisible
bridge, over which my thoughts run and fly to your sweet presence,
carrying their delicious burden of a thousand kisses!--a thousand
embraces and blessings to the Angela and angel of my life! From her
devoted lover,

"Florian."

Her devoted lover, Florian! Yes; Florian Varillo--her comrade in art,
was her lover,--a genius himself, who had recognised HER genius and who
bowed before it, conquered and subdued! Florian, the creator of
exquisitely delicate landscapes and seascapes, with nymphs and cupids
and nereids and sirens all daintily portrayed therein,--pictures so
ethereal and warm and bright in colour that they were called by some of
the best Italian critics, the "amoretti" of painting,--he, this
wonderful man, had caught her soul and heart by storm, in a few sudden,
quickly-whispered words one night when the moon was at the full,
hanging high over the gardens of the Pincio,--and, proud of her
security in the love she had won, Angela had risen by leaps and bounds
to a magnificence of creative effort and attainment so far beyond him,
that old and wise persons, skilled in the wicked ways of the world,
would sometimes discourse among themselves in dubious fashion thus: "Is
it possible that he is not jealous? He must surely see that her work is
superior to his own!" And others would answer, "Oh no! No man was ever
known to admit, even in thought, that a woman can do better things in
art than himself! If a masculine creature draws a picture on a
paving-stone he will assure himself in his own Ego, that it is really
much more meritorious simply as 'man's work' than the last triumph of a
Rosa Bonheur. Besides, you have to remember that in this case the man
is the woman's lover--he could soon kill her genius if he chose. He has
simply to desert her,--such an easy thing!--so often done!--and she
will paint no more. Women are all alike,--they rest on love,--when that
fails, then everything fails, and they drop into old age without a
groan." And then perhaps a stray cynic would say, "But Angela Sovrani
need not depend on one lover surely?--" and he would get for answer,
"No, she need not--but it so happens that she does,"--which to
everybody seemed extraordinary, more particularly in Italy, where
morals are so lax, that a woman has only to be seen walking alone in
the public gardens or streets with one of the opposite sex, and her
reputation is gone for ever. It is no use to explain that the man in
question is her father, her brother or her uncle,--he simply could not
be. He is THE man, the one inevitable. Few Italians (in Italy) believe
in the chastity of English women,--their reasons for doubt being simply
because they see the fair and free ones going to parties, theatres and
other places of amusement with their friends of the other sex in
perfect ease and confidence. And in the case of Angela Sovrani, though
she was affianced to Florian Varillo with her father's consent,
(reluctantly obtained,) and the knowledge of all the Roman world of
society, she saw very little of him,--and that little, never alone.
Thus it was very sweet to receive such consoling words as those she had
had from him that day--"Time is nothing,--space is nothing,--and my
true and passionate love for you makes an invisible bridge over which
my thoughts run and fly to your sweet presence!" The letter lay warm in
her bosom just under the "Gloire de France" rose; she pressed it
tenderly with her little hand now simply for the childish pleasure of
hearing the paper rustle, and she smiled dreamily.

"Florian," she murmured half aloud!--"MY Florian!" And she recalled
certain lines of verse he had written to her,--for most Italians write
verse as easily as they eat maccaroni;--and there are countless rhymes
to "amor" in the dulcet Dante-tongue, whereas our rough English can
only supply for the word "love" some three or four similar
sounds,--which is perhaps a fortunate thing. Angela spoke English and
French as easily and fluently as her native Tuscan, and had read the
most notable books in all three languages, so she was well aware that
of all kinds of human speech in the world there is none so adapted for
making love and generally telling lies in, as the "lingua Toscana in
bocca Romana." And this particular "lingua" Florian possessed in
fullest perfection of sweetness, so far as making love was
concerned;--of the telling of lies he was, according to Angela's
estimate of him, most nobly ignorant. She had not many idle moments,
however, for meditation on her love matters, or for dreamy study of the
delicate beginnings of the autumnal tints on the trees of the Bois, for
the carriage she had been awaiting soon made its appearance, and
bowling rapidly down the road drew up sharply at the door. She had just
time to perceive that her uncle had not arrived alone, when he
entered,--and with a pretty grace and reverence for his holy calling,
she dropped on one knee before him to receive his benediction, which he
gave by laying a hand on her soft hair and signing the cross on her
brow. After which he raised her and looked at her fondly.

"My dear child!"--he said, tenderly,--and again "My dear child!"

Then he turned towards Manuel, who had followed him and was now
standing quietly on the threshold of the apartment.

"Angela, this is one of our Lord's 'little ones,'" he said,--"He is
alone in the world, and I have made myself his guardian and protector
for the present. You will be kind to him--yes--as kind as if you were
his sister, will you not?--for we are all one family in the sight of
Heaven, and sorrow and loneliness and want can but strengthen the love
which should knit us all together."

Raising her candid eyes, and fixing them on Manuel, Angela smiled. The
thoughtful face and pathetic expression of the boy greatly attracted
her, and in her heart she secretly wondered where her uncle had found
so intelligent and inspired-looking a creature. But one of her
UNfeminine attributes was a certain lack of curiosity concerning other
people's affairs, and an almost fastidious dislike of asking questions
on matters which did not closely concern her. So she contented herself
with giving him that smile of hers which in itself expressed all
sweetness, and saying gently,--

"You are very welcome! You must try to feel that wherever my uncle
is,--that is 'home'."

"I have felt that from the first,"--replied Manuel in his soft musical
voice, "I was all alone when my lord the Cardinal found me,--but with
him the world seems full of friends."

Angela looked at him still more attentively; and the fascination of his
presence became intensified. She would have liked to continue the
conversation, but her uncle was fatigued by his journey, and expressed
the desire for an hour's rest. She therefore summoned a servant to show
him to the rooms prepared for his reception, whither he went, Manuel
attending him,--and when, after a little while, Angela followed to see
that all was arranged suitably for his comfort, she found that he had
retired to his bed-chamber, and that just outside his door in a little
ante-room adjoining, his "waif and stray" was seated, reading. There
was something indescribable about the boy even in this reposeful
attitude of study,--and Angela observed him for a minute or two,
herself unseen. His face reminded her of one of Fra Angelico's
seraphs,--the same broad brow, deep eyes and sensitive lips, which
seemed to suggest the utterance of wondrous speech or melodious
song,--the same golden hair swept back in rich clusters,--the same
eager, inspired, yet controlled expression. A curious fluttering of her
heart disturbed the girl as she looked--an indefinable dread--a kind of
wonder, that almost touched on superstitious awe. Manuel himself,
apparently unconscious of her observation, went on reading,--his whole
attitude expressing that he was guarding the door to deter anyone from
breaking in upon the Cardinal's rest, and Angela at last turned away
reluctantly, questioning herself as to the cause of the strange
uneasiness which thrilled her mind.

"It is foolish, of course,"--she murmured, "but I feel just as if there
were a supernatural presence in the house, . . . however,--I always do
have that impression with Uncle Felix, for he is so good and
noble-minded,--almost a saint, as everyone says--but to-day there is
something else--something quite unusual--"

She re-entered the drawing-room, moving slowly with an abstracted air,
and did not at once perceive a visitor in the room,--a portly person in
clerical dress, with a somewhat large head and strongly marked
features,--a notable character of the time in Paris, known as the Abbe
Vergniaud. He had seated himself in a low fauteuil, and was turning
over the pages of the month's "Revue de Deux Mondes", humming a little
tune under his breath as he did so,--but he rose when he saw Angela,
and advanced smilingly to greet her as she stopped short, with a little
startled exclamation of surprise at the sight of him.

"Forgive me" he said, with an expressively apologetic gesture,--"Have I
come at an inopportune moment? I saw your uncle arrive, and I was
extremely anxious to see him on a little confidential matter--I
ventured to persuade your servant to let me enter--"

"No apologies are necessary, Monsieur l'Abbe" said Angela, quickly, "My
uncle Felix is indeed here, but he is tired with his journey and is
resting--"

"Yes, I understand!" And Monsieur l'Abbe, showing no intention to take
his leave on account of the Cardinal's non-presence, bowed low over the
extended hand of "the Sovrani" as she was sometimes called in the world
of art, where her name was a bone for envious dogs-in-the-manger to
fight over--"But if I might wait a little while--"

"Your business with my uncle is important?" questioned Angela with
slightly knitted brows.

"My dear child, all business is important,"--declared the Abbe, with a
smile which spread the light of a certain satirical benevolence all
over his plump clean-shaven face, "or so we think--we who consider that
we have any business,--which is of course a foolish idea,--but one that
is universal to human nature. We all imagine we are busy--which is so
curious of us! Will you sit here?--Permit me!" And he dexterously
arranged a couple of cushions in an arm-chair and placed it near the
window. Angela half-reluctantly seated herself, watching the Abbe under
the shadow of her long lashes as he sat down opposite to her.
"Yes,--the emmets, the flies, the worms and the men, are all of one
equality in the absurd belief that they can do things--things that will
last. Their persistent self-credulity is astonishing,--considering the
advance the world has made in science, and the overwhelming proofs we
are always getting of the fact that we are only One of an eternal
procession of many mighty civilizations, all of which have been swept
away with everything they have ever learnt, into silence,--so that
really all we do, or try to do, amounts to doing nothing in the end!"

"That is your creed, I know," said Angela Sovrani with a faint sigh,
"But it is a depressing and a wretched one."

"I do not find it so," responded the Abbe, complacently looking at a
fine diamond ring that glittered on the little finger of his plump
white hand, "It is a creed which impresses upon us the virtue of being
happy during the present moment, no matter what the next may bring. Let
each man enjoy himself according to his temperament and capabilities.
Do not impose bounds upon him--give him his liberty. Let him alone. Do
not try to bamboozle him with the idea that there is a God looking
after him. So will he be spared much disappointment and useless
blasphemy. If he makes his own affairs unpleasant in this world', he
will not be able to lift up his hands to the innocent skies, which are
only composed of pure ether, and blame an impossible Large Person
sitting up there who can have no part in circumstances which are
entirely unknown outside the earth's ridiculously small orbit."

He smiled kindly as he spoke, and looked paternally at "the Sovrani,"
who flushed with a sudden warmth that sent a wave of pale rose over her
face, and made her cheeks the colour of the flower she wore.

"How cruel you are!" she said,--"How cold--how didactic! You would give
each man his freedom according to habit and temperament,--no matter
whether such habit and temperament led to crime or otherwise,--you
would impose upon him no creed,--no belief in anything higher than
himself,--and yet--you remain in the Church!"

The Abbe laughed softly.

"Chere Sovrani! You are angry--deliciously angry! Impulsively,
enthusiastically, beautifully vexed with me! I like to see you so,--you
are a woman of remarkable genius, and yet you are quite a little child
in heart,--a positive child, with beliefs and hopes! I should not
wonder if you even believed that love itself is eternal!--that most
passing of phantoms!--yes--and you exclaim against me because I venture
to think for myself? It is appalling that I should think for myself and
yet remain in the Church? My dear lady, you might just as well, after
unravelling the dirty entanglement of the Dreyfus case, have turned
upon our late friend Faure and exclaimed 'And yet you remained
President!'"

Angela's violet eyes glowed.

"He was not allowed to remain President," she said.

"No, he was not. He died. Certainly! And I know you think he would not
have died if he had done his best to clear the character of an innocent
man. To women of your type, it always seems as if God--the Large Person
up above--stepped in exactly at the right moment. It would really
appear as if it were so at times. But such things are mere
coincidences."

"I do not believe in coincidences," said Angela decisively, "I do not
believe in 'chance' or 'luck', or what you call 'fortuitous' haphazard
arrangements of any sort. I think everything is planned by law from the
beginning; even to the particular direction in which a grain of dust
floats through space. It is all mathematical and exact. And the moving
Spirit--the Divine Centre of things, whom I call God,--cannot dislodge
or alter one particle of the majestic system without involving the
whole in complete catastrophe. It is our mistake to 'chance' things--at
least, so I think. And if I exclaim against you and say,--"Why do you
remain in the Church?' it is because I cannot understand a man of
conscience and intellect outwardly professing one thing while inwardly
he means another. Because God will take him in the end at his own
interior valuation, not at his outward seeming."

"Uncomfortable, if true," said the Abbe, still smiling. "When one has
been at infinite pains all one's life to present a charmingly virtuous
and noble aspect to the world, it would be indeed distressing if at the
last moment one were obliged to lift the mask . . ."

"Sometimes one is not given the chance to lift it," interposed Angela,
"It is torn off ruthlessly by a force greater than one's own. 'Call no
man happy till his death,' you know."

"Yes, I know," and the Abbe settled himself in his chair more
comfortably;--he loved an argument with "the Sovrani", and was wont to
declare that she was the only woman in the world who had ever made him
wish to be a good man,--"But that maxim can be taken in two ways. It
may mean that no man is happy till his death,--which I most potently
believe,--or it may mean that a man is only JUDGED after his death, in
which case it cannot be said to affect his happiness, as he is past
caring whether people think ill or well of him. Besides, after death it
must needs be all right, as every man is so particularly fortunate in
his epitaph!"

Angela smiled a little.

"That is witty of you," she said, "but the fact of every man having a
kindly-worded epitaph only proves goodness of heart and feeling in his
relatives and friends--"

"Or gratitude for a fortune left to them in his will," declared the
Abbe gaily, "or a sense of relief that the dear creature has gone and
will never come back. Either motive, would, I know, inspire me to write
most pathetic verses! Now you bend your charming brows at me,--mea
culpa! I have said something outrageous?"

"Not from the point of view at which YOU take life," said Angela
quietly, "but I was just then thinking of a cousin of mine,--a very
beautiful woman; her husband treated her with every possible sort of
what I should term civil cruelty,--polite torture--refined agony. If he
had struck her or shot her dead it would have been far kinder. But his
conduct was worse than murder. He finally deserted her, and left her
penniless to fight her own way through the world. Then he died
suddenly, and she forgot all his faults, spoke of him as though he had
been a model of goodness, and lives now for his memory, ever mourning
his loss. In her case the feeling of regret had nothing to do with
money, for he spent all her fortune and left her nothing even of her
own. She has to work hard for her living now,--but she loves him and is
as true to him as if he were still alive. What do you say to that?"

"I say that the lady in question must be a charming person!" replied
the Abbe, "Perfectly charming! But of course she is deceiving herself;
and she takes pleasure in the self-deception. She knows that the man
had deserted her and was quite unworthy of her devotion;--but she
pretends to herself that she does NOT know. And it is charming, of
course! But women will do that kind of thing. It is extraordinary,--but
they will. They all deceive themselves in matters of love. Even you
deceive yourself."

Angela started.

"I?" she exclaimed.

"Yes--you--why not?" And the Abbe treated her to one of his
particularly paternal smiles. "You are betrothed to Florian
Varillo,--but no man ever had or ever could have all the virtues with
which you endow this excellent Florian. He is a delightful creature,--a
good artist--unique in his own particular line,--but you think him
something much greater than even artist or man--a sort of god, (though
the gods themselves were not impeccable) only fit to be idealised. Now,
I am not a believer in the gods,--but of course it is delightful to me
to meet those who are."

"Signor Varillo needs neither praise nor defence," said Angela with a
slight touch of hauteur, "All the world knows what he is."

"Yes, precisely! That is just it,--all the world knows what he is,--"
and the Abbe rubbed his forehead with an air of irritation, "And I am
vexing you by my talk, I can see! Well, well!--You must forgive my
garrulity;--I admit my faults--I am old--I am a cynic--I talk too
much--I have a bad opinion of man, and an equally bad opinion of the
Forces that evolved him. By the way, I met that terrible reformer and
socialist Aubrey Leigh at the Embassy the other day--the man who is
making such a sensation in England with his 'Addresses to the People.'
He is quite an optimist, do you know? He believes in everything and
everybody,--even in me!"

Angela laughed, and her laughter sweet and low, thrilled the air with a
sense of music.

"That is wonderful!" she said gaily,--"Even in you! And how does he
manage to believe in you, Monsieur l'Abbe? Do tell me!"

A little frown wrinkled the Abbe's brow.

"Well! in a strange way," he responded. "You know he is a very strange
man and believes in very strange things. When I treat humanity as a
jest--which is really how it should be treated--he looks at me with a
grand air of tolerance, 'Oh, you will progress;' he says, 'You are
passing through a phase.' 'My dear sir,' I assure him, 'I have lived in
this "phase", as you call it, for forty years. I used to pray to the
angels and saints and to all the different little Madonnas that live in
different places, till I was twenty. Then I dropped all the pretty
heaven-toys at once;--and since then I have believed in
nothing--myself, least of all. Now I am sixty--and yet you tell me I am
only passing through a phase.' 'Quite so,' he answered me with the
utmost coolness, 'Your forty years--or your sixty years, are a Moment
merely;--the Moment will pass--and you will find another Moment coming
which will explain the one which has just gone. Nothing is simpler.'
And when I ask him which will be the best Moment,--the one that goes,
or the one that comes--he says that I am making the coming Moment for
myself--'which is so satisfactory' he adds with that bright smile of
his, 'because of course you will make it pleasant!' 'Il faut que tout
homme trouve pour lui meme une possibilite particuliere de vie
superieure dans l'humble et inevitable realite quotidienne.' I do not
find the 'possibilite particuliere'--but this man assures me it is
because I do not trouble to look for it. What do you think about it?"
Angela's eyes were full of dreamy musing.

"I think Mr. Leigh's ideas are beautiful," she said, slowly, "I have
often heard him talk on the subject of religion--and of art, and of
work,--and all he says seems to be the expression of a noble and
sincere mind. He is extraordinarily gifted."

"Yes,--and he is becoming rather an alarming personage in England, so I
hear,--" returned the Abbe--"He writes books that are distinctly
dangerous, because true. He wants to upset shams like our Socialist
writer Gys Grandit. Gys Grandit, you know, will never be satisfied
till, like Rousseau, he has brought about another French Revolution. He
is only a peasant, they say, but he writes with the pen of a prophet.
And this Englishman is of the same calibre,--only his work is directed
against religious hypocrisies more than social ones. I daresay that is
why I always feel so uneasy in his presence!" And Vergniaud laughed
lightly. "For the rest, he is a brilliant creature enough, and
thoroughly manly. The other evening at the Club that little Vicomte de
Lorgne was chattering in his usual offensive manner about women, and
Leigh astonished everyone by the way in which he pulled him up. There
was almost a very pretty quarrel,--but a stray man happened to mention
casually,--that Leigh was considered one of the finest shots in
England. After that the dear Vicomte vanished, and did not return."

Angela laughed.

"Poor de Lorgne! Yes--I have heard that Mr. Leigh excels in everything
that is distinctly English--riding, shooting, and all that kind of
thing. He is not effeminate."

"Few Englishmen are," said the Abbe,--"And yet to my mind there is
something not altogether English in this man. He has none of the heavy
British mental and physical stolidity. He is strong and muscular
certainly,--but also light and supple,--and with that keen,
intellectual delicate face of his, he is more of the antique Greek type
than like a son of Les Isles Sans-Soleil."

"Sans-Soleil," echoed Angela, "But there is plenty of sunshine in
England!"

"Is there? Well, I have been unfortunate,--I have never seen any,--"
and the Abbe gave a shrug of half regret, half indifference. "It is
very curious the effect that this so brave England has upon me! In
crossing to its shores I suffer of course from the mal de mer--then
when I arrive exhausted to the white cliffs, it is generally
raining--then I take train to London, where it is what is called black
fog; and I find all the persons that I meet either with a cold, or
going to have a cold, or just recovering from a cold! It is not
lively--the very funerals are dull. And you--this is not your
experience?"

"No--frankly I cannot say it is," replied Angela, "I have seen rain and
fog in Rome that cannot be surpassed for wretchedness anywhere. Italy
is far more miserable in cold weather than England. I passed a summer
once in England, and it was to me like a glimpse of Paradise. I never
saw so many flowers--I never heard so many birds--(you know in Italy we
kill all the singing birds and eat them), and I never met so many kind
and gentle people."

"Well!--perhaps the religious sects in England are responsible for the
general feeling of depression in the English atmosphere," said the Abbe
with a light laugh, "They are certainly foggy! The one round Sun of one
Creed is unknown to them. I assure you it is best to have one light of
faith, even though it be only a magic lantern,--a toy to amuse the
children of this brief life before their everlasting bedtime comes--"
He broke off abruptly as a slow step was heard approaching along the
passage, and in another moment Cardinal Bonpre entered the room.

"Ah, le bien aime Felix!" cried Vergniaud, hastening to meet him and
clasp his outstretched hand, bowing slightly over it as he did so, "I
have taken the liberty to wait for you, cher Monseigneur, being anxious
to see you--and I understand your stay in Paris will not be long?"

"A few days at most, my dear Abbe",--replied the Cardinal, gently
pressing the hand of Vergniaud and smiling kindly. "You are well? But
surely I need not ask--you seem to be in the best of health and
spirits."

"Ah, my seeming is always excellent," returned the Abbe, "However, I do
not fare badly. I have thrown away all hard thinking!"

"And you are happier so?"

"Well, I am not quite sure! There is undoubtedly a pleasure in
analysing the perplexities of one's own mind. Still, on the whole, it
is perhaps better to enjoy the present hour without any thought at all."

"Like the butterflies!" laughed Angela.

"Yes,--if butterflies DO enjoy their hour,--which I am not at all
prepared to admit. In my opinion they are very dissatisfied
creatures,--no sooner on one flower than off they go to another. Very
like human beings after all! But I imagine they never worry themselves
with philosophical or religious questions."

"And do you?" enquired Bonpre, smiling, as he sat down in the easy
chair his niece placed for him.

"Not as a rule!--" answered Vergniaud frankly, with a light laugh--"But
I confess I have done a little in that way lately. Some of the new
sciences puzzle me,--I am surprised to find how closely they approach
to the fulfilment of old prophecies. One is almost inclined to believe
that there must be a next world and a future life."

"I think such belief is now placed beyond mere inclination," said the
Cardinal--"There is surely no doubt of it."

Vergniaud gave him a quick side-glance of earnest scrutiny.

"With you, perhaps not--" he replied--"But with me,--well!--it is a
different matter. However, it is really no use worrying one's self with
the question of 'To be, or not to be.' It drove Hamlet mad, just as the
knotty point as to whether Hamlet himself was fat or lean nearly killed
our hysterical little boy, Catullus Mendes. It's best to leave eternal
subjects like God and Shakespeare alone."

He laughed again, but the Cardinal did not smile.

"I do not agree with you, Vergniaud," he said--"I fear it is because we
do not think sufficiently for ourselves on the One eternal subject that
so much mischief threatens us at the present time. To take gifts and
ignore the Giver is surely the blackest ingratitude, yet that is what
the greater part of humanity is guilty of in these days. Never was
there so much beholding and yet ignoring of the Divine as now. Science
is searching for God, and is getting closer to Him every day;--the
Church remains stationary and refuses to look out beyond her own pale
of thought and conventional discipline. I know,--" and the Cardinal
hesitated a moment, "I know I can speak quite plainly to you, for you
are what is called a freethinker--yet I doubt whether you are really as
free as you imagine!"

The Abbe shrugged his shoulders.

"I imagine nothing!" he declared airily, "Everything is imagined for me
nowadays,--and imagination itself is like a flying Geni which overtakes
and catches the hair of some elusive Reality and turns its face round,
full-shining on an amazed world!"

"A pretty simile!" said Angela Sovrani, smiling.

"Is it not? Almost worthy of Paul Verlaine who was too 'inspired' to
keep either his body or his soul clean. Why was I not a poet!
Helas!--Fact so much outweighs fancy that it is no longer any use
penning a sonnet to one's mistress's eyebrow. One needs to write with
thunderbolts in characters of lightning, to express the wonders and
discoveries of this age. When I find I can send a message from here to
London across space, without wires or any visible means of
communication,--and when I am told that probably one of these days I
shall be able at will to SEE the person to whom I send the message,
reflected in space while the message is being delivered,--I declare
myself so perfectly satisfied with the fairy prodigies revealed to me,
that I have really no time, and perhaps no inclination to think of any
other world than this one."

"You are wrong, then," said the Cardinal, "Very wrong, Vergniaud. To me
these discoveries of science, this apparent yielding of invisible
forces into human hands, are signs and portents of terror. You remember
the line 'the powers of heaven shall be shaken'? Those powers are being
shaken now! We cannot hold them back;--they are here, with us;--but
they mean much more than mere common utility to our finite selves. They
are the material declarations of what is spiritual. They are the
scientific proofs that Christ's words to 'THIS generation,' namely,
this particular phase of creation,--are true. 'Blessed are they which
have not seen and yet believed,' He said;--and many there are who have
passed away from us in rapt faith and hope, believing not seeing, and
with whom we may rejoice in spirit, knowing that all must be well with
them. But now--now we are come upon an age of doubt in the world--doubt
which corrodes and kills the divine spirit in man, and therefore we are
being forced to SEE that we may believe,--but the seeing is terrible!"

"Why?"

"Because in the very beholding of things we remain blind!" answered the
Cardinal, "Our intense selfishness obscures the true light of every
fresh advance. We accept new marvels of knowledge, as so much practical
use to us, and to the little planet we live on,--but we do not see that
they are merely reflections of the Truth from which they emanate. The
toy called the biograph, which reflects pictures for us in a dazzling
and moving continuity, so that we can see scenes of human life in
action, is merely a hint to us that every scene of every life is
reflected in a ceaseless moving panorama SOMEWHERE in the Universe, for
the beholding of SOMEONE,--yes!--there must be Someone who so elects to
look upon everything, or such possibilities of reflected scenes would
not be,--inasmuch as nothing exists without a Cause for existence. The
wireless telegraphy is a stupendous warning of the truth that 'from God
no secrets are hid', and also of the prophecy of Christ 'there is
nothing covered that shall not be revealed'--and, 'whatsoever ye have
spoken in darkness shall be revealed in light.' The latter words are
almost appalling in their absolute accord with the latest triumphant
discoveries of science."

Abbe Vergniaud looked at the Cardinal, and slightly raised his eyebrows
in a kind of wondering protest.

"TRES-SAINT Felix!" he murmured, "Are you turning into a mystic? One of
those doubtful personages who are seeking to reconcile science with the
Church?--"

"Stop!" interposed the Cardinal, raising his hand with an eloquent
gesture, "Science is, or should be, the Church!--science is Truth, and
Truth is God! God cannot be found anywhere in a lie; and the Church in
many ways would make our Divine Redeemer Himself a lie were it not that
His words are every day taking fresh meaning, and bringing new and
solemn conviction to those who have eyes to see and ears to hear!"

He spoke as if carried beyond himself,--his pale cheeks glowed,--his
eyes flashed fire,--and the combined effect of his words and manner was
startling to the Abbe, and in a way stupefying to his niece Angela. She
had never heard him give utterance to such strong sentiments and she
shrank a little within herself, wondering whether as a Cardinal of the
Roman Church he had not been too free of speech. She glanced
apprehensively at Vergniaud, who however only smiled a little.

"If you should be disposed to express yourself in such terms at the
Vatican,--" he began.

The Cardinal relapsed into his usual calm, and met the Abbe's
questioning, half cynical glance composedly. "I have many things to
speak of at the Vatican," he answered,--"This matter will probably be
one of them."

"Then--" But whatever Vergniaud was about to say was interrupted by the
entrance of the boy Manuel, who at that moment came into the room and
stood beside the Cardinal's chair. The Abbe gave him an upward glance
of surprise and admiration.

"Whom have we here?" he exclaimed, "One of your acolytes, Monseigneur?"

"No," replied the Cardinal, his eyes resting on the fair face of the
lad with a wistful affection, "A little stray disciple of our Lord,--to
whom I have ventured to offer protection. There is none to question my
right to do so, for he is quite alone in the world."

And in a few words he related how he had discovered the boy on the
previous night, weeping outside the Cathedral in Rouen. Angela Sovrani
listened attentively, her violet eyes darkening and deepening as she
heard,--now and then she raised them to look at the youthful waif who
stood so quietly while the story of his troubles was told in the gentle
and sympathetic way which was the Cardinal's usual manner of speech,
and which endeared him so much to all. "And for the present," finished
Bonpre, smiling--"he stays with me, and already I have found him
skilled in the knowledge of many things,--he can read Scripture with a
most musical and clear emphasis,--and he is a quick scribe, so that he
will be valuable to me in more ways than one."

"Ah!" and the Abbe turned himself round in his chair to survey the boy
more attentively, "You can read Scripture? But can you understand it?
If you can, you are wiser than I am!"

Manuel regarded him straightly.

"Was it not once said in Judaea that "IT IS THE SPIRIT THAT
QUICKENETH'?" he asked.

"True!--And from that you would infer . . . ?"

"That when one cannot understand Scripture, it is perhaps for the
reason that 'THE LETTER KILLETH, BECAUSE LACKING THE SPIRIT THAT GIVETH
LIFE."

The boy spoke gently and with grace and modesty,--but something in the
tone of his voice had a strange effect on the cynical temperament of
Abbe Vergniaud.

"Here," he mused, "is a lad in whom the principle of faith is strong
and pure,--shall I drop the poison of doubt into the open flower of his
mind, or leave it uncontaminated?" Aloud he said, kindly,

"You speak well,--you have evidently thought for yourself. Who taught
you to recognise 'the Spirit that giveth life'?"

Manuel smiled.

"Does that need teaching?" he asked.

Radiance shone in his eyes,--the look of purity and candour on his
young face was infinitely touching to the two men who beheld it,--the
one worn with age and physical languors, the other equally worn in
mind, if not in body. In the brief silence which followed,--a silence
of unexpressed feeling,--a soft strain of organ-music came floating
deliciously towards them,--a delicate thread of grave melody which wove
itself in and out the airspaces, murmuring suggestions of tenderness
and appeal. Angela smiled, and held up one finger, listening.

"That is Mr. Leigh!" she said, "He is in my studio improvising."

"Happy Mr. Leigh!" said the Abbe with a little malicious twinkle in his
eyes, "To be allowed to improvise at all in the studio of the Sovrani!"

Angela flushed, and lifted her fair head with a touch of pride.

"Mr. Leigh is a friend," she said, "He is welcome in the studio always.
His criticism of a picture is valuable,--besides--he is a celebrated
Englishman!" She laughed, and her eyes flashed.

"Ah! To a celebrated Englishman all things are conceded!" said the Abbe
satirically, "Even the right to enter the sanctum of the most exclusive
lady in Europe! Is it not a curious thing that the good Britannia
appears to stick her helmet on the head, and put her sceptre in the
hand of every one of her sons who condescends to soil his boots by
walking on foreign soil? With the helmet he defies the gemdarme,--with
the sceptre he breaks open every door,--we prostrate ourselves before
his face and curse him behind his back,--c'est drole!--yet we are all
alike, French, Germans, Austrians, and Italians;--we hate the
Englishman, but we black his boots all the same,--which is contemptible
of us,--MAIS, QUE FAIRE! He is so overwhelming in sheer impudence! With
culture and politeness we might cross swords in courtly duel,--but in
the presence of absolute bluff, or what is called 'cheek', we fall flat
in sheer dismay! What delicious music! I see that it charms our young
friend,--he is fond of music."

"Yes," said Manuel speaking for himself before any question could be
put to him, "I love it! It is like the fresh air,--full of breath and
life."

"Come then with me," said Angela, "Come into the studio and we will
hear it more closely. Dearest uncle," and she knelt for a moment by the
Cardinal's chair, "Will you come there also when Monsieur l'Abbe has
finished talking with you?"

Cardinal Bonpre's hand rested lovingly on her soft hair.

"Yes, my child, I will come." And in a lower tone he added,--"Do not
speak much to Manuel,--he is a strange lad; more fond of silence and
prayer than other things,--and if such is his temperament I would
rather keep him so."

Angela bowed her head in acquiescence to this bidding,--then rising,
left the room with a gentle gesture of invitation to the boy, who at
once followed her. As the two disappeared a chill and a darkness seemed
to fall upon the air, and the Cardinal sank back among the cushions of
his fauteuil with a deep sigh of utter exhaustion. Abbe Vergniaud
glanced at him inquisitively.

"You are very tired, I fear?" he said.

"Physically, no,--mentally, yes. Spiritually, I am certainly fatigued
to the death."

The Abbe shrugged his shoulders.

"Helas! There is truly much in spiritual matters to engender
weariness!" he said.

With a sudden access of energy the Cardinal gripped both arms of his
chair and sat upright.

"For God's sake, do not jest," he said earnestly, "Do not jest! We have
all been jesting too long, and the time is near when we shall find out
the bitter cost of it! Levity--carelessness--doubt and final heresy--I
do not mean heresy against the Church, for that is nothing--"

"Nothing!" exclaimed the Abbe, "YOU say this?"

"I say it!" And Bonpre's thin worn features grew transfigured with the
fervour of his thought. "I am a priest of the Church--but I am also a
man!--with reason, with brain, and with a love of truth;--and I can
faithfully say I have an almost jealous honour for my Master--but I
repeat, heresy against the Church is nothing,--it is heresy against
Christ which is the crime of the age,--and in that, the very Church is
heretic! Heresy against Christ!--Heresy against Christ! A whole system
of heresy! 'I never knew you,--depart from me, ye workers of iniquity,'
will be our Lord's words at the Last Judgment!"

The Abbe's wonderment increased. He looked down a moment, then looked
up, and a quizzical, half-melancholy expression filled his eyes.

"Well, I am very much concerned in all this," he said, "I wanted to
have a private talk with you on my own account, principally because I
know you to be a good man, while I am a bad one. I have a trouble
here,--" and he touched the region of his heart, "which the wise
doctors say may end my days at any moment; two years at the utmost is
the ultimatum of my life, so I want to know from you, whom I know to be
intelligent and honest, whether you believe I am going to another
existence,--and if so, what sort of a one you think is in prospect for
such a man as I am? Now don't pity me, my dear Bonpre,--don't pity
me!--" and he laughed a little huskily as the Cardinal took his hand
and pressed it with a silent sympathy more eloquent than words, "We
must all die,--and if I am to go somewhat sooner than I expected, that
is nothing to compassionate me for. But there is just a little
uncertainty in my mind,--I am not at all sure that death is the end--I
wish I could be quite positive of the fact. I was once--quite positive.
But science, instead of giving me this absolute comfort has in its
later progress upset all my former calculations, and I am afraid I must
own that there is indubitably Something Else,--which to my mind seems
distinctly disagreeable!"

Though the Abbe spoke lightly, the troubled look remained in his eyes
and the Cardinal saw it.

"My dear Vergniaud," he began gently, "I am grieved at what you tell
me--"

"No, don't be grieved," interrupted Vergniaud, "because that is not it.
Talk to me! Tell me what you truly think. That this life is only a
schoolroom where we do our lessons more or less badly?--That death is
but the name for another life? Now do not FORCE your faith for me. Tell
me your own honest conviction. Do we end?--or do we begin again? Be
frank and fair and true; according to the very latest science,
remember!--not according to the latest hocus-pocus of twelfth-century
mandate issued from Rome. You see how frank I am, and how entirely I go
with you. But I am going further than you,--I am bound for the last
voyage--so you must not offer me the wrong pass-word to the shore!"

"No, I will give you the right pass-word," said the cardinal, a fervid
glow of enthusiasm lighting up his features. "It is CHRIST in all, and
through all! Christ only;--Christ, the friend and brother of man;--the
only Divine Teacher this world has ever had, or ever will have!"

"You believe in Him really,--truly,--then?" exclaimed the Abbe
wonderingly.

"Really--truly, and with all my heart and soul!" responded the Cardinal
firmly,--"Surely, you too, believe?"

"No," said the Abbe firmly, "I do not! I would as soon believe that the
lad you have just rescued from the streets of Rouen is divine, as that
there is any divinity in the Man of Nazareth!"

He rose up as he spoke in a kind of petulance,--then started slightly
as he found himself face to face with Manuel. The boy had entered
noiselessly and stood for a moment glancing from one priest of the
Church to the other. A faint smile was on his face,--his blue eyes were
full of light.

"Did you call me, my lord Cardinal?" he asked.

The Cardinal looked up.

"No, my child!"

"I thought I heard you. If you should need me, I am close at hand."

He went away as quietly as he had entered; and the same silence
followed his departure as before,--a silence which was only disturbed
by the occasional solemn and sweet vibrations of the distant music from
the studio.



VIII.

"A strange lad!" said Abbe Vergniaud, abruptly.

"Strange? In what way do you find him so?" asked the Cardinal with a
touch of anxiety.

The Abbe knitted his brows perplexedly, and took a short turn up and
down the room. Then he laughed.

"Upon my word, I cannot tell you!" he declared, with one of those
inimitable gestures common to Frenchmen, a gesture which may mean
anything or nothing,--"But he speaks too well, and, surely, thinks too
much for his years. Is there nothing further to tell of him save what
you have already said? Nothing that you know of him, beyond the plain
bare fact of having found him weeping alone outside the doors of the
Cathedral?"

"Nothing indeed!" replied the Cardinal bewildered. "What else should
there be?"

The Abbe hesitated a moment, and when he spoke again it was in a softer
and graver tone. "Forgive me! Of course there could be nothing else
with you. You are so different to all other Churchmen I have ever
known. Still, the story of your foundling is exceptional;--you will own
that it is somewhat out of the common course of things, for a Cardinal
to suddenly constitute himself the protector and guardian of a small
tramp--for this boy is nothing else. Now, if it were any other
Cardinal-Archbishop than yourself, I should at once say that His
Eminence knew exactly where to find the mother of his protege!"

"Vergniaud!" exclaimed the Cardinal.

"Forgive me! I said 'forgive me' as a prelude to my remarks," resumed
Vergniaud, "I am talking profanely, sceptically, and cynically,--I am
talking precisely as the world talks, and as it always will talk."

"The world may talk itself out of existence, before it can hinder me
from doing what I conceive to be my duty," said Felix Bonpre, calmly,
"The lad is alone and absolutely friendless,--it is but fitting and
right that I should do what I can for him."

Abbe Vergniaud sat down, and for a moment appeared absorbed in thought.

"You are a curious man;" he at length observed, "And a more than
curious priest! Here you are, assuming the guardianship of a boy
concerning whom you know nothing,--when you might as well have handed
him over to one of the orphanages for the poor, or have paid for his
care and education with some of the monastic brethren established near
Rouen,--but no!--you being eccentric, feel as if you were personally
responsible to God for the child, simply because you found him lost and
alone, and therefore you have him with you. It is very good of you,--we
will call it great of you--but it is not usual. People will say you
have a private motive;--you must remember that the world never gives
you credit for doing a good action simply for the pure sake of doing
it,--'There must be something behind it all,' they say. When the worst
cocotte of the age begins to lose her beauty, the prospect is so
alarming that she thinks there may be a possible hell, after all, and
she straightway becomes charitable and renowned for good
works;--precisely in the same way as our famous stage 'stars', knowing
their lives to be less clean than the lives of their horses and their
dogs, give subscriptions and altar-cloths and organs to the clergy. It
is all very amusing!--I assure you I have often laughed at it. It is as
if they took Heaven by its private ear in confidence, and said, 'See
now, I want to put things straight with you if I can!--and if a few
church-ornaments, and candlesticks will pacify you, why, take them and
hold your tongue!'"

He paused, but the Cardinal was silent.

"I know," went on the Abbe, "that you think I am indulging in the worst
kind of levity to talk in this way. It sounds horrible to you. And you
perhaps think I cannot be serious. My dear Saint Felix, there never was
a more serious man than I. I would give worlds--universes--to believe
as you do! I have written books of religious discussion,--not because I
wanted the notice of the world for them,--for that I do not care
about,--but for the sake of wrestling out the subject for myself, and
making my pen my confidant. I tell you I envy the woman who can say her
rosary with the simple belief that the Virgin Mary hears and takes
delight in all those repetitions. Nothing would have given me greater
pleasure than to have composed a volume of prayers,--a 'Garland of
Flowers'--such as an innocent girl could hold in her hands, and bend
her sweet eyes over. It would have been a taste of the
sensual-spiritual, or the spiritual-sensual,--which is the most
exquisite of all human sensations."

"There is no taint of sensuality in the purely spiritual," said the
Cardinal reprovingly.

"Not for your nature,--no! You have made your body like a transparent
scabbard through which the glitter of the soul-sword is almost visible.
But I am different. I am so much of a materialist that I like to pull
down Heaven to the warm bosom of Earth and make them mingle. You would
lift up Earth to Heaven! Ah, that is difficult! Even Christ came down!
It is the chief thing I admire in Him, that He 'descended from Heaven
and was made Man'. TRES CHER Felix, I shall bewilder you to death with
my specious and frivolous reasoning,--and after all, I had much better
come to the main fact of what I intended to tell you,--a sort of
confession out of church. You know I have already told you I am going
to die soon, and that I am a bad man confessedly and hopelessly,--but
among other things is this, (and if you can give me any advice upon it
I will take it,) that for the last four or five years I have been
dodging about to escape being murdered,--not because I particularly
mind being murdered, because I probably deserve it,--and one way of
exit is as good as another,--but because I want to save the would-be
murderer from committing his crime. Is not that a good motive?"

Cardinal Bonpre gazed at him in astonishment. Vergniaud appeared to him
in an entirely new light. He had always known him as a careless,
cynical-tempered man;--a close thinker,--a clever writer, and a
brilliant talker,--and he had been inclined to consider him as a
"society" priest,--one of those amiable yet hypocritical personages,
who, by the most jesuitical flatteries and studied delicacies of
manner, succeed in influencing weak-minded persons of wealth,
(especially women) to the end of securing vast sums of money to the
Church,--obtaining by these means such rank and favour for themselves
as would otherwise never have been granted to them. But now the Abbe's
frank admission of his own sins and failings seemed a proof of his
inherent sincerity,--and sincerity, whether found in orthodoxy or
heterodoxy, always commanded the Cardinal's respect.

"Are you speaking in parables or in grave earnest?" he asked. "Do you
really mean that you are shadowed by some would-be assassin? An
assassin, too, whom you actually wish to protect?"

"Exactly!" And Vergniaud smiled with the air of one who admits the
position to be curious but by no means alarming. "I want to save him
from the guillotine; and if he murders me I cannot! It is a question of
natural instinct merely. The would-be assassin is my son!"

Cardinal Bonpre raised his clear blue eyes and fixed them full on the
Abbe.

"This is a very serious matter," he said gently, "Surely it is best to
treat it seriously?"

"Oh, I am serious enough, God knows!" returned Vergniaud, with a heavy
but impatient sigh, "I suppose there is, there must be, some terribly
exact Mathematician concerned in the working of things, else a man's
past sins and failings being done with and over, would not turn up any
more. But they DO turn up,--the unseen Mathematician counts every
figure;--and of course trouble ensues. My story is simply this;--Some
twenty-five years ago I was in Touraine;--I was a priest as I am
now--Oh, yes!--the sin is as black as the Church can make it!--and one
mid-summer evening I strolled into a certain quaint old church of a
certain quaint old town,--I need not name it--and saw there a girl, as
sweet as an apple blossom, kneeling in front of the altar. I watched
her,--I see her now!--the late sunlight through the stained glass
window fell like a glory on her pretty hair, and on the little white
kerchief folded so daintily across her bosom, and on her small hands
and the brown rosary that was twisted round her fingers. She was
praying, so she told me afterwards, to her guardian angel,--I wonder
what that personage was about just then, Bonpre! Anyhow, to her
petition came no answer but a devil,--a devil personified in me,--I
made her love me,--I tempted her by ever subtle and hellish persuasion
I could think of,--I can never even now think of that time without
wondering where all the eloquent evil of my tongue came
from--and--well!--she never was able to ask the guardian angel any more
favours! And I?--I think I loved her for a while,--but no, I am not
sure;--I believe there is no such good thing as absolute love in my
composition. Anyway, I soon left Touraine, and had almost forgotten her
when she wrote to tell me of the birth of her child--a son. I gave her
no reply, and then she wrote again,--such a letter!--such words! At the
moment they burnt me,--stabbed me--positively hurt me,--and I was not
then easily hurt. She swore she would bring the boy up to curse his
father,--and, to put it quite briefly,--she did. She died when he was
twenty, and it now appears the lad took an oath by her death-bed that
he would never rest till he had killed the man who had dishonoured his
mother, and broken her heart, and brought him into the world with a
stigma on his name. No filial respect, you see!" And Vergniaud tried to
force a smile. "To do the boy justice, he apparently means to keep his
oath,--he has not rested; he has been at infinite pains to discover me;
he has even been at the trouble to write me a warning letter, and is
now in Paris watching me. I, in my turn, take care to protect
myself;--I am followed by detectives, and am at enormous pains to guard
my life; not for my own sake but for his. An odd complication of
circumstances, is it not? I cannot have him arrested because he would
at once relate his history, and my name would be ruined. And that would
be quite as good a vengeance for him as the other thing. You will admit
that it is a very dramatic situation!"

"It is a retribution!" said the Cardinal in a low voice, "And a
terrible one!"

"Yes, I suppose it is. I imagined you would consider it in that light,"
and Vergniaud half closed his eyes, leaning back in his chair
languidly, "But here I am, willing to set things as straight as I can,
and it really seems impossible to arrange matters. I am to die soon,
according to the doctors;--and so I have made my willleaving everything
I possess to this ridiculous boy who wishes to kill me; and it is more
than probable that he,--considering how he has been brought up and
educated--will cast all the money into the dirt, and kick at my grave.
But what can I do?"

"Nothing," said the Cardinal, "You can do nothing, Vergniaud! That is
the worst of having inflicted a wrong upon the innocent,--you can never
by any means retrieve it. You can repent,--and it is probable that your
very repentance ensures your forgiveness at a higher tribunal than that
of earth's judgment,--but the results of wrong cannot be wiped out or
done away with in this life;--they continue to exist, and alas!--often
multiply. Even the harsh or unjust word cannot be recalled, and however
much we may regret having uttered it, somehow it is never forgotten.
But--" here leaning forward, he laid one hand gently on Vergniaud's
arm, "My dear friend--my dear brother--you have told me of your
sin;--it is a great sin,--but God forbid that I should presume to judge
you harshly when our Lord Himself declared that 'He came not to call
the righteous but sinners to repentance'. It may be that I can find a
way to help you. Arrange for me to see this misguided son of
yours,--and I will endeavour to find a means of restitution to him and
to the memory of his mother before you pass away from us,--if indeed
you are to pass away so soon. Under the levity you assume I perceive
you have deep feeling on this matter;--you shall not die with a wrong
on your soul, Vergniaud!--you shall not if I can prevent it! For there
undoubtedly is another life; you must go into it as purely as prayer
and penitence can make you."

"I thought," said the Abbe, speaking somewhat unsteadily, "that you
might when you heard all, hurl some of Rome's thunderous denunciations
upon me . . ."

"What am I, and what is Rome, compared with the Master's own word?"
said the Cardinal gently. "If our brothers sin against us seventy times
seven we are still to forgive, and they are still our brothers!
Denunciations, judgments and condemnations of one another are not any
part of our Lord's commands."

Vergniaud rose up and held out his hand.

"Will you take it," he said, "as a pledge that I will faithfully do
whatever you may see fitting and right to retrieve the past?--and to
clear my son's soul from the thirst of vengeance which is consuming it?"

Cardinal Bonpre clasped the extended hand warmly.

"There is your answer!" he said, with a smile which irradiated his fine
countenance with an almost supernatural beauty and tenderness, "You
have sinned against Heaven, and you have sinned against the Church and
your own calling,--but the greatest sinner can do no more than repent
and strive to make amends. For I see you fully know and comprehend the
extent of your sin."

"Yes, I know it," and Vergniaud's eyes were clouded and his brows
knitted, "I know it only too well! Greater than any fault of
Church-discipline is a wrong to human life,--and I wronged and betrayed
an innocent woman who loved me! Her soul was as sweet as the honey-cup
of a flower,--I poisoned it. That was as bad as poisoning the
Sacrament! I should have kept it sweet and pure; I should have let the
Church go, and been honest! I should have seen to it that the child of
my love grew up to honour his father,--not to merely live for the
murder of him! Yes!--I know what I should have done--I know what I have
not done--and I am afraid I shall always know! Unless I can do
something to atone I have a strange feeling that I shall pass from this
world to the next--and that the first thing I shall see will be her
face! Her face as I saw it when the sunshine made a halo round her
hair, and she prayed to her guardian angel."

He shuddered slightly, and his voice died away in a half whisper. The
Cardinal pressed his hand again warmly and tenderly.

"Courage, courage!" he said. "It is true we cannot do away with our
memories,--but we can try and make them sweet. And who knows how much
God may help us in the task? Never forget the words that tell us how
'the angels rejoice more over one sinner that repenteth than over
ninety and nine just persons.'"

"Ah!" and the Abbe smiled, recovering somewhat of his usual manner,
"And that is so faithfully enforced upon us, is it not? The Churches
are all so lenient? And Society is so kind?--so gentle in its estimate
of its friends? Our Church, for example, has never persecuted a
sinner?--has never tortured an unbeliever? It has been so patient, and
so unwearying in searching for stray sheep and bringing them back with
love and tenderness and pity to the fold? And Churchmen never say
anything which is slanderous or cruel? And we all follow Christ's
teaching so accurately? Yes!--Ah well--I wonder! I wonder what will be
the end! I wonder why we came into life at all--I wonder why we go!
Fortunately for me, by and by, there will be an end of all wondering,
and you can write above my tomb, 'Implora pace'! The idea of commencing
a new life is to me, horrible,--I prefer 'Nirvana' or nothingness.
Never have I read truer words than those of Byron,

    'Count o'er the joys thine hours have seen,
     Count o'er thy days from anguish free,
     And know whatever thou hast been,
    'Tis something better not to be.'"

"I cannot think that is either true or good philosophy," said the
Cardinal, "It is merely the utterance of a disappointed man in a
misanthropic mood. There is no 'not to be' in creation. Each morning
that lights the world is an expression of 'to be'! And however much we
may regret the fact, my dear Vergniaud, we find ourselves in a state of
BEING and we must make the best of it,--not the worst. Is that not so?"

His look was gentle and commanding,--his voice soft yet firm,--and the
worldly Abbe felt somewhat like a chidden child as he met the gaze of
those clear true eyes that were undarkened by any furtive hypocrisies
or specious meanings.

"I suppose it is, but unfortunately I have made the worst of it," he
answered, "and having made the worst I see no best. Who is that
singing?"

He lifted his hand with a gesture of attention as a rich mezzo-soprano
rang out towards them,--

    "Per carita
     Mostrami il cielo;
     Tulto e un velo,
     E non si sa
     Dove e il cielo.
     Se si sta
     Cosi cola,
     Non si sa
     Se non si va
       Ahi me lontano!
       Tulto e in vano!
       Prendimi in mano
     Per carita!"

"It is Angela," said the Cardinal, "She has a wonderfully sweet voice."

    "Prendimi in mano,
      Per carita!"

murmured Abbe Vergniaud, still listening, "It is like the cry of a lost
soul!"

"Or a strayed one," interposed the Cardinal gently, and rising, he took
Vergniaud's arm, and leaned upon it with a kindly and familiar grace,
an action which implied much more than the mere outward expression of
confidence,--"Nothing is utterly lost, my dear friend. 'The very hairs
of our head are numbered,'--not a drop of dew escapes to waste,--how
much more precious than a drop of dew is the spirit of a man!"

"It is not so unsullied," declared Vergniaud, who loved
controversy,--"Personally, I think the dew is more valuable than the
soul, because so absolutely clean!"

"You must not bring every line of discussion to a pin's point," said
Bonpre smiling, as he walked slowly across the room still leaning on
the Abbe's arm. "We can reduce our very selves to the bodiless
condition of a dream if we take sufficient pains first to advance a
theory, and then to wear it threadbare. Nothing is so deceptive as
human reasoning,--nothing so slippery and reversible as what we have
decided to call 'logic.' The truest compass of life is spiritual
instinct."

"And what of those who have no spiritual instinct?" demanded Vergniaud.

"I do not think there are any such. To us it certainly often seems as
if there were masses of human beings whose sole idea of living is to
gratify their bodily needs,--but I fancy it is only because we do not
know them sufficiently that we judge them thus. Few, if any, are so
utterly materialistic as never to have had some fleeting intuition of
the Higher existence. They may lack the force to comprehend it, or to
follow its teaching,--but in my opinion, the Divine is revealed to all
men once at least in their lives."

They had by this time passed out of the drawing-room, and now,
ascending three steps, they went through a curtained recess into Angela
Sovrani's studio,--a large and lofty apartment made beautiful by the
picturesque disorder and charm common to a great artist's surroundings.
Here, at a grand piano sat Angela herself, her song finished, her white
hands straying idly over the keys,--and near her stood the gentleman
whom the Abbe Vergniaud had called "a terrible reformer and Socialist"
and who was generally admitted to be something of a remarkable
character in Europe. Tall and fair, with very bright flashing eyes, and
a wonderfully high bred air of concentrated pride and resolution,
united to a grace and courtesy which exhaled from him, so to speak,
with his every movement and gesture, he was not a man to pass by
without comment, even in a crowd. A peculiar distinctiveness marked
him,--out of a marching regiment one would have naturally selected him
as the commanding officer, and in any crisis of particular social
importance or interest his very appearance would have distinguished him
as the leading spirit of the whole. On perceiving the Cardinal he
advanced at once to be presented, and as Angela performed the ceremony
of introduction he slightly bent one knee, and bowed over the venerable
prelate's extended hand with a reverence which had in it something of
tenderness. His greeting of Abbe Vergniaud was, while perfectly
courteous, not quite so marked by the grace of a strong man's
submission.

"Ah, Mr. Leigh! So you have not left Paris as soon as you determined?"
queried the Abbe with a smile, "I thought you were bound for Florence
in haste?"

"I go to Florence to-morrow," answered Leigh briefly.

"So soon! I am indeed glad not to have missed you," said Cardinal
Bonpre cordially. "Angela, my child, let me see what you have been
doing. All your canvases are covered, or turned with their faces to the
wall;--are we not permitted to look at any of them?"

Angela immediately rose from the piano, and wheeled a large oaken chair
with a carved and gilded canopy, into the centre of the studio.

"Well, if you want to see my sketches--and they are only sketches," she
said,--"you must come and sit here. Now," as her uncle obeyed her, "you
look enthroned in state,--that canopy is just fitted for you, and you
are a picture in yourself!--Yes, you are, dearest uncle! And not all
the artists in the world could ever do you justice I Monsieur l'Abbe,
will you sit just where you please?--And Mr. Leigh, you have seen
everything, so it does not matter."

"It matters very much," said Leigh with a smile, "For I want to see
everything again. If I may, I will stand here."

And he took up his position close to the Cardinal's chair.

"But where is the boy?" asked Vergniaud, "Where is the foundling of the
Cathedral?"

"He left us some minutes ago," said Angela, "He went to your room,
uncle."

"Was he pleased with the music?" asked the Cardinal.

"I think he enjoyed every note of it," said Leigh, "A thoughtful lad!
He was very silent while I played,--but silence is often the most
eloquent appreciation."

"Are we to be silent then over the work of Donna Sovrani?" enquired the
Abbe gaily. "Must we not express our admiration?"

"If you have any admiration to express," said Angela carelessly,
setting, as she spoke, an easel facing the Cardinal; "but I am afraid
you will greatly disapprove of me and condemn all my work this year. I
should explain to you first that I am composing a very large
picture,--I began it in Rome some three years ago, and it is in my
studio there,--but I require a few French types of countenance in order
to quite complete it. The sketches I have made here are French types
only. They will all be reproduced in the larger canvas--but they are
roughly done just now. This is the first of them. I call it 'A Servant
of Christ, at the Madeleine, Paris.'"

And she placed the canvas she held on the easel and stood aside, while
all three men looked at it with very different eyes,--one with poignant
regret and pain,--the other with a sense of shame,--and the third with
a thrill of strong delight in the power of the work, and of triumph in
the lesson it gave.



IX.

Low beetling brows,--a sensual, cruel mouth with a loosely projecting
under-lip,--eyes that appeared to be furtively watching each other
across the thin bridge of nose,--a receding chin and a narrow cranium,
combined with an expression which was hypocritically humble, yet
sly,--this was the type Angela Sovrani had chosen to delineate, sparing
nothing, softening no line, and introducing no redeeming point,--a type
mercilessly true to the life; the face of a priest,--"A servant of
Christ," as she called him. The title, united with that wicked and
repulsive countenance, was a terribly significant suggestion. For some
minutes no one spoke,--and the Cardinal was the first to break the
silence.

"Angela,--my dear child"--he said, in low, strained tones, "I am sorry
you have done this! It is powerful--so powerful that it is painful as
well. It cuts me to the heart that you should find it necessary to
select such an example of the priesthood, though of course I am not in
the secret of your aims--I do not understand your purpose . . ."

He broke off,--and Angela, who had stood silent, looking as though she
were lost in a dream, took up his unfinished sentence.

"You do not understand my purpose?--Dearest uncle, I hardly understand
it myself! Some force stronger than I am, is urging me to paint the
picture I have begun,--some influence more ardent and eager than my
own, burns like a fever in me, persuading me to complete the design.
You blame me for choosing such an evil type of priest? But there is no
question of choice! These faces are ordinary among our priests. At all
the churches, Sunday after Sunday I have looked for a good, a noble
face;--in vain! For an even commonly-honest face,--in vain! And my
useless search has ended by impressing me with profound sorrow and
disgust that so many low specimens of human intellect are selected as
servants of our Lord. Do not judge me too severely! I feel that I have
a work to do,--and a lesson to give in the work, when done. I may
fail;--I may be told that as a woman I have no force, and no ability to
make any powerful or lasting impression on this generation;--but at any
rate I feel that I must try! If priests of the Church were like you,
how different it would all be! But you always forget that you are an
exception to the rule,--you do not realise how very exceptional you
are! I told you before I showed you this sketch that you would probably
disapprove of it and condemn me,--but I really cannot help it. In this
matter nothing--not even the ban of the Church itself, can deter me
from fulfilling what I have designed to do in my own soul!"

She spoke passionately and with ardour,--and the Cardinal looked at her
with something of surprise and trouble. The fire of genius is as he
knew, a consuming one,--and he had never entirely realized how
completely it filled and dominated this slight feminine creature for
whom he felt an almost paternal tenderness. Before he could answer her
the Abbe Vergniaud spoke.

"Donna Sovrani is faithful to the truth in her sketch," he said,
"therefore, as a lover of truth I do not see, my dear Bonpre, why you
should object! If she has,--as she says,--some great aim in view, she
must fulfil it in her own way. I quite agree with her in her estimate
of the French priests,--they are for the most part despicable-looking
persons,--only just a grade higher than their brothers of Italy and
Spain. But what would you have? The iron hand of Rome holds them back
from progress,--they are speaking and acting lies; and like the
stagemimes, have to put on paint and powder to make the lies go down.
But when the paint and powder come off, the religious mime is often as
ill-looking as the stage one! Donna Sovrani has caught this particular
example, before he has had time to put on holy airs and turn up the
footlights. What do you think about it, Mr. Leigh?"

"I think, as I have always thought," said Leigh quietly, "that Donna
Sovrani is an inspired artist,--and that being inspired it follows that
she must carry out her own convictions whether they suit the taste of
others or not. 'A Servant of Christ' is a painful truth, boldly
declared."

Angela was unmoved by the compliment implied. She only glanced
wistfully at the Cardinal, who still sat silent. Then without a word
she withdrew the offending sketch from the easel and set another in its
place.

"This," she said gently, "is the portrait of an Archbishop. I need not
name his diocese. He is very wealthy, and excessively selfish. I call
this, 'LORD, _I_ THANK THEE THAT I AM NOT AS OTHER MEN'."

Vergniaud laughed as he looked,--he knew the pictured dignitary well.
The smooth countenance, the little eyes comfortably sunken in small
rolls of fat, the smug smiling lips, the gross neck and heavy
jaw,--marks of high feeding and prosperous living,--and above all the
perfectly self-satisfied and mock-pious air of the man,--these points
were given with the firm touch of a master's brush, and the Abbe, after
studying the picture closely, turned to Angela with a light yet
deferential bow.

"Chere Sovrani, you are stronger than ever! Surely you have improved
much since you were last in Paris? Your strokes are firmer, your grasp
is bolder. Have your French confreres seen your work this year?"

"No," replied Angela, "I am resolved they shall see nothing till my
picture is finished."

"May one ask why?"

A flash of disdain passed over the girl's face.

"For a very simple reason! They take my ideas and use them,--and then,
when my work is produced they say it is _I_ who have copied from THEM,
and that women have no imagination! I have been cheated once or twice
in that way,--this time no one has any idea what I am doing."

"No one? Not even Signer Varillo?"

"No," said Angela, smiling a little, "Not even Signor Varillo. I want
to surprise him."

"In what way?" asked the Cardinal, rousing himself from his pensive
reverie.

Angela blushed.

"By proving that perhaps, after all, a woman can do a great thing in
art,--a really great thing!" she said, "Designed greatly, and greatly
executed."

"Does he not admit that, knowing you?" asked Aubrey Leigh suggestively.

"Oh, he is most kind and sympathetic to me in my work," explained
Angela quickly, vexed to think that she had perhaps implied some little
point that was not quite in her beloved one's favour. "But he is like
most men,--they have a preconceived idea of women, and of what their
place should be in the world--"

"Unchanged since the early phases of civilization, when women were
something less valuable than cattle?" said Leigh smiling.

"Oh, the cattle idea is not exploded, by any means!" put in Vergniaud.
"In Germany and Switzerland, for example, look at the women who are
ground down to toil and hardship there! The cows are infinitely
prettier and more preferable, and lead much pleasanter lives. And the
men for whom these poor wretched women work, lounge about in cafes all
day, smoking and playing dominoes. The barbaric arrangement that a
woman should be a man's drudge and chattel is quite satisfactory, I
think, to the majority of our sex. It is certainly an odd condition of
things that the mothers of men should suffer most from man's cruelty.
But it is the work of an all-wise Providence, no doubt; and you, Mr.
Leigh, will swear that it is all right!"

"It is all right," said Leigh quietly, "or rather I should say, it WILL
be all right,--and it would have been all right long ago, if we had, as
Emerson puts it, 'accepted the hint of each new experience.' But that
is precisely what we will not do. Woman is the true helpmate of man,
and takes a natural joy in being so whenever we will allow
it,--whenever we will give her scope for her actions, freedom for her
intelligence, and trust for her instincts. But for the present many of
us still prefer to play savage,--the complete savage in low life,--the
civilized savage in high. The complete savage is found in the dockyard
labourer, who makes a woman bear his children and then kicks her to
death,--the savage in high life is the man who equally kills the mother
of his children, but in another way, namely, by neglect and infidelity,
while he treats his numerous mistresses just as the Turk treats the
creatures of his harem--merely as so many pretty soft animals,
requiring to be fed with sweets and ornamented with jewels, and then to
be cast aside when done with. All pure savagery! But we are slowly
evolving from it into something better. A few of us there are, who
honour womanhood,--a few of us believe in women as guiding stars in our
troubled sky,--a few of us would work and climb to greatness for love
of the one woman we adore,--would conquer all obstacles,--ay, would die
for her if need be, of what is far more difficult, would live for her
the life of a hero and martyr! Yes--such things are done,--and men can
be found who will do such things--all for a woman's sake."

There was a wonderful passion in his voice,--a deep thrill of
earnestness which carried conviction with sweetness. Cardinal Bonpre
looked at him with a smile.

"You are perhaps one of those men, Mr. Leigh?" he said.

"I do not know,--I may be," responded Leigh, a flush rising to his
cheeks;--"but,--so far, no woman has ever truly loved me, save my
mother. But apart from all personalities, I am a great believer in
women. The love of a good woman is a most powerful lever to raise man
to greatness,--I do not mean by 'good' the goody-goody creature,--no,
for that is a sort of woman who does more mischief in her so-called
'blameless' life than a very Delilah. I mean by 'good', a strong, pure,
great soul in woman,--sincere, faithful, patient, full of courage and
calm,--and with this I maintain she must prove a truly God-given
helpmate to man. For we are rough creatures at best,--irritable
creatures too!--you see," and here a slight smile lighted up his
delicate features, "we really do try more or less to reach heights that
are beyond us--we are always fighting for a heaven of some sort,
whether we make it of gold, or politics, or art;--it is a 'heaven' or a
'happiness' that we want;--we would be as gods,--we would scale
Olympus,--and sometimes Olympus refuses to be scaled! And then we
tumble down, very cross, very sore, very much ruffled;--and it is only
a woman who can comfort us then, and by her love and tenderness mend
our broken limbs and put salve on our wounded pride."

"Well, then, surely the Church is in a very bad way," said Vergniaud
smiling, "Think of the vow of perpetual celibacy!"

"Celibacy cannot do away with woman's help or influence," said Leigh,
"There are always mothers and sisters, instead of sweethearts and
wives. I am in favour of celibacy for the clergy. I think a minister of
Christ should be free to work for and serve Christ only."

"You are quite right, Mr. Leigh;" said the Cardinal, "There is more
than enough to do in every day of our lives if we desire to truly
follow His commands. But in this present time, alas!--religion is
becoming a question of form--not of heart."

"Dearest uncle, if you think that, you will not judge me too severely
for my pictures," said Angela quickly, throwing herself on her knees
beside him. "Do you not see? It is just because the ministers of Christ
are so lax that I have taken to studying them in my way,--which is, I
know, not your way;--still, I think we both mean one and the same
thing!"

"You are a woman, Angela," said the Cardinal gently, "and as a woman
you must be careful of offences--"

"Oh, a woman!" exclaimed Angela, her beautiful eyes flashing with
mingled tenderness and scorn, and her whole face lighting up with
animation, "Only a woman! SHE must not give a grand lesson to the
world! SHE must not, by means of brush or pen, point out to a corrupt
generation the way it is going! Why? Because God has created her to be
the helpmate of man! Excellent reason! Man is taking a direct straight
road to destruction, and she must not stop him by so much as lifting a
warning finger! Again, why? Only because she is a woman! But I--were I
twenty times a woman, twenty times weaker than I am, and hampered by
every sort of convention and usage,--I would express my thoughts
somehow, or die in the attempt!"

"BRAVISSIMA!" exclaimed Vergniaud, "Well said, chere Sovrani!--Well
said! But I am the mocking demon always, as you know--and I should
almost be tempted to say that you WILL die in the attempt! I do not
mean that you will die physically,--no, you will probably live to a
good old age; people who suffer always do!--but you will die in the
allegorical sense. You will grow the stigmata of the Saviour in your
hands and feet--you will bear terrible marks of the nails hammered into
your flesh by your dearest friends! You will have to wear a crown of
thorns, set on your brows no doubt by those whom you most love . . .
and the vinegar and gall will be very quickly mixed and offered to you
by the whole world of criticism without a moment's hesitation! And will
probably have to endure your agony alone,--as nearly everyone runs away
from a declared Truth, orif they pause at all, it is only to spit upon
it and call it a Lie!"

"Do not prophesy so cruel a fate for the child!" said the Cardinal
tenderly, taking Angela's hand and drawing her towards him. "She has a
great gift,--I am sure she will use it greatly. And true greatness is
always acknowledged in the end."

"Yes, when the author or the artist has been in the grave for a hundred
years or more;" said Vergniaud incorrigibly. "I am not sure that it
would not be better for Donna Sovrani's happiness to marry the amiable
Florian Varillo at once rather than paint her great picture! Do you not
agree with me, Mr. Leigh?"

Leigh was turning over an old volume of prints in a desultory and
abstracted fashion, but on being addressed, looked up quickly.

"I would rather not presume to give an opinion," he said somewhat
coldly, "It is only on the rarest occasions that a woman's life is
balanced between love and fame,--and the two gifts are seldom bestowed
together. She generally has to choose between them. If she accepts love
she is often compelled to forego fame, because she merges herself too
closely into the existence of another to stand by her own
individuality. If on the other hand, she chooses fame, men are
generally afraid of or jealous of her, and leave her to herself. Donna
Sovrani, however, is a fortunate exception,--she has secured both
fame--and love."

He hesitated a moment before saying the last words, and his brows
contracted a little. But Angela did not see the slight cloud of
vexation that darkened his eyes,--his words pleased her, and she smiled.

"Ah, Mr. Leigh sees how it is with me!" she said, "He knows what good
cause I have to be happy and to do the best work that is in me! It is
all to make Florian proud of me!--and he IS proud--and he will be
prouder! You must just see this one more sketch taken from life,--it is
the head of one of our most noted surgeons,--I call it for the present
'A Vivisectionist'."

It was a wonderful study,--perhaps the strongest of the three she had
shown. It was the portrait of a thin, fine, intellectual face, which in
its every line suggested an intense, and almost dreadful curiosity. The
brows were high, yet narrow,--the eyes clear and cold, and pitiless in
their straight regard,--the lips thin and compressed,--the nose
delicate, with thin open nostrils, like those of a trained sleuth-hound
on the scent of blood. It was a three-quarter-length picture, showing
the hand of the man slightly raised, and holding a surgeon's knife,--a
wonderful hand, rather small, with fingers that are generally termed
"artistic"--and a firm wrist, which Angela had worked at patiently,
carefully delineating the practised muscles employed and developed in
the vivisectiomst's ghastly business.

Aubrey Leigh stood contemplating it intently.

"I think it is really the finest of all the types," he said presently,
"One can grasp that man's character so thoroughly! There is no pity in
him,--no sentiment--there is merely an insatiable avidity to break open
the great treasure-house of Life by fair means or foul! It is very
terrible--but very powerful."

"I know the man," said Abbe Vergniaud, "Did he sit to you willingly?"

"Very willingly indeed!" replied Angela, "He was quite amused when I
told him frankly that I wanted him as a type of educated and refined
cruelty."

"Oh, these fellows see nothing reprehensible in their work," said
Leigh, "And such things go on among them as make the strongest man sick
to think of! I know of two cases now in a hospital; the patients are
incurable, but the surgeons have given them hope of recovery through an
'operation' which, however, in their cases, will be no 'operation' at
all, but simply vivisection. The poor creatures have to die anyhow, it
is true, but death might come to them less terribly,--the surgeons,
however, will 'operate', and kill them a little more quickly, in order
to grasp certain unknown technicalities of their disease."

Angela looked at him with wide-open eyes of pain and amazement.

"Horrible!" she murmured, "Absolutely horrible! Can nothing be done to
interfere with, or to stop such cruelty?"

"Nothing, I fear," said Leigh, "I have been abroad some time, studying
various 'phases', of its so-called intellectual and scientific life,
and have found many of these phases nothing but an output of masked
barbarity. The savages of Thibet are more pitiful than the French or
Italian vivisectionist,--and the horrors that go on in the laboratories
would not be believed if they were told. Would not be believed! They
would be flatly denied, even by the men who are engaged in them! And
were I to write a plain statement of what I know to be true, and send
it to an English journal, it would not be put in, not even in support
of the Anti-Vivisection Society, lest it might 'offend' the foreign
schools of surgery, and also perhaps lest English schools might prove
not altogether free from similar crimes. If, however, by chance, such a
statement were published, it would be met with an indignant chorus of
denial from every quarter of accusation! How, then, can justice be
obtained from what I call the New Inquisition? The old-time Inquisitors
tortured their kind for Religion's sake,--the modern ones do it in the
name of Science,--but the inhumanity, the callousness, the inborn
savage love of cruelty--are all the same in both instances."

Cardinal Bonpre shuddered as he heard.

"Lord Christ, where art thou!" he thought, "Where is Thy spirit of
unfailing tenderness and care? How is Thy command of 'love one another'
obeyed!" Aloud he said, "Surely such deeds, even in the cause of
surgical science, ought not to be permitted in a Christian city?"

"Christian city!" and Vergniaud laughed, "You would not apply that
designation to Paris, would you? Paris is hopelessly, riotously
pagan;--nay, not even pagan, for the pagans had gods and Paris has
none! Neither Jove--nor Jupiter--nor Jehovah! As for the Christ,--He is
made the subject of many a public caricature,--yes!--you may see them
in the side-streets pasted upon the walls and hoardings!--and also of
many a low lampoon;--but He is not accepted as a Teacher, nor even as
an Example. His reign is over, in Paris at least!"

"Stop!" said the Cardinal, rising suddenly, "I forbid you, Vergniaud,
to tell me these things! If they are true, then shame upon you and upon
all the clergy of this unhappy city to stand by and let such disgrace
to yourselves, and blasphemy to our Master, exist without protest!"

His tall spare figure assumed a commanding grandeur and authority,--his
pale face flushed and his eyes sparkled--he looked inspired--superb--a
very apostle burning with righteous indignation. His words seemed to
have the effect of an electric shock on the Abbe,--he started as though
stung by the lash of a whip, and drew himself up haughtily . . . then
meeting the Cardinal's straight glance, his head drooped, and he stood
mute and rigid. Leigh, though conscious of embarrassment as the witness
of a strong reproof administered by one dignitary of the Church to
another, yet felt deeply interested in the scene,--Angela shrank back
trembling,--and for a few moments which, though so brief, seemed
painfully long, there was a dead silence. Then Verginaud spoke in low
stifled accents.

"You are perfectly right, Monseigneur! It IS shame to me!--and to the
priesthood of France! I am no worse than the rest of my class,--but I
am certainly no better! Your reproach is grand,--and just! I accept it,
and ask your pardon!"

He bent one knee, touched the Cardinal's ring with his lips, and then
without another word turned and left the room. The Cardinal gazed after
his retreating figure like a man in a dream, then he said gently,

"Angela, go after him!--Call him back!--"

But it was too late. Vergniaud had left the house before Angela could
overtake him. She came back hurriedly to say so, with a pale face and
troubled look. Her uncle patted her kindly on the shoulder.

"Well, well!--It will not hurt him to have seen me angry," he said
smiling, "Anger in a just cause is permitted. I seem to have frightened
you, Angela? Of a truth I have rather frightened myself! There, we will
not talk any more of the evils of Paris. Mr. Leigh perhaps thinks me an
intolerant Christian?"

"On the contrary I think you are one of the few 'faithful' that I have
ever met," said Leigh, "Of course I am out of it in a way, because I do
not belong to the Roman Church. I am supposed--I say 'supposed'
advisedly--to be a Church of England man, or to put it more
comprehensively, a Protestant, and I certainly am so much of the latter
that I protest against all our systems altogether!"

"Is that quite just?" asked Bonpre gently.

"Perhaps not!--but what is one to do? I am not alone in my ideas! One
of our English bishops has been latterly deploring the fact that out of
a thousand lads in a certain parish nine-hundred-and-ninety-nine of
them never go to church! Well, what can you expect? I do not blame
those nine-hundred and-ninety-nine at all. I am one with them. _I_
never go to church."

"Why?"

"Simply because I never find any touch of the true Spirit of Christ
there--and the whole tone of the place makes me feel distinctly
un-Christian. The nine-hundred-and-ninety-nine youths possibly would
sympathise with me. A church is a building more or less beautiful or
ugly as the case may be, and in the building there is generally a man
who reads prayers in a sing-song tone of voice, and perhaps another man
who preaches without eloquence on some text which he utterly fails to
see the true symbolical meaning of. There are no Charles Kingsleys
nowadays,--if there were, I should call myself a 'Kingsleyite'. But as
matters stand I am not moved by the church to feel religious. I would
rather sit quietly in the fields and hear the gentle leaves whispering
their joys and thanksgivings above my head, than listen to a human
creature who has not even the education to comprehend the simplest
teachings of nature, daring to assert himself as a teacher of the
Divine. My own chief object in life has been and still is to speak on
this and similar subjects to the people who are groping after lost
Christianity. They need helping, and I want to try in my way to help
them."

"Groping after lost Christianity!" echoed the Cardinal, "Those words
are a terrible indictment, Mr. Leigh!"

"Yet in your own soul your Eminence admits it to be true," returned
Leigh quickly,--"I can see the admission in your eyes,--in the very
expression of your face! You feel in yourself that the true spirit of
Christ is lacking in all the churches of the present day,--that the
sheep are straying for lack of the shepherd, and that the wolf is in
the fold! You know it,--you feel it,--you see it!"

Cardinal Bonpre's head drooped.

"God help me and forgive me, I am afraid I do!" he said sorrowfully. "I
see the shadow of the storm before it draws nigh,--I feel the terror of
the earthquake before it shakes down the edifice! No, the world is not
with Christ to-day!--and unhappily it is a fact that Christ's ministers
in recent years have done more to sever Him from Humanity than any
other power could ever have succeeded in doing. Not by action, but by
inertia!--dumbness--lack of protest,--lack of courage! Only a few stray
souls stand out firm and fair in the chaos,--only a few!"

"'I know thy works, that thou art neither cold nor hot,--I would thou
wert cold or hot! So because thou art lukewarm and neither cold nor hot
I will spew thee out of my mouth!'" quoted Leigh, his eyes flashing and
his voice trembling with repressed earnestness, "That is the trouble
all through! Apathy,--dead, unproductive apathy and laissez-faire!--Ah,
I believe there are some of us living now who are destined to see
strange and terrible things in this new century!"

"For myself," said the Cardinal slowly, "I think there is not much time
left us! I feel a premonition of Divine wrath threatening the world,
and when I study the aspect of the times and see the pride,
licentiousness, and wealth-worship of men, I cannot but think the days
are drawing near when our Master will demand of us account of our
service. It is just the same as in the case of the individual
wrong-doer, when it seems as if punishment were again and again
retarded, and mercy shown,--yet if all benefits, blessings and warnings
are unheeded, then at last the bolt falls suddenly and with terrific
effect. So with nations--so with churches--so with the world!"

His voice grew feeble, and his eyes were clouded with pain.

"You are fatigued," said Leigh gently, "And I ought not to have stayed
so long. I will bid you farewell now. If I am in Rome when you are
there, I trust you will permit me to pay my respects to you?"

"It will be a pleasure to see you, my son," answered the Cardinal,
pressing his hand and courteously preventing him from making the formal
genuflection, "And let me add that it will help me very much to hear
from you what progress you make in your intention of working for
Christ. For,--when you speak to the people as a teacher, it is in His
name, is it not?"

"In His name, and I pray in His spirit," said Leigh, "But not through
any church."

The Cardinal sighed, but said no more, and Leigh turned to Angela.

"Good-bye," he said, "I may come and see the picture in Rome?"

"You may indeed," and Angela gave him her hand in frank friendliness,
"I shall feel the necessity of your criticism and the value of your
opinion."

He looked at her intently for a moment.

"Be of good courage," he then said in a low tone, "'Work out your own
salvation', it is the only way! Fulfil the expression of your whole
heart and soul and mind, and never heed what opposing forces may do to
hinder you. You are so clear-brained, so spiritually organised, that I
cannot imagine your doing anything that shall not create a power for
good. You are sometimes inclined to be afraid of the largeness of your
own conceptions in the picture you are dreaming of,--I can see
that,--but do not fear! The higher influences are with you and in
you;--give yourself up to them with absolute confidence! Good-bye--God
bless you!" He stooped and kissed her hand,--then left the room.

Angela looked after him, and a half sigh escaped her lips
unconsciously. The Cardinal watched her with rather a troubled look.
After a little silence he said,

"You must pardon me, my child, if I seemed over hasty in my judgment of
your work . . ."

"Dearest uncle, do not speak of it!" exclaimed Angela, "You were pained
and sorry to see such a 'servant of Christ' as the type I chose,--you
could not help expressing your feeling--it was natural . . ."

"Yes, I was vexed,--I own it!--" went on Bonpre, "For I know many
priests, poor, patient, simple men, who do their best for our Lord
according to their measure and capability,--men who deserve all honour,
all love, all respect, for the integrity of their lives,--still--I am
aware that these are in the minority, and that men of the kind your
sketch depicts, compose alas!--the majority. There is a frightful
preponderance of evil influences in the world! Industry, and commerce,
and science have advanced, and yet a noble and upright standard of
conduct among men is sadly lacking. Men are seeking for happiness in
Materialism, and find nothing but satiety and misery,--satiety and
misery which become so insupportable that very often suicide presents
itself as the only way out of such a tangle of wretchedness! Yes,
child!--all this is true--and if you think you have a lesson to give
which will be useful in these dark days, no one,--I least of
all--should presume to hinder you from giving it. Still, remember that
the results of work are not with the worker to determine--they rest
with God."

"Truly I hope they do," said Angela fervently, "For then all bad work
will pass away and only the good and necessary remain."

"That always is the rule," said the Cardinal, "No criticism can kill
good work or vivify bad. So be happy, Angela mia! Paint your great
picture with courage and hope--I will neither judge nor condemn, and if
the world's verdict should be cruel, mine shall be kind!"

He smiled and stroked her soft hair, then taking her arm he leaned upon
it affectionately as they left the studio together.



X.

The next day, and the next after that, were passed by the Cardinal in
gratifying a certain eagerness shown by his young foundling, Manuel, to
see the churches and great public buildings of Paris. The boy had a
quiet, straightforward way of expressing his wishes and opinions, and a
certain marked individuality in his manner--in fact, so simple and
straight were his words, and so much to the point, that they sometimes
caused confusion to his hearers. Once or twice he gave offence, as for
example, on visiting a great church where there were numerous jewelled
relics and priceless treasures of old lace and embroidery, when he said
suddenly:

"There is a woman just outside the door, very ill and poor, with two
little starving children;--would it not be well to sell some of the
jewels here and give her the money?"

The custodian looked amazed, and the attendant priest who was escorting
Cardinal Bonpre through the building, frowned.

"The treasures of the Church are not to be sold," he said curtly. "The
beggar outside is no doubt a trained hypocrite."

"Christ would not say so," answered Manuel softly,--"He would not, even
if He knew her to be a hypocrite, retain anything of value for Himself,
if by giving it to her, He could ease her pain and poverty. I cannot
understand why the Church should keep jewels."

"That is because you are ignorant," said the priest roughly.

Manuel raised his grave blue eyes and fixed them steadily upon him.

"That may be," he said, "Yet I think it is nowhere written in the
Gospel that Christ cared for the world's wealth or the world's
possessions. When they are offered to Him did he not say, 'Get thee
behind me, Satan'! The only gem he prized was the 'pearl of great
price,'--the pure and perfect human soul."

"The Church is the manufactory of those pearls," said the priest, with
something between a grin and a sneer.

"Then the Church needs no other jewels" returned Manuel quietly, with a
little gesture of his hand, "These glittering baubles you show, are out
of place."

The priest glanced him over with angry contempt. Then he said to the
Cardinal,

"Your Eminence will have trouble with that boy," he said. "His opinions
are heretic."

The Cardinal smiled a little.

"You think so? Nay, there is something of truth in what he says,
notwithstanding his simplicity of utterance, which is not perhaps in
accordance with convention. I confess that I share his opinions
somewhat. Certainly I esteem myself happy that in my far-off diocese
there are none of the world's precious things, but only the unprized
prayers of the faithful."

The priest said nothing in reply,--but he was conscious of discomfort
and uneasiness, and hurried through the rest of his duties with an
ill-grace, annoyed, though he knew not why, by the very presence of
Manuel. The boy, however, paid no heed to his angry glances, and noted
everything in his own quiet meditative way,--a way which was a
singularly winning one, graced as it was by an almost scholarly
thoughtfulness united to the charm of youth. Once, before a magnificent
priest's garment of lace, he paused, and touched the substance lightly.

"See," he said softly, looking wistfully up in the Cardinal's face,
"See all the leaves and rosebuds worked in, this by the needle,--and
think how many human eyes have strained at it, and grown dull and blind
over it! If one could only believe that the poor eyes were comforted at
all in the following of the difficult thread!--but no,--the sunshine
must have lessened and the days grown darker and darker, till death
came and gently shut up the lids of the tired orbs of earthy vision,
and opened those of the soul to Light indeed! This work speaks with a
thousand tongues! I can hear them!
Torture,--poverty,--pain,--pitilessness,--long hours,--scant
reward,--tired fingers,--weary hearts!--and a priest of Christ wears
this to perform Christ's service! Clad in a garment of human suffering,
to preach mercy! Is it not strange?"

"You think too deeply, my child," said the Cardinal, moved by the
tender pity in Manual's voice, "Nothing is accomplished without pain in
this world,--our dear Lord Himself suffered pain."

"True," said Manuel, "But His pain was endured that there might be less
of it for others! He asked His children in this world to love one
another for His sake--not to grind each other down! Not to make
unnecessary hardships for each other! But it seems as if He had asked
in vain!"

He was silent after this, and refrained from remark even when, during
their visit to Notre Dame, the treasury was unlocked for the Cardinal's
inspection, and the relics formerly contained in the now disused
"Sainte Chapelle," were shown,--including the fragments of the "crown
of thorns," and a nail from the "true cross." The Cardinal was silent
too. He had no remark to offer on these obvious "imaginations" of the
priesthood. Then they went up together to the platform on the summit of
the Cathedral, and looked at the great bell known as the "Bourdon de
Notre Dame";--and here they found a little wizened old man sitting
carelessly on the edge of a balustrade, in a seemingly very dangerous
position, who nodded and smiled familiarly as they appeared. He acted
as cicerone of the summit of the North Tower, and was soon at their
side explaining volubly all that was of interest.

"Tired,--oh yes, one gets tired!" he admitted, in response to a query
from the Cardinal as to whether he did not find his duties fatiguing at
his age, "But after all, I like the griffins and dragons and devils'
faces up here, better than the griffins and dragons and devils down
there,--below on the Boulevards! I call this Heaven, and down there in
the streets, Hell. Yes, truly! It is wholesome up here,--the sky seems
very near, and the sculptured beasts do no harm. But down in the
streets one feels and smells the dirt and danger directly. I sit here
all by myself for hours thinking, when no one comes to visit the
tower,--for sometimes a whole day passes and no one wishes to ascend.
And there is a moral in that, Monseigneur, if one has eyes to see
it;--days pass, years, in the world,--and no one wishes to ascend!--to
Heaven, I mean!--to go down to Hell is delightful, and everyone is
ready for it! It is at night that the platform here is most
beautiful,--oh yes, at night it is very fine, Monseigneur!--but it is
only madmen and dreamers who call me up in the night hours, yet when
they do I never refuse to go with them, for look you, I am a light
sleeper and have no wife to bid me keep my bed. Yes,--if the
authorities knew that I took anybody up to the tower at night they
would probably dismiss me," and he chuckled like an old schoolboy with
a sense of his own innate mischief and disobedience, "But you see they
do not know! And I learn a great deal from the strange persons who come
at night,--much more than from the strange persons who come by day.
Now, the last so strange person that came here by night--you would not
perhaps believe it, Monseigneur, but it was a priest! Yes," and the old
fellow laughed, "a priest who had suddenly found out that the Church
was not following its Master! Yes, yes! . . . just fancy killing
himself for that!"

"Killing himself!" cried the Cardinal, "What do you mean?"

"You would like to hear the story?--ah, take care, mon ange!" he cried,
as he perceived Manuel standing lightly near the brink of the platform,
and stretching out his arms towards the city, "Thou art not a bird to
fly from that edge in the air! What dost thou see?"

"Paris!" replied the boy in strangely sorrowful accents, turning his
young, wistful face towards the Cardinal, his hair blown back in the
light wind, "All Paris!"

"Ah!--'tis a fine sight, all Paris!" said the old guide--"one of the
finest in the world, to judge by the outside of it. But the inside is a
very different matter; and if Paris is not a doomed city, then there is
no God, and I know nothing of the Bible. It has got all the old sins in
a new shape, and revels in them. And of the story of the priest, if you
would hear it;--ah!--that is well!" he said, as Manuel left the giddy
verge of the platform where he had been standing, and drew near. "It is
safer to be away from that edge, my child! And for the poor priest, it
happened in this way,--it was a fair night, and the moon was high--I
was dozing off in a chair in my room below, when the bell rang quickly,
yet softly. I got up with pleasure, for I said to myself, 'here is an
artist or a poet,--one of those persons who are unlike anyone
else'--just as I am myself unlike anyone else--'and so we two shall
have a pleasant evening.' But when I opened the door there was no one
but a priest, and poor-looking even at that; and he was young and pale,
and very uneasy in his manner, and he said to me, 'Jean Lapui'--(that
is my name)--'let me pass up to the platform.' 'Willingly,' said I, 'if
I may go with you.' 'Nay, I would rather be alone,' he answered. 'That
may not be,' I told him, 'I am as pleased to see the moonbeams shining
on the beasts and devils as any man,--and I shall do you no harm by my
company.' Well, he agreed to have me then, and up we went the three
hundred and seventy-eight steps,--(it is a long way, Monseigneur;--)and
he mounted quickly, I slowly,--but always keeping my eye upon him. At
last we reached this platform, and the moonlight was beautiful, and
clear as day. Then my little priest sat down and began to laugh. 'Ha,
my Lapui!' he said, 'Is it not droll that this should be all a lie! All
this fine building, and all the other fine buildings of the kind in
Paris! Strange, my Lapui, is it not, that this Cathedral should be
raised to the worship of a God whom no one obeys, or even thinks of
obeying! All show, my good Lapui! All to feed priests like me, and keep
them going--but God has nothing to do with it--nothing at all, I swear
to you!'--'You may be right, mon reverend,' I said, (for I saw he was
not in a mood to be argued with)--"Yet truly the Cathedral has not
always been a place of holiness. In seventeen ninety-three there was
not much of our Lord or the blessed Saints in it.' 'No, you are right,
Lapui!' he cried, 'Down came the statue of the Virgin, and up went the
statue of Liberty! There was the crimson flare of the Torch of
Truth!--and the effigies of the ape Voltaire and the sensualist
Rousseau, took the places of St. Peter and St. Paul! Ha!--And they
worshipped the goddess of Reason--Reason, impersonated by Maillard the
ballet-dancer! True to the life, my Lapui!--that kind of worship has
lasted in Paris until now!--it goes on still--Reason,--man's idea of
Reason,--impersonated by a ballet dancer! Yes,--the shops are full of
that goddess and her portraits, Jean Lapui! And the jewellers can
hardly turn out sufficient baubles to adorn her shrine!' He laughed
again, and I took hold of him by the arm. 'See here, petit pere,' I
said, 'I fancy all is not well with you.' 'You are right,' he answered,
'all is very ill!' 'Then will you not go home and to bed?' I asked him.
'Presently--presently;' he said, 'if I may tell you something first!'
'Do so by all means, reverend pere,' said I, and I sat down near him.
'It is just this, Lapui,' and he drew out a crucifix from his breast
and looked at it very earnestly, 'I am a priest, as you see; and this
symbol represents my faith. My mother told me that to be a priest and
to serve God was the highest happiness that could befall a man. I
believed it,--and when I look at the stars up there crowding around us
in such vast circles,--when I look at all this moonlight and the
majesty of creation around me, I believe it still! Up here, it seems
there MAY be a God; down there,' and he pointed towards the streets, 'I
know there is a devil! But I have discovered that it is no use telling
the people about God, because they do not believe in Him. They think I
am telling them a lie because it is my metier to tell lies. And also
because they think I have neither the sense nor the ability to do
anything else. They know they are telling lies themselves all day and
every day. Some of them pretend to believe, because they think it best
to be on the safe side even by feigning,--and they are the worst
hypocrites. It drives me mad, Lapui, to perform Mass for liars! If it
were only unbelievers! but liars!--liars! Liars who lie on their
death-beds, telling me with mock sighs of penitence that they believe
in God when they do not! I had a dream last night--you shall tell me if
I was mistaken in it,--it was a dream of this very tower of Notre Dame.
I was up here as I am now--and the moonlight was around me as it is
now--and I thought that just behind the wing of that third angel's head
carved yonder--do you see?' and he got up and made me get up too, and
turned me round with his hand on my shoulder--'a white dove had made
its resting-place. Is there a white dove there, Lapui? If there is I
shall be a happy man and all my griefs will be at an end! Will you go
and look--and tell me if there is a white dove nestling there? Then I
will say good-night to you and go home.' God forgive me!--I thought to
humor him in his fancy, and so I left him to walk those five
steps--only five at the utmost--and see if perhaps among the many doves
that fly about the towers, it might not be that a white one, as he
said, should have chosen to settle in the place he pointed out to me,
'for,' thought I, 'he will be quiet then and satisfied.' And like a
blind fool I went--and when I came back the platform was empty!--Ah,
Monseigneur!--he had said good-night indeed, and gone home!"

"You mean that he flung himself from this parapet?" said Bonpre, in a
low, horrified tone.

"That was the way of it, Monseigneur," said Lapui
commiseratingly,--"His body was found next day crushed to bits on the
pavement below; but somehow no one troubled much about it, or thought
he had thrown himself from the tower of Notre Dame. It was said that he
had been murdered and thrown out of a window, but nobody knew how or
when. Of course I could have spoken, but then I should have got into
trouble. And I avoid trouble whenever I can. A very strange thing it is
that no one has ever been suspected of leaping from Notre Dame into the
next world since Victor Hugo's great story was written. 'It is against
the rules,' say the authorities, 'to mount the towers at night.' True,
but rules are not always kept. Victor Hugo's 'Quasimodo,' who never
lived, is the only person the wiseacres associate with such a deed. And
I,--I could tell many a strange story; only it is better to be silent!
Life is hard living,--and when a priest of the Church feels there is no
God in this world, why what is there left for him except to try and
find out if there is in the next?"

"Suicide is not the way to find Heaven," said the Cardinal gravely.

"Maybe not,--maybe not," and the old custodian turned to lead the way
down the steps of the tower, "But when the brain is gone all through
grief at losing God, it may chance that God sees the conditions of
things, and has mercy. Events happen in this world of such a kind as to
make anyone who is not a saint, doubt the sense as well as the goodness
of the Creator,--of course that is a wicked thing to say, for we make
our own evils, no doubt--"

"That is very certain," said the Cardinal, "The unhappy man you have
told me of should have trusted God to the end, whether those whom he
preached to, believed his message or not. Their conduct was not his
business,--his task was to declare, and not to judge."

"Now that is very well put!" and the old man paused on the stairway and
looked round approvingly. "Of course that is said as only a wise man
could say it, for after all, Christ Himself did not judge any one in
any case. He came to save us all, not to punish us."

"Then why does not everyone remember that, and try to save one another
rather than to condemn?" asked Manuel suddenly.

They had reached the bottom of the tower stairway, and old Jean Lapui,
shading his eyes from the glare of the daylight with one wrinkled hand,
looked at the boy with a smile of compassionate interest.

"Why does not everyone remember? Why does not everyone do as He did?
Ah, that is a question! You are young, and you will find out many
answers to it before you are much older. One fact is sure,--that if
everybody did remember Him and lived exactly as He wished, we should
have a new Heaven and a new Earth; and I will tell you something else,"
and the old fellow looked sly and mischievous, "No offence meant--no
offence!--but there would be no churches and no priests! Believe me, I
speak the truth! But this would be a great happiness; and is not to be
our portion yet! Good-day, Monseigneur!--A thousand pardons for my
wicked speech! Good-day!"

"Good-day!" responded the Cardinal gently, "Be careful of your night
visitors, my friend! Do not for the future leave them alone to plunge
into the Infinite without a warning!"

The old man smiled deprecatingly.

"Truly, Monseigneur, I am generally careful. I do not know when I have
spoken so freely to anyone as I have to you; for I am generally in a
bad humour with all Church dignitaries,--and of course I know you for a
Cardinal by your dress, while you might truly be a saint from your
manner;--so I should have held my tongue about the flight into the air
of the little priest. But you will say nothing, for you are discreet;
and even if you did, and I were asked about it, I should know nothing.
Oh, yes, I can tell lies as fast as anybody else!--Yes, truly! I do not
suppose anyone, not even an Archbishop himself, could surpass me in
lying!"

"And are you not ashamed to lie?" asked Bonpre, with an intense
vibration of pain in his voice as he put the question.

"Heaven bless you, no, Monseigneur!" replied Lapui cheerfully, "For is
not the whole world kept going by lies? Dear me, if we all told the
truth there would be an end of everything! I am a philosopher in my
way, Monseigneur,--and I assure you that a real serious truth told in
Paris without any gloss upon it, would be like an earthquake in the
city,--great houses would come down and numbers of people would be
killed by it! Good-day, Monseigneur!--Good-day."

And still smiling and chuckling, the custodian of the North tower
retired into his den there to await fresh visitors. The Cardinal walked
slowly to the corner of the street where his carriage awaited him,--his
head bent and his eyes downcast; Manuel stepped lightly along beside
him, glancing at his pale face from time to time with a grave and
tender compassion. When they were seated in the vehicle and driving
homewards the boy spoke gently--

"You grieve too much for others, dear friend! You are now distressed
because you have heard the story of one unhappy man who sought to find
God by self-destruction, and you are pained also lest another man
should lose God altogether by the deliberate telling of lies. All such
mistakes and follies of the world weigh heavily on your heart, but they
should not do so,--for did not Christ suffer all this for you when He
was crucified?"

The Cardinal sighed deeply.

"Yes, my child, but He told us plainly WHY He suffered. It was that we
might learn to follow Him, and that there should be less suffering for
the future. And surely we have not obeyed Him, or there could not be so
much pain and difficulty in the world as there is now."

"If He come again, you think He would be grieved and disappointed in
His followers?" queried Manuel softly.

"If He came again, I fear He would not find much of His teaching in any
of the creeds founded on His name! If He came again, then indeed might
the churches tremble, totter and fall!"

"If He came again," pursued Manuel, still in the same soft, even voice,
"how do you think He would come?"

"'Watch ye therefore for ye know not when He cometh,'" murmured the
Cardinal,--"My dear child, I think if He came again it would be
perhaps in the disguise of one who is poor and friendless 'despised and
rejected of men,' as when He first glorified the earth by His presence;
and I fear that in such plight He would find Himself, as before,
unwelcome."

Manuel made no reply just then, as they had arrived at home. The
servant who admitted them told them that Donna Sovrani had a visitor in
her studio,--so that the Cardinal and his young attendant went straight
to their own apartments.

"Read to me, Manuel," then said Bonpre, seating himself near the
window, and looking out dreamily on the rich foliage of the woods and
grassy slopes that stretched before him, "Find something in the Gospels
that will fit what we have seen to-day. I am tired of all these temples
and churches!--these gorgeous tombs and reliquaries; they represent
penances and thank-offerings no doubt, but to me they seem useless. A
church should not be a shrine for worldly stuff, unless indeed such
things are used again for the relief of poverty and suffering; but they
are not used; they are simply kept under lock and key and allowed to
accumulate,--while human creatures dwelling perhaps quite close to
these shrines, are allowed to die of starvation. Did you think this
when you spoke to the priest who was offended with you to-day?"

"Yes, I thought it," replied Manuel gently, "But then he said I was a
heretic. When one loves God better than the Church is one called a
heretic?"

Cardinal Bonpre looked earnestly at the boy's inspired face,--the face
of a dreaming angel in its deep earnestness.

"If so, then I am heretic," he answered slowly, "I love the Creator as
made manifest to me in His works,--I love Him in every flower which I
am privileged to look upon,--I find Him in every art and science,--I
worship Him in a temple not made with hands,--His own majestic
Universe! Above all churches,--above all formulated creeds and systems
I love Him! And as declared in the divine humanity of Christ I believe
in, and adore Him! If this makes me unworthy to be His priest and
servant then I confess my unworthiness!"

He had spoken these words more to himself than Manuel, and in his
fervour had closed his eyes and clasped his hands,--and he almost
fancied that a soft touch, light as a falling rose-leaf, had for a
second rested on his brow. He looked up quickly, wondering whether it
was Manuel who had so touched him,--the boy was certainly near
him,--but was already seated with the Testament open ready to read as
requested. The Cardinal raised himself in his chair,--a sense of
lightness, and freedom, and ease, possessed him,--the hopeless and
tired feeling which had a few minutes since weighed him down with an
undefinable languor was gone,--and his voice had gained new strength
and energy when he once more spoke.

"You have found words of our Lord which will express what we have seen
to-day?" he asked.

"Yes," replied Manuel, and he read in a clear vibrating tone, "Woe unto
you scribes and Pharisees, hypocrites; because ye build the tombs of
the prophets and garnish the sepulchres of the righteous." Here he
paused and said, while the Cardinal gazed at him wonderingly, "Is not
that true of Paris? There is their great Pantheon where most of their
prophets lie,--their poets and their teachers whom they wronged and
slandered in their lifetime--"

"My child," interrupted Bonpre gently, "Poets and so-called teachers
are not always good men. One named Voltaire, who scoffed at God, and
enunciated the doctrine of materialism in France, is buried there."

"Nevertheless he also was a prophet," persisted Manuel, in his quiet,
half-childlike, half-scholarly way, "A prophet of evil. He was the
incarnation of the future spirit of Paris. He lived as a warning of
what was to come,--a warning of the wolves that were ready to descend
upon the Master's fold. But Paris was then perhaps in the care of those
'hirelings' who are mentioned here as caring not for the sheep."

He turned a few pages and continued reading.

"'Well hath Esais prophesied of you, hypocrites, as it is written, This
people honoureth me with their lips but their heart is far from me.
Howbeit in vain do they worship me, TEACHING FOR DOCTRINE THE
COMMANDMENTS OF MAN.'"

He emphasised the last few words and looked up at the Cardinal, then he
went on.

"'Whosoever will come after me let him deny himself and take up his
cross and follow me. For whosoever will save his life shall lose it,
but whosoever shall lose his life for my sake the same shall save it.'"

"Yes," said Cardinal Bonpre fervently, "It is all there!--'Whosoever
will come after me let him deny himself,' LET HIM DENY HIMSELF! That is
the secret of it. Self-denial! And this age is one of self-indulgence.
We are on the wrong road, all of us, both Church and laity,--and if the
Master should come He will not find us watching, but sleeping."

He broke off, as at that moment a knock came at the door and a servant
entered the room bringing him a letter. It was from the Abbe Vergniaud,
and ran as follows:--

"TRES CHER MONSIGNEUR! I preach the day after tomorrow at Notre Dame de
Lorette, and if you wish to do a favour to a dying man you will come
and hear me. I am moved to say things I have never said before, and it
is possible I may astonish and perchance scandalise Paris. What
inspires me I do not know,--perhaps your well-deserved reproach of the
other day--perhaps the beautiful smile of the angel that dwells in
Donna Sovrani's eyes,--perhaps the chance meeting with your Rouen
foundling on the stairs as I was flying away from your just wrath. He
had been gathering roses in the garden, and gave me one with a grace in
the giving which made the flower valuable. It still lives and blooms in
a glass on my writing-table at which I have been jotting down the notes
of what I mean to say. WHAT I MEAN TO SAY! There is more in those words
than there seems, if you could but guess all! I shall trust to the day
itself for the necessary eloquence. The congregation that assembles at
the Lorette is a curious and a mixed one. 'Artistes' of the stage and
the cafe chantant are among the worshippers;--dames of rank and fashion
who worship the male 'artistes,' and the golden youth of Paris who
adore the very points of the shoes of the female ones,--are generally
there also. It is altogether what 'perfide Albion,' or Dame Grundee
would call a 'fast' audience. And the fact that I have arranged to
preach there will draw a still greater mixture and 'faster' quality, as
I am, alas!--a fashion in preachers. I pray you to come, or I shall
think you have not forgiven me!

"VERGNIAUD."

Cardinal Bonpre folded the letter and put it aside with a curious
feeling of compassion for the writer.

"Yes, I will go," he thought, "I have never heard him preach, though I
know by report that he is popular. I was told once that he seems to be
possessed by a very demon of mockery, and that it is this spirit which
makes his attraction for the people; but I hope it is something more
than that--I hope--" Here interrupting his meditations he turned to
Manuel.

"So you gave the Abbe Vergniaud a rose the other day, my child?"

"Yes," replied Manuel, "He looked sad when I met him,--and sometimes a
flower gives pleasure to a person in sorrow."

The Cardinal thought of his own roses far away, and sighed with a
sensation of longing and homesickness.

"Flowers are like visible messages from God," he said, "Messages
written in all the brightest and loveliest colours! I never gather one
without finding out that it has something to say to me."

"There is a legend," said Manuel, "which tells how a poor girl who has
lost every human creature she loved on earth, had a rose-tree she was
fond of, and every day she found upon it just one bloom. And though she
longed to gather the flower for herself she would not do so, but always
placed it before the picture of the Christ. And God saw her do this, as
He sees everything. At last, quite suddenly she died, and when she
found herself in Heaven, there were such crowds and crowds of angels
about her that she was bewildered, and could not find her way. All at
once she saw a pathway edged with roses before her, and one of the
angels said, 'These are all the roses you gave to our Lord on earth,
and He has made them into a pathway for you which will lead you
straight to those you love!' And so with great joy she followed the
windings of the path, seeing her roses blossoming all the way, and she
found all those whom she had loved and lost on earth waiting to welcome
her at the end!"

"A pretty fancy," said the Cardinal smiling, "And, as not even a
thought is wasted, who knows if it might not prove true?"

"Surely the beautiful must be the true always!" said Manuel.

"Not so, my child,--a fair face may hide an evil soul."

"But only for a little while," answered the boy, "The evil soul must
leave its impress on the face in time, if life lasts long enough."

"That is quite possible," said Bonpre, "In fact, I think it often
happens,--only there are some people who simulate the outward show of
goodness and purity perfectly, while inwardly 'they are as ravening
wolves,' and they never seem to drop the mask. Others again--" Here he
paused and looked anxiously at his young companion, "I wonder what you
will be like when you grow up, Manuel!"

"But if I never grow up, what then?" asked Manuel with a smile.

"Never grow up? You mean--"

"I mean if I die," said Manuel, "or pass through what is called dying
before I grow up?"

"God forbid!" said the Cardinal gently, "I would have you live--"

"But why," persisted Manuel, "since death is a better life?"

Bonpre looked at him wistfully.

"But if you grow up and are good and great, you may be wanted in the
world," he said.

An expression of deep pain swept like a shadow across the boy's fair
open brow.

"Oh no!" he said quietly, "the world does not want me! And yet I love
the world--not because it is a world, for there are millions upon
millions of worlds,--they are as numerous as flowers in a garden--but
because it is a sorrowful world,--a mistaken world,--and because all
the creatures in it have something of God in them. Yes, I love the
world!--but the world does not love me."

He spoke in a tone of gentle pathos, with the resigned and patient air
of one who feels the burden of solitude and the sense of
miscomprehension. And closing the Testament he held he rested his
clasped hands upon it, and for a moment seemed lost in sorrowful
reverie.

"I love you," said the Cardinal tenderly, "And I will take care of you
as well as I can."

Manuel looked up at him.

"And that will be well indeed, my lord Cardinal!" he said softly, "And
you serve a Master who will hereafter say to you, remembering your
goodness,--'Verily, in asmuch as ye have done it unto the least of my
brethren ye have done it unto Me.'"

He smiled; and the Cardinal meeting his glance wondered whether it was
the strong level light of the sinking sun through the window-pane that
made such a glory shine upon his face, and gave such a brilliancy to
his deep and steadfast eyes.



XI.

Meanwhile, Angela Sovrani was detained in her studio by the fascinating
company and bewildering chatter of a charming and very well-known
personage in Europe,--a dainty, exquisitely dressed piece of femininity
with the figure of a sylph and the complexion of a Romney "Lady
Hamilton,"--the Comtesse Sylvie Hermenstein, an Austro-Hungarian of the
prettiest and most bewitching type, who being a thorough bohemienne in
spirit, and having a large fortune at her disposal, travelled
everywhere, saw everything, and spent great sums of money not only in
amusing herself, but in doing good wherever she went. By society in
general, she was voted "thoroughly heartless,"--when as a matter of
fact she had too much heart, and gave her "largesse" of sympathy
somewhat too indiscriminately. Poor people worshipped her,--the
majority of the rich envied her because most of them had ties and she
had none. She might have married scores of times, but she took a
perverse pleasure in "drawing on" her admirers till they were just on
the giddy brink of matrimony,--then darting off altogether she left
them bewildered, confused, and not a little angry.

"They tell me I cannot love, cara mia," she was saying now to Angela
who sat in pleased silence, studying her form, her colouring, and her
animated expression; with all the ardour of an artist who knows how
difficult it is to catch the swift and variable flashes of beauty on
the face of a pretty woman, who is intelligent as well as personally
charming. "They tell me I have no heart at all. Me--Sylvie!--no heart!
Helas!--I am all heart! But to love one of those stupid heavy men, who
think that just to pull a moustache and smile is sufficient to make a
conquest--ah, no!--not for me! Yet I am now in love!--truly!--ah, you
laugh!--" and she laughed herself, shaking her pretty head, adorned
with its delicate "creation" in gossamer and feathers, which was
supposed to be a hat--"Yes, I am in love with the Marquis Fontenelle!
Ah!--le beau Marquis! He is so extraordinary!--so beautiful!--so
wicked! It must be that I love him, or why should I trouble myself
about him?"

She spread out her tiny gloved hands appealingly, with a delightful
little shrug of her shoulders, and again Angela laughed.

"He is good-looking, certainly," she said, "He is very like Miraudin.
They might almost be brothers."

"Miraudin, ce cher Miraudin!" exclaimed the Comtesse gaily, "The
greatest actor in Europe! Yes, truly!--I go to the theatre to look at
him and I almost fancy I am in love with him instead of Fontenelle,
till I remember he stage-manages;--ah!--then I shudder!--and my shudder
kills my love! After all it is only his resemblance to the Marquis that
causes the love,--and perhaps the shudder!"

"Sylvie, Sylvie!" laughed Angela, "Can you not be serious? What do you
mean?"

"I mean what I say," declared Sylvie, "Miraudin used to be the darling
of all the sentimental old maids and little school-girls who did not
know him off the stage. In Paris, in Rome, in Vienna, in
Buda-Pesth--always a conqueror of ignorant women who saw him in his
beautiful 'make-up'! Yes, he was perfectly delightful,--this big
Miraudin, till he became his own manager and his own leading actor as
well! Helas! What it is to be a manager! Do you know? It is to keep a
harem like a grand Turk;--and woe betide the woman who joins the
company without understanding that she is to be one of the many! The
sultana is the 'leading lady'. Poor Miraudin!--he must have many little
faggots to feed his flame! Oh, you look so shocked! But the Marquis is
just like him,--he also stage-manages."

"In what way?"

"Ah, he has an enormous theatre,--the world! A big stage,--society! The
harem is always being replenished! And he plays his part so well! He
has what the wise-acrescall 'perverted morals',--they are so
charming!--and he will not marry. He says, 'Why give myself to one when
I can make so many happy!' And why will not I, Sylvie Hermenstein, be
one of those many? Why will I not yield to the embraces of Monsieur le
beau Marquis? Not to marry him,--oh, no! so free a bird could not have
his wings clipped! And why will I not see the force of this?--"

She stopped, for Angela sprang towards her exclaiming,

"Sylvie! Do you mean to tell me that the Marquis Fontenelle is such a
villain?--"

"Tais-toi! Dear little flame of genius, how you blaze!" cried Sylvie,
catching her friend by the hand and kissing it, "Do not call Fontenelle
a villain--he is too charming!--and he is only like a great many other
men. He is a bold and passionate person; I rather like such
characters,--and I really am afraid--afraid--" here she hesitated, then
resumed, "He loves me for the moment, Angela, and I--I very much fear I
love him for a little longer than that! C'est terrible! He is by no
means worthy of it,--no, but what does that matter! We women never
count the cost of loving--we simply love! If I see much of him I shall
probably sink into the Quartier Latin of love--for there is a Quartier
Latin as well as a high class Faubourg in the passion,--I prefer the
Faubourg I confess, because it is so high, and respectable, and clean,
and grand--but--"

"Sylvie," said Angela determinedly, "You must come away from
Paris,--you must not see this man--"

"That is what I have arranged to do," said Sylvie, her beautiful violet
eyes flashing with mirth and malice intermingled, "I am flying from
Paris . . . I shall perhaps go to Rome in order to be near you. You are
a living safety in a storm,--you are so serene and calm. And then you
have a lover who believes in the ideal and perfect sympathy."

Angela smiled,--and Sylvie Hermenstein noted the warm and tender flush
of pleasure that spread over her fair face.

"Yes, Florian is an idealist," she said, "There is nothing of the brute
in him."

"And you think Fontenelle a brute?" queried Sylvie, "Yes, I suppose he
is; but I have sometimes thought that all men are very much
alike,--except Florian!" She paused, looking rather dubiously, and with
a touch of compassion at Angela, "Well!--you deserve to be happy,
child, and I hope you will be! For myself, I am going to run away from
Monsieur le Marquis with as much speed as if I had stolen his watch!"

"It is the best thing you can do," said Angela with a little sigh of
relief, "I am glad you are resolved."

Comtesse Sylvie rose from her chair and moved about the studio with a
pretty air of impatience.

"If his love for me could last," she said, "I might stay! I would love
him with truth and passion, and I would so influence him that he should
become one of the most brilliant leading men of his time. For he has
all the capabilities of genius,--but they are dormant,--and the joys of
self-indulgence appeal to him more strongly than high ambition and
attainment. And he could not love any women for more than a week or a
month at most,--in which temperament he exactly resembles the
celebrated Miraudin. Now I do not care to be loved for a week or a
month--I wish to be loved for always,--for always!" she said with
emphasis, "Just as your Florian loves you."

Angela's eyes grew soft and pensive.

"Few men are like Florian," she said. Again Sylvie looked at her
doubtfully, and there was a moment's silence. Then Sylvie resumed.

"Will you help me to give a little lesson to Monsieur le Marquis,
Angela?"

"Willingly, if I can. But how?"

"In this way. It is a little drama! To-morrow is Saturday and you
'receive.' 'Tout Paris', artistic Paris, at any rate, flocks to your
studio. Your uncle, the Cardinal Bonpre, is known to be with you, and
your visitors will be still more numerous. I have promised Fontenelle
to meet him here. I am to give him his answer--"

"To what?" enquired Angela.

"To his proposal."

"Of marriage?"

"Dear me, no!" And Sylvie smiled, but there was a look of pain in her
eyes, "He has an idyllic house buried in the Foret St. Germain, and he
wants me to take possession . . . you know the rest! He is a villain?
Yes--he is like Miraudin, who has a luxurious flat in Paris and sends
each lady of his harem there in turn. How angry you look! But, my dear,
I am not going to the house in the Foret, and I shall not meet him
here. He will come--looking charming as usual, and he will wait for me;
but I shall not arrive. All I want you to do for me is to receive him
very kindly, talk to him very sweetly, and tell him quite suddenly that
I have left Paris."

"What good will that do?" enquired Angela, "Could you not write it to
him?"

"Of course I could write it to him but--" Here Sylvie paused and turned
away her head. Angela, moved by quick instinct, went to her and put her
arm around her waist.

"Now there are tears in your eyes, Sylvie," she said, "You are
suffering for this man's heartlessness and cruelty. For it IS
heartless,--it is insulting, and selfish, and cruel to offer you
nothing but dishonour if he knows you love him."

Sylvie took out a tiny cobweb of a lace handkerchief and dried her
tears.

"No, I will not have him called heartless, or cruel," she said, "He is
merely one of his class. There are hundreds like him in Paris. Never
mind my tears!--they are nothing. There are hundreds of women who would
accept his proposals,--and he thinks I must be like them,--ready to
fall into his arms like a ripe peach at a touch! He thinks all I say to
him is an assumed affectation of virtue, and that he can easily break
down that slight barricade. He tells me I am a charming preacher, but
that he could never learn anything from sermons!" She laughed, "Oh, he
is incorrigible! But I want you to let him know that for once he is
mistaken. Will you? And you shall not have to say even the smallest
figment of an untruth,--your news will be quite correct--for I leave
Paris to-morrow morning."

She was very quiet now as she spoke--her brilliant eyes were dark with
thought, and her delicate face wore a serious, almost melancholy
expression.

"Dear Sylvie!" said Angela, kissing her soft cheek, "You really care
for this wretched man?"

"I am not sure," she answered with a touch of hesitation in her voice,
"I think I do--and yet despise myself for it!--but--who knows what
wonders change of air and scene may work! You see, if I go away he will
forget at once, and will trouble himself about me no more."

"Are you sure of that?"

Sylvie hesitated.

"Well, no, I cannot be quite certain,--you see no woman has ever
avoided him,--it will be quite a new experience for him, and a strange
one!" Her laughter rippled out musically on the air. "Positively I do
not think he will ever get over it!"

"I begin to understand," said Angela, "You wish to make this callous
man of the world realise that a woman may be beautiful, and brilliant,
and independent, and yet live a pure, good life amid numerous
temptations?"

"Yes,--I wish him to feel that all women are not to be led away by
flattery, or even by the desire to be loved, which is the hardest
temptation of all to resist! Nothing so hard as that, Angela! Nothing
so hard! I have often thought what a contemptible creature Goethe's
Gretchen was to allow herself to be tempted to ruin with a box of
jewels! Jewels! Worthless baubles! I would not cross the road to look
at the biggest diamond in the world! But to be loved! To feel that you
are all in all to one man out of the whole world! That would be
glorious! That I have never felt--that I shall never know!"

Angela looked at her sympathetically,--what a strange thing it was, she
thought, that this pretty creature, with her winsome, bright,
bewitching ways, should be craving for love, while she, Angela Sovrani,
was elected to the happiness of having the absolute devotion of such an
ideal lover as Florian Varillo!

"But I am becoming quite tragic in my remarks," went on Sylvie,
resuming her usual gaiety, "Melodramatic, as they say! If I go on in
this manner I shall qualify to be the next 'leading lady' to Miraudin!
Quelle honneur! Good-bye Angela;--I will not tell you where I am going
lest Fontenelle should ask you,--and then you would have to commit
yourself to a falsehood,--it is enough to say I have left Paris."

"Shall I see you again soon?" said Angela, holding her by both hands
and looking at her anxiously.

"Yes, very soon, before the winter is over at any rate. You sweet,
calm, happy Angela! I wonder if anything could ever whip you in a
storm!"

"Would you like to see me in a stormy humour?" asked Angela, smiling.

"No, not exactly;--but,--you are TOO quiet,--too secure--too satisfied
in your art and your surroundings; and you do not enter at all into the
passions and griefs of other people. You are absorbed in your love and
your work,--a beautiful existence! Only I hope the gods will not wake
you up some day!"

"I am not asleep," said Angela, "nor dreaming."

"Yes you are! You dream of beautiful things,--and the world is full of
ugly ones; you dream of love and constancy, and purity,--and the world
is full of spite, and hate, and bribery, and wickedness; you have a
world of your own,--but Angela, it is a glass world!--in which only the
exquisite colours of your own soul are reflected, take care that the
pretty globe does not break!--for if it does you will never be able to
put it together again! Adieu!"

"Adieu!" and Angela returned her loving embrace with equal affection,
"I will announce your departure to the Marquis Fontenelle to-morrow."

"You will? Sweet Angela! And when you hear from me, and know where I
am, you will write me a long, long letter and tell me how he looked,
and what he said, and whether he seemed sorry or indifferent, or angry,
or ashamed--or--"

Before she could finish the sentence the studio door was thrown open,
and the servant announced, "Monsieur le Marquis Fontenelle!"



XII.

A moment's flashing glance of half-amused dismay at Angela, and the
Comtesse Sylvie had vanished. Passing quickly behind one of the several
tall tapestry screens that adorned the studio, she slipped away through
a little private door at which Angela's "models" presented themselves,
a door which led into the garden and then into the Bois, and making
straight for her carriage which was in waiting round the corner, she
sprang into it and was rapidly driven away. Meanwhile, Angela Sovrani,
rather bewildered by her friend's swift departure, was left alone to
face the Marquis, who entered almost on the heels of the servant who
announced him, and in one swift survey of the studio saw that the
object of his search was not there. Concealing his disappointment,
however, under an admirable show of elegant indifference, he advanced
towards Angela and saluted her with a courtly old-world grace that very
well became his handsome face and figure.

"I must apologise for this intrusion," he said, speaking in deep, soft
accents which gave a singular charm to his simplest words, "But--to be
quite frank with you--I thought I should find the Comtesse Hermenstein
here."

Angela smiled. In her heart she considered the man a social reprobate,
but it was impossible to hear him speak, and equally impossible to look
at him without a vague sense of pleasure in his company.

"Sylvie was here a moment ago," she answered, still smiling.

The Marquis took one or two quick impulsive steps forward--then
checking himself, stopped short, and selecting a chair deliberately sat
down.

"I understand!" he said, "She wished to avoid me, and she has done so.
Well!--I would not run after her for the world. She must be perfectly
free."

Angela looked at him with a somewhat puzzled air. She felt herself in a
delicate and awkward position. To be of any use in this affair now
seemed quite impossible. Her commission was to have told the Marquis
that Sylvie had left Paris, but she could not say that now as Sylvie
was still in the city. Was she supposed to know anything about the
Marquis's dishonourable proposals to her friend? Surely not! Then what
was she to do? She stood hesitating, glancing at the fine, clear-cut,
clean-shaven face of Fontenelle, the broad intellectual brows, and the
brilliant hazel eyes with their languid, half-satirical expression, and
her perplexity increased. Certainly he was a man with a grand
manner,--the manner of one of those never-to-be-forgotten haughty and
careless aristocrats of the "Reign of Terror" who half redeemed their
vicious lives by the bravery with which they faced the guillotine.
Attracted, yet repelled by him, Angela had always been,--even when she
had known no more of him than is known of a casual acquaintance met at
different parties and reunions, but now that she was aware of Sylvie's
infatuation, the mingled attraction and revulsion became stronger, and
she caught herself wishing fervently that the Marquis would rouse
himself from his lethargy of pleasure, and do justice to the
capabilities which Nature had evidently endowed him with, if a fine
head and noble features are to be taken as exponents of character.
Fontenelle himself, meanwhile, leaning carelessly back in the chair he
had taken, looked at her with a little quizzical lifting of his
eyebrows.

"You are very silent, mademoiselle," he broke out at last, "Have you
nothing to say to me?"

At this straight question Angela recovered her equanimity.

"I HAD something to say to you, Marquis," she answered quietly, "but it
was to have been said to-morrow."

"To-morrow? Ah, yes! You receive your world of art to-morrow," he said,
"and I was to come and meet la Comtesse,--and of course she would not
have been here! I felt that by a natural instinct! Something
psychological--something occult! I saw her carriage pass my windows up
the Champs Elysees,--and I followed in a common fiacre. I seldom ride
in a common fiacre, but this time I did so. It was an excitement--la
chasse! I saw the little beauty arrive at your door,--I gave her time
to pour out all her confidences,--and then I arranged with myself and
le bon Dieu to escort her home."

"You arranged well," said Angela, inclined to laugh at his easy
audacity, "but le bon Dieu was evidently not of your opinion,--and you
must remember that the most excellent arrangements are not always
carried out."

"True!" and Fontenelle smiled, "In the case of the fascinating Sylvie,
I do not know when I have had so much trouble about a woman. It is
interesting, but vexatious. Sometimes I think I shall have to give up
and gallop off the hunting-field altogether--"

"Excuse me, Marquis," said Angela coldly, "Sylvie Hermenstein is my
friend--pray understand that I cannot allow her to be spoken of in the
tone of badinage you are pleased to assume."

He looked up with a curious air of surprise and mock penitence.

"Pardon! But there is no badinage at all about the very serious
position in which I find myself," he said, "You, mademoiselle, as a
woman, have not the slightest idea of the anxiety and trouble your
charming sex gives to ours. That is, of course, when you are
charming--which is not always. Now Sylvie, your friend Sylvie--is so
distinctly charming that she becomes provoking and irritating. I am
sure she has told you I am a terrible villain . . ."

"She has never said so,--never spoken one word against you!" interposed
Angela.

"No? That is curious--very curious! But then Sylvie is curious. You see
the position is this;--I wish to give her all I am worth in the world,
but she will not have it,--I wish to love her, but she will not be
loved--"

"Perhaps," said Angela, gaining courage to speak plainly, "Perhaps your
love is not linked with honour?"

"Honour?" echoed the Marquis, lifting his finely arched eyebrows, "You
mean marriage? No--I confess I am not guilty of so much impudence. For
why should the brilliant Sylvie become the Marquise Fontenelle? It
would be a most unhappy fate for her, because if there WERE a Marquise
Fontenelle, my principles would oblige me to detest her!"

"You would detest your own wife!" said Angela surprised.

"Naturally! It is the fashion. To love one's wife would be petite
bourgoisie--nothing more absurd! It is the height of good form to
neglect one's wife and adore one's mistress,--the arrangement works
perfectly and keeps a man well balanced,--perpetual complaint on one
side, perpetual delight on the other."

He laughed, and his eyes twinkled satirically.

"Are you serious?" asked Angela.

"I never was more serious in my life," declared the Marquis
emphatically, "With all my heart I wish to make the delicious pink and
white Sylvie happy,--I am sure I could succeed in my way. If I should
ever allow myself to do such a dull thing as to marry,--imagine
it!--such a dull and altogether prosy thing!--my gardener did it
yesterday;--I should of course choose a person with a knowledge of
housekeeping and small details,--her happiness it would be quite
unnecessary to consider. The maintenance of the establishment, the
servants, and the ever increasing train of milliners and dressmakers
would be enough to satisfy Madame la Marquise's ambitions. But for
Sylvie,--half-fairy, half-angel as she is,--there must be poetry and
moonlight, flowers, and romance, and music, and tender
nothings,--marriage does not consort with these delights. If you were a
little school-girl, dear Donna Sovrani, I should not talk to you in
this way,--it would not be proper,--it would savour of Lord Byron, and
Maeterlinck, and Heinrich Heine, and various other wicked persons. It
would give you what the dear governesses would call 'les idees folles',
but being an artist, a great artist, you will understand me. Now, you
yourself--you will not marry?"

"I am to be married next year if all is well, to Florian Varillo," said
Angela, "Surely you know that?"

"I have heard it, but I will not believe it," said the Marquis airily,
"No, no, you will never marry this Florian! Do not tell me of it! You
yourself will regret it. It is impossible! You could not submit to
matrimonial bondage. If you were plain and awkward I should say to you,
marry, and marry quickly, it is the only thing for you!--but being what
you are, charming and gifted, why should you be married? For
protection? Every man who has once had the honour of meeting you will
constitute himself your defender by natural instinct. For
respectability? Ah, but marriage is no longer respectable,--the whole
estate of matrimony is as full of bribery and corruption as the French
War Office."

He threw himself back in his chair and laughed, running one hand
through his hair with a provoking manner of indifferent ease and
incorrigible lightheartedness.

"I cannot argue with you on the matter," said Angela, rather vexedly,
"Your ideas of life never will be mine,--women look at these things
differently . . ."

"Poor dear women! Yes!--they do," said the Marquis, "And that is such a
pity,--they spoil all the pleasure of their lives. Now, just think for
a moment what your friend Sylvie is losing! A devoted, ardent and
passionate lover who would spare no pains to make her happy,--who would
cherish her tenderly, and make her days a dream of romance! I had
planned in my mind such a charming boudoir for Sylvie, all ivory and
white satin,--flowers, and a soft warm light falling through the
windows,--imagine Sylvie, with that delicate face of hers and white
rose skin, a sylph clad in floating lace and drapery, seen in a faint
pink hue as of a late sunset! You are an artist, mademoiselle, and you
can picture the fairy-like effect! I certainly am not ashamed to say
that this exquisite vision occupies my thoughts,--it is a suggestion of
beauty and deliciousness in a particularly ugly and irksome world,--but
to ask such a dainty creature as Sylvie to be my housekeeeper, and make
up the tradesmen's books, I could not,--it would be sheer insolence on
my part,--it would be like asking an angel just out of heaven to cut
off her wings and go downstairs and cook my dinner!"

"You please yourself and your own fanciful temperament by those
arguments," said Angela,--"but they are totally without principle. Oh,
why," and raising her eyes, she fixed them on him with an earnest look,
"Why will you not understand? Sylvie is good and pure,--why would you
persuade her to be otherwise?"

Fontenelle rose and took one or two turns up and down the room before
replying.

"I expect you will never comprehend me," he said at last, stopping
before Angela, "In fact, I confess sometimes I do not comprehend
myself. Of course Sylvie is good and pure--I know that;--I should not
be so violently in love with her if she were not--but I do not see that
her acceptance of me as a lover would make her anything else than good
and pure. Because I know that she would be faithful to me."

"Faithful to you--yes!--while you were faithless to her!" said Angela,
with a generous indignation in her voice, "You would expect her to be
true while you amused yourself with other women. A one-sided
arrangement truly!"

The Marquis seemed unmoved.

"Every relation between the sexes is one-sided," he declared, "It is
not my fault! The woman gives all to one,--the man gives a little to
many. I really am not to blame for falling in with this general course
of things. You look very angry with me, Donna Sovrani, and your eyes
positively abash me;--you are very loyal to your friend and I admire
you for it; but after all, why should you be so hard upon me? I am no
worse than Varillo."

Angela started, and her cheeks crimsoned.

"Than Varillo? What do you mean?"

"Well, Varillo has Pon-Pon,--of course she is useful--what he would do
without her I am sure I cannot imagine,--still she IS Pon-Pon."

He paused, checked by Angela's expression.

"Please explain yourself, Marquis," she said in cold, calm accents, "I
am at a loss to understand you."

Fontenelle glanced at her and saw that her face had grown as pale as it
was recently flushed, and that her lips were tightly set; and in a
vague way he was sorry to have spoken. But he was secretly chafing at
everything,--he was angry that Sylvie had escaped him,--and angrier
still that Donna Sovrani should imply by her manner, if not by her
words, that she considered him an exceptional villain, when he himself
was aware that nearly all the men of his "Cercle" resembled him.

"Pon-Pon is Signor Varillo's model," he said curtly, "I thought you
were aware of it. She appears in nearly all his pictures."

Angela breathed again.

"Oh, is that all!" she murmured, and laughed.

Fontenelle opened his eyes a little, amazed at her indifference. What a
confiding, unsuspecting creature was this "woman of genius"! This time,
however, he was discreet, and kept his thoughts to himself.

"That is all," he said, "But . . . artists have been known to admire
their models in more ways than one."

"Yes," said Angela tranquilly, "But Florian is entirely different to
most men."

The Marquis was moved to smile, but did not. He merely bowed with a
deep and reverential courtesy.

"You have reason to know him best," he said, "and no doubt he deserves
your entire confidence. For me--I willingly confess myself a
vaurien--but I assure you I am not as bad as I seem. Your friend Sylvie
is safe from me."

Angela's eyes lightened,--her mind was greatly relieved.

"You will leave her to herself--" she began.

"Certainly I will leave her to herself. She will not like it, but I
will do it! She is going away to-morrow,--I found that out from her
maid. Why will you beautiful ladies keep maids? They are always ready
to tell a man everything for twenty or forty francs. So simple!--so
cheap!--Sylvie's maid is my devoted adherent,--and why?--not only on
account of the francs, but because I have been careful to secure her
sweetheart as my valet, and he depends upon me to set him up in
business. So you see how easy it is for me to be kept aware of all my
fair lady's movements. This is how I learned that she is going away
to-morrow--and this is why I came here to-day. She has given me the
slip--she has avoided me and now I will avoid her. We shall see the
result. I think it will end in a victory for me."

"Never!" said Angela, "You will never win Sylvie to your way of
thinking, but it is quite possible she may win you!"

"That would be strange indeed," said the Marquis lightly, "The world is
full of wonders, but that would be the most wonderful thing that ever
happened in it! Commend me to the fair Comtesse, Mademoiselle, and tell
her it is _I_ who am about to leave Paris."

"Where are you going?" asked Angela impulsively.

"Ah, feminine curiosity!" said the Marquis laughing, "How it leaps out
like a lightning flash, even through the most rigid virtue! Chere
Mademoiselle, where I am going is my own secret, and not even your
appealing looks will drag it out of me! But I am in no hurry to go
away; I shall not fly off by the midnight train, or the very early one
in the morning, as your romantic friend the Comtesse Sylvie will
probably do,--I have promised the Abbe Vergniaud to hear him preach on
Sunday. I shall listen to a farewell sermon and try to benefit by
it,--after that I take a long adieu of France;--be good enough to say
to the Countesse with my humblest salutations!"

He bowed low over Angela's hand, and with a few more light parting
words took his graceful presence out of the room, and went down the
stairs humming a tune as he departed.

After he had gone Angela sat for some minutes in silence thinking. Then
she went to her desk and wrote a brief note to the Comtesse as
follows:--

"Dear Sylvie: Dismiss your maid. She is in the employ of Fontenelle and
details to him all your movements. He has been here for half an hour
and tells me that he takes a long adieu of France after Sunday, and he
has promised me to LEAVE YOU TO YOURSELF. I am sure you are glad of
this. My uncle and I go to Rome next week.

"ANGELA."

She sealed and marked the envelope "private", and ringing the bell for
her man-servant requested him to deliver it himself into the hands of
the Comtesse Hermenstein. This matter dismissed from her mind she went
to a portfolio full of sketches, and turned them over and over till she
came to one dainty, small picture entitled, "Phillida et les Roses". It
was a study of a woman's nude figure set among branching roses, and was
signed "Florian Varillo". Angela looked at it long and earnestly,--all
the delicate flesh tints contrasting with the exquisite hues of red and
white roses were delineated with wonderful delicacy and precision of
touch, and there was a nymph-like grace and modesty about the woman's
form and the drooping poise of her head, which was effective yet subtle
in suggestion. Was it a portrait of Pon-Pon? Angry with herself Angela
tried to put the hateful but insinuating thought away from her,--it was
the first slight shadow on the fairness of her love-dream,--and it was
like one of those sudden clouds crossing a bright sky which throws a
chill and depression over the erstwhile smiling landscape. To doubt
Florian seemed like doubting her own existence. She put the "Phillida"
picture back in the portfolio and paced slowly to and fro in her
studio, considering deeply. Love and Fame--Fame and Love! She had
both,--and yet Aubrey Leigh had said such fortune seldom fell to the
lot of a woman as to possess the two things together. Might it not be
her destiny to lose one of them? If so, which would she prefer to keep?
Her whole heart, her whole impulses cried out, "Love"! Her intellect
and her ambitious inward soul said, "Fame"! And something higher and
greater than either heart, intellect, or soul whispered to her inmost
self, "Work!--God bids you do what is in you as completely as you can
without asking for a reward of either Love or Fame." "But," she argued
with herself, "for a woman Love is so necessary to the completion of
life." And the inward monitor replied, "What kind of Love? Ephemeral or
immortal? Art is sexless;--good work is eternal, no matter whether it
is man or woman who has accomplished it." And then a great sigh broke
from Angela's lips as she thought, "Ah, but the world will never own
woman's work to be great even if it be so, because men give the
verdict, and man's praise is for himself and his own achievements
always." "Man's praise," went on the interior voice, "And what of God's
final justice? Have you not patience to wait for that, and faith to
work for it?" Again Angela sighed; then happening to look up; in the
direction of the music-gallery which occupied one end of her studio
where the organ was fitted, she saw a fair young face peering down at
her over the carved oak railing, and recognised Manuel. She
smiled;--her two or three days' knowledge of him had been more than
sufficient to win her affection and interest.

"So you are up there!" she said, "Is my uncle sleeping?"

"No," replied Manuel, "he is writing many letters to Rome. Will you
come and play to me?"

"Willingly!" and Angela went lightly up the winding steps of the
gallery, "But you have been out all day,--are you not tired?"

"No, not now. I WAS weary,--very weary of seeing and hearing so many
false things . . ."

"False things?" echoed Angela thoughtfully, as she seated herself at
the organ, "What were they?"

"Churches principally," said Manuel quietly; "How sad it is that people
should come into those grand buildings looking for Christ and never
finding Him!"

"But they are all built for the worship of Christ," said Angela,
pressing her small white fingers on the organ keys, and drawing out one
or two deep and solemn sounds by way of prelude, "Why should you think
He is not in them?"

"He cannot be," answered Manuel, "They are all unlike Him! Remember how
poor he was!--He told His followers to despise all riches and worldly
praise!--and now see how the very preachers try to obtain notice and
reward for declaring His simple word! The churches seem quite empty of
Him,--and how empty too must be the hearts and souls of all the poor
people who go to such places to be comforted!"

Angela did not reply,--her hands had unconsciously wandered into the
mazes of a rich Beethoven voluntary, and the notes, firm, grand, and
harmonious, rolled out in the silence with a warm deep tenderness that
thrilled the air as with a rhythmic beat of angels' wings. Lost in
thought, she scarcely knew what she played, nor how she was
playing,--but she was conscious of a sudden and singular exaltation of
spirit,--a rush of inward energy that was almost protest,--a force
which refused to be checked, and which seemed to fill her to the very
finger tips with ardours not her own,--martyrs going to the destroying
flames might have felt as she felt then. There was a grave sense of
impending sorrow hanging over her, mingled with a strong and prayerful
resolve to overcome whatever threatened her soul's peace,--and she
played on and on, listening to the rushing waves of sound which she
herself evoked, and almost losing herself in a trance of thought and
vision. And in this dreamy, supersensitive condition, she imagined that
even Manuel's face fair and innocent as it was, grew still more
beautiful,--a light, not of the sun's making, seemed to dwell like an
aureole in his clustering hair and in his earnest eyes,--and a smile
sweeter than any she had ever seen, seemed to tremble on his lips as
she looked at him.

"You are thinking beautiful things," he said gently, "And they are all
in the music. Shall I tell you about them?"

She nodded assent, while her fingers, softly pressing out the last
chord of Beethoven's music, wandered of their own will into the
melancholy pathos of a Schubert "Reverie."

"You are thinking of the wonderful plan of the world," he said,--"Of
all the fair and glorious things God has made for those who love Him!
Of the splendour of Faith and Hope and Courage,--of the soul's divine
origin and responsibility,--and all the joy of being able to say to the
Creator of the whole universe, 'Our Father!' You are thinking--because
you know--that not a note of the music you are playing now fails to
reach the eternal spheres,--echoing away from your touch, it goes
straight to its mark,--sent with the soul's expression of love and
gratitude, it flies to the centre of the soul's worship. Not a
pulsation of true harmony is lost! You are thinking how grand it is to
live a sweet and unsullied life, full of prayer and endeavour, keeping
a spirit white and clean as the light itself, a spirit dwelling on the
verge of earth but always ready to fly heavenward!--You are thinking
that no earthly reward, no earthly love, no earthly happiness, though
good in itself, can ever give you such perfect peace and joy as is
found in loving, serving, and obeying God, and suffering His will to be
entirely worked in you!"

Angela listened, deeply moved--her heart throbbed quickly,--how
wonderfully the boy expressed himself!--with what sweetness,
gentleness, and persuasion! She would have ceased playing, but that
something imperative urged her to go on,--and Manuel's soft voice
thrilled her strangely when he spoke again, saying--

"You know now--because your wise men are beginning to prove it--that
you can in very truth send a message to heaven."

"To heaven!" murmured Angela, "That is a long way! We know we can send
messages in a flash of lightfrom one part of the world to another--but
then there must be people to receive them--"

"And heaven is composed of millions of worlds," said Manuel, "'In my
Father's house are many mansions!" And from all worlds to all
worlds--from mansion to mansion, the messages flash! And there are
those who receive them, with such directness as can admit of no error!
And your wise men might have known this long ago if they had believed
their Master's word, 'Whatsoever is whispered in secret shall be
proclaimed on the housetops.' But you will all find out soon that it is
true, and that everything you say, and that every prayer you utter God
hears."

"My mother is in heaven," said Angela wistfully, "I wish I could send
her a message!"

"Your very wish has reached her now!" said Manuel, "How is it possible
that you in the spirit could ardently wish to communicate with one so
beloved and she not know it! Love would be no use then, and there would
be a grave flaw in God's perfect creation."

Angela ceased playing, and turned round to face the young speaker.

"Then you think we never lose those we love? And that they see us and
hear us always?"

"They must do so," said Manuel, "otherwise there would be cruelty in
creating the grace of love at all. But God Himself is Love. Those who
love truly can never be parted,--death has no power over their souls.
If one is on earth and one in heaven, what does it matter? If they were
in separate countries of the world they could hear news of each other
from time to time,--and so they can when apparent death has divided
them."

"How?" asked Angela with quick interest.

"Your wise men must tell you," said Manuel, with a grave little smile,
"I know no more than what Christ has said,--and He told us plainly that
not even a sparrow shall fall to the ground without our Father. 'Fear
not,' He said, 'Ye are more than many sparrows.' So, as there is
nothing which is useless, and nothing which is wasted, it is very
certain that love, which is the greatest of all things, cannot lose
what it loves."

Angela's eyes filled with tears, she knew not why, "Love which is the
greatest of all things cannot lose what it loves!"--How wonderfully
tender was Manuel's voice as he spoke these words!

"You have very sweet thoughts, Manuel," she said, "You would be a great
comfort to anyone in sorrow."

"That is what I have always wished to be," he answered, "But you are
not in sorrow yet,--that is to come!"

She looked up quickly.

"You think I shall have some great trouble?" she asked, with a little
tremour in her accents.

"Yes, most surely you will!" replied Manuel, "No one in the world ever
tried to be good and great at the same time without suffering
miscomprehension and bitter pain. Did not Christ say, 'In the world ye
shall have tribulation'?"

"Yes,--and I have often wondered why," said Angela musingly.

"Only that you might learn to love God best," answered Manuel with a
delicate inflexion of compassion in his voice, "And that you might know
for certain and beyond all doubt that this life is not all. There is
something better--greater--higher!--a glory that is worth winning
because immortal. 'In the world ye shall have tribulation'--yes, that
is true!--but the rest of the saying is true also--'Be of good
cheer,--I have overcome the world'!"

Moved by an impulse she could not understand, Angela suddenly turned
and extended her hands with an instinctive grace that implied reverence
as well as humility. The boy clasped them lightly then let them
go,--and without more words went softly away and left her.



XIII.

The Church of Notre Dame de Lorette in Paris with its yellow stucco
columns, and its hideous excess of paint and gilding, might be a
ball-room designed after the newest ideas of a vulgar nouveau riche
rather than a place of sanctity. The florid-minded Blondel, pupil of
the equally florid-minded Regnault, hastily sketched in some of the
theatrical frescoes in the "Chapel of the Eucharist," and a misguided
personage named Orsel, splashed out the gaudy decorations of the
"Chapel of the Virgin." The whole edifice glares at the spectator like
a badly-managed limelight, and the tricky, glittering, tawdry effect
blisters one's very soul. But here may be seen many little select
groups out of the hell of Paris,--fresh from the burning as it were,
and smelling of the brimstone,--demons who enjoy their
demonism,--satyrs, concerning whom, one feels that their polished boots
are cleverly designed to cover their animal hoofs, and that skilful
clothiers have arranged their garments so that their tails are not
perceived. But that hoofs and tails are existent would seem to be a
certainty. Here sometimes will sing a celebrated tenor, bulky and
brazen,--pouring out from his bull-throat such liquid devotional notes
as might lift the mind of the listener to Heaven ifone were not so
positive that a moral fiend sang them;--here sometimes may be seen the
stout chanteuse who is the glory of open-air cafes in the Champs
Elysees, kneeling with difficulty on a velvet hassock and actually
saying prayers. And one must own that it is an exhilarating and moving
sight to behold such a woman pretending to confess her sins, with the
full delight of them written on her face, and the avowed intention of
committing them all over again manifesting itself in every turn of her
head, every grin of her rouged lips, and every flash of her painted
eyes! For these sections out of the French "Inferno," Notre Dame de
Lorette is a good place to play penitence and feign prayer;--the
Madeleine is too classic and serene and sombre in its interior to
suggest anything but a museum, from which the proper custodian is
absent,--Notre Dame de Paris reeks too much with the blood of slain
Archbishops to be altogether comfortable,--St. Roch in its
"fashionable" congregation, numbers too many little girls who
innocently go to hear the music, and who have not yet begun to paint
their faces, to suit those whose lives are all paint and
masquerade,--and the "Lorette" is just the happy medium of a church
where, Sham being written on its walls, one is scarcely surprised to
see Sham in the general aspect of its worshippers. Among the ugly
columns, and against the heavy ceiling divided into huge raised lumps
of paint and gilding, Abbe Vergniaud's voice had often resounded,--and
his sermons were looked forward to as a kind of witty entertainment. In
the middle or the afterwards of a noisy Mass,--Mass which had been
"performed" with perhaps the bulky tenor giving the "Agnus Dei," with
as sensually dramatic an utterance as though it were a love-song in an
opera, and the "basso," shouting through the "Credo," with the deep
musical fury of the tenor's jealous rival,--with a violin "interlude,"
and a 'cello "solo,"--and a blare of trumpets at the "Elevation," as if
it were a cheap spectacle at a circus fair,--after all this
melodramatic and hysterical excitement it was a relief to see the Abbe
mount the pulpit stairs, portly but lightfooted, his black clerical
surtout buttoned closely up to his chin, his round cleanshaven face
wearing a pious but suggestive smile, his eyes twinkling with latent
satire, and his whole aspect expressing, "Welcome excellent humbugs! I,
a humbug myself, will proceed to expound Humbug!" His sermons were
generally satires on religion,--satires delicately veiled, and full of
the double-entendres so dear to the hearts of Parisians,--and their
delight in him arose chiefly from never quite knowing what he meant to
imply, or to enforce. Not that his hearers would have followed any
counsel even if he had been so misguided as to offer it; they did not
come to hear him "preach" in the full sense of the word,--they came to
hear him "say things,"--witty observations on the particular fad of the
hour--sharp polemics on the political situation--or what was still more
charming, neat remarks in the style of Rochefoucauld or Montaigne,
which covered and found excuses for vice while seemingly condemning
viciousness. There is nothing perhaps so satisfactory to persons who
pride themselves on their intellectuality, as a certain kind of
spurious philosophy which balances virtue and vice as it were on the
point of a finger, and argues prettily on the way the two can be easily
merged into each other, almost without perception. "If without
perception, then without sin," says the sophist; "it is merely a
question of balance." Certainly if generosity drifts into extravagance
you have a virtue turned into a vice;--but there is one thing these
spurious debaters cannot do, and that is to turn a vice into a virtue.
That cannot be done, and has never been done. A vice is a vice, and its
inherent quality is to "wax fat and gross," and to generally enlarge
itself;--whereas, a virtue being a part of the Spiritual quality and
acquired with difficulty, it must be continually practised, and guarded
in the practice, lest it lapse into vice. We are always forgetting that
we have been, and still are in a state of Evolution,--out of the Beast
God has made Man,--but now He expects us, with all the wisdom, learning
and experience He has given us, to evolve for ourselves from Man the
Angel,--the supreme height of His divine intention. Weak as yet on our
spiritual wings, we hark back to the Beast period only too willingly,
and sometimes not all the persuasion in the world can lift us out of
the mire wherein we elect to wallow. Nevertheless, there must be and
will be a serious day of reckoning for any professing priest of the
Church, or so-called "servant of the Gospel", who by the least word or
covert innuendo, gives us a push back into prehistoric slime and
loathliness,--and that there are numbers who do so, no one can deny.
Abbe Vergniaud had flung many a pebble of sarcasm at the half-sinking
faith of some of his hearers with the result that he had sunk it
altogether. In his way he had done as much harm as the intolerant
bigot, who when he finds persons believing devoutly in Christ, but
refusing to accept Church-authority, considers such persons atheists
and does not hesitate to call them so. The "Pharisees" in Christian
doctrine are as haughty, hypocritical and narrow as the Pharisees whom
Jesus calls "ravening wolves," and towhom He said, "Ye shut up the
Kingdom of Heaven against men; for ye neither go in yourselves, NEITHER
SUFFER YE THEM THAT ARE ENTERING TO GO IN," and "Even so ye also
outwardly appear righteous unto men, but within ye are full of
hypocrisy and iniquity." The last words, it may be said, will apply
fittingly to more than one-half of the preachers of the Gospel at the
present day!

It was a brilliant, soft autumnal Sunday morning when Cardinal Bonpre,
mindful of Abbe Vergniaud's request that he should be present to hear
him preach, took his slow and thoughtful way to the church of the
Lorette, accompanied by his niece Angela and Manuel. The building was
crammed, and had not the Abbe been previously careful to reserve seats,
and to mention the Cardinal's name to the custodian, he would have
scarcely obtained admission. As it was, however, he passed slowly up
the centre aisle without hindrance, followed by Manuel and Angela, and
watched by a good many inquisitive persons, who wondered as they
looked, who the boy was that walked after His Eminence with such easy
self-possession,--with such a noble and modest bearing, and with such a
strangely thoughtful face. A few whispered and nudged each other as
"the Sovrani" passed them, dressed in her usual quiet black, her head
slightly bent and her eyes downcast. The Marquis Fontenelle, seated in
an attitude which suggested a languid indifference to all persons and
events, lifted his bright hazel eyes as she passed,--and a sudden wave
of consciousness swept over him,--uneasy consciousness that perhaps
this small slight woman despised him. This was not quite a pleasant
reflection for a man and a Marquis to boot,--one who could boast of an
ancient and honourable family pedigree dating back to the fighting days
of Coeur-de-Lion and whose coat-of-arms was distinguished by three
white lilies of France on one of its quarterings. The lilies of
France!--emblems of honour, loyalty, truth, and chivalry!--what smudged
and trampled blossoms they seem to day! He frowned as this fancy
crossed his mind, and turned his eyes away from the following of
Angela's slight form up the aisle; and his glance fell instead on a
face he detested, because it was almost the counterpart of his
own,--the face of the great French actor Miraudin. The same
clean-shaven classic face and clustering hair,--the same glittering,
amorous hazel eyes;--the same charming and kindly smile,--all these
attributes were in Miraudin's face, indefinably coarsened, while in
Fontenelle's they remained refined and inicative of the highest
breeding. The Marquis moved uneasily in his seat,--he saw himself in
the famous actor,--himself as he would be, if he continued his career
of self-indulgence,--for Miraudin though gifted with a genius that
could move all Paris to the wildest excesses of admiration, was in
private life known as a man of detestable reputation, whose liaisons
with women were endless, but who, in his extreme egotism and
callousness had never been known to yield to the saving grace of a
"grande passion,"--one of those faithful passions which sometimes make
the greatness of both man and woman concerned, and adorn the pages of
dull history with the brilliancy of deathless romance. Was he, Guy
Beausire de Fontenelle no better, no nobler, no higher, in his desires
and ambitions than Miraudin? What was he doing with the three lilies
emblazoned on his escutcheon? He thought with a certain fretful
impatience of Sylvie, of her captivating grace, her tender eyes, her
sweet laughter, and sweeter smile. She had seemed to him a mere slight
creation of the air and the moonbeams,--something dainty that would
have melted at a touch, and dropped into his mouth, as it were, like a
French bon-bon. So he, man-like, had judged, and now lo!--the little
ethereal creature had suddenly displayed a soul of adamant--hard and
pure, and glittering as a diamond,--which no persuasion could break or
bend. She had actually kept her word!--she had most certainly left
Paris. The Marquis knew that, by the lamentable story of her dismissed
maid who had come to him with hysterical tears, declaring that "Madame"
had suddenly developed a "humeur incroyable"--and had gone away
alone,--alone, save for a little dusky-skinned Arab boy whom she had
once brought away from Biskra and had trained as an attendant,--her
"gouvernante" and companion, Madame Bozier, and her old butler who had
known her from childhood. Fontenelle felt that the dismissal of the
maid who had been such a convenient spy for him, was due to Angela
Sovrani's interference, and though angry, he was conscious of feeling
at the same time mean in himself, and miserable. To employ a servant to
play the spy on her mistress, and report to him her actions and
movements, might be worthy of a Miraudin, but was it quite the thing
for a Marquis Fontenelle? Thinking over these things his handsome face
grew flushed and anon pale again, as from time to time he stole a vexed
side glance at the easy Miraudin,--so like him in features
and--unfortunately so equally like him in morals! Meanwhile, the music
of the Mass surged round him, in thunders of the organ, wailings of
violins, groaning of 'cellos, and flutings of boys' and men's
voices,--and as the cloudy incense rose upon the air he began to weave
strange fancies in his mind, and to see in the beams of sunlight
falling through the stained glass windows a vision of the bright face
of Sylvie looking down upon him with a half-tender, half-reproving
smile,--a smile that seemed to say, "If thou lovest me, set the grace
of honour on thy love!" These were strange thoughts for him to
entertain, and he was almost ashamed of them,--but as long as the
melodies of the Mass kept rolling on and reverberating around him he
could not help thinking of them; so that he was relieved when a pause
came,--the interval for the sermon,--and Abbe Vergniaud, leisurely
mounting the steps of the pulpit, stood surveying the congregation with
the composed yet quizzical air for which he was celebrated, and waiting
till the rustling, fidgeting, coughing, snuffing, toe-scraping noises
of the congregation had settled down into comparative silence. His
attitude during this interval was suggestive. It implied contempt,
wearied patience, resignation, and a curious touch of defiance. Holding
himself very erect he rested his left hand on the elaborate sculptured
edge of the pulpit,--it was the hand on which he usually wore his ring,
a diamond of purest lustre,--but on this occasion the jewel had been
removed and the white, firm fingers, outlined against the pulpit edge,
looked as though they had just relaxed their grasp of something that
had been more or less of a trouble to retain. Nothing perhaps is so
expressive as a hand,--the face can disguise itself,--even the eyes can
lie,--but the hand never. Its shape, its movements, its attitude in
repose, give a more certain clue to character and disposition than
almost any other human feature. Thus, with the Abbe, while his left
hand suggested a "letting go," his right hand, which held a small
black-bound Testament implied defiance, grip, resolve and courage. And
when the people seated immediately around the pulpit lifted their eyes
expectantly to the popular preacher's face, several of the more
observant noticed something in his look and manner which was unfamiliar
and curiously disconcerting. If it be true, as there is every reason to
believe it is, that each human being unconsciously gives out an "aura"
of his interior personality which is made more or less powerful to
attract or repel by the nature of his intentions, and which affects the
"aura" of those with whom he is brought in contact, then Abbe Vergniaud
was this morning creating all unawares to himself a very singular
impression of uneasiness. Some of the persons thus uncomfortably
influenced coughed violently in an instinctive attempt to divert or
frustrate the preacher's mood, but even the most persistent cougher
must cease coughing at some time or another--and the Abbe was evidently
determined to wait for an absolute silence before he spoke. At last
silence came, and he opened the Testament. Holding it up to the view of
the congregation, he began with all that easy eloquence which the
French tongue gives to a cultured speaker,--his voice full and
sonorous, reaching distinctly to every part of the crowded church.

"This," he said, "is a small book which you all pretend to know. It is
so small a book that it can easily be read through in an hour. It is
the Testament;--or the Last Will and Command to the world of one Jesus
Christ, who was crucified on account of His Divinity more than eighteen
hundred years ago. I mention the fact, in case any of you have
forgotten it! It is generally understood that this book is the message
of God and the key of Faith;--upon it our churches and religious
systems are founded;--by its teaching we are supposed to order our
conduct of life--and yet,--though as I have said, it is a very small
book, and would not take you an hour to read it--none of you know any
thing about it! That is a strange thing, is it not?"

Here he leaned over the pulpit edge, and his bright eyes, coldly
satiric, flashed a comprehensive glance over the whole congregation.

"Yes, it is a strange thing, but I affirm it true,--that none of you
know anything whatever about the contents of this small volume which is
the foundation of the Christian Faith! You never read it
yourselves,--and if we priests read it to you, you never remember it!
It is a locked Mystery,--perhaps, for all we know, the greatest mystery
in the world,--and the one most worth probing! For the days seem to be
coming, if they have not already come, which were prophesied by St.
John the Divine, whom certain 'clever' men of the time have set down as
mad;--days which were described as 'shaking the powers of heaven and
creating confusion on the earth.' St. John said some strange things;
one thing in particular, concerning this very book, which reads
thus;--'I saw in the right hand of Him that sat upon the throne a book
sealed with seven seals. And I saw a strong angel proclaiming with a
loud voice; Who is worthy to open and to loose the seals thereof? And
no man in heaven or in earth was able to open the book neither to look
thereon. And I wept much because no man was found worthy to open and to
read the book, neither to look thereon.' But St. John the Divine was
mad, we are told,--madness and inspiration being judged as one and the
same thing. Well, if in these statements he is supposed to prove his
madness, I consider a doubt must be set upon everyone's sanity. For his
words are an exact description of the present period of the world's
existence and its attitude towards the Gospel of Christ,--'NO MAN IS
FOUND WORTHY TO LOOSE THE SEALS OF THE BOOK OR TO LOOK THEREON.' But I
am not going to talk to you about the seven seals. They adequately
represent our favourite 'seven deadly sins,' which have kept the book
closed since the days of the early martyrs;--and are likely to keep it
closed still. Nor shall I speak of our unworthiness to read what we
have never taken the trouble to rightly understand,--for all this would
be waste of time. It is part of our social sham to pretend we know the
Gospel,--and it is a still greater sham to assume that we have ever
tried in the smallest degree to follow its teaching. What we know of
these teachings has influenced us unconsciously, but the sayings in the
Gospel of Christ are in very truth as enveloped in mystery to each
separate individual reader as the oracles of the ancient Egyptians were
to the outside multitude. And why? Merely because, to comprehend the
teaching of Jesus we should have to think,--and we all hate thinking.
It is too much exertion,--and exertion itself is unpleasant. A quarter
of an hour's hard thinking will convince each one of us that he or she
is a very worthless and ridiculous person, and we strongly object to
any process which will, in itself, bring us to that conclusion. I say
'we' object,--that is, I and you; particularly I. I admit at once that
to appear worthless and ridiculous to the world has always seemed to me
a distressing position, and one to be avoided. Worthless and ridiculous
in my own eyes I have always been,--but that is not your affair. It is
strictly mine! And though I feel I am not worthy 'to loose the seals of
the book or look thereon,' there is one passage in it which strikes me
as particularly applicable to the present day, and from it I will
endeavour to draw a lesson for your instruction, though perhaps not for
your entertainment."

Here he paused and glanced at his hearers with an indefinable
expression of mingled scorn and humour.

"What an absurdity it is to talk of giving a 'lesson' to you!--you who
will barely listen to a friend's advice,--you who will never take a
hint for your mental education or improvement, you who are apt to fly
into a passion, or take to the sulks when you are ever so slightly
contradicted. Tiens, tiens! c'est drole! Now the words I am about to
preach from, are supposed to have been uttered by Divine lips; and if
you thoroughly believed this, you would of your own accord kneel down
and pray that you might receive them with full comprehension and ready
obedience. But you do not believe;--so I will not ask you to kneel down
in mockery, or feign to pray when you are ignorant of the very spirit
of prayer! So take the words,--without preparation, without thought,
without gratitude, as you take everything God gives you, and see what
you can make of them. 'The light of the body is the eye,--if therefore
thine eye be single, thy whole body shall be full of light. But if
thine eye be evil, thy whole body shall be full of darkness. If
therefore the light that is in thee be darkness, how great is that
darkness!'"

Here he closed the Testament, and rested it edgewise on the pulpit
cushion, keeping one hand firmly clasped upon it as he turned himself
about and surveyed the whole congregation.

"What is the exact meaning of the words, 'IF THINE EYE BE SINGLE'? It
is an expressive term; and in its curt simplicity covers a profound
truth. 'If thine eye,' namely,--the ability to see,--'be single,' that
is straight and clear, without dimness or obliquity,--'thy whole body
shall be full of light.' Christ evidently did not apply this expression
to the merely physical capability of sight,--but to the moral and
mental, or psychic vision. It matters nothing really to the infinite
forces around us, whether physically speaking, we are able to see, or
whether we are born blind; but spiritually, it is the chief necessity
of our lives that we should be able to see straight morally. Yet that
is what we can seldom or never do. Modern education, particularly
education in France, provides us at once with a double psychic lens,
and a side-squint into the bargain! Seeing straight would be too
primitive and simple for us. But Christ says, 'If thine eye be evil,
thy whole body shall be full of darkness.' Now this word 'evil,' as set
in juxtaposition to the former term 'single,' evidently implies a
double sight or perverted vision. With this 'evil,' or double sight,
our whole body 'shall be full of darkness.' Very well, my friends, if
this be true,--(and you surely must believe it true, otherwise you
would not support churches for the exposition of the truth as spoken by
the Founder of our Faith;--) then we are children of the dark indeed! I
doubt if one amongst us,--for I include myself with you,--can be said
to see clearly with a straight psychic vision. The straight psychic
vision teaches us that God is the Creator of all things,--God is Light
and Love,--God desires good from us, and from every particle of his
creation;--but the double or perverted line of sight offers a different
view and declares, 'This life is short and offers many pleasures. I
cannot be sure of God because I have never seen Him;--the Universe is
certainly very majestic, and somewhat startling to me in its exact
mathematical proportions; but I have no more to do with it than has a
grain of sand;--my lot is no more important than that of the midge in
the sunbeam;--I live,--I breed--I die;--and it matters to no one but
myself how I do these three things, provided I satisfy my nature.' This
is the Philosophy of the Beast, and it is just now very fashionable. It
is 'la haute mode' both in France, and England, Italy, and Spain. Only
young America seem to be struggling for a Faith,--a Christian
Faith;--it has almost, albeit faintly and with a touching indecision,
asked for such a Faith from the Pope,--who has however declared it to
be impossible in these words addressed to Cardinal Gibbons, 'Discussion
of the principles of the Church cannot be tolerated even in the United
States. There can only be one interpreter, the Pope. In the matter of
discipline, concessions may be allowed, but in doctrine none.' Mark the
words, 'cannot be tolerated'! Consider what stability a Faith can have
whose principles may not be discussed! Yet the authority of the Church
is, we are told the authority of God Himself. How is this? We can
discuss God and His principles. He 'tolerates' us while we search for
His laws, and stand amazed and confounded before His marvellous
creation. The more we look for Him the more He gives Himself gloriously
to us; and Christ declares 'Seek and ye shall find,'--the Church says
'Seek and ye shall not be tolerated'! How are we to reconcile these two
assertions? We do not reconcile them; we cannot; it is a case of double
sight,--oblique and perverted psychic vision. Christ spoke
plainly;--the Church speaks obscurely. Christ gave straight
commands,--we fly in the face of them and openly disobey them. Truth
can always be 'discussed,' and Truth MUST be 'tolerated' were a
thousand Holy Fathers to say it nay! But note again the further words
to America, 'There can only be one interpreter,--the Pope. In the
matter of discipline, concessions may be allowed, but in doctrine
none.' Let us examine into this doctrine. It is the doctrine of Christ,
plain and straightforward; enunciated in such simple words that even a
child can understand them. But the Church announces with a strident
voice that there can only be one interpreter,--the Pope. Nevertheless
Truth has a more resonant voice than even that of the Church. Truth
cries out at this present day, 'Unless you will listen to Me who am the
absolute utterance of God, who spake by the prophets, who spake through
Christ,--who speaks through Christ and all things still,--your little
systems, your uncertain churches, your inefficient creeds, your
quarrelsome sects, shall crumble away into dust and ruins! For humanity
is waiting for the true Church of Christ; the one pure House of Praise
from which all sophistry, all superstition and vanity shall have fled,
and only God in the Christ-Miracle and the perfection of His Creation
shall remain!' And there is no more sure foundation for this
much-needed House of Praise than the Catholic Church,--the word
'catholic' being applied in its widest sense, meaning a 'Universal'
answering to the needs of all;--and I am willing to maintain that the
ROMAN Catholic Church has within it the vital germ of a sprouting
perfection. If it would utterly discard pomp and riches, if it would
set its dignity at too high an estimate for any wish to meddle in
temporal or political affairs, if it would firmly trample down all
superstition, idolatry and bigotry, and 'use no vain repetition as the
heathen do'--to quote Christ's own words,--if in place of ancient dogma
and incredible legendary lore, it would open its doors to the marvels
of science, the miracles and magnificence daily displayed to us in the
wonderful work of God's Universe, then indeed it might obtain a lasting
hold on mankind. It might conquer Buddhism, and Christianize the whole
earth. But--'If thine eye be evil thy whole body shall be full of
darkness,'--and while the Church remains double-sighted we are bound
also to see double. And so we listen with a complete and cynical
atheism to the conventional statement that 'one man alone' shall
interpret Christ's teaching to us of the Roman following,--and this man
an old frail teacher, whose bodily and intellectual powers are, in the
course of nature, steadily on the decline. Why we ask, must an aged man
be always elected to decide on the teaching of the ever-young and
deathless Christ?--to whom the burden of years was unknown, and whose
immortal spirit, cased for a while in clay, saw ever the rapt vision of
'old things being made new'? In all other work but this of religious
faith, men in the prime of life are selected to lead,--men of energy,
thought, action, and endeavour,--but for the sublime and difficult task
of lifting the struggling human soul out of low things to lofty, an old
man, weak, and tottering on the verge of the grave, is set before us as
our 'infallible' teacher! There is something appalling in the fact,
that look where we may, no profession holds out much chance of power or
authority to any man past sixty, but the Head of the Church may be so
old that he can hardly move one foot before the other, yet he is
permitted to be declared the representative of the ever-working,
ever-helping, ever-comforting Christ, who never knew what it was to be
old! Enough, however of this strange superstition which is only one of
many in the Church, and which are all the result of double or perverted
sight,--I come to the last part of the text which runs, 'If therefore
the light in thee be darkness how great is that darkness.' IF THEREFORE
THE LIGHT IN THEE BE DARKNESS! My friends, that is exactly my
condition, and has been my condition ever since I was twenty. The light
in me has been darkness. The intellectual quality of my brain which has
helped me to attain my present false position among you . . ."

Here he paused, for there was a distinct movement of surprise among his
audience, which till now, had remained to a man so still that the buzz
of a fly on the window-pane sounded almost as loud as the drone of a
bag-pipe,--then with a faint smile on his lips he resumed,--

"I hope you all heard my words distinctly! I said, the false position I
have attained among you. I repeat it lest there should be any mistake.
It IS a false position and always has been. I have never for an instant
believed half what I have asked you to believe! And I have preached to
you what I have never dreamed of practising! Yet I venture to say that
I am not worse than most of my brethren. The intellectual men of
France, whether clergy or laity, are in a difficult situation. Their
brains are keen and clear; and, intellectually speaking, they are
totally unable to accept the Church superstitions of the tenth and
twelfth centuries. But in rejecting superstition it would have been
quite possible to have held them fast to a sublime faith in God and an
Immortal Future, had the Church caught them when slipping, and risen to
the mental demand made upon her resources. But the old worn-out thunder
of the Vatican, which lately made a feeble noise in America, has rolled
through France with the same assertion, 'Discussion cannot be
tolerated'; and what has been the result? Simply this,--that all the
intellectual force of the country is arrayed against priestcraft;--and
the spirit of an insolent, witty, domineering atheism and materialism
rules us all. Even young children can be found by the score who laugh
at the very idea of a God, and who fling a jeer at the story of the
Crucifixion of Christ,--while vice and crime are tolerated and often
excused. Moral restraint is being less and less enforced, and the
clamouring for sensual indulgence has become so incessant that the
desire of the whole country, if put into one line, might be summed up
in the impotent cry of the Persian voluptuary Omar Khayyam to his god,
'Reconcile the law to my desires'. This is as though a gnat should seek
to build a cathedral, and ask for the laws of architecture to be
altered in order to suit his gnat-like capacity. The Law is the Law;
and if broken, brings punishment. The Law makes for good,--and if we
pull back for evil, destroys us in its outward course. Vice breeds
corruption in body and in soul; and history furnishes us with more than
sufficient examples of that festering disease. It is plainly demanded
of us that we should assist God's universe in its way towards
perfection; if we refuse, and set a drag on the majestic Wheel, we are
ourselves crushed in its progress. Here is where our Church errs in the
present generation. It is setting itself as a drag on the Wheel.
Meanwhile, Truth advances every day, and with no uncertain voice
proclaims the majesty of God. Heaven's gates are thrown open;--the
secrets of the stars are declared,--the mysteries of light and sound
are discovered; and we are approaching possibly to the time when the
very graves shall give up their dead, and the secrets of all men's
hearts shall be made manifest. Yet we go on lying, deceiving, cajoling,
humbugging each other and ourselves;--living a daily life of fraud and
hypocrisy, with a sort of smug conviction in our souls that we shall
never be found out. We make a virtue of animalism, and declare the
Beast-Philosophy to be in strict keeping with the order of nature. We
gloat over our secret sins, and face the world with a brazen front of
assumed honour. Oh, we are excellent liars all! But somehow we never
seem to think we are fools as well! We never remember that all we do
and all we say, is merely the adding of figures to a sum which in the
end must be made up to the grand total, and paid! Every figure
tells;--the figure 'nought' especially, puts an extra thousand on the
whole quantity! But the light in us being darkness, how great is that
darkness! So great that we refuse to look an inch before us! We will
not see, we will not understand,--we utterly decline to accept any
teaching or advice which might inflict some slight inconvenience on our
own Ego. And so we go on day after day, till all at once a reckoning is
called and death stares us in the face. What! So soon finished? All
over? Must we go at once, and no delay? Must we really and truly drop
all our ridiculous lies and conventions and be sent away naked-souled
into the Living Unknown? Not the Dead Unknown remember!--for nothing is
actually dead! The whole universe palpitates and burns with ever
re-created life. What have we done with the past life?--and what shall
we do with this other life? Oh, but there is no time to ask questions
now,--we should have asked them before; the hour of departure is come,
and there is not a moment's breathing time! Our dear friends (if we
have any), and our paid doctors and servants stand around us
awe-struck,--they watch out last convulsive shudder--and weep--not so
much for sorrow sometimes as terror,--and then when all is over, they
say we are 'gone'. Yes,--we are gone--but where? Well, we shall each of
us find that out, my friends, when we pass away from Popes, Churches,
Creeds, and Conventions to the majesty of the actual Glory! Shall we
pray then? Shall we weep? Shall we talk of rituals? Shall we say this
or that form of prayer was the true one?--this or that creed was the
'only' one? Shall we complain of our neighbours?--or shall we not
suddenly realise that there never was but one way of life and progress
through creation,--the good and pure, the truthful and courageous, as
taught with infinite patience by the God-Man, and that wheresoever we
have followed our own inclinations rather than His counsel, then our
OWN action, not God's punishment, condemns us,--our OWN words, not
God's, re-echo back our sins upon ourselves!"

He paused, looking everywhere around him,--all his hearers were
listening with an almost breathless attention.

"Oh, yes! I know the charm of sin!" he continued with mingled mockery
and passion vibrating in his voice;--"The singular fascination of pure
devilry! All of you know it too,--those of you who court the world's
applause on the stage, or in the salons of art and literature, and who
pretend that by your work you are elevating and assisting humanity,
while in your own private lives you revel in such vice as the very dogs
you keep might be ashamed of! There is no beast so bestial as man at
his worst! And some of you whom I know, glory in being seen at your
worst always. There are many among you here to-day whose sole excuse
for a life of animalism is, that it is your nature, 'I live according
to my temperament,--my disposition,--I do not wish to change
myself--you cannot change me; I am as I am made'! So might the thief
argue as he steals his neighbour's money,--so may the murderer console
himself as he stabs his victim! 'It is my nature to stab and to
steal--it is my nature to live as a beast--I do not wish to change; you
cannot change me'. Now if these arguments were true, and hold good, man
would be still where he begun,--in the woods and caves,--an uncouth
savage with nothing save an animal instinct to lead him where he could
find food. But even this earliest instinct, savage though it was,
taught him that something higher than himself had made him, and so he
began to creep on by slow degrees towards that higher at once; hence
instinct led to reason, and reason to culture and civilization. And now
having touched as high a point of experience and knowledge as the
ancient Assyrians and Egyptians attained before their decline, he is
beginning even as they did, to be weary and somewhat afraid of what
lies beyond in the as yet unfathomed realms of knowledge; and he half
wishes to creep back again on all-fours to the days when he was beast
merely. The close contemplation of the Angel terrifies him,--he dare
not grow his wings! Further than life, as life appears to him on its
material side, he is afraid to soar,--what lies in the far distance he
dare not consider! This is where the Pause comes in all progress,--the
hesitation, the doubt, the fear;--the moment when the Creature draws so
near to his Creator that he is dazzled and confounded. And it is a
strange fact that he is always left alone,--alone with his own Will, in
every such grand crisis. He has been helped so much by divine
influences, that he is evidently considered strong enough to decide his
own fate. He is strong enough,--he has sufficient reason and knowledge
to decide it for the Highest, if he would. But, with national culture
goes national luxury,--the more civilised a community, the greater its
bodily ease,--the more numerous the temptations against which we are
told we must fight. Spirit flies forward--Body pulls back. But Spirit
is one day bound to win! We have attained in this generation a certain
knowledge of Soul-forces--and we are on a verge, where, if we hesitate,
we are lost, and must recoil upon our own Ego as the centre of all
desire. But if we go on boldly and leave our own Ego behind, we shall
see the gates of Heaven opening indeed, and all the Mysteries unveiled!
How often we pause on the verge of better things, doubting whether to
rise or grovel! The light in us is darkness, and how great is that
darkness! Such is the state of mind in which I, your preacher, have
found myself for many years! I do not know whether to rise or
grovel,--to sink or soar! To be absolutely candid with you, I am quite
sure that I should not sink in your opinion for confessing myself to be
as outrageous in my conceptions of mortality as many of you are. You
would possibly pretend to be ashamed of me, but in your hearts you
would like me all the better. The sinking or the soaring of my nature
has therefore nothing whatever to do with you. It is a strictly
personal question. But what I specially wish to advise you of this
morning,--taking myself as an example,--is that none of you, whether
inclined to virtue or to vice, should remain such arrant fools as to
imagine that your sins will not find you out. They will,--the instant
they are committed, their sole mission is to start on your track, and
hunt you down! I cannot absolutely vouch to you that there is a
God,--but I am positive there is a hidden process of mathematics going
on in the universe which sums up our slightest human affairs with an
exactitude which at the least is amazing. Twenty-five years ago I did a
great wrong to a human creature who was innocent, and who absolutely
trusted me. There is no crime worse than this, yet it seemed to me
quite a trifling affair,--an amusement--a nothing! I was perfectly
aware that by some excessively straightlaced people it might be termed
a sin; but my ideas of sin were as easy and condoning as yours are. I
never repented it,--I can hardly say I ever thought of it,--if I did I
excused myself quickly, and assured my own conscience in the usual way,
that the fault was merely the result of circumstances over which I had
no control. Oh, those uncontrollable circumstances! How convenient they
are! And what a weak creature they make of man, who at other times than
those of temptation, is wont to assert himself master of this planet!
Master of a planet and cannot control a vice! Excellent! Well,--I
never, as I say, thought of the wrong I had done,--but if _I_ forgot
it, some One or some Thing remembered it! Yes--remembered it!--put it
down--chronicled it with precision as to time and place,--and set it, a
breathing fact, before me in my old age,--a living witness of my own
treachery."

He paused, the congregation stirred,--the actor Miraudin looked up at
him with a surprised half-smile. Angela Sovrani lifted her beautiful
violet eyes towards him in amazed compassion,--Cardinal Bonpre,
recalling the Abbe previous confession to him, bent his head, deeply
moved.

"Treachery," resumed Vergniaud determinedly, "Is always a covert thing.
We betray each other in the dark, with silent foot-steps and sibilant
voices. We whisper our lies. We concoct our intrigues with carefully
closed doors. I did so. I was a priest of the Roman Church as I am now;
it would never have done for a priest to be a social sinner! I
therefore took every precaution to hide my fault;--but out of my lie
springs a living condemnation; from my carefully concealed hypocrisy
comes a blazonry of truth, and from my secret sin comes an open
vengeance . . ."

At the last words the loud report of a pistol sounded through the
building . . . there was a puff of smoke, a gleam of flame, and a
bullet whizzed straight at the head of the preacher! The congregation
rose, en masse, uttering exclamations of terror,--but before anyone
could know exactly what had happened the smoke cleared, and the Abbe
Vergniaud was seen leaning against the steps of the pulpit, pale but
uninjured, and in front of him stood the boy Manuel with arms
outstretched, and a smile on his face. The bullet had split the pulpit
immediately above him. An excited group assembled round them
immediately, and the Abbe was the first to speak.

"I am not hurt!--" he said quickly--"See to the boy! He sprang in front
of me and saved my life."

But Manuel was equally unhurt, and waived aside all enquiries and
compliments. And while eager questions were poured out and answered, a
couple of gendarmes were seen struggling in the centre of the church
with a man who seemed to have the power of a demon, so fierce and
frantic were his efforts to escape.

"Ah, voila! The assassin!" cried Miraudin, hastening to give assistance.

"The assassin!" echoed a dozen other persons pressing in the same
direction.

Vergniaud heard, and gave one swift glance at Cardinal Bonpre who,
though startled by the rapidity and excitement of the scene that had
occurred, was equal to the occasion, and understood his friend's appeal
at once, even before he said hurriedly,

"Monseigneur! Tell them to let him go!--or--bring him face to face with
me!"

The Cardinal endeavoured to pass through the crowd, but though some
made way for him on account of his ecclesiastical dignity, others
closed in, and he found it impossible to move more than a few steps.
Then Vergniaud, moved by a sudden resolve, raised himself a little, and
resting one hand on the shoulder of Manuel, who still remained on the
steps of the pulpit in front of him, he called,

"Let Monsieur the assassin come here to me! I have a word to say to
him!"

Through the swaying, tumultuous, murmuring throng came a sudden
stillness, and everyone drew back as the gendarmes responding to Abbe
Vergniaud's command, pushed their way along, dragging and hustling
their prisoner between them,--a young black-browed, black-eyed peasant
with a handsome face and proud bearing, whose defiant manner implied
that having made one fierce struggle for liberty and finding it in
vain, he was now disdainfully resigned to the inevitable. When brought
face to face with the Abbe he lifted his head, and flashed his dark
eyes upon him with a look of withering contempt. His lips parted,--he
seemed about to speak when his glance accidentally fell upon
Manuel,--then something caused him to hesitate,--he checked himself on
the very verge of speech and remained silent. The Abbe surveyed him
with something of a quizzical half-admiring smile, then addressing the
gendarmes he said,

"Let him go!"

The men looked up astonished, doubting whether they had heard aright.

"Let him go!" repeated the Abbe firmly, "I have no accusation to make
against him. Had he killed me he would have been perfectly justified!
Let him go!"

"Cher Abbe!" remonstrated the Marquis Fontenelle, who had made himself
one of the group immediately around the pulpit, "Is not this a mistake
on your part? Let me advise you not to be so merciful . . ."

"'Blessed are the merciful for they shall obtain mercy'"! quoted the
Abbe with a strange smile, while his breath came and went quickly, and
his face grew paler as he spoke. "Set him free, messieurs, if you
please! I decline to prosecute my own flesh and blood! I will be
answerable for his future conduct,--I am entirely answerable for his
past! He is my son!"



XIV.

No one ever afterwards quite knew how the crowd in the church broke up
and dispersed itself after this denouement. For a few minutes the crush
of people round the pulpit was terrific; all eyes were fixed on the
young black-browed peasant who had so nearly been a parricide,--and on
the father who publicly exonerated him,--and then there came a pressing
towards the doors which was excessively dangerous to life and limb.
Cardinal Bonpre, greatly moved by the whole unprecedented scene, placed
himself in front of Angela as a shield and defence from the crowd; but
before he had time to consider how he should best pilot her through the
pushing and scrambling throng, a way was made for him by Manuel,
who,--with a quiet step and unruffled bearing,--walked through the
thickest centre of the crowd, which parted easily on either side of
him, as though commanded to do so by some unheard but absolute
authority. Admiring and wondering glances were turned upon the boy,
whose face shone with such a grave peace and sweetness;--he had saved
the Abbe's life, the people whispered, by springing up the steps of the
pulpit, and throwing himself between the intended victim and the bullet
of his assailant. Who was he? Where did he come from? No one knew;--he
was merely the attendant of that tall ascetic-looking Cardinal, the
uncle of the famous Sovrani. So the words ran from mouth to mouth, as
Felix Bonpre and his niece moved slowly through the throng, following
Manuel;--then, when they had passed, there came a general hubbub and
confusion once more, and the people hustled and elbowed each other
through the church regardless of consequences, eager to escape and
discuss among themselves the sensation of the morning.

"C'est un drame! Un veritable drame!" said Miraudin, pausing, as he
found himself face to face with the Marquis Fontenelle.

Fontenelle stared haughtily.

"Did you speak to me, Monsieur?" he enquired, glancing the actor up and
down with an air of supreme disdain.

Miraudin laughed carelessly.

"Yes, I spoke to you, Marquis!" he replied, "I said that the public
confession of our dear priest Vergniaud was a veritable drame!"

"An unfortunate scandal in the Church!" said Fontenelle curtly.

"Yes!" went on the unabashed Miraudin, "If it were on the stage it
would be taken as a matter of course. An actor's follies help to
populate the world. But a priest's petite faute would seem to suggest
the crushing down of a universe!"

"Custom and usage make the rule in these things," said Fontenelle
turning away, "I have the honour to wish you good-day, Monsieur!"

"One moment!" said the actor smiling, "There is a curious personal
resemblance between you and me, Monsieur le Marquis! Have you ever
noticed it? We might almost be brothers by our looks--and also I
believe by our temperaments!"

Fontenelle's hazel eyes flashed angrily.

"I think not!" he said coldly, "A certain resemblance between totally
unrelated persons is quite common. For the rest, we are absolutely
different--absolutely!"

Again Miraudin laughed.

"As you will, Marquis!" and he raised his hat with a light,
half-mocking air, "Au revoir!"

Fontenelle scarcely acknowledged the salutation,--he was too much
annoyed. He considered it a piece of insolence on Miraudin's part to
have addressed him at all without previous introduction. It was true
that the famous actor was permitted a license not granted to the
ordinary individual,--as indeed most actors are. Even princes, who
hedge themselves round with impassable barriers to certain of their
subjects who are in all ways great and worthy of notice, unbend to the
Mime who today takes the place of the Court-jester, and allow him to
enter the royal presence, often bringing his newest wanton with him.
And there was not the slightest reason for the Marquis Fontenelle to be
at all particular in his choice of acquaintances. Yet somehow or other,
he was. The fine and sensitive instincts of a gentleman were in him,
and though in the very depths of his own conscience he knew himself to
be as much of a social actor as Miraudin was a professional
one,--though he was aware that his passions were as sensual, and
therefore as vulgar, (for sensuality is vulgarity), there was a latent
pride in him which forbade him to set himself altogether on the same
level. And now as he walked away haughtily, his fine aristocratic head
lifted a little higher in air than usual, he was excessively
irritated--with everything and everybody, but with himself in
particular. Abbe Vergniaud's sermon had stung him in several ways, and
the startling FINALE had vexed him still more.

"What folly!" he thought, as he entered his luxuriously appointed flat,
and threw himself into a chair with a kind of angry weariness, "How
utterly stupid of Vergniaud to blazon the fact that he is no better
than other men, in the full face of his congregation! He must be mad! A
priest of the Roman Church publicly acknowledging a natural son!
[Footnote: ROME, August 19, 1899--A grave scandal has just burst upon
the world here. The Gazetta di Venezia having attacked the bishops
attending the recent conclave of "Latin America," that is,
Spanish-speaking America, as men of loose morality, the Osservatore
Cattolico, the Vatican organ, replied declaring that the life of the
bishops present at the conclave was above suspicion. The Gazetta di
Venezia responds, affirming that the majority of the bishops brought
with them to Rome their mistresses, and in some instances their
children. The Gazetta offers to disclose the names of these bishops,
and demands that the Pope shall satisfy the Catholic world by taking
measures against them.--Central News.] Has ever such a thing been heard
of! And the result is merely to create scandal and invite his own
disgrace! A quoi bon!"

He lit a cigarette and puffed at it impatiently. His particular "code"
of morality had been completely upset;--things seemed to have taken a
turn for general offence, and the simplest thoughts became like
bristles in his brain, pricking him uncomfortably in various sore and
sensitive places. Then, added to his general sense of spleen was the
unpleasant idea that he was really in love, where he had never meant to
be in love. "In love", is a wide term nowadays, and covers a multitude
of poor and petty passing emotions,--and it is often necessary to add
the word "really" to it, in order to emphasise the fact that the
passion has perhaps,--and even then it is only a perhaps,--taken a
somewhat lasting form. Why could not Sylvie Hermenstein have allowed
things to run their natural course?--this natural course being
according to Fontenelle, to drop into his arms when asked, and leave
those arms again with equal alacrity also when asked! It would have
been quite pleasant and satisfactory to him, the Marquis;--and for
Sylvie--well!--for Sylvie, she would soon have got over it! Now there
was all this fuss and pother about virtue! Virtue, quotha! In a woman,
and in Paris! At this time of day! Could anything be more preposterous
and ridiculous!

"One would imagine I had stumbled into a convent for young ladies," he
grumbled to himself, "What with Sylvie actually gone, and that pretty
pattern of chastity, Angela Sovrani, preaching at me with her big
violet eyes,--and now Vergniaud who used to be 'bon camarade et bon
vivant', branding himself a social sinner--really one would imagine
that some invisible Schoolmaster was trying to whip me into order  . .
."

"Peut-on entrer?" called a clear voice outside at this juncture, and
without waiting for permission the speaker entered, a very pretty woman
in an admirably fitting riding habit, which she held daintily up with
one gloved hand, extending the other as she came to the Marquis who
gracefully bent over it and kissed it.

"Charme de vous voir Princesse!" he murmured.

"Not at all! Spare me your falsehoods!" was the gay reply, accompanied
by a dazzling smile, "You are not in the least charmed,
nothing,--nobody charms you,--I least of all! Did you not see me in
church? No! Where were your eyes? On the courageous Vergniaud, who so
nearly gave us the melancholy task of arranging a 'Chapelle ardente'
for him this afternoon?" She laughed, and her eyes twinkled
maliciously,--then she went on, "Do you know he is quite a delightful
boy,--the peasant son and assassin? I think of taking him to my Chateau
and making something of him. I waited to see the whole play out, and
bring you the news. Papa Vergniaud has gone home with his good-looking
offspring--then Cardinal Bonpre--do you know the Cardinal Bonpre?"

"By reputation merely," replied the Marquis, setting a chair for his
fair visitor, "And as the uncle of Donna Sovrani."

"Oh, reputation is nothing," laughed the lady, known as the Princesse
D'Agramont, an independent beauty of great wealth and brilliant
attainments, "Your butler can give you a reputation, or take it away
from you! But the Cardinal's reputation is truly singular. It is
goodness, merely! He is so good that he has become actually famous for
it! Now I once thought that to become famous for goodness must surely
imply that the person so celebrated had a very hypocritical
nature,--the worst of natures indeed;--that of pretending to be what he
was not,--but I was mistaken. Cardinal Bonpre IS good. Absolutely
sincere and noble--therefore a living marvel in this age!"

"You are pleased to be severe, Princesse," said the Marquis, "Is
sincerity so difficult to find?"

"The most difficult of virtues!" answered the Princesse, lightly
tapping out a little tune with the jewelled handle of her riding whip
on the arm of her chair, "That is why I like horses and dogs so
much--they are always honest. And for that reason I am now inclined to
like Abbe Vergniaud whom I never liked before. He has turned honest!
To-day indeed he has been as straightforward as if he were not a man at
all!--and I admire him for it. He and his son will be my guests at the
Chateau D'Agramont."

"What a very strange woman you are!" said Fontenelle, with a certain
languid admiration beginning to glimmer in his eyes, "You always do
things that nobody else would dare do--and yet . . . no lovers!"

She turned herself swiftly round and surveyed him with a bright scorn
that swept him as with a lightning flash from head to heel.

"Lovers! Who would be bored by them! Such delightful company! So
unselfish in their demands--so tender and careful of a woman's
feelings! Pouf! Cher ami!--you forget! I was the wife of the late
Prince D'Agramont!"

"That explains a great many of your moods certainly," said the Marquis
smiling.

"Does it not? Le beau Louis!--romantic Louis!--poet Louis!--musician
Louis!--Louis, who talked pretty philosophies by the hour,--Louis who
looked so beautiful by moonlight,--who seemed fastidious and refined to
a degree that was almost ethereal!--Louis who swore, with passion
flashing in his eyes, that I was the centre of the universe to him, and
that no other woman had ever occupied, would ever occupy, or SHOULD
ever occupy his thoughts!--yes, he was an ideal lover and husband
indeed!" said the Princesse smiling coldly, "I gave him all my life and
love, till one day, when I found I was sharing his caresses with my
plumpest dairymaid, who called him "HER Louis"! Then I thought it was
time to put an end to romance. TIENS!" and she gave a little shrug and
sigh, "It is sad to think he died of over-eating."

The Marquis laughed.

"You are incorrigible, belle Loyse!" he said, "You should write these
things, not speak them."

"Really! And do I not write them? Yes, you know I do, and that you envy
me my skill. The Figaro is indebted to me for many admirable essays. At
the same time I do not give you permission to call me Loyse."

"Forgive me!" and the Marquis folded his hands with an air of mock
penitence.

"Perhaps I will, presently," and she laughed, "But meanwhile I want you
to do something for me."

"Toujours a votre service, madame!" and Fontenelle bowed profoundly.

"How theatrical you look! You are alarmingly like Miraudin;--and one
MUST draw the line at Miraudin! This is a day of truth according to the
Abbe Vergniaud; how dare you say you are at my service when you do not
mean it?"

"Princesse, I protest . . ."

"Oh, protest as much as you like,--on the way to Rome!"

The Marquis started.

"To Rome?"

"Yes, to Rome. I am going, and I want someone to look after me. Will
you come? All Paris will say we have eloped together." She laughed
merrily.

The Marquis stood perplexed and silent.

"Well, what is it?" went on the Princesse gaily, "Is there some faint
sense of impropriety stealing over you? Not possible! Dear me, your
very muscles are growing rigid! You will not go?"

"Madame, if you will permit me to be frank with you,--I would rather
not!"

"A la bonheur!--then I have you!" And the Princesse rose, a dazzling
smile irradiating her features, "You have thrown open your heart! You
have begun to reform! You love Sylvie Hermenstein--yes!--you positively
LOVE her!"

"Princesse--" began the Marquis, "I assure you--"

"Assure me nothing!" and she looked him straight in the eyes, "I know
all about it! You will not journey with me because you think the
Comtesse Sylvie will hear of it, and put a wrong construction on your
courtesy. You wish to try for once, to give her no cause for doubting
you to be sans peur et sans reproche. You wish to make her think you
something better than a sort of Miraudin whose amorous inclinations are
not awakened by one woman, but by women! And so you will not do
anything which, though harmless in itself, may seem equivocal. For this
you refuse the friendly invitation of one of the best known 'society
leaders' in Europe! CHER Marquis!--it is a step in the right direction!
Adieu!"

"You are not going so soon," he said hurriedly, "Wait till I explain .
. ."

"There is nothing to explain!" and the pretty Princesse gave him her
hand with a beneficent air, "I am very pleased with you. You are what
the English call 'good boy'! Now I am going to see the Abbe and place
the Chateau D'Agramont at his disposal while he is waiting to be
excommunicated,--for of course he will be excommunicated--"

"What does it matter!--Who cares?" said the Marquis recklessly.

"It does not matter, and nobody cares--not in actual Paris. But very
very nice people in the suburbs, who are morally much worse than the
Abbe, will perhaps refuse to receive him. That is why my doors are open
to him, and also to his son."

"Original, as usual!"

"Perfectly! I am going to write a column for the Figaro on the amazing
little scene of this morning. Au revoir! My poor horse has been waiting
too long already,--I must finish my ride in the Bois, and then go to
Angela Sovrani; for all the dramatis personae of to-day's melodrama are
at her studio, I believe."

"Who is that boy with the Cardinal?" asked the Marquis suddenly.

"You have noticed him? I also. A wonderful face! A little acolyte, no
doubt. And so you will not go to Rome with me?"

"I think not," and Fontenelle smiled.

"Comme il vous plaira! I will tell Sylvie."

"The Comtesse Hermenstein is not in Paris."

"No!" and the Princesse laughed mischievously, "She is in Rome! She
must have arrived there this morning. Au revoir, Marquis!" Another
dazzling smile, and she was gone.

Fontenelle stood staring after her in amazement. Sylvie was in Rome
then? And he had just refused to accompany the Princesse D'Agramont
thither! A sudden access of irritation came over him, and he paced the
room angrily. Should he also go to Rome? Never! It would seem too close
a pursuit of a woman who had by her actions distinctly shown that she
wished to avoid him. Now he would prove to her that he also had a will
of his own. HE would leave Paris;--he would go--yes, he would go to
Africa! Everybody went to Africa. It was becoming a fashionable
pasture-land for disappointed lives. He would lose himself in the
desert,--and then--then Sylvie would be sorry when she did not know
where he was or what he was doing! But also,--he in his turn would not
know where Sylvie was, or what she was doing! This was annoying. It was
certain that she would not remain in Rome a day longer than she chose
to,--well!--then where would she go? In Africa he would find some
difficulty in tracing her movements. On second thoughts he resolved
that he would lose himself in another fashion--and would go to Rome to
do it!

"She shall not know I am there!" he said to himself, with a kind of
triumph in his own decision, "I shall amuse myself--I shall see
her--but she shall not see me."

Satisfied with this as yet vague plan of entertainment, he began at
once making his arrangements for departure;--meanwhile, the Princesse
D'Agramont riding gracefully through the Bois on her beautiful Arab,
was amusing herself with her thoughts, and weighing the PROS and CONS
of the different lives of her friends, without giving the slightest
consideration to her own. Here was a strange nature,--as a girl she had
been intensely loving, generous and warm-hearted, and she had adored
her husband with exceptional faith and devotion. But the handsome
Prince's amours were legion, though he had been fairly successful in
concealing them from his wife, till the unlucky day when she had found
him making desperate love to a common servant,--and after that her
confidence, naturally, was at an end. One discovery led to
another,--and the husband around whom she had woven her life's romance,
sank degraded in her sight, never to rise again. She was of far too
dignified and proud a nature to allow her sense of outrage and wrong to
be made public, and though she never again lived with D'Agramont as his
wife, she carried herself through all her duties as mistress of the
household and hostess of his guests, with a brave bright gaiety, which
deceived even the closest observer,--and the gossips of Paris used to
declare that she did not know the extent of her husband's follies. But
she did know,--and while filled with utter disgust and loathing for his
conduct she nevertheless gave him no cause of complaint against
herself. And when he died of a fever brought on through over-indulgence
in vice, she conformed to all the strictest usages of society,--wore
her solemn widow's black for more than the accustomed period,--and then
cast it off,--not to dash into her fashionable "circle" again with a
splurge of colour, but rather to glide into it gracefully, a vision of
refinement, arrayed in such soft hues as may be seen in some rare
picture; and she took complete possession of it by her own unaided
charm. No one could really tell whether she grieved for D'Agramont's
death or not; no one but herself knew how she had loved him,--no one
guessed what agonies of pain and shame she had endured for his sake,
nor how she had wept herself half blind with despair when he died. All
this she shut up in her own heart, but the working of the secret
bitterness within her had made a great change in her disposition. Her
nature, once as loving and confiding as that of a little child, had
been so wronged in its tenderest fibres that now she could not love at
all.

"Why is it," she would ask herself, "that I am totally unable to care
for any living creature? That it is indifferent to me whether I see any
person once, or often, or never? Why are all men like phantoms,
drifting past my soul's immovability?"

The answer to her query would be, that having loved greatly once and
been deceived, it was impossible to love again. Some women,--the best,
and therefore the unhappiest--are born with this difficult temperament.

Now, as she rode quietly along, sometimes allowing her horse to prance
upon the turf for the delight of its dewy freshness, she was weaving
quite a brilliant essay on modern morals out of the scene she had
witnessed at the Church of the Lorette that morning. She well knew how
to use that dangerous weapon, the pen,--she could wield it like a wand
to waken tears or laughter with equal ease, and since her husband's
death she had devoted a great deal of time to authorship. Two witty
novels, published under a nom-de-plume had already startled the world
of Paris, and she was busy with a third. Such work amused her, and
distracted her from dwelling too much on the destroyed illusions of the
past. The Figaro snatched eagerly at everything she wrote; and it was
for the Figaro that she busied her brain now, considering what she
should say of the Abbe Vergniaud's confession.

"It is wisest to be a liar and remain in the Church? or tell the truth
and go out of the Church?" she mused, "Unfortunately, if all priests
told the truth as absolutely as the Abbe did this morning we should
have hardly any of them left."

She laughed a little, and stroked her horse's neck caressingly.

"Good Rex! You and your kind never tell lies; and yet you are said to
have no souls. Now I wonder why we, who are mean and cunning and
treacherous and hypocritical should have immortal souls, while horses
and dogs who are faithful and kind and honest should be supposed to
have none."

Rex gave a gay little prance forward as one who should say, "Yes, but
it is only you silly human beings who suppose such nonsense. We know
what WE know;--we have our own secrets!"

"Now the Church," went on Loyse D'Agramont, pursuing the tenor of her
thoughts, "is in a bad way all over the world. It is possible that God
is offended with it. It is possible, that after nearly two thousand
years of patience He is tired of having come down to us to teach us the
path of Heaven in vain. Something out of the common has surely moved
the Abbe Vergniaud to speak as he spoke to-day. He was quite unlike
himself and beyond himself; if all our preachers were seized by the
spirit of frankness in like manner--"

Here she broke off for she had arrived at Angela Sovrani's door, and a
servant coming out, assisted her to alight, and led her horse into the
courtyard there to await her leisure. She was an old friend of Angela's
and was accustomed to enter the house without announcement, but on this
occasion she hesitated, and after ascending the first few steps leading
to the studio paused and rang the bell. Angela herself answered the
summons.

"Loyse! Is it you! Oh, I am so glad!" and Angela caught her by both
hands,--"You cannot imagine the confusion and trouble we have been in
this morning!"

"Oh yes, I can!" answered the Princesse smiling, as she put an arm
round her friend's waist and entered the studio, "You have certainly
had an excitement! What of the courageous Abbe? Where is he?"

"Here!" And Angela's eyes expressed volumes,--"Here, with my uncle.
They are talking together--and that young man--Cyrillon--the son, you
know--"

"Is that his name?--Cyrillon?" queried the Princesse.

"Yes,--he has been brought up as a peasant. But he is not ignorant. He
has written books and music, so it appears--yet he still keeps to his
labour in the fields. He seems to be a kind of genius; another sort of
Maeterlinck--"

"Oh, capricious Destiny!" exclaimed the Princesse, "The dear Abbe
scandalises the Church by acknowledging his son to all men,--and
lo!--the son he was ashamed of all these years, turns out a prodigy!
The fault once confessed, brings a blessing! Angela, there is something
more than chance in this, if we could only fathom it!"

"This Cyrillon is all softness and penitence now,' Angela went on, "He
is overcome with grief at his murderous attempt,--and has asked his
father's pardon. And they are going away together out of Paris till--"

"Till excommunication is pronounced," said the Princesse, "Yes, I
thought so! I came here to place my Chateau at the Abbe's disposal. I
am myself going to Rome; so he and his son can be perfectly at home
there. I admire the man's courage, and above all I admire his
truthfulness. But I cannot understand why he was at such pains to keep
silence all these years, and THEN to declare his fault? He must have
decided on his confession very suddenly?"

Angela's eyes grew dark and wistful.

"Yes," she answered slowly,--then with a sudden eagerness in her manner
she added, "Do you know, Loyse, I feel as if some very strange
influence had crept in among us! Pray do not think me foolish, but I
assure you I have had the most curious sensations since my uncle,
Cardinal Bonpre arrived from Rouen--bringing Manuel--"

"Manuel? Is that the boy I saw in the church this morning? The boy who
threw himself as a shield between Verginaud and the flying shot? Yes?
And do you not know who he is?"

"No," and Angela repeated the story of the way in which Manuel had been
found and rescued by the Cardinal; "You see," she continued, "it is not
possible to ask him any questions since he has declined to tell us more
than we already know."

"Strange!" And the Princesse D'Agramont knitted her delicate brows
perplexedly. "And you have had curious feelings since he came, you say?
What sort of feelings?"

"Well, you will only laugh at me," replied Angela, her cheeks paling a
little as she spoke, "but it really is as if some supernatural being
were present who could see all my inward thoughts,--and not only mine,
but the thoughts of everyone else. Someone too who impels us to do what
we have never thought of doing before--"

The Princesse opened her eyes in amazement.

"My dear girl! You must have been over-working to get such strange
fancies into your head! There is nothing supernatural left to us
nowadays except the vague idea of a God,--and even that we are rather
tired of!"

Angela trembled and grew paler than usual.

"Do not speak in that way," she urged, "The Abbe talked in just such a
light fashion until the other day here,--yet this morning I think--nay,
I am sure he believes in something better than himself at last."

The Princesse was silent for a minute.

"Well, what is to happen next?" she queried, "Excommunication of
course! All brave thinkers of every time have been excommunicated, and
many of our greatest and most valuable scientific works are on the
Index Expurgatorius. It is my ambition to get into that Index,--I shall
never rest till I win the honour of being beside Darwin's 'Origin of
Species'!"

Angela smiled, but her thoughts were elsewhere.

"I hope the Abbe will go away at once," she said meditatively, "But you
have no idea how happy and at ease he is! He seems to be ready for
anything."

"What does Cardinal Bonpre think?" asked the Princesse.

"My uncle never thinks in any way except the way of Christ," replied
Angela. "He says, 'Thy sins be forgiven thee; arise and walk', to every
soul stricken with the palsy of pain and repentance. He helps the
fallen; he does not strike them down more heavily."

"Ah, so! And is he fit to be a Cardinal?" queried the Princesse
D'Agramont dubiously.

Angela gave her a quick look, but had no time to reply as at that
moment a servant entered and announced, "Monsignor Moretti!"

Angela started nervously.

"Moretti!" she said in a low tone, "I thought he had left Paris!"

Before she had time to say any more the visitor himself entered, a tall
spare priest with a dark narrow countenance of the true Tuscan type,--a
face in which the small furtive eyes twinkled with a peculiarly hard
brilliancy as though they were luminous pebbles. He walked into the
room with a kind of aggressive dignity common to many Italians, and
made a slight sign of the cross in air as the two ladies saluted him.

"Pardon me, Mesdames, for this intrusion," he said in a harsh metallic
voice, "But I hear that the Abbe Vergniaud is in this house,--and that
Cardinal Felix Bonpre has received him here SINCE" (and he emphasised
the word "since") "the shameful scene of this morning. My business in
Paris is ended for the moment; and I am returning to Italy
to-night,--but I wish to know if the Abbe has anything to say through
me to His Holiness the Pope in extenuation of his conduct before I
perform the painful duty of narrating this distressing affair at the
Vatican."

"Will you see him for yourself, Monsignor?" said Angela quietly,
offering to lead the way out of the studio, "You will no doubt obtain a
more direct and explicit answer from the Abbe personally."

For a moment Moretti hesitated. Princesse D'Agramont saw his
indecision, and her smile had a touch of malice in it as she said,

"It is a little difficult to know how to address the Abbe to-day, is it
not, Monsignor? For of course he is no longer an Abbe--no longer a
priest of Holy Church! Helas! When anybody takes to telling the truth
in public the results are almost sure to be calamitous!"

Moretti turned upon her with swift asperity.

"Madame, you are no true daughter of the Church," he said, "and my
calling forbids me to enter into any discussion with you!"

The Princesse gave him a charming upward glance of her bright eyes, and
curtsied demurely, but he paid no heed to her obeisance, and moving
away, went at once with Angela towards the Cardinal's apartments. In
the antechamber he paused, hearing voices.

"Is there anyone with His Eminence, besides Vergniaud?" he asked.

"The Abbe's son Cyrillon," replied Angela timidly.

Moretti frowned.

"I will go in alone," he said, "You need not announce me. The Abbe
knows me well, and--" he added with a slight sneer, "he is likely to
know me better!"

Without further words he signed to Angela to retire, and passing
through the antechamber, he opened the door of the Cardinal's room and
entered abruptly.



XV.

The Cardinal was seated,--he rose as Moretti appeared.

"I beg your Eminence to spare yourself!" said Moretti suavely, with a
deep salutation, "And to pardon me for thus coming unannounced into the
presence of one so highly esteemed by the Holy Father as Cardinal
Bonpre!"

The Cardinal gave a gesture of courteous deprecation; and Monsignor
Moretti, lifting his, till then, partially lowered eyelids, flashed an
angry regard upon the Abbe Vergniaud, who resting his back against the
book-case behind him, met his glance with the most perfect composure.
Close to him stood his son and would-be murderer Cyrillon,--his dark
handsome face rendered even handsomer by the wistful and softened
expression of his eyes, which ever and anon rested upon his father with
a look of mingled wonder and respect. There was a brief silence--of a
few seconds at most,--and then Moretti spoke again in a voice which
thrilled with pent-up indignation, but which he endeavoured to render
calm and clear as he addressed the Cardinal.

"Your Eminence is without doubt aware of the cause of my visit to you.
If, as I understand, your Eminence was present at Notre Dame de Lorette
this morning, and witnessed the regrettable conduct of the faithless
son of the Church here present--"

"Pardon! This is my affair." interposed Vergniaud, stepping forward,
"His Eminence, Cardinal Bonpre, is not at all concerned in the matter
of the difficult dispute which has arisen between me and my own
conscience. You call me faithless, Monsignor,--will you explain what
you mean by 'faithless' under these present conditions of argument?"

"It shows the extent and hopelessness of your retrogression from all
good that you should presume to ask such a question," answered Moretti,
growing white under the natural darkness of his skin with an impotency
of rage he could scarcely suppress, "Your sermon this morning was an
open attack on the Church, and the amazing scene at its conclusion is a
scandal to Christianity!"

"The attack on the Church I admit," said the Abbe quietly, "I am not
the only preacher in the world who has so attacked it. Christ Himself
would attack it if He were to visit this earth again!"

Moretti turned angrily towards the Cardinal.

"Your Eminence permits this blasphemy to be uttered in your presence?"
he demanded.

"Nay, wherever and whenever I perceive blasphemy, my son, I shall
reprove it," said the Cardinal, fixing his mild eyes steadily on
Moretti's livid countenance, "I cannot at present admit that our
unhappy and repentant brother here has blasphemed. In his address to
his congregation to-day he denounced social hypocrisy, and also pointed
out certain failings in the Church which may possibly need
consideration and reform; but against the Gospel of Christ, or against
the Founder of our Faith I heard no word that could be judged
ill-fitting. As for the conclusion which so very nearly ended in
disaster and crime, there is nothing to be said beyond the fact that
both the persons concerned are profoundly sorry for their sins."

"No sorrow can wipe out such infamy--" began Moretti hotly.

"Patience! Patience, my son!" and the Cardinal raised his hand with a
slight gesture of authority, "Surely we must believe the words of our
Blessed Lord, 'There is more joy in Heaven over one sinner that
repenteth than over ninety and nine just persons which have no need of
repentance'!"

"And on this old and well-worn phrase you excuse a confessed heretic?"
said Moretti, with a sneer.

"This old and well-worn phrase is the saying of our Master," answered
the Cardinal firmly, "And it is as true as the truth of the sunshine
which, in its old and well-worn way, lights up this world gloriously
every morning! I would stake my very life on the depth and the truth of
Vergniaud's penitence! Who, seeing and knowing the brand of disgrace he
has voluntarily burnt into his own social name and honour, could doubt
his sincerity, or refuse to raise him up, even as our Lord would have
done, saying, 'Thy sins be forgiven thee! Go, and sin no more!'?"

Moretti's furtive eyes disappeared for a moment under his discoloured
eyelids, which quivered rapidly like the throbbings in the throat of an
angry snake. Before he could speak again however, Vergniaud interposed.

"Why trouble His Eminence with my crimes or heresies?" he said quietly,
"I am grateful to him from my soul for his gentleness and charity of
judgment--but I need no defence--not even from him. I am answerable to
God alone!--neither to Church nor Creed! It was needful that I should
speak as I spoke to-day--"

"Needful to scandalize the Church?" demanded Moretti sharply.

"The Church is not scandalized by a man who confesses himself an
unworthy member of it!" returned Vergniaud, "It is better to tell the
truth and go out of the Church than to remain in it as a liar and a
hypocrite."

"According to your own admission you have been a liar and a hypocrite
for twenty-five years!" said Moretti bitterly, "You should have made
your confession before, and have made it privately. There is something
unnatural and reprehensible in the sudden blazon you have made to the
public of your gross immorality."

"'A sudden blazon' you call it,--" said the Abbe, "Well, perhaps it is!
But murder will out, no matter how long it is kept in. You are not
entirely aware of my position, Monseigneur. Have you the patience to
hear a full explanation?"

"I have the patience to hear because it is my duty to hear," replied
Moretti frigidly, "I am bound to convey the whole of this matter to His
Holiness."

"True! That is your duty, and who shall say it is not also your
pleasure!" and Vergniaud smiled a little. "Well!--Convey to His
Holiness the news that I, Denis Vergniaud, am a dying man, and that
knowing myself to be in that condition, and that two years at the
utmost, is my extent of life on this planet, I have taken it seriously
into my head to consider as to whether I am fit to meet death with a
clean conscience. Death, Monsignor, admits of no lying, no politeness,
no elegant sophistries! Now, the more I have considered, the more I am
aware of my total unfitness to confront whatever may be waiting for me
in the Afterwards of death--(for without doubt there is an
afterwards,)--and being conscious of having done at least one grave
injury to an innocent person, I have taken the best and quickest way to
make full amends. I wronged a woman--this boy's mother--" and he
indicated with a slight gesture Cyrillon, who had remained a silent
witness of the scene,--"and the boy himself from early years set his
mind and his will to avenge his mother's dishonour. I--the chief actor
in the drama,--am thus responsible for a woman's misery and shame; and
am equally responsible for the murderous spirit which has animated one,
who without this feeling, would have been a promising fellow enough.
The woman I wronged, alas!--is dead, and I cannot reinstate her name,
save in an open acknowledgment of her child, my son. I do acknowledge
him,--I acknowledge him in your presence, and therefore virtually in
the presence of His Holiness. I thus help to remove the stigma I myself
set on his name. Plainly speaking, Monsignor, we men have no right
whatever to launch human beings into the world with the 'bar sinister'
branded upon them. We have no right, if we follow Christ, to do
anything that may injure or cause trouble to any other creature. We
have no right to be hasty in our judgment, even of sin."

"Sin is sin,--and demands punishment--" interrupted Moretti.

"You quote the law of Moses, Monsignor! I speak with the premise 'if'.
IF we follow Christ;--if we do not, the matter is of course different.
We can then twist Scripture to suit our own purpose. We can organise
systems which are agreeable to our own convenience or profit, but which
have nothing whatever of Christ's Divine Spirit of universal love and
compassion in them. My action this morning was unusual and quixotic no
doubt. Yet, it seemed to me the only way to comport myself under those
particular circumstances. I did a wrong--I seek to make amends. I
believe this is what God would have me do. I believe that the Supernal
Forces judge our sins against each other to be of a far worse nature
than sins against Church or Creed. I also believe that if we try to
amend our injustices and set crooked things straight, death will be an
easier business, and Heaven will come a little nearer to our souls. As
for my attack on the Church--"

"Ah truly! What of your attack on the Church?" said Moretti, his small
eyes glistening, and his breath going and coming quickly.

"I would say every word of it again with absolute conviction," declared
Vergniaud, "for I have said nothing but the truth! There is a movement
in the world, Monsignor, that all the powers of Rome are unable to cope
with!--the movement of an advancing resistless force called Truth,--the
Voice of God,--the Voice of Christ! Truth cannot be choked, murdered
and killed nowadays as in the early Inquisition! Rather than that the
Voice of Truth should be silenced or murdered now at this period of
time, God will shake down Rome!"

"Not so!" exclaimed Moretti hotly--"Every nation in the world shall
perish before Rome shall lose her sacred power! She is the 'headstone
of the corner'--and 'upon whomsoever that stone shall fall, it shall
grind him to powder!'"

"You think so?" and Verginaud shrugged his shoulders ever so
slightly--"Well! For me, I believe that material as well as spiritual
forces combine to fight against long-concealed sin and practised old
hypocrisies. It would not surprise me if the volcanic agencies which
are for ever at work beneath the blood-stained soil of Italy, were to
meet under the Eternal City, and in one fell burst of flame and thunder
prove its temporary and ephemeral worth! The other day an earthquake
shook the walls of Rome and sent a warning shock through St. Peter's.
St. Peter's, with its vast treasures, its gilded shrines, its locked-up
wealth, its magnificence,--a strange contrast to Italy itself!--Italy
with its people ground down under the heel of a frightful taxation,
starving, and in the iron bonds of poverty! 'The Pope is a prisoner and
can do nothing'? Monsignor, the Pope is a prisoner by his own choice!
If he elected to walk abroad among the people and scatter Peter's Pence
among the sick and needy, he would then perhaps be BEGINNING to do the
duties our Lord enjoined on all His disciples!"

Moretti had stood immovable during this speech, his dark face rigid,
his eyes downcast, listening to every word, but now he raised his hand
with an authoritative gesture.

"Enough!" he said, "I will hear no more! You know the consequences of
this at the Vatican?"

"I do."

"You are prepared to accept them?"

"As prepared as any of the truth-tellers who were burned for the love
of Christ by the Inquisition," replied Vergniaud deliberately. "The
world is wide,--there is room for me in it outside the Church."

"One would imagine you were bitten by the new 'Christian Democratic'
craze," said Moretti with a cold smile, "And that you were a reader and
follower of the Socialist, Gys Grandit!"

At this name, Vergniaud's son Cyrillon stirred, and lifting his dark
handsome head turned his flashing eyes full on the speaker.

"Did you address me, Monsignor?" he queried, in a voice rich with the
musical inflexions of Southern France, "I am Gys Grandit!"

Had he fired another pistol shot in the quiet room as he had fired it
in the church, it could hardly have created a more profound sensation.

"You--you--" stammered Moretti, retreating from him as from some
loathsome abomination, "You--Gys Grandit!"

"You, Cyrillon!--you!--you, my son!"--and the Abbe almost lost breath
in the extremity of his amazement, while Cardinal Bonpre half rose from
his chair doubting whether he had heard aright. Gys Grandit!--the
writer of fierce political polemics and powerful essays that were the
life and soul, meat and drink of all the members of the Christian
Democratic party!

"Gys Grandit is my nom-de-plume," pursued the young man, composedly, "I
never had any hope of being acknowledged as Cyrillon Vergniaud, son of
my father,--I had truly no name and resolved to create one. That is the
sole explanation. My history has made me--not myself."

There was a dead pause. At last Moretti spoke.

"I have no place here!" he said, biting his lips hard to keep them from
trembling with rage, "This house which I thought was the abode of a
true daughter of the Church, Donna Sovrani, is apparently for the
moment a refuge for heretics. And I find these heretics kept in
countenance by Cardinal Felix Bonpre, whose reputation for justice and
holiness should surely move him to denounce them were he not held in
check by some malignant spirit of evil, which seems to possess this
atmosphere--"

"Monsignor Moretti," interposed the Cardinal with dignity, "it is no
part of justice or holiness to denounce anything or anybody till the
full rights of the case have been heard. I was as unaware as yourself
that this young man, Cyrillon Vergniaud, was the daring writer who has
sent his assumed name of 'Gys Grandit' like a flame through Europe. I
have read his books, and cannot justly denounce them, because they are
expressed in the language of one who is ardently and passionately
seeking for Truth. Equally, I cannot denounce the Abbe, because he has
confessed his sin, declared himself as he is, to the public, saved his
son from being a parricide, and has to some extent we trust, made his
peace with God. If you can find any point on which, as a servant of
Christ, I can denounce these two human beings who share with me the
strange and awful privileges of life and death, and the promise of an
immortal hereafter, I give you leave to do so. The works of Gys Grandit
do not blaspheme Christ,--they call, they clamour, they appeal for
Christ through all and in all--"

"And with all this clamour and appeal their writer is willing to become
a murderer!" said Moretti satirically.

Young Vergniaud sprang forward.

"Monsignor, in the name of the Master you profess to serve I would
advise you to set a watch upon your tongue!" he said, "Granted that I
was willing to murder the man who had made my mother's life a misery, I
was also willing to answer to God for it! I saw my mother die--" here
he gave a quick glance towards the Abbe who instinctively shrank at his
words, "I shall pain you, my father, by what I say, but the pain is
perhaps good for us both! I repeat--I saw my mother die. She passed
away uncomforted after a long life of patient loneliness and
sorrow--for she was faithful to the last, ever faithful! I have seen
her weep in the silence of the night!--I have heard her ever since I
was able to understand the sound of weeping! Oh, those tears!--Do you
not think God has seen them! She worked and toiled, and starved herself
to educate me,--she had no friends, for she had 'fallen', they said,
and sometimes she could get no employment, and often we starved
together; and when I thought of the man who had done this thing, even
as a young boy I said to myself, 'I will kill him!' She did not mean,
poor mother, to curse her lover to me--but unconsciously she did,--her
sorrow was so great--her loneliness so bitter!"

Moretti gave a gesture of impatience and contempt. Cyrillon noted it,
and his dark eyes flashed, but he went on steadily,--

"And then I saw her die--she stretched her poor thin hard-working hands
out to God, and over and over again she muttered and moaned in her
fever the refrain of an old peasant song we have in Touraine, 'Oh, la
tristesse d'avoir aime!' If you had heard her--if you had seen her--if
you had, or have a heart to feel, nerves to wrench, a brain to rack,
blood to be stung to frenzy, you would,--seeing your mother perish
thus,--have thought, that to kill the man who had made such a wreck of
a sweet pure life, would be a just, aye even a virtuous deed! I thought
so. But my intended vengeance was frustrated--whether by the act of
God, who can say? But the conduct of the man whom I am now proud to
call my father--"

"You have great cause for pride!" said Moretti sarcastically.

"I think I have"--said the young man, "In the close extremity of death
at my hands, he won my respect. He shall keep it. It will be my glory
now to show him what a son's love and pardon may be. If it be true as I
understand, that he is attacked by a disease which needs must be fatal,
his last hours will not be desolate! It may be that I shall give him
more comfort than Churches,--more confidence than Creeds! It may be
that the clasp of my hand in his may be a better preparation for his
meeting with God,--and my mother,--than the touch of the Holy Oils in
Extreme Unction!"

"Like all your accursed sect, you blaspheme the
Sacraments"--interrupted Moretti indignantly--"And in the very presence
of one of her chiefest Cardinals, you scorn the Church!"

Cyrillon gave a quick gesture of emphatic denial.

"Monsignor, I do not scorn the Church,--but I think that honesty and
fair dealing with one another is better than any Church! Christ had no
Church. He built no temples, He amassed no wealth,--He preached simply
to those who would hear Him under the arching sky,--in the open air! He
prophesied the fall of temples; 'In this place,' He said, 'is One
greater than the temple.' [Footnote: Matt. xii. v. 6.] He sought to
destroy long built-up hypocrisies. 'My house is called the house of
prayer, but ye have made it a den of thieves.' Thieves, not only of
gold, but of honour!--thieves of the very Gospel, which has been
tampered with and twisted to suit the times, the conditions and
opinions of varying phases of priestcraft. Who that has read, and
thought, and travelled and studied the manuscripts hidden away in the
old monasteries of Armenia and Syria, believes that the Saviour of the
world ever condescended to 'pun' on the word Petrus, and say, 'On this
Rock (or stone) I will build my Church,' when He already knew that He
had to deal with a coward who would soon deny Him?"

"Enough! I will hear no further!" cried Moretti, turning livid with
fury--"Cardinal Bonpre, I appeal to you . . ."

But Cyrillon went on unheedingly,--

"Beware of that symbol of your Church, Monsignor! It is a very strange
one! It seems about to be expanded into a reality of dreadful earnest!
'I know not the man,' said Peter. Does not the glittering of the
world's wealth piled into the Vatican,--useless wealth lying idle in
the midst of hideous beggary and starvation,--proclaim with no
uncertain voice, 'I KNOW NOT THE MAN'? The Man of sorrows,--the Man of
tender and pitying heart,--the Man who could not send the multitude
away without bread, and compassed a miracle to give it to them,--the
Man who wept for a friend's death,--who took little children in His
arms and blessed them,--who pardoned the unhappy outcast and said, 'Sin
no more,'--who was so selfless, so pure, so strong, so great, that even
sceptics, while denying His Divinity, are compelled to own that His
life and His actions were more Divine than those of any other creature
in human shape that has ever walked the earth! Monsignor, there is no
true representative of Christ in this world!"

"Not for heretics possibly," said Moretti disdainfully.

"For no one!" said Cyrillon passionately--"For no poor sinking, seeking
soul is there any such visible comforter! But there is a grand tendency
in Mankind to absorb His Spirit and His teaching;--to turn from forms
and shadows of faith to the Faith itself,--from descriptions of a
possible heaven to the REAL Heaven, which is being disclosed to us in
transcendent glimpses through the jewel-gates of science! There were
twelve gates in the visioned heaven of St. John,--and each gate was
composed of one pearl! Truly do the scoffers say that never did any
planetary sea provide such pearls as these! No,--for they were but
prophetic emblems of the then undiscovered Sciences. Ah,
Monsignor!--and what of the psychic senses and forces?--forces which we
are just beginning to discover and to use,--forces which enable me to
read your mind at this present moment and to see how willingly you
would send me to the burning, Christian as you call yourself, for my
thoughts and opinions!--as your long-ago predecessors did with all men
who dared to reason for themselves! But that time has passed,
Monsignor; the Spirit of Christ in the world has conquered the Church
THERE!"

The words rushed from his lips with a fervid eloquence that was
absolutely startling,--his eyes were aglow with feeling--his face so
animated and inspired, that it seemed as though a flame behind it
illumined every feature. Abbe Vergniaud, astonished and overcome, laid
a trembling hand on the arm of the passionate speaker with a gesture
more of appeal than restraint, and the young man caught that hand
within his own and held it fast. Moretti for a moment fixed his eyes
upon father and son with an expression of intense hatred that darkened
his face with a deep shadow as of a black mask,--and then without a
word deliberately turned his back upon both.

"Your Eminence has heard all this," he said coldly, addressing the
Cardinal who sat rigidly in his chair, silent and very pale.

"I have," replied Bonpre in a low strained tone.

"And I presume your Eminence permits--?"

"Why talk of permission?" interrupted the Cardinal, raising his eyes
with a sorrowful look, "Who is to permit or deny freedom of speech in
these days? Have I--have you--the right to declare that a man shall not
express his thoughts? In what way are we to act? Deny a hearing? We
cannot--we dare not--not if we obey our Lord, who says, 'Whatsoever ye
would that men should do unto you, do ye even so to them.' If we ask
for ourselves to be heard, we must also hear."

"We may hear--but in such a case as the present one must we not also
condemn?" demanded Moretti, watching the venerable prelate narrowly.

"We can only condemn in the case of a great sin," replied Bonpre
gently, "and even then our condemnation must be passed with fear and
trembling, and with full knowledge of all the facts pertaining to the
error. 'Judge not that ye be not judged.' We are told plainly that our
brother may sin against us not only seven times but seventy times
seven, and still we are bound to forgive, to sustain, to help, and not
to trample down the already fallen."

"These are your Eminence's opinions?" said Moretti.

"Most assuredly! Are they not yours?"

Moretti smiled coldly.

"No. I confess they are not! I am a faithful servant of the Church; and
the Church is a system of moral government in which, if the slightest
laxity be permitted, the whole fabric is in danger--"

"A house of cards then, which a breath may blow down!" interposed "Gys
Grandit," otherwise Cyrillon Vergniaud, "Surely an unstable foundation
for the everlasting ethics of Christ!"

"I did not speak to you, sir," said Moretti, turning upon him angrily.

"I know you did not. I spoke to you," answered the young man coolly, "I
have as much right to speak to you, as you have to speak to me, or to
be silent--if you choose. You say the Church is a system of moral
government. Well, look back on the past, and see what it has done in
the way of governing. In the very earliest days of Christianity, when
men were simple and sincere, when their faith in the power of the
Divine things was strong and pure, the Church was indeed a safeguard,
and a powerful restraint on man's uneducated licentiousness and
inherent love of strife. But when the lust of gain began to creep like
a fever into the blood of those with whom worldly riches should be as
nothing compared to the riches of the mind, the heart, and the spirit,
then the dryrot of hypocrisy set in--then came craftiness, cruelty,
injustice, and pitilessness, and such grossness of personal conduct as
revolts even the soul of an admitted sinner. Moral government? Where is
it to day? Look at France--Italy--Spain! Count up the lies told by the
priests in these countries to feed the follies of the ignorant! Did
Christ ever tell lies? No. Then why, if you are His follower, do you
tell them?"

"I repeat, I did not speak to you," said Moretti, his eyes sparkling
with fury,--"To me you are a heretic, accursed, and
excommunicate!--thrust out of salvation, and beyond my province to deal
with!"

"Oh, that a man should be thrust out of salvation in these Christian
days!" exclaimed Cyrillon with a flashing look of scorn, "And that he
should find a servant of Christ to tell him so! Accursed and
excommunicate! Then I am a kind of leper in the social community! And
you, as a disciple of your Master, should heal me of my infirmity--and
cleanse me of my Leprosy! Loathsome as leprosy is whether of mind or
body, Christ never thrust it out of salvation!"

"The leper must wish to be cleansed!" said Moretti fiercely, "If he
does not himself seek to be healed of his evil, no miracle can help
him."

"Oh but I do seek!" And young Vergniaud threw back his handsome head
with a splendid gesture of appeal, "With all my soul, if I am diseased,
I wish to be cleansed! Will YOU cleanse me? CAN you? I wish to stand up
whole and pure, face to face with the Divine in this world, and praise
Him for His goodness to me. But surely if He is to be found anywhere it
is in the Spirit of Truth! Not in any sort of a lie! Now, according to
His own words the Holy Ghost is the Spirit of Truth. 'When the Spirit
of Truth is come He will guide you into all Truth.' And what then?
Monsignor, it is somewhat dangerous to oppose the Spirit of Truth,
whether that Force speak through the innocent lips of a child or the
diseased ones of a leper! 'For whosoever speaketh a word against the
Son of Man it shall be forgiven him, BUT WHOSOEVER SPEAKETH AGAINST THE
HOLY GHOST'--or the Spirit of Truth, known sometimes as Inspiration . .
.  "IT SHALL NOT BE FORGIVEN HIM in this world, neither in the world to
come.' That is a terrible curse, which an ocean of Holy Water could
scarcely wash away!"

"Your argument is wide of the mark," said Moretti, impatiently, yet
forced in spite of himself to defend his position, "the Church is not
opposed to Truth but to Atheism."

"Atheism! There is no such thing as a real atheist in the world!"
declared Cyrillon passionately, "No reasoning human being alive, that
has not felt the impress of the Divine Image in himself and in all the
universe around him! He may, through apathy and the falsehoods of
priestcraft, have descended into callousness, indifference and egotism,
but he knows well that that impress cannot be stamped out--that he will
have to account for his part, however small it be, in the magnificent
pageant of life and work, for he has not been sent into it 'on chance.'
Inasmuch as if there is chance in one thing there must be chance in
another, and the solar system is too mathematically designed to be a
haphazard arrangement. With all our cleverness, our logic, our
geometrical skill, we can do nothing so exact! As part of the solar
system, you and I have our trifling business to enact, Monsignor,--and
to enact it properly, and with satisfaction to our Supreme Employer, it
seems to me that if we are honest with the world and with each other,
we shall be on the right road."

"For my part, I am perfectly honest with you," said Moretti smiling
darkly, "I told you, and I tell you again, that to me you are a
heretic, accursed and excommunicate. You will, as the democrat 'Gys
Grandit,' no doubt feel a peculiar pleasure when your father is also
declared accursed and excommunicate. I have said, and I say again, that
the Church is a system of moral government, and that no laxity can be
permitted. It is a system founded on the Gospel of our Lord, but to
obey the commands of our Lord to the letter we should have to find
another world to live in--"

"Pardon me--I ask for information," interposed Cyrillon, "You of course
maintain that Christ was God in Man?"

"Most absolutely!"

"And yet you say that to obey His commands to the letter we should have
to find another world to live in! Strange! Since He made the world and
knows all our capabilities of progress! But have you never fancied it
possible that we may be forced to obey His commands to the letter, or
perish for refusing to do so?"

Moretti made as though he would have sprung forward,--his face was
drawn and rigid, his lips tightly compressed, but he had no answer to
this unanswerable logic. He therefore took refuge in turning brusquely
away as before and was about to address himself to Bonpre, but stopped
short, as he perceived Manuel, who had entered while the conversation
was going on, and who now stood quietly by the Cardinal's chair in an
attitude of composed attention. Moretti glanced at him with a vexed
sense of irritation and reluctant wonder;--then moistening his dry lips
he began,

"I am bound to regret deeply that your Eminence has allowed this
painful discussion to take place in your presence without reproof. But
I presume you are aware of the responsibility incurred?"

The Cardinal slowly inclined his head in grave assent.

"In relating the scene of to-day to His Holiness, I shall be compelled
to mention the attitude you have maintained throughout the
conversation."

"You are at perfect liberty to do so, my son," said Bonpre with
unruffled gentleness.

Moretti hesitated. His eyes again rested on Manuel.

"Pardon me," he said suddenly and irrelevantly, "This boy . . ."

"Is a foundling," said the Cardinal, "He stays with me till I can place
him well in the world. He has no friends."

"He took some part in the affair of this morning, I believe?" queried
Moretti, with a doubtful air.

"He saved my life," said Abbe Vergniaud advancing, "It was not
particularly worth saving--but he did it. And I owe him much--for in
saving me, he also saved Cyrillon from something worse than death."


"Naturally you must be very gratefu," retorted Moretti satirically,
"The affection of a son you have denied for twenty-five years must be
exceedingly gratifying to you!" He paused--then said, "Does this boy
belong to the Church?"

"No," said Manuel, answering for himself, "I have no Church."

"No Church!" exclaimed Moretti, "His Eminence must educate you, boy.
You must be received."

"Yes," said Manuel, raising his eyes, and fixing them full on Moretti,
"I must be received! I need education to understand the Church. And
so,--for me to be received might be difficult!"



XVI.

As he thus spoke, slowly and with an exquisite softness, something in
his voice, manner, or words aroused a sudden and violent antipathy in
Moretti's mind. He became curiously annoyed, without any possible
cause, and out of his annoyance answered roughly.

"Ignorance is always difficult to deal with," he said, "But if it is
not accompanied by self-will or obstinacy--(and boys of your age are
apt to be self-willed and obstinate)--then much can be done. The Church
has infinite patience even with refractory sinners."

"Has it?" asked Manuel simply, and his clear eyes, turning slowly
towards Vergniaud and his son, rested there a moment, and then came
back to fix the same steady look upon Moretti's face. Not another word
did he say,--but Moretti flushed darkly, and anon grew very pale.
Restraining his emotions however by an effort, he addressed himself
with cold formality once more to the Abbe.

"You have no explanation then to offer to His Holiness, beyond what you
have already said?"

"None!" replied Vergniaud steadily. "The reasons for my conduct I think
are sufficiently vital and earnest to be easily understood."

"And your Eminence has nothing more to say on this matter?" pursued
Moretti, turning to the Cardinal.

"Nothing, my son! But I would urge that the Holy Father should extend
his pardon to the offenders, the more so as one of them is on the verge
of that land where we 'go hence and are no more seen.'"

Moretti's eyelids quivered, and his lips drew together in a hard and
cruel line.

"I will assuredly represent your wishes to His Holiness," he replied,
"But I doubt whether they will meet with so much approval as surprise
and regret. I have the honour to wish your Eminence farewell!"

"Farewell, my son!" said the Cardinal mildly, "Benedicite!"

Moretti bent down, as custom forced him to do, under the gently uttered
blessing, and the extended thin white hand that signed the cross above
him. Then with a furtive under-glance at Manuel, whose quiet and
contemplative observation of him greatly vexed and disturbed his
composure, he left the room.

There was a short silence. Then Abbe Vergniaud, somewhat hesitatingly,
approached Bonpre.

"I much fear, my dear friend, that all this means unpleasantness for
you at the Vatican," he said, "And I sincerely grieve to be the means
of bringing you into any trouble."

"Nay, there should be no trouble," said Bonpre quietly, "Nothing has
happened which should really cause me any perplexity--on the contrary,
events have arranged themselves so that there shall be no obstacle in
the way of speaking my mind. I have journeyed far from my diocese to
study and to discover for myself the various phases of opinion on
religious matters in these days, and I am steadily learning much as I
go. I regret nothing, and would have nothing altered,--for I am
perfectly confident that in all the things I meet, or may have to
consider, my Master is my Guide. All is well wherever we hear His
Voice;--all things work for the best when we are able to perceive His
command clearly, and have strength and resolution enough to forsake our
sins and follow Him."

As he spoke, a tranquil smile brightened his venerable features, and
seeing the fine small hand of Manuel resting on his chair, he laid his
own wrinkled palm over it and clasped it tenderly. Cyrillon Vergniaud,
moved by a quick impulse, suddenly advanced towards him.

"Monseigneur," he said, with unaffected deference, "You are much more
than a Cardinal,--you are a good and honest man! And that you serve
Christ purely is plainly evidenced in your look and bearing. Do me one
favour! Extend your pardon to me for my almost committed crime of
to-day,--and give me your blessing! I will try to be worthy of it!"

The Cardinal was silent for a few minutes looking at him earnestly.

"My blessing is of small value," he said, "And yet I do not think you
would ask it for mere mockery of an old man's faith. I should like,--"
here he paused--then slowly went on again, "I should like to say a few
words to you if I might--to ask you one or two questions concerning
yourself--"

"Ask anything you please, Monseigneur," replied Cyrillon, "I will
answer you frankly and fully. I have never had any mysteries in my life
save one,--that of my birth, which up till to day was a stigma and a
drawback;--but now, I feel I may be proud of my father. A man who
sacrifices his entire social reputation and position to make amends for
a wrong done to the innocent is worthy of honour."

"I grant it!" said the Cardinal, "But you yourself--why have you made a
name which is like a firebrand to start a conflagration of discord in
Europe?--why do you use your gifts of language and expression to awaken
a national danger which even the strongest Government may find itself
unable to stand against? I do not blame you till I hear,--till I
know;--but your writings,--your appeals for truth in all things,--are
like loud clarion blasts which may awaken more evil than good."

"Monseigneur, the evil is not of my making,--it exists!" replied
Cyrillon, "My name, my writings,--are only as a spark from the huge
smouldering fire of religious discontent in the world. If it were not
MY name it would be another's. If _I_ did not write or speak, someone
else would write and speak--perhaps better--perhaps not so well. At any
rate I am sincere in my convictions, and write from the fulness of the
heart. I do not care for money--I make none at all by literature,--but
I earn enough by my labour in the fields to keep me in food and
lodging. I have no desire for fame,--except in so far as my name may
serve as an encouragement and help to others. If you care to hear my
story--"

"I should appreciate your confidence greatly," said the Cardinal
earnestly, "The Fates have made you a leading spirit of the time,--it
would interest me to know your thoughts and theories. But if you would
prefer not to speak--"

"I generally prefer not to speak," replied Cyrillon, "But to-day is one
of open confession,--and I think too that it is sometimes advisable for
men of the Church to understand and enter into the minds of those who
are outside the Church,--who will have no Church,--not from
disobedience or insubordination, but simply because they do not find
God or Christ in that institution as it at present exists. And nowadays
we are seeking for God strenuously and passionately! We have found Him
too in places where the Church assured us He was not and could not be."

"Is there any portion of life where God is not?" asked Manuel gently.

Cyrillon's dark eyes softened as he met the boy's glance.

"No, dear child!--truly there is not,--but the priests do nothing to
maintain or to prove that," he replied; "and the more the world lifts
itself higher and higher into the light, the more we shall perceive
God, and the less we will permit anything to intervene between
ourselves and Him. But you are too young to understand--"

"No, not at all too young to understand!" answered Manuel, "Not at all
too young to understand that God is love, and pardon, and
patience;--and that wheresoever men are intolerant, uncharitable, and
bigoted, there they straightway depart from God and know Him not at
all."

"Truly that is how I understand Christianity," said Cyrillon, "But for
so simple and plain a perception of duty one is called atheist and
socialist, and one's opinions are branded as dangerous to the
community. Truth is dangerous, I know--but why?"

"Would that not take a century to explain?" said the silvery voice of
the Princesse D'Agramont, who entered with Angela at that moment, and
made her deep obeisance before the Cardinal, glancing inquisitively as
she did so at Manuel who still stood resting against the prelate's
chair, "Pardon our abrupt appearance, Monseigneur, but Angela and I are
moved by the spirit of curiosity!--and if we are swept out of the
Church like straws before the wind for our impertinence, we care not!
Monsignor Moretti has just left the house, wrapt up in his wrath like a
bird of prey in a thunder-cloud, muttering menaces against 'Gys
Grandit' the Socialist writer. Now what in the world has Gys Grandit to
do with him or with us? Salut, cher Abbe!"--and she gave Vergniaud her
hand with charming friendliness; "I came here really to see you, and
place the Chateau D'Agramont at your disposal, while I am away passing
the winter in Italy. Pray make yourself at home there--and your son
also . . ."

"Madame," said the Abbe, profoundly touched by the sincerity of her
manner, and by the evident cordiality of her intention, "I thank you
from my heart for your friendship at this moment when friendship is
most needed! But I feel I ought not to cast the shadow of my presence
on your house under such circumstances--and as for my son--it would
certainly be unwise for you to extend your gracious hospitality to him
. . . he is my son--yes truly!--and I acknowledge him as such; but he
is also another person of his own making--Gys Grandit!"

Angela Sovrani gave a slight cry, and a wave of colour flushed her
face,--the Princesse stood amazed.

"Gys Grandit!" she echoed in a low tone, "And Vergniaud's son! Grand
Dieu! Is it possible!" Then advancing, she extended both her hands to
Cyrillon, "Monsieur, accept my homage! You have a supreme genius,--and
with it you command more than one-half of the thoughts of France!"

Cyrillon took her hands,--lightly pressed, and released them.

"Madame, you are too generous!"

But even while he exchanged these courtesies with her, his eyes were
fixed on Angela Sovrani, who, moving close to her uncle's chair, had
folded her hands upon its sculptured edge and now stood beside it, a
graceful nymph-like figure of statuesque repose. But her breath came
and went quickly, and her face was very pale.

"No wonder Monsignor Moretti was so exceedingly angry," resumed the
Princesse D'Agramont with a smile, "I understand the position now. It
is a truly remarkable one. Monseigneur," this with a profound reverence
to the Cardinal, "you have found it difficult to be umpire in the
discussion."

"The discussion was not mine," said the Cardinal slowly, "But the cause
of the trouble is a point which affects many,--and I am one of those
who desire to hear all before I presume to judge one. I have asked the
son of my old friend Vergniaud to tell me what led him to make his
assumed name one of such terror and confusion in the world; he is but
six-and-twenty, and yet . . ."

"And yet people talk much of me you would say, Monseigneur," said
Cyrillon, a touch of scorn lighting up his fine eyes, "True, and it is
easy to be talked of. That is nothing, I do not wish for that, except
in so far as it helps me to attain my ambition."

"And that ambition is?" queried the Princesse.

"To lead!" answered Cyrillon with a passionate gesture, "To gather the
straying thoughts of men into one burning focus--and turn THAT fire on
the world!"

They were all silent for a minute--then the Princesse D'Agramont spoke
again--

"But--Pardon me! Then you were about to destroy all your own chances of
the future in your wild impulse of this morning?"

"Oh, Madame, it was no wild impulse! When a man takes an oath by the
side of a dead woman, and that woman his mother, he generally means to
keep it! And I most resolutely meant to kill my father and make of
myself a parricide. But I considered my mother had been murdered
too--socially and morally--and I judged my vengeance just. If it had
not been for the boy there--" and he glanced at Manuel, "I should
certainly have fulfilled my intention."

"And then there would have been no Abbe Vergniaud, and no 'Gys
Grandit,'" said the Princesse lightly, endeavouring to change the
sombre tone of the conversation,--"and the 'Christian Democratic' party
would have been in sackcloth and ashes!"

"The Christian Democratic party!" echoed the Cardinal, "What do they
mean? What do they want?"

"Christianity, Monseigneur! That is all!" replied Cyrillon, "All--but
so much! You asked me for my history--will you hear it now?"

There was an immediate murmur of assent, and the group around Cardinal
Bonpre were soon seated--all save Manuel, who remained standing. Angela
sat on a cushion at her uncle's feet, and her deep violet eyes were
full of an eager, almost feverish interest which she could scarcely
conceal; and the Abbe Vergniaud, vitally and painfully concerned as he
was in the narrative about to be told, could not help looking at her,
and wondering at the extraordinary light and beauty of her face thus
transfigured by an excitation of thought. Was she a secret follower of
his son's theories, he wondered? Composing himself in his chair, he sat
with bent head, marvelling as he heard the story of the bold and
fearless and philosophic life that had sprung into the world all out of
his summer's romance with a little innocent girl, whom he had found
praying to her guardian angel.

"It is not always ourselves," began Cyrillon in his slow, emphatic, yet
musical voice, "who are responsible for the good or the evil we may do
in our lives. Much of our character is formed by the earliest
impressions of childhood--and my earliest impressions were those of
sorrow. I started life with the pulse of my mother's broken heart
beating in me,--hence my thoughts were sombre, and of an altogether
unnatural character to a child of tender years. We lived--my mother and
I--in a small cottage on the edge of a meadow outside the quaint old
city of Tours--a meadow, full at all seasons, of the loveliest wild
flowers, but sweetest in the springtime when the narcissi bloomed,
lifting their thousand cups of sweet perfume like incense to the sky. I
used to sit among their cool green stems,--thinking many thoughts,
chief among which was a wonder why God had made my little mother so
unhappy. I heard afterwards that God was not to blame,--only man,
breaking God's laws of equity. She was a good brave woman, for despite
her loneliness and tears, she worked hard;--worked to send me to
school, and to teach me all she herself knew--which was little enough,
poor soul,--but she studied in order to instruct me,--and often when I
slept the unconscious sleep of healthy childhood, she was up through
half the night spelling out abstruse books, difficult enough for an
educated woman to master, but for a peasant--(she was nothing
more)--presenting almost superhuman obstacles. I was very quick to
learn, and her loving patience was not wasted upon me;--but when I was
about eleven years old I resolved that I could no longer burden her
with the expenses of my life--so without asking her consent, I hired
myself out to a farmer, to clear weeds from his fields, and so began to
earn my bread, which is the best and noblest form of knowledge existing
in the world for all of us. With the earning of my body's keep came
spiritual independence, and young as I was I began to read and consider
for myself--till when I was about fifteen chance brought me across the
path of a man whose example inspired me and decided my fate, named
Aubrey Leigh."

Angela gave a slight exclamation of surprise, and Cyrillon turned his
dark eyes upon her.

"Yes, mademoiselle!--I am aware that he has been in Paris lately. No
doubt you know him. Certainly he is born to be a leader of men, and if
a noble life and unsullied character, together with eloquence,
determination, and steadfastness of purpose can help him to fulfil his
mission, he will assuredly succeed. He is from America, though born of
British parents, and the first thing I gathered from him was an
overwhelming desire to study and to master the English language--not
because it was English, but because it was the universal language
spoken by America. I felt from what he said then,--and I feel still
from what I have learnt and know now,--that America has all the future
in the hollow of her hand. My intention, had I succeeded in my
revengeful attempt this morning, was to escape to America immediately,
and from there write under the nom de plume which I have already made
known. I can write as easily in English as in French,--for my friend
Aubrey Leigh was very kind and took a great liking to me, and stayed in
Touraine for a year and a half, simply for the pleasure of instructing
me and grafting his theories upon my young and aspiring mind. And now
we are as one in our hopes and endeavours, and the years make little
disparity between us. He was twenty-two when I was but fifteen,--but
now that I am twenty-six and he thirty-three we are far better matched
associates. From him I learnt much of the discontents,--ethical and
religious,--of the world; from him I learnt how to speak in public. He
was then an actor, a sort of wandering 'Bohemian,'--but he soon tired
of the sordidness of the stage and aspired to higher platforms of work,
and he had already begun to lead the people by his powers of oratory,
as he leads them now. I heard him speak in French as fluently as in
English; and I resolved on my part to speak likewise in English as
easily as he did in French. And when we parted it was with a mutual
resolve TO LEAD!--to lead--and ever still to lead!--we would starve on
our theories, we said, but we would speak out if it cost us our very
lives. To earn daily bread I managed to obtain steady employment as a
labourer in the fields,--and I soon gained sufficient to keep my mother
and myself. My friend Aubrey had imbued me thoroughly with the love of
incessant hard work; there was no disgrace, he said, in digging the
soil, if the brain were kept working as well as the hands. And I did
keep my brain working; I allowed it also to lie fallow, and to absorb
everything of nature that was complex, grand and beautiful,--and from
such studies I learnt the goodness and the majesty of the Creator as
they are never found in human expositions of Him made by the preachers
of creeds. At eighteen I made my first public address,--and the next
year published my first book in Tours. But though I won an instant
success my soul was hampered and heavy with the burning thought of
vengeance; and this thought greatly hindered the true conceptions of
life that I desired to entertain. When my mother died, and her failing
voice crooned for the last time, 'Ah, la tristesse d'avoir aime!' the
spark of hatred I had cherished all the years of my life for my father
burst into a flame, and leapt up to its final height this morning as
you saw. Now it has gone out into dust and ashes--the way of all such
flames! I have been spared for better things I hope. What I have
written and done, France knows,--but my thoughts are not limited to
France, they seek a wider horizon. France is a decaying nation--her
doom is sealed. I work and write for the To-Be, not the Has-Been. Such
as my life is, it has never been darkened or brightened by love of any
sort, save that which my mother gave me. Your Eminence," and he turned
towards the Cardinal, "asks me why I inculcate theories which suggest
change, terror and confusion;--Monseigneur, terror and confusion can
never be caused save among the ranks of those who have secret reason to
be terrorised! There is nothing terrifying in Truth to those who are
true! If I distract and alarm unworthy societies, revolting hypocrism,
established shams and miserable conventions, I am only the wielder of
the broom that sweeps out the cobwebs and the dust from a dirty house.
My one desire is to make the habitation of Christian souls clean!
Terror and confusion there will be,--there must be;--the time is ripe
for it--none of us can escape it--it is the prophesied period of 'men's
hearts failing them for fear, and looking after those things which are
coming on the earth.' I have not made the time. I am born OF it--one
WITH it;--God arranges these things. I am not working for self or for
money,--I can live on bread and herbs and water. I want no luxurious
surroundings,--no softnesses--no delicacies--no tendernesses--no
sympathies! I set my face forward in the teeth of a thousand winds of
opposition, forward still forward! I seek nothing for my own personal
needs! I know that nothing can hinder me or keep me back! Nothing!
Monseigneur, I voice the cry of multitudes!--they have, as it were,
been wandering in the wilderness listening to the Gospel for many
days,--days which have accumulated to more than eighteen hundred years;
just as they did of old,--only the Master did not send them away
hungry--He fed them lest they should 'faint by the way.' He thought of
that possibility!--we seldom care how many faint by the way, or die in
the effort to live! Monseigneur, I must--I will speak for the dumb
mouths of the nations! And every unit that can so speak, or can so
write, should hasten to turn itself into a Pentecostal flame of fire to
blaze and burn a warning upon the verge of this new century,--causing
men to prophesy with divers tongues, of the Truth of God,--not of the
lies that have been made to represent Him!"

Felix Bonpre raised one hand with a slight gesture enjoining silence,
and seemed wrapped for a moment in painful meditation. Angela looking
anxiously up at him caught, not his glance, but that of Manuel, who
smiled at her encouragingly. Presently the Cardinal spoke,--gently and
with a kind of austere patience.

"Am I to understand from your speech, my son, and the work of your
life, that you consider the Church a lie? I put the question plainly;
but I do not ask it either to reproach or intimidate you. I am well
aware I can do neither. Thought is free to the individual as well as to
the nations; and whereas, in past time we had one man who could think
and speak, we have now a thousand! We are unfortunately apt to forget
the spread of education;--but a man who thinks as you do, and dares all
things for the right to act upon his thought, should surely be able to
clearly explain his reasons for arming himself against any outwardly
expressed form of faith, which has received the acceptance and
submission of the world?"

"Monseigneur, I do not attack any faith! Faith is necessary,--faith is
superb! I honour this uplifting virtue,--whether I find it in the
followers of the Talmud or the Koran, or the New Testament, and,
personally speaking, I would die for my belief in the great name and
ethical teaching of Christ. I attack the Church--yes,--and why? Because
it has departed from the Faith! Because it is a mere system
now,--corrupt in many parts, as all systems must naturally become when
worn out by long usage. In many ways it favours stupid idolatries, and
in others it remains deaf and blind and impervious to the approach of
great spiritual and religious facts, which are being made splendidly
manifest by Science. Why, there is not a miracle in the Testament that
science will not make possible!--there is not a word Christ ever spoke
that shall not be proved true! And may I not be called a Christian? I
may,--I must,--I will be,--for I am! But hypocrisy, false measures,
perverted aims, and low pandering to ignorance and brutality, vile
superstition and intimidation--these things must be destroyed if the
Church is to last with honour to itself and with usefulness to others.
To-day, over in England, they are quarrelling with bitter acrimony
concerning forms and outward symbols of religion, thus fulfilling the
words of the Lord, 'Ye make clean the outside of the cup and of the
platter but within ye are full of extortion and excess.' Now, if the
Spirit of Christ were at all in these men who thus argue, there would
be no trouble about forms or symbols of faith,--there would be too much
of the faith itself for any such petty disputation. Monseigneur, I
swear to you, I say nothing, teach nothing but what is the straight and
true command of Christ! . . . no more, but also no less!"

Moved by the young man's eloquence, the Cardinal looked at him
straightly in the eyes.

"You speak well," he said, "Some people would tell you that you have
that fluency of tongue which is judged dangerous. But danger is after
all only for those who have something to fear. If we of the Church are
pure in our intent nothing should disturb our peace,--nothing should
move us from our anchorage. Your ideas, you say, are founded on the
Master's Word?"

"Entirely," replied Cyrillon, "I am working,--Aubrey Leigh is
working,--we are all working for a House of Praise more than a Place of
Prayer. We want to give thanks for what we are, and what, if we follow
the sane and healthy laws of life, we may be,--rather than continue the
clamour for more benefits when we have already received, and are
receiving so much."

"Would you not pray at all then?" asked Bonpre.

"Yes--for others, not for ourselves! And then not as the Church prays.
Her form of service is direct disobedience!"

"In what way?"

"Monseigneur, I always preface my remarks on these subjects with the
words 'IF we believe in Christ.' I say IF we believe, we must accept
His commands; and they are plain enough. 'WHEN YE PRAY, USE NOT VAIN
REPETITIONS AS THE HEATHEN DO, FOR THEY THINK THEY SHALL BE HEARD FOR
THEIR MUCH SPEAKING. BE NOT YE THEREFORE LIKE UNTO THEM, FOR YOUR
FATHER KNOWETH WHAT THINGS YE HAVE NEED OF BEFORE YE ASK HIM.' Now if
this is to be understood as the command of Christ, the Messenger of
God, do we not deliberately act against it in all directions? Vain
repetitions! The Church is full of them,--choked with them! The priests
who order us to say ten or twenty 'Paternosters' by way of penance, are
telling us to do exactly what Christ commanded us not to do! The
terrible Litany of the Protestant Church, with its everlasting 'Good
Lord deliver us,' is another example of vain repetition. Again--think
of these words--'When thou prayest, thou shalt NOT BE AS THE HYPOCRITES
ARE, for they love to pray standing in the synagogues, and at the
corners of the streets THAT THEY MAY BE SEEN OF MEN.' Is not all our
churchgoing that we may be seen of men?"

"Then, my son, it seems that you would do away with the Church
altogether in the extremity of your zeal!" said the Cardinal gently,
"There must surely be some outward seeming--some city set on a hill
whose light cannot be hid--some visible sign of Christ among us--"

"True, Monseigneur, but such a sign must be of so brilliant and pure a
nature,--so grand an uplifted Cross of unsullied light that it shall be
as the sun rising out of darkness! Oh, I would have churches built
gloriously, with every possible line of beauty and curve of perfect
architecture in their fabrication;--but I would have no idolatrous
emblems,--no superstitious ceremonies within them,--no tawdry
reliquaries of gems--no boast of the world's wealth at all; but great
Art,--the result of man's great Thought rendered and given with pure
simplicity! I would have great music,--and more than all I would have
thanksgiving always! And if valuables were brought to the altar for
gifts, the gifts should be given out again to those in need-not
kept,--not left untouched like a miser's useless hoard, while one poor
soul was starving!"

"My son, such a scheme of purification as yours will take centuries to
accomplish," murmured Bonpre slowly, "Almost it would need Christ to
come again!"

"And who shall say He will not come!" exclaimed Cyrillon fervently,
"Who shall swear He is not even now among us! Has he not told us all to
'watch,' because we know not the hour at which He cometh? No,
Monseigneur!--centuries are not needed for Truth to make itself
manifest nowadays! We hold Science by the hand,--she is becoming our
familiar friend and companion, and through her guidance we have learned
that the Laws of the Universe are Truth,--Truth which cannot be
contradicted; and that only the things which move and work in harmony
with those laws can last. All else must perish! 'WHOSOEVER IS NOT WITH
ME IS AGAINST ME'--or in other words, whosoever opposes himself to
Eternal Laws must be against the whole system of the Universe. and is
therefore a discord which is bound to be silenced. Monseigneur, Christ
was a Divine Preacher of Truth;--and I, in my humble man's way
endeavour to follow Truth. And if I ever fail now, after to-day's
attempted crime, to honour the commands of Christ, and obey them as
closely as I can, then pass your condemnation upon me, but not till
then! Meanwhile, give me a good man's blessing!"

Deeply interested as he was, the Cardinal nevertheless still hesitated.
To him, though the sayings and opinions of the famous "Gys Grandit"
were not exactly new, there was something terrible in hearing him utter
them with such bold and trenchant meaning. He sighed, and appeared lost
in thought; till Manuel touched him gently on the arm.

"Dear friend, are you afraid to bless this man who loves our Father?"

"Afraid? My child, I am afraid of nothing--but there is grave trouble
in my heart--"

"Nay, trouble should never enter there!" said Manuel softly, "Stretch
out your hand!--let no human soul wait for a benediction!"

Profoundly moved, the Cardinal obeyed, and laid his white trembling
hand on Cyrillon's bent head.

"May God forgive thee the intention of thy sin today!" he said, in a
low and solemn tone--"May Christ guide thee out of all evil, and lead
thee through the wildness of the world to Heaven's own peace, which
passeth understanding!"

So gentle, so brave, so sweet and tender were the accents in which he
spoke these few simple works, that the tears filled Angela's eyes, and
Abbe Vergniaud, resting his head on one hand, felt a strange
contraction in his throat, and began to think of possible happy days
yet to be passed perchance in seclusion with this long-denied son of
his, who had sprung out of the secret ways of love, first to slay and
then to redeem him. Could there be a more plain and exact measuring out
of law? If he had not confessed his sin he would have probably died in
it suddenly without a chance of amendment or repentance--but lo!--on
confession, his life had been saved as if by a miracle, and the very
result of evil had been transformed into consolation! So he sat
absorbed, wondering--musing--and while the Cardinal spoke his blessing
with closed eyes, all heads were bent, and faces hidden. And in the
reverent silence that followed, the gentle prelate gave a sign of kind
dismissal and farewell to all, which they, understanding, accepted, and
at once made their brief adieuxthe Abbe Vergniaud only lingering a
moment longer than the rest, to bend humbly down and kiss his Apostolic
ring. Then they left him, alone with Manual.

On their way out of the house, through Angela's studio, the Princesse
D'Agramont paused for a few minutes to say further kind words to the
Abbe respecting the invitation she had given him to her Chateau--, and
while she was thus engaged, Angela turned hurriedly to Cyrillon.

"As 'Gys Grandit' you receive many letters from strangers, do you not?"

The young man regarded her earnestly, with unconcealed admiration
glowing in his fine eyes.

"Assuredly, Mademoiselle! And some of these letters are very dear to
me, because they make me aware of friends I might otherwise never have
known."

"You have one correspondent who is deeply interested in your theories,
and who sympathises keenly in all your religious views--" she went on,
lowering her eyes--"a certain Madame Angele--"

He uttered a quick exclamation of pleasure.

"You know her?"

She looked up,--her eyes sparkled--and she laid a finger on her lips.

"Keep my secret!" she said--"I am so glad to meet you personally at
last!"

He stared, bewildered.

"You--you . . . !"

"Yes. I!" and she smiled--"The mysterious and Christian-Democratic
'Angele' is Angela Sovrani. So you see we have been unconscious friends
for some time!"

His face grew radiant, and he made a quick movement towards her.

"Then I owe you a great debt of gratitude!" he said--"For
encouragement--for sympathy--for help in dark hours!--and how unworthy
I have proved of your goodness . . . what must you think of me--you--so
beautiful--so good--"

She moved back a little with a warning gesture--and his words were
interrupted by the Abbe, who glancing from one to the other in a little
surprise, said, as he bent reverently over her hand and kissed it,--

"We must be going, Cyrillon!"

Another few moments and Angela was left alone to think over, and try to
realise the strange and rapidly-occurring events of the day. Whatever
her thoughts were they seemed for a long time to be of a somewhat
April-like character, for her eyes brimmed over with tears even while
she smiled.



XVII.

In one of the few remaining streets of Rome which the vandal hand of
the modern builder and restorer has not meddled with, stands the "Casa
D'Angeli", a sixteenth-century building fronted with wonderfully carved
and widely projecting balconies--each balcony more or less different in
design, yet forming altogether in their entirety the effect of complete
sculptural harmony. The central one looks more like a cathedral shrine
than the embrasure of a window, for above it angels' heads look out
from the enfolding curves of their own tall wings, and a huge shield
which might serve as a copy of that which Elaine kept bright for
Lancelot, is poised between, bearing a lily, a cross, and a heart
engraven in its quarterings. Here, leaning far forward to watch the
intense gold of the Roman moon strike brightness and shadow out of the
dark uplifted pinions of her winged stone guardians, stood Sylvie
Hermenstein, who, in her delicate white attire, with the moonbeams
resting like a halo on her soft hair, might have easily passed for some
favoured saint whom the sculptured angels were protecting. And yet she
was only one whom the world called "a frivolous woman of society, who
lived on the admiration of men". So little did they know her,--so
little indeed does the world know about any of us. It was true that
Sylvie, rich, lovely, independent, and therefore indifferent to
opinions, lived her own life very much according to her own ideas,--but
then those ideas were far more simple and unworldly than anybody gave
her credit for. She to whom all the courts of Europe were open,
preferred to wander in the woods alone, reading some favourite book, to
almost any other pleasure,--and as for the admiration which she won by
a look or turn of her head wherever she went, nothing in all the world
so utterly bored her as this influence of her own charm. For she had
tried men and found them wanting. With all the pent-up passion of her
woman's soul she longed to be loved,--but what she understood by love
was a much purer and more exalted emotion than is common among men and
women. She was suffering just now from an intense and overpowering
ennui. Rome was beautiful, she averred, but dull. Stretching her fair
white arms out over the impervious stone-angels she said this, and more
than this, to someone within the room, who answered her in one of the
most delightfully toned voices in the world--a voice that charmed the
ear by its first cadences, and left the listener fascinated into
believing that its music was the expression of a perfectly harmonious
mind.

"You seem very discontented," said the voice, speaking in English, "But
really your pathway is one of roses!"

"You think so?" and Sylvie turned her head quickly round and looked at
her companion, a handsome little man of some thirty-five years of age,
who stretching himself lazily full length in an arm-chair was toying
with the silky ears of an exceedingly minute Japanese spaniel, Sylvie's
great pet and constant companion. "Oh, mon Dieu! You, artist and
idealist though you are--or shall I say as you are supposed to be," and
she laughed a little, "you are like all the rest of your sex! Just
because you see a woman able to smile and make herself agreeable to her
friends, and wear pretty clothes, and exchange all the bon mots of
badinage and every-day flirtation, you imagine it impossible for her to
have any sorrow!"

"There is only one sorrow possible to a woman," replied the gentleman,
who was no other than Florian Varillo, the ideal of Angela Sovrani's
life, smiling as he spoke with a look in his eyes which conveyed an
almost amorous meaning.

Sylvie left the balcony abruptly, and swept back into the room, looking
a charming figure of sylph-like slenderness and elegance in her
clinging gown of soft white satin showered over with lace and pearls.

"Only one sorrow!" she echoed, "And that is--?"

"Inability to win love, or to awaken desire!" replied Varillo, still
smiling.

The pretty Comtesse raised her golden head a little more proudly, with
the air of a lily lifting itself to the light on its stem--her deep
blue eyes flashed.

"I certainly cannot complain on that score!" she said, with a touch of
malice as well as coldness--"But the fact that men lose their heads
about me does not make me in the least happy."

"It should do so!" and Varillo set the little Japanese dog carefully
down on the floor, whereupon it ran straight to its mistress, uttering
tiny cries of joy, "There is no sweeter triumph for a woman than to see
men subjugated by her smile, and intimidated by her frown;--to watch
them burning themselves like moths in her clear flame, and dying at her
feet for love of her! The woman who can do these things is gifted with
the charm which makes or ruins life,--few can resist her,--she draws
sensitive souls as a magnet draws the needle,--and the odd part of it
all is that she need not have any heart herself--she need not feel one
pulse of the passion with which she inspires others--indeed it is
better that she should not. The less she is moved herself, the greater
is her fascination. Love clamours far more incessantly and passionately
at a closed gate than an open one!"

Sylvie was silent for a minute or two looking at him with something of
doubt and disdain. The room they were in was one of those wide and
lofty apartments which in old days might have been used for a prince's
audience chamber, or a dining hall for the revelry of the golden youth
of Imperial Rome. The ceiling, supported by eight slender marble
columns, was richly frescoed with scenes from Ariosto's poems, some of
the figures being still warm with colour and instinct with life--and on
the walls were the fading remains of other pictures, the freshest among
them being a laughing Cupid poised on a knot of honeysuckle, and
shooting his arrow at random into the sky. Ordinarily speaking, the
huge room was bare and comfortless to a degree,--but the Comtesse
Sylvie's wealth, combined with her good taste, had filled it with
things that made it homelike as well as beautiful. The thickest velvet
pile carpets laid over the thickest of folded mattings, covered the
marble floors, and deprived them of their usual chill,--great logs of
wood burned cheerfully in the wide chimney, and flowers, in every sort
of quaint vase or bowl, made bright with colour and blossom all dark
and gloomy corners, and softened every touch of melancholy away. A
grand piano stood open,--a mandoline tied with bright ribbons, lay on a
little table near a cluster of roses and violets,--books, music,
drawings, bits of old drapery and lace were so disposed as to hide all
sharp corners and forbidding angles,--and where the frescoes on the
wall were too damaged to be worth showing even in outline, some fine
old Flemish tapestry covered the defect. Sylvie herself, in the
exquisite clothing which she always made it her business to wear, was
the brilliant completion of the general picturesqueness,--and Florian
Varillo seemed to think so as he looked at her with the practised
underglance of admiration which is a trick common to Italians, and
which some women accept as a compliment and others resent as an insult.

"Do you not agree with me?" he said persuasively, with a smile which
showed his fine and even teeth to perfection, "When the chase is over
the hunters go home tired! What a man cannot have, that very thing is
what he tries most to obtain!"

"You speak from experience, I suppose," said Sylvie, moving slowly
across the room towards the fire, and caressing her little dog which
she held nestled under her rounded chin like a ball of silk, "And yet
you, more than most men, have everything you can want in this
world--but I suppose you are not satisfied--not even with Angela!"

"Angela is a dear little woman!" said Florian, with an air of emotional
condescension, "The dearest little woman in the world! And she is
really clever."

"Clever!" echoed Sylvie, "Is that all?"

"Cara Contessa, is not that enough?"

"Angela is a genius," averred Sylvie, with warmth and energy, "a true
genius!--a great,--a sublime artist!"

"Che Che!" and Varillo smiled, "How delightful it is to hear one woman
praise another! Women are so often like cats spitting and hissing at
each other, tearing at each other's clothes and reputations,--clothes
even more than reputations,--that it is really quite beautiful to me to
hear you admire my Angela! It is very generous of you!"

"Generous of me!" and the Comtesse Hermenstein looked him full in the
eyes, "Why I think it an honour to know her--a privilege to touch her
hand! All Europe admires her--she is one of the world's greatest
artists."

"She paints wonderfully well,--for a woman," said Varillo lazily, "But
there is so much in that phrase, cara Contessa, 'for a woman'. Your
charming sex often succeeds in doing very clever and pretty things; but
in a man they would not be considered surprising. You fairy creatures
are not made for fame--but for love!"

The Comtesse glanced him up and down for a moment, then laughed
musically.

"And for desertion, and neglect as well!" she said, "And sometimes for
bestowing upon YOUR charming sex every fortune and every good blessing,
and getting kicked for our pains! And sometimes it happens that we are
permitted the amazing honour of toiling to keep you in food and
clothing, while you jest at your clubs about the uselessness of woman's
work in the world! Yes, I know! Have you seen Angela's great picture?"

Again Florian smiled.

"Great? No! I know that the dear little girl has fixed an enormous
canvas up in her studio, and that she actually gets on a ladder to
paint something upon it;--but it is always covered,--she does not wish
me to see it till it is finished. She is like a child in some things,
and I always humour her. I have not the least desire to look at her
work till she herself is willing to show it to me. But in myself I am
convinced she is trying to do too much--it is altogether too large an
attempt."

"What are YOU doing?" asked Sylvie abruptly.

"Merely delicate trifles,--little mosaics of art!" said Varillo with
languid satisfaction, "They may possibly please a connoisseur,--but
they are quite small studies."

"You have the same model you had last year?" queried Sylvie.

Their eyes met, and Varillo shifted uneasily in his chair.

"The same," he replied curtly.

Again Sylvie laughed.

"Immaculate creature!" she murmured, "The noblest of her sex, of
course! Men always call the women who pander to their vices 'noble'."

Varillo flushed an angry red.

"You are pleased to be sarcastic, fair lady." he said carelessly, "I do
not understand--"

"No? You are not usually so dense with me, though to those who do not
know you as well as I do, you sometimes appear to be the very stupidest
of men! Now be frank!--tell me, is not Pon-Pon one of the 'noble'
women?"

"She is a very good creature," averred Varillo gently, and with an air
that was almost pious,--"She supports her family entirely on her
earnings."

"How charming of her!" laughed Sylvie, "And so exceptional a thing to
do, is it not? My dressmaker does the same thing,--she 'supports' her
family; but respectably! And just think!--if ever your right hand loses
its cunning as a painter, Angela will be able to 'support' YOU!"

"Always Angela!" muttered Varillo, beginning to sulk, "Cannot you talk
of something else?"

"No,--not for the moment! She is an interesting subject,--to ME! She
will arrive in Rome to-morrow night, and her uncle Cardinal Bonpre,
will be with her, and they will all stay at the Sovrani Palace, which
seems to me like a bit of the Vatican and an old torture-chamber rolled
into one! And, talking of this same excellent Cardinal, they have
almost canonized him at the Vatican,--almost, but not quite."

"For what reason?"

"Oh, have you not heard? It appears he performed a miracle in Rouen,
curing a child who had been a cripple ever since babyhood, and making
him run about as well and strong as possible. One prayer did it, so it
is said,--the news reached the Vatican some days ago; our charming
Monsignor Gherardi told me of it. The secretary of the Archbishop of
Rouen brought the news personally to the Holy Father."

"I do not believe it," said Varillo indifferently, "The days of
miracles are past. And from what I know, and from what Angela has told
me of her uncle, Cardinal Bonpre, he would never lend himself to such
nonsense."

"Well, I only tell you what is just now the talk at the Vatican," said
Sylvie, "Your worthy uncle-in-law that is to be, may be Pope yet! Have
you heard from Angela?"

"Every day. But she has said nothing about this miracle."

"Perhaps she does not know,"--and Sylvie began to yawn, and stretch her
white arms above her head lazily, "Oh, DIO MIO! How terribly dull is
Rome!"

"How long have you been here, Contessa?"

"Nearly a week! If I am not more amused I shall go away home to
Budapest."

"But how is one to amuse you?" asked Varillo, sitting down beside her
and endeavouring to take her hand. She drew it quickly from him.

"Not in that way!" she said scornfully, "Is it possible that you can be
so conceited! A woman says she is dull and bored, and straightway the
nearest man imagines his uncouth caresses will amuse her! TIENS TIENS!
When will you understand that all women are not like Pon-Pon?"

Varillo drew back, chafed and sullen. His AMOUR PROPRE was wounded, and
he began to feel exceedingly cross. The pretty laugh of Sylvie rang out
like a little peal of bells.

"Suppose Angela knew that you wished to 'amuse' me in that particularly
unamusing way?" she went on, "You--who, to her, are CHEVALIER SANS PEUR
ET SANS REPROCHE!"

"Angela is different to all other women," said Varillo quickly, with a
kind of nervous irritation in his manner as he spoke, "and she has to
be humoured accordingly. She is extremely fantastic--full of strange
ideas and unnatural conceptions of life. Her temperament is studious
and dreamy--self-absorbed too at times--and she is absolutely
passionless. That is why she will make a model wife."

The Comtesse drew her breath quickly,--her blood began to tingle and
her heart to beat--but she repressed these feelings and said,

"You mean that her passionless nature will be her safety in all
temptation?"

"Exactly!" and Varillo, smiling, became good natured again--"For Angela
to be untrue would be a grotesque impossibility! She has no idea of the
stronger sentiment of love which strikes the heart like a lightning
flash and consumes it. Her powers of affection are intellectually and
evenly balanced,--and she could not be otherwise than faithful because
her whole nature is opposed to infidelity. But it is not a nature
which, being tempted, overcomes--inasmuch as there is no temptation
which is attractive to her!"

"You think so?" and a sparkle of satire danced in Sylvie's bright eyes,
"Really? And because she is self-respecting and proud, you would almost
make her out to be sexless?--not a woman at all,--without
heart?--without passion? Then you do not love her!"

"She is the dearest creature to me in all the world!" declared Florian,
with emotional ardour, "There is no one at all like her! Even her
beauty, which comes and goes with her mood, is to an artist's eye like
mine, exquisite,--and more dazzling to the senses than the stereotyped
calm of admitted perfection in form and feature. But, CARA CONTESSA, I
am something of an analyst in character--and I know that the delicacy
of Angela's charm lies in that extraordinary tranquillity of soul,
which, (YOU suggested the word!) may indeed be almost termed sexless.
She is purer than snow--and very much colder."

"You are fortunate to be the only man selected to melt that coldness,"
said Sylvie with a touch of disdain, "Myself, I think you make a great
mistake in calling Angela passionless. She is all passion--and
ardour--but it is kept down,--held firmly within bounds, and devoutly
consecrated to you. Pardon me, if I say that you should be more
grateful for the love and trust she gives you. You are not without
rivals in the field."

Florian Varillo raised his eyebrows smilingly.

"Rivals? VERAMENTE! I am not aware of them!"

"No, I should say you had too good an opinion of yourself to imagine
any rival possible!" said the Comtesse, "But such a person may exist!"

Varillo yawned, and flicked a grain of dust off his waistcoat with a
fastidious thumb and finger.

"Impossible! No one could possibly fall in love with Angela now! She is
an icicle,--no man save myself has the ghost of a chance with her!"

"Of course not," said Sylvie impatiently, "Because she is betrothed to
you. But if things were not as they are--"

"It would make no difference, I assure you," laughed Varillo gaily,
"Angela does not like men as a rule. She is fondest of romance--of
dreams--of visions, out of which come the ideas for her pictures--"

"And she is quite passionless with all this, you think?" said Sylvie,
"The 'stronger sentiment which strikes the heart like a flash of
lightning, and consumes it', as you so poetically describe it--could
never possibly disturb her peace?"

"I think not," replied Varillo, with a meditative air, "Angela and I
glided into love like two children wandering by chance into a meadow
full of flowers,--no storm struck us--no sudden danger signal flashed
from our eyes--no trembling hurry of the blood bade us rush into each
other's arms and cling!--nothing of this marvel touched us!--we loved
with all the calm--but without the glory!"

His voice,--the most fascinating quality attached to his
personality,--rose and fell in this little speech with an exquisite
cadence, half sad, half sweet,--and Sylvie, impressionable creature as
she was, with her innate love of romance and poetry, was unconsciously
moved by it to a faint sigh. There was nothing to sigh for, really,--it
was just a mere melodious noise of words, in the making of which
Florian Varillo was an adept. He had not an atom of serious thought in
his remark, any more than in the dainty verses he was wont to append to
his pictures--verses which he turned out with the lightest and swiftest
ease, and which read like his spoken sentences, as if there were a
meaning in them, when truly there was none. But Sylvie was just then in
a curious state of mind, and slight things easily impressed her. She
was in love--and yet she was not in love. The handsome face and figure
of the Marquis Fontenelle, together with many of his undoubted good and
even fine qualities, attracted her and held her in thrall, much more
than the consciousness of his admiration and pursuit of her,--but--and
this was a very interfering "but" indeed,--she was reluctantly
compelled to admit to herself that there was no glozing over the fact
that he was an incorrigibly "fast", otherwise bad man. His life was a
long record of LIAISONS with women,--an exact counterpart of the life
of the famous actor Miraudin. And though there is a saying that a
reformed rake makes the best husband, Sylvie was scarcely sure of being
willing to try this test,--besides, the Marquis had not offered himself
in that capacity, but only as a lover. In Paris,--within reach of him,
surrounded by his gracious and graceful courtesies everywhere, the
pretty and sensitive Comtesse had sometimes felt her courage oozing out
at her finger's ends,--and the longing to be loved became so strong and
overwhelming in her soul that she had felt she must perforce one day
yield to her persistent admirer's amorous solicitations, come what
would of it in the end. Her safety had been in flight; and here in
Rome, she had found herself, like a long-tossed little ship, suddenly
brought up to firm anchorage. The vast peace and melancholy grandeur of
the slowly dying "Mother of Nations", enveloped her as with a
sheltering cloak from the tempest of her own heart and senses, and
being of an exquisitely refined and dainty nature in herself, she had,
while employing her time in beautifying, furnishing and arranging her
apartments in the casa D'Angeli, righted her mind, so to speak, and
cleared it from the mists of illusion which had begun to envelop it, so
that she could now think of Fontenelle quietly and with something of a
tender compassion,--she could pray for him and wish him all things
good,--but she could not be quite sure that she loved him. And this was
well. For we should all be very sure indeed that we do love, before we
crucify ourselves to the cross of sacrifice. Inasmuch as if the love in
us be truly Love, we shall not feel the nails, we shall be unconscious
of the blood that flows, and the thorns that prick and sting,--we shall
but see the great light of Resurrection springing glorious out of
death! But if we only THINK we love,--when our feeling is the mere
attraction of the senses and the lighter impulses--then our crucifixion
is in vain, and our death is death indeed. Some such thoughts as these
had given Sylvie a new charm of manner since her arrival in Rome--she
was less mirthful, but more sympathetic--less RIANTE, but infinitely
prettier and more fascinating. Florian Varillo studied her
appreciatively in this regard after he had uttered his little
meaningless melody of sentiment, and thought within himself--"A week or
two and I could completely conquer that woman!" He was mistaken--men
who think these sort of things often are. But the thought satisfied
him, and gave bold lustre to his eyes and brightness to his smile when
he rose to take his leave. He had been one of the guests at a small and
early dinner-party given by the Comtesse that evening,--and with the
privilege of an old acquaintance, he had lingered thus long after all
the others had gone to their respective homes.

"I will bid you now the felicissima notte, cara e bella contessa!" he
said caressingly, raising her small white hand to his lips, and kissing
it with a lingering pressure of what he considered a peculiarly
becoming moustache--"When Angela arrives to-morrow night I shall be
often at the Palazzo Sovrani--shall I see you there?"

"Of course you will see me there," replied Sylvie, a little
impatiently, "Am I not one of Angela's closest friends?"

"True! And for the sake of la mia dolcezza, you will also be a friend
to me?"

"'la mia dolcezza'", repeated Sylvie, "Is that what you call her?"

"Yes--but I fear it is not original!" said Varillo smiling, "One
Ariosto called his lady thus."

"Yes?" and Sylvie's eyes darkened and grew humid with a sudden
tenderness of thought, "It is a pretty phrase!"

"It should be used to YOU always, by every man who has my present
privilege!" said Varillo, gallantly, kissing her hand once more, "You
will be my friend?"

Sylvie disengaged her hand from his.

"You must not depend upon me, Signor," she said with sudden coldness,
"To be perfectly frank with you I am not sure that I like you. You are
very charming and very clever--but I doubt your sincerity."

"Ah, che sono infelice!" murmured varillo softly, "you are right,
bellissima madama! I am not myself with many people--but with you--you
are one of the few who understand me . . . I am the very soul of
candour!"

He fixed his eyes full upon her with an open and straight regard,
adding, "Can you doubt me?" in a touching tone of wounded feeling.

The Comtesse laughed, and her face flushed.

"Well, I do not know!" she said, with a light gesture of her hands as
though she threw something unpleasant away from her, "I shall fudge of
you by the happiness--or sorrow--of Angela!"

A slight frown contracted his brows--but it passed quickly, and the
candid smile illumined his mobile face once more.

"Ebben! Buona notte, bela capricciosa!" and bowing low he turned
towards the door, "Thank you a thousand times for a very happy evening!
Even when you are unkind to me you are still charming! Addio!"

She murmured an "addio" in response, and when he had gone, and the echo
of his footfall down the great marble stairs had completely died away,
she went out once more to the balcony and leaned among the sculptured
angels, a dainty, slender, white figure, with her soft flower-like face
turned up to the solemn sky, where the large moon marched like an
Amazon through space, attended by her legions and battalions of stars.
So slight, so fragile and sweet a woman!--with a precious world of love
pent up in her heart . . . yet alone--quite alone on this night of
splendid luminousness and majestic suggestions of infinity,--an
infinity so monstrous and solitary to the one delicate creature, whose
whole soul craved for a perfect love. Alas, for this "perfect love," of
which all the dearest women dream! Where shall they find it?--and how
shall they win it? Too often it comes when they may not have it; the
cup of nectar is offered to lips that are forbidden to drink of it,
because the world's convention stands between and turns the honey to
gall. One of the many vague problems of a future life, offered for our
consideration, is the one concerning the righteous satisfaction of
love. Will not those who have been bound fast as prisoners in the bonds
of matrimony without love, find those whose spirits are naturally one
with theirs, but whom they have somehow missed in this life? For
Byron's fine lines are eternally true,--

    "Few--none--find what they love or could have loved,--
     Though accident, blind contact, and the strong
     Necessity of loving, have removed
     Antipathies--but to recur ere long
     Envenom'd with irrevocable wrong."

And the "blind contact" is the worst of all influences brought to bear
upon the mind and heart,--the most pernicious, and the most deeply
weighted with responsibility. In this regard, Sylvie Hermenstein had
acted wisely by removing herself from association, or "blind contact"
with her would-be lover,--and yet, though she was aware that her doing
so had caused a certain dispersal of the atmosphere which almost veered
towards complete disillusion, she found nevertheless, that Rome as she
had said, was "dull"; her heart was empty, and longing for she knew not
what. And that deep longing she felt could not have been completely
gratified by the brief ardours of Fontenelle. And so she sat thinking
wearily,--wondering what was to become of her life. She had riches in
plenty, a fine estate and castle in Hungary,--servants at her beck and
call--and yet with all her wealth and beauty and brilliancy, she felt
that she was only loved by two persons in the world, her old butler,
and Madame Bozier, who had been her first governess, and who now lived
with her, as a sort of dame d'honneur surrounded with every comfort and
luxury, and who certainly served her former pupil with a faithful
worship that would not have changed, even if the direst poverty instead
of riches had been the portion of her beloved patroness. This elderly
lady it was who entered now with a soft and hesitating step, and
raising her glasses to her eyes, peered anxiously through the lighted
room towards the dark balcony where Sylvie stood, like a fairy fallen
out of the moon, and who presently ventured to advance and call softly,

"Sylvie!"

The pretty Comtesse turned and smiled.

"Is it you, Katrine? Will you come out here? It is not cold, and there
is a lace wrap on the chair,--put it round your dear old head and come
and be romantic with me!" and she laughed as the worthy Bozier obeyed
her, and came cautiously out among the angels' sculptured wings. "Ah,
dear Katrine! The happy days are gone when a dark-eyed Roman lover
would come strolling down a street like this to strike the chords of
his mandoline, and sing the dear old song,

    "'Ti voglio bene assai, E tu non pensi a me!'"

Without thinking about it, she sang this refrain suddenly in her sweet
mezzo-soprano, every note ringing clear on the silence of the night,
and as she did so a man of slim figure and medium height, stepped out
of the dark shadows and looked up. His half laughing eyes, piercing in
their regard, met the dreamy soft ones of the pretty woman sitting
among the angels' heads above him--and pausing a moment he
hesitated--then lifted his hat. His face was excessively delicate in
outline and very pale, but a half mischievous smile softened and
sweetened the firm lines of his mouth and chin, and as the moonbeams
played caressingly on his close curling crop of fair hair, he looked
different enough to most of the men in Rome to be considered singular
as well as handsome. Sylvie, hidden as she was among the shadows,
blushed and drew back, a little vexed with herself,--the worthy Madame
Bozier was very properly scandalised.

"My dear child!" she murmured, "Remember--we are in Rome. People judge
things so strangely! What an unfortunate error!--"

But Sylvie became suddenly unmanageable. Her love of coquetry and
mischief got the better of her, and she thrust out her pretty head over
the balcony once more.

"Be quiet, Katrine!" she whispered, "I was longing for a romance, and
here is one!" And detaching a rose from her dress she tossed it lightly
to the stranger below. He caught it--then looked up once more.

"Till we meet," he said softly in English,--and moving on among the
shadows, disappeared.

"Now, who do you suppose HE was?" enquired Sylvie, leaning back against
the edge of the balcony, with an arch glance at her gouvernante, "It
was someone unlike anyone else here, I am sure! It was somebody with
very bright eyes,--laughing eyes,--audacious eyes, because they laughed
at me! They sparkled at me like stars on a frosty night! Katrine, have
you ever been for a sleigh-ride in America? No, I did not take you
there,--I forgot! You would have had the rheumatism, poor dear! Well,
when you are in America during the winter, you go for rides over the
snow in a big sleigh, with tinkling bells fastened to the horses, and
you see the stars flash as you pass--like the eyes of that interesting
gentleman just now. His face was like a cameo--I wonder who he is! I
shall find out! I must do something desperate for Rome is so terribly
dull! But I feel better now! I like that man's eyes. They are SUCH a
contrast to the sleepy tiger eyes of the Marquis Fontenelle!"

"My dear Sylvie!" remonstrated Madame Bozier, "How can you run on in
this way? Do you want to break any more hearts? You are like a lamp for
unfortunate moths to burn themselves in!"

"Oh no, not I," said Sylvie, shaking her head with a touch of half
melancholy scorn, "I am not a 'professional' beauty! The Prince of
Wales does not select me for his admiration,--hence it follows that I
cannot possibly be an attraction in Europe. I have not the large frame,
the large hands, and the still larger feet of the beautiful English
ladies, who rule royal hearts and millionaires' pockets! Men scarcely
notice me till they come to know me--and then, pouf!--away go their
brains!--and they grovel at my small feet instead of the large ones of
the English ladies!" She laughed. "Now how is that, Katrine?"

"C'est du charme--toujurs du charme!" murmured Madame Bozier, studying
with a wistful affection the dainty lines of Sylvie's slight figure,
"And that is an even more fatal gift than beauty, chere petite!"

"Du charme! You think that is it? Yes?--and so the men grow stupid and
wild!--some want me, and some want my fortune--and some do not know
what they want!--but one thing is certain, that they all quarrel
together about me, and bore me to extinction!--Even the stranger with
the bright stars of an American winter for eyes, might possibly bore me
if I knew him!"

She gave a short sigh of complete dissatisfaction.

"To be loved, Katrine--really loved! What a delicious thing that would
be! Have you ever felt it?"

The poor lady trembled a little, and gave a somewhat mournful smile.

"No, you dear romantic child! I cannot say with truth that I have! I
married when I was very young, and my husband was many years older than
myself. He was afflicted with chronic rheumatism and gout, and to be
quite honest, I could never flatter myself that he thought of me more
than the gout. There! I knew that would amuse you!"--this, as Sylvie's
pretty tender laugh rippled out again on the air, "And though it sounds
as if it were a jest, it is perfectly true. Poor Monsieur Bozier! He
was the drawing master at the school where I was assistant
governess,--and he was very lonely; he wanted someone to attend to him
when the gouty paroxysms came on, and he thought I should do as well,
perhaps better than anyone else. And I--I had no time to think about
myself at all, or to fall in love--I was very glad to be free of the
school, and to have a home of my own. So I married him, and did my best
to be a good nurse to him,--but he did not live long, poor man--you see
he always would eat things that did not agree with him, and if he could
not get them at home he went out and bought them on the sly. There was
no romance there, my dear! And of course he died. And he left me
nothing at all,--even our little home was sold up to pay our debts.
Then I had to work again for my living,--and it was by answering an
advertisement in the Times, which applied for an English governess to
go to a family in Budapest, that I first came to know you."

"And that is all your history!" said Sylvie, "Poor dear Bozier! How
uneventful!"

"Yes, it is," and the worthy lady sighed also, but hers, was a sigh of
placid arid philosophical comfort. "Still, my dear, I am not at all
sorry to be uninteresting! I have rather a terror of lives that arrange
themselves into grand dramas, with terrible love affairs as the central
motives."

"Have you? I have not!" said Sylvie thoughtfully,--"With all my heart I
admire a 'grande passion.' Sometimes I think it is the only thing that
makes history. One does not hear nearly so much of the feuds in which
Dante was concerned, as of his love for Beatrice. It is always so, only
few people are capable of the strength and patience and devotion needed
for this great consummation of life. Now I--"

Madame Bozier smiled, and with tender fingers arranged one of the stray
knots of pearls with which Sylvie's white gown was adorned.

"You dear child! You were made for sweetness and caresses,--not
suffering . . ."

"You mistake!" said Sylvie, with sudden decision, "You, in your
fondness for me, and because you have seen me grow up from childhood,
sometimes still view me as a child, and think that I am best amused
with frivolities, and have not the soul in me that would endure
disaster. But for love's sake I would do anything--yes!
 . . . anything!"

"My child!"

"Yes," repeated Sylvie, her eyes darkening and lightening quickly in
their own fascinating way, "I would consent to shock the stupid old
world!--though one can scarcely ever shock it nowadays, because it has
itself become so shocking! But then the man for whom I would sacrifice
myself, must love ME as ardently as I would love HIM! That is the
difficulty, Katrine. For men do not love--they only desire."

She raised her face to the sky, and the moonbeams shed a golden halo
round her.

"That," she said slowly, "is the reason why I have come here to avoid
the Marquis Fontenelle. He does not love me!"

"He is a villain!" said Madame Bozier with asperity.

"Helas! There are so many villains!" sighed Sylvie, still looking up at
the brilliant heavens, "And sometimes if a villain really loves anybody
he half redeems his villainy. But the Marquis loves himself best of
anyone in the world . . . and I--I do not intend to be second in
anyone's affections! So . . ." she paused, "Do you see that star,
Katrine? It is as bright as if it were shining on a frosty night in
America. And do you not notice the resemblance to the eyes of the
stranger who has my rose? I daresay he will put it under his pillow
to-night, and dream!" She laughed,--"Let us go in!"

Madame Bozier followed her as she stepped back into the lighted salon,
where she was suddenly met by her little Arab page, carrying a large
cluster of exquisite red and white roses. A card was attached to the
flowers, bearing the words, "These many unworthy blossoms in return for
one beyond all worth."

The Comtesse read and passed it in silence to Madame Bozier. A smile
was on her face, and a light in her eyes.

"I think Rome is not so dull after all!" she said, as she set the
flowers carefully in a tall vase of Etruscan ware, "Do you know, I am
beginning to find it interesting!"



XVIII.

Aubrey Leigh was a man who had chosen his own way of life, and, as a
natural consequence of this, had made for himself an independent and
original career. Born in the New World of America he had been very
highly educated,--not only under the care of a strict father, and an
idolising mother, but also with all the advantages one of the finest
colleges in the States could give him. Always a brilliant scholar, and
attaining his successes by leaps and bounds rather than by close and
painstaking study, the day came,--as it comes to all finely-tempered
spirits,--when an overpowering weariness or body and soul took
possession of him,--when the very attainment of knowledge seemed
absurd,--and all things, both in nature and art, took on a sombre
colouring, and the majestic pageant of the world's progress appeared no
more than a shadow too vain and futile to be worth while watching as it
passed. Into a Slough of Despond, such as Solomon experienced when he
wrote his famous "Ecclesiastes," Aubrey sank unconsciously, and,--to do
him justice,--most unwillingly. His was naturally a bright, vivacious,
healthy nature--but he was over-sensitively organised,--his nerves did
not resemble iron so much as finely-tempered steel, which could not but
suffer from the damp and rust in the world's conventionalities. And
some "little rift within the lute" chanced to him, as it often chances
to many, so that the subtle music of his soul jarred into discord with
the things of life, making harsh sounds in place of melody. There was
no adequate cause for this,--neither disappointed love nor balked
ambition shadowed his days;--it was something altogether indefinable--a
delicate, vague discontent which, had he known it, was merely the first
stirring of an embryo genius destined one day to move the world. He did
not know what ailed him,--but he grew tired--tired of books--tired of
music--tired of sifting the perplexing yet enchanting riddles of
science--tired of even his home and his mother's anxious eyes of love
that watched his moods too closely for his peace,--and one day, out of
the merest boyish impulse, he joined a company of travelling actors and
left America. Why he did this he could never tell, save that he was a
student and lover of Shakespeare. Much to his own surprise, and
somewhat to his disgust, he distinguished himself with exceptional
brilliancy on the stage,--his voice, his manner, his physique and his
bearing were all exceptional, and told highly in his favour,--but
unfortunately his scholarly acumen and knowledge of literature went
against him with his manager. This personage, who was densely ignorant,
and who yet had all the ineffable conceit of ignorance, took him
severely to task for knowing Shakespeare's meanings better than he
did,--and high words resulted in mutual severance. Aubrey was hardly
sorry when his theatrical career came thus untimely to an end. At first
he had imagined it possible to become supreme in histrionic art,--one
who should sway the emotions of thousands by a word, a look or a
gesture,--he had meant to be the greatest Shakespearean actor of his
day; and with his knowledge of French, which was as perfect as his
knowledge of English, he had even foreseen the possibility of taking
the French stage as well as the English by storm. But when he gradually
came to discover the mean tricks and miserable treacheries used by his
fellow-actors to keep a rising comrade down,--when he felt to the core
of his soul the sordidness and uncleanness of his surroundings,--when
he shudderingly repulsed the would-be attentions of the painted drabs
called "ladies of the stage",--and above all, when he thought of the
peace and refinement of the home he had, for a mere freak,
forsaken,--the high tone of thought and feeling maintained there, the
exquisite gracefulness and charm of womanhood, of which his mother had
been, and was still a perfect embodiment, some new and far stronger
spirit rose up within him, crying--"What is this folly? Am I to sink to
the level of those whom I know and see are beneath me? With what I have
of brain and heart and feeling, are these unworthy souls to drag me
down? Shall I not try to feel my wings, and make one bold dash for
higher liberty? And if I do so, whither shall I fly?"

He had come to England at this period,--and in the small provincial
town where his final rupture with the illiterate theatrical manager had
taken place, there was a curious, silent contest going on between the
inhabitants and their vicar. The vicar was an extremely unpopular
person,--and the people were striving against him, and fighting him at
every possible point of discussion. For so small a community the
struggle was grim,--and Aubrey for some time could not understand it,
till one day an explanation was offered him by a man engaged in
stitching leather, in a dirty evil-smelling little hole of a shop under
a dark archway.

"You see, sir, it's this way," he said, "Bessie Morton,--she wor as
good a girl as ever stepped--bright and buxom and kind hearted--yes,
that was Bessie, till some black scoundrel got her love at a soft
moment, and took the better of her. Well!--I suppose some good
Christian folk would say she wor a bad 'un--but I'll warrant she worn't
bad at heart, but only just soft-like--and she an orphan, with no one
to look after her, or say she done ill or well. And there was a little
child born--the prettiest little creature ye ever saw--Bessie's own
copy--all blue eyes and chestnut hair--and it just lived a matter of
fower year, and then it took sick and died. Bessie went nigh raving
mad; that she did. And now, what do you think, sir? The passon refused
to bury that there little child in consecrated ground, cos'twas born
out of wedlock! What d'ye think of that for a follower of Jesus with
the loving heart? What d'ye think of that?"

"Think!" said Aubrey indignantly, with an involuntary clenching of his
hand, "Why, that it is abominable--disgraceful! I should like to thrash
the brute!"

"So would a many," said his informant with an approving chuckle, "So
would a many! But that's not all--there's more behind--and worse too--"

"Why, what can be worse?"

"Well, sir, we thinks--we ain't got proofs to go on--for Bessie keeps
her own counsel--but we thinks the passon hisself is the father of that
there little thing he winnot lay in a holy grave!"

"Good God!" cried Aubrey.

"Ay, ay--you may say 'Good God!' with a meaning, sir," said the
leather-seller--"And that's why, as we ain't got no facts and no power
with bishops, and we ain't able to get at the passon anyhow, we're just
making it as unpleasant for him in our way as we can. That's all the
people can do, sir, but what they does, they means!"

This incident deeply impressed Aubrey Leigh, and proved to be the
turning point in his career. Like a flash of light illumining some
divinely written scroll of duty, he suddenly perceived a way in which
to shape his own life and make it of assistance to others. He began his
plan of campaign by going about among the poorer classes, working as
they worked, living as they lived, and enduring what they endured.
Disguised as a tramp, he wandered with tramps. He became for a time one
of the "hands" in a huge Birmingham factory. After that he worked for
several months at the coal pits among the lowest of the men employed
there. Then he got a "job" in a dock-yard and studied the ways of
shipping and humanity together. During this time of self-imposed
probation, he never failed to write letters home to Canada, saying he
was "doing well" in England, but how this "doing well" was brought
about he never explained. And the actual motive and end of all his
experiences was as yet a secret locked within his own heart. Yet when
it was put into words it sounded simple enough,--it was merely to find
out how much or how little the clergy, or so-called "servants of
Christ", obeyed their Master. Did they comfort the comfortless? Were
they "wise as serpents, and harmless as doves"? Were they
long-suffering, slow to wrath, and forbearing one to the other? Did
they truly "feed the sheep"? Did they sacrifice themselves, their
feelings, and their ambitions to rescue what was lost? All these and
sundry other questions Aubrey Leigh set himself to answer,--and by and
by he found himself on an endless path of discovery, where at every
step some new truth confronted him;--some amazing hypocrisy burned
itself in letters of flame against the splendour of church
altars;--some deed of darkness and bigotry and cruelty smirched the
white robes of the "ordained to preach the Gospel". Gradually he became
so intently and vitally interested in his investigations, and his
sympathy for the uncomforted people who had somehow lost Christ instead
of finding Him, grew so keen that he resolved to give up his entire
life to the work of beginning to try and remedy the evil. He had no
independent means,--he lived from hand to mouth earning just what he
could by hard labour,--till one day, when the forces in his own soul
said "Ready!" he betook himself to one small room which he hired in a
fisherman's cottage on the coast of Cornwall, and there sat down to
write a book. Half the day he wrote, and half the day he earned his
bread as a common fisherman, going out with the others in storm and
shine, sailing through sleet and hail and snow, battling with the
waves, and playing with Death at every turn of the rocks, which, like
the teeth of great monsters, jagged the stormy shore. And he grew
strong, and lithe, and muscular--his outward life of hard and changeful
labour, accompanied by the inward life of intelligent and creative
thought, gradually worked off all depression of soul and effeminacy of
body,--his experience of the stage passed away, leaving no trace on his
mind but the art, the colour and the method,--particularly the method
of speech. With art, colour, and method he used the pen;--with the same
art, colour, and method he used his voice, and practised the powers of
oratory. He would walk for miles to any lonely place where he could be
sure of no interruption,--and there he would speak aloud to the roaring
waves and wide stretches of desolate land, and tell them the trenchant
things he meant one day to thunder into human ears. Always of a fine
figure, his bearing grew more dauntless and graceful,--the dangers of
the sea taught him self-control,--the swift changes of the sky gave him
the far-off rapt expression and keen flash of his eyes,--the pitiful
sorrows of the poor, in which, as he had elected to be one of them, he
was bound to share, had deepened the sympathetic lines round his
delicate mouth, and had bestowed upon his whole countenance that look
which is seldom seen save in the classic marbles--the look of being one
with, and yet above mankind. All the different classes of people with
whom he had managed to associate had called him "gentleman", a name he
had gently but firmly repudiated. "Call me a Man, and let me deserve
the title!" he would say smilingly, and his "mates" hearing this would
eye each other askance, and whisper among themselves "that he WAS a
gentleman for all that, though no doubt he had come down in the world
and had to work for his living. And no shame to him as he gave himself
no airs, and could turn a hand to anything." And so the time moved on,
and he remained in the Cornish fishing village till his book was
finished. Then he suddenly went up to London;--and after a few days'
absence came back again, and went contentedly on with the fishing once
more.

A month or so later, one night when the blackness of the skies was so
dense that it could almost be felt, it chanced that he and his
companions were far out at sea in their little smack, which lay
becalmed between two darknesses--the darkness of the rolling water, and
the darkness of the still heaven. Little waves lapped heavily against
the boat's side, and the only glimpse of light at all was the yellow
flicker of the lamp that hung from the mast of the vessel, casting a
tremulous flicker on the sombrous tide, when all at once a great noise
like the crash of thunder, or the roll of cannon, echoed through the
air, and a meteor more brilliant than an imperial crown of diamonds,
flared through the sky from height to depth, and with a blazing
coruscation of flying stars and flame, dropped hissingly down into the
sea. The fishermen startled, all looked up--the heavy black nets
dropped from their brown arms just as they were about to pull in.

"A sign of strife!" said one.

"Ay, ay! We shall hev a war maybe!"

Aubrey leaned far over the boat's side, and looked out into the dense
blackness, made blacker than ever by the sudden coming and going of the
flaming sky-phenomenon,--and half unconsciously he murmured, "Think not
that I am come to send peace on earth,--I come not to send peace, but a
sword!" And he lost himself in dreams of the past, present, and
future,--till he was roused to give a hand in the dragging up of the
nets, now full of glistening fish with silvery bodies and ruby
eyes,--and then his thoughts took a different turn and wandered off as
far back as the Sea of Galilee when the disciples, fishing thus, were
called by the Divine Voice, saying "Follow me, and I will make you
fishers of men!" And in silence he helped to row the laden boat
homewards, for there was no wind to fill the sail,--and the morning
gradually broke like a great rose blooming out of the east, and the sun
came peering through the rose like the calyx of the flower,--and still
in a dream, Aubrey walked through all that splendour of the early day
home to his lodging,--there to find himself,--like Byron,--famous. His
book was in everyone's hand--his name on everyone's tongue. Letters
from the publisher whom his visit to London had made his friend,
accompanied by a bundle of the chief newspapers of the day, informed
him that he had in one bound taken his place at the very head and front
of opinion,--and, finest proof of power, the critics were out like the
hounds in full cry, and were already baying the noble quarry. The
Church papers were up in arms--indignant articles were being added to
the "weeklies" by highly respectable clergymen with a large feminine
"following", and in the midst of all these written things, which in
their silent print seemed literally to make a loud clamour in the quiet
of his room, Aubrey, in his sea-stained fisherman's garb, with the
sparkle of the salt spray still glittering on his closely curling
bright hair, looked out at the clear horizon from which the sun had
risen up in all its majesty, and devoutly thanked God!

"I have written part of my message," he said to himself, "And now
by-and-by I shall speak!"

But he lived on yet for a time in the remote fishing village,
waiting,--without knowing quite what he waited for,--while the great
Gargantuan mouth of London roared his name in every imaginable key,
high and low, and gradually swept it across the seas to America and
Australia, and all the vast New World that is so swiftly rising up,
with the eternal balance of things, to overwhelm the Old. And presently
the rumour of his fame reached those whom he had left behind in the
quiet little town of his birth and boyhood,--and his mother, reading
the frantic eulogies, and still more frantic attacks of the different
sections of press opinion, wept with excitement and tenderness and
yearning; and his father, startled at the strange power and authority
with which this new Apostle of Truth appeared to be invested, trembled
as he read, but nevertheless held himself more erect with a pride in
his own old age that he had never felt before, as he said a hundred
times a day in response to eager questioners--"Yes,--Aubrey Leigh is my
son!" Then mother and father both wrote to Aubrey, and poured out their
affectionate hearts to him and blessed him, which blessing he received
with that strange heaving of the heart and contraction of the throat,
which in a strong man means tears. And still he waited on, earning his
bread in the humble village which knew nothing of him, save as one of
themselves,--for the inhabitants of the place were deaf and blind to
the ways of the world, and read little save old and belated newspapers,
so that they were ignorant of his newly celebrated personality,--till
one day the Fates gave him that chance for which, though he was
unconscious of it, he had been holding himself back, and counting the
slow strokes of time;--time which seems to beat with such a laggard
pulse when one sees some great thing needing to be done, and while
feeling all the force to do it, yet has to control and keep back that
force till the appointed hour strikes for action.

There had been a terrific storm at sea, and a herring smack had gone
down within sight of land, sinking eight strong men with it, all
husbands and fathers. One after the other, the eight bodies were thrown
back from the surging deep in the sullen grey morning on the day after
the catastrophe,--one after the other they were borne reverently up
from the shore to the village, there to be claimed by shrieking women
and sobbing children,--women, who from more or less contented,
simple-hearted, hard-working souls, were transformed into the grandly
infuriated forms of Greek tragedy--their arms tossing, their hair
streaming, their faces haggard with pain, and their eyes blind with
tears. Throughout the heart-rending scene, Aubrey Leigh worked silently
with the rest--composing the stiff limbs of the dead, and reverently
closing the glared and staring eyes; gently he had lifted fainting
women from the corpses to which they clung,--tenderly he had carried
crying children home to their beds,--and with sorrowful eyes fixed on
the still heaving and angry billows, he had inwardly prayed for ways
and means to comfort these afflicted ones, and raised their thoughts
from the gloom of the grave to some higher consummation of life. For
they were inconsolable,--they could neither see nor understand any
adequate cause for such grief being inflicted on them,--and the entire
little population of the village wore a resentful attitude towards God,
and God's inexorable law of death. When the funeral day came, and the
bodies of the eight unfortunate victims were committed to the earth, it
happened, as fate would have it, that the rector of the parish, a
kindly, sympathetic, very simple old man, who really did his best for
his parishoners according to the faint perception of holy things that
indistinctly illumined his brain, happened to be away, and his place
was taken by the assistant curate, a man of irritable and hasty temper,
who had a horror of "scenes," and who always put away all suggestions
of death from him whenever it was possible. It was very disagreeable to
him to have to look at eight coffins,--and still more disagreeable to
see eight weeping widows surrounded by forlorn and fatherless
children--and he gabbled over the funeral service as quickly as he
could, keeping his eyes well on the book lest he should see some
sobbing child looking at him, or some woman dropping in a dead faint
before he had time to finish. He was afraid of unpleasant
incidents--and yet with all his brusque and nervous hurry to avoid
anything of the kind, an unpleasant incident insisted on manifesting
itself. Just as the fourth coffin was being lowered into the ground, a
wild-haired girl rushed forward and threw herself upon it.

"Oh, my man, my man!" she wailed, "My own sweetheart!"

There was a moment's silence. Then one of the widows stepped out, and
approaching the girl, laid her hand on her arm.

"Are ye making a mock of me, Mary Bell?" she said, "Or is it God's
truth ye're speaking to my husband lying there?"

The distraught creature called Mary Bell looked up with a sudden
passion glowing in her tear-wet eyes.

"It's God's truth!" she cried, "And ye needn't look scorn on me!--for
both our hearts are broken, and no one can ever mend them. Yes! It's
God's truth! He was your husband, but my sweetheart! And we'll neither
of us see a finer man again!"

The curate listened, amazed and aghast. Was nothing going to be done to
stop this scandalous scene? He looked protestingly from right to left,
but in all the group of fisher-folk not a man moved. Were these two
women going to fight over the dead? He hummed and hawed--and began in a
thin piercing voice--"My friends--" when he was again interrupted by
the passionate speech of Mary Bell.

"I'm sorry for ye," she said, lifting herself from the coffin to which
she clung, and turning upon the widow of the drowned man, "and ye can
be just as sorry for me! He loved us both, and why should we quarrel! A
man is ever like that--just chancy and changeful--but he tried his
honest hardest not to love me--yes, he tried hard!--it was my fault!
for I never tried!--I loved him!--and I'll love him, till I go where he
is gone! And we'll see who God'll give his soul to!"

This was too much for the curate.

"Woman!" he thundered, "Be silent! How dare you boast of your sin at
such a time, and in such a place! Take her away from that coffin, some
of you!"

So he commanded, but still not a man moved. The curate began to lose
temper in earnest.

"Take her away, I tell you," and he advanced a step or two, "I cannot
permit such a scandalous interruption of this service!"

"Patience, patience, measter," said one of the men standing by, "When a
woman's heart's broke in two ways it ain't no use worrying her. She'll
come right of herself in a minute."

But the curate, never famous for forbearance at any time, was not to be
tampered with. Turning to his verger he said,

"I refuse to go on! The woman is drunk!"

But now the widow of the dead man suddenly took up the argument in a
shrill voice which almost tore the air to shreds.

"She's no more drunk than you are!" she cried passionately, "Leave her
alone! You're a nice sort of God's serving man to comfort we, when
we're all nigh on losing our wits over this mornin' o' misery, shame on
ye! Mary Bell, come here! If so be as my husband was your sweetheart,
God forgive him, ye shall come home wi' me!--and we'll never have a
word agin the man who is lying dead there. Come wi' me, Mary!"

With a wild cry of anguish, the girl rushed into her arms, and the two
women clung together like sisters united in the same passionate grief.
The curate turned a livid white.

"I cannot countenance such immorality," he said, addressing the verger,
though his words were heard by all present, "Enough of the service has
been said! Lower the coffins into the earth!" and turning on his heel
he prepared to walk away. But Aubrey Leigh stopped him.

"You will not finish the service, sir?" he asked civilly, but with
something of a warning in the flash of his eyes.

"No! The principal part of it is over. I cannot go on. These women are
drunk!"

"They are not drunk, save with their own tears!" said Aubrey, his rich
voice trembling with indignation. "They are not mad, except with grief!
Is it not your place to be patient with them?"

"My place! My place!" echoed the curate indignantly, "Man, do you know
to whom you are talking?"

"I think I do," answered Aubrey steadily, "I am talking to a professed
servant of Christ,--Christ who had patience and pardon for all men! I
am talking to one whose calling and vocation it is to love, to forgive,
and to forbear--whose absolute protestation has been made at the altar
of God that he will faithfully obey his Master. Even if these unhappy
women were drunk, which they are not, their fault in conduct would not
release you from the performance of your duty,--or the reverence you
are bound to show towards the dead!"

Trembling with rage, the curate eyed him up and down scornfully.

"How dare you speak to me about my duty! You common lout! Mind your own
business!"

"I will," said Aubrey, fixing his eyes full upon him, "And it shall be
my business to see that you mind yours! Both your rector and bishop
shall hear of this!"

He strode off, leaving the curate speechless with fury; and joining the
little crowd of mourners who had been startled and interrupted by this
unexpected scene, drew a prayer book from his pocket, and without
asking anyone's permission read with exquisite gravity and pathos the
concluding words of the funeral service,--and then with his own hands
assisted the grave-diggers to lay the coffined dead tenderly to rest.
Awestruck, and deeply impressed by his manner the fisher-folk
mechanically obeyed his instructions, and followed his movements till
all the sad business was over, and then they lingered about the
churchyard wistfully watching him, while he in turn, standing erect and
bare-headed near the open graves, looked at them with a strange pity,
love and yearning.

"It'll be all right when our owld passon comes back," said one of the
men addressing him, "It's just this half eddicated wastrel of a chap as
doesn't know, and doesn't care for the troubles of common folk like we."

Aubrey was silent for a space. "Common folk like we!" The words were
full of pathetic humility, and the man who spoke them was a hero of no
mean type, who had often buffeted the winds and waves to save a human
life at the risk of his own. "Common folk like we!" Aubrey laid his
hand gently on his "mate's" shoulder.

"Ben, old boy, there are no common folk in God's sight," he said, "Look
there!" and he pointed to the graves that were just beginning to be
filled in, "Every creature lying there had as much of God in him as
many a king, and perhaps more. In this majestic universe there is
nothing common!"

Ben shuffled one foot before the other uneasily.

"Ay, ay, but there's few as argify the way o' life in they lines!" he
said, "There's a many that think--but there's a main few that speak."

"That is true," said Aubrey, still keeping his hand on Ben's shoulder,
"there's a main few that speak! Now, _I_ want to speak, Ben,--I want to
have a talk to you and the rest of our mates about--well!--about the
dangers of the sea and other things. Will you meet me on the shore this
evening near the quay and listen to a word or two?"

Ben looked surprised but interested, and a puzzled smile came into his
eyes.

"Be ye a goin' to preach to us like the passon?" he said, "Or like the
fellers in the porter's caps as calls themselves Salvationists?"

Aubrey smiled.

"No! I only want to say a few parting words to you all."

"Parting words!" echoed Ben with a stupefied air.

"Yes--I am going away to-morrow--going for good. I have got some other
work to do. But I shall not forget you all . . . and you will hear of
me often,--yes, you will hear of me!--and some day I will come back.
But to-night . . . I should just like to say good-bye."

Ben was secretly much distressed. "Gentleman Leigh" as he was sometimes
called, had greatly endeared himself to their little community, and
that he should leave them was not at all a desirable thing, and would,
as Ben well knew, cause universal regret. But there was no time just
now for either argument or protestation, so Ben accepted the blow as he
accepted all buffetings of fate, and merely said,

"All right! We'll be there to-night for sure!" And then Aubrey, gravely
content, walked slowly out of the little churchyard still bare-headed,
his eyes dark with thought,--and the reluctant sun came out of the gray
sky and shone on his pale face and bright hair--and one or two of the
widowed women timidly touched his arm as he passed, and murmured, "God
bless you!" And Mary Bell, the sorrowful and sinning, clinging to the
waist of the woman she had wronged, looked up at him appealingly with
the strained and hunted gaze of a lost and desperate creature, and as
he met her eyes, turned shudderingly away and wept. And he, knowing
that words were useless, and that even the kindliest looks must wound
in such a case, passed on in silence, and when he reached his own
lodging took some of the newspapers which spoke of himself and his
book, and after marking certain passages, tied them up in a packet and
sent them to the curate with whom he had crossed swords that morning,
accompanied by a note which briefly ran thus:--

"You asked me how I 'dared' to speak to you about your duty. I
reply--By the force of truth and the power of the pen I dare!--and I
shall be ready to answer to God for it, as you must answer to him for
leaving any part of YOUR duty undone.

"AUBREY LEIGH."

And the day passed on, half in drifting clouds, half in glimpses of
sunshine, till late afternoon, when the sky cleared altogether, and the
waves sank to a dead calm;--and with the night a shield-like moon, all
glistening pearl and silver, rose up out of the east with a royal air
of white and wondering innocence, as though she proclaimed her entire
blamelessness for any havoc wrought by storm. And in the full radiance
of that silvery splendour Aubrey Leigh, leaning against the sea-weed
covered capstan of the quay, round which coils of wet rope glistened
like the body of a sleeping serpent, told to an audience of human
hearers for the first time the story of his life, and adventures, and
the varied experiences he had gone through in order to arrive at some
straight and clear comprehension of "the Way, the Truth, and the Life"
of the Gospel of Love and Mutual Labour. His practised voice, perfect
in all modulation, inflexion, and expression, carried each simple,
well-chosen word home to the hearts of his hearers,--not one so
ignorant as not to understand him--not one so blind as not to see the
beauty of work and creative effort as he depicted them,--not one so
insensate as not to feel the calm, the grandeur, and repose of the
strong soul of a man in complete sympathy with his fellow-men. They
listened to him almost breathlessly--their bronzed weather-beaten faces
all turned towards his; forgetting to smoke, they let their pipes die
out and drop from their hands--and no interruption broke the even flow
and cadence of his earnest language, save the slow ripple of the water
beating against the quay, and the faint, occasional sigh of a stirring
wind. Silhouetted black against the radiant sky were the masts of the
fishing fleet, and the roofs of the fishermen's cottages--dwellings so
often made desolate by death--and as Aubrey noted the fascinated
attention with which these rough men heard him, his heart grew strong.
"If a few listen, so will many," he said to himself, "The Master of our
creed first taught His divine ethics to a few fishermen,--to them the
message was first given . . . and by them again delivered,--and it is
through our having departed from the original simplicity of utterance
that all the evil has crept in. So let me be content with this night's
work and await the future with patience." Then lifting up his voice
once more he said,--

"You think your lot a hard one--you, friends and brothers, who set the
brown sails out to sea on a night of threatening storm, and bid
farewell to your homes built safe upon the shore. You must meet all the
horror of white foam and cloud-blackness, to drag from the sea its
living spoil, and earn the bread to keep yourselves and those who are
dependent upon you,--you MUST do this, or the Forces of Life will not
have you,--they will cast you out and refuse to nourish you. For so is
your fate in life, and work ordained. Then where is God?--you cry, as
the merciless billows rise to engulf your frail craft,--why should the
Maker of man so deliberately destroy him? Why should one human unit,
doing nothing, and often thinking nothing, enjoy hundreds of pounds a
day, while you face death to win as many pence? Is there a God of Love
who permits this injustice? Ah, stop there, friends! There is no such
thing as injustice! Strange as it sounds to this world of many
contradictions and perplexities, I repeat there is no such thing as
injustice. There is what SEEMS injustice--because we are all apt to
consider the material side of things only. That is where we make our
great mistake in life and conduct. We should all remember that this
world, and the things of this world, are but the outward expression of
an inward soul--the Matter evolved from Mind--and that unless we are
ourselves in harmony with the Mind, we shall never understand the
Matter. Your millionaire is surrounded with luxuries,--your fishermen
has dry bread and herring,--your millionaire dies, with a famous doctor
counting his pulse-beats, and a respectable clergyman promising him
heaven on account of the money he has left to the church in his will;
your fisherman goes down in a swirl of black water, without a
prayer--for he has no time to pray--without leaving a penny behind him,
inasmuch as he has no pence to leave; and for both these different
creatures we judge the end is come? No,--the end is NOT come! It is the
beginning only! If the millionaire has died with a thousand selfish
sores in his mind,--if his life's privileges have been wasted in high
feeding and self-indulgence,--if he has thought only of himself, his
riches, his pride, his position, or his particular form of
respectability, he will get the full result of that mental attitude! If
the fisherman has been content with his earnings, and thanked God for
them,--if he has been honest, brave, true, and unselfish, and has
shared with others their joys and sorrows, and if at the last he goes
down in the waves trying to save some other life while losing his
own,--depend upon it he will rise to the full splendour of THAT mental
attitude! For both millionaire and fisherman are but men, made on the
same lines, of the same clay, and are each one, personally and
separately responsible to God for the soul in them,--and when both of
them pass from this phase of being to the next, they will behold all
things with spiritual eyes, not material ones. And then it may be that
the dark will be discovered to be the bright, and the fortunate prove
to be the deplorable, for at present we 'see through a glass darkly,
but then, face to face.' The friends whom we have buried to-day are not
dead,--for death is not Death, but Life. And for those who are left
behind it is merely a time of waiting, for as the Master said, 'There
shall not a hair of your head perish. In your patience possess ye your
souls.'"

He paused a moment,--the moon rays illumined his delicate features, and
a half sorrowful smile rested on his lips.

"I am no clergyman, my friends! I have not been 'ordained'. I am not
preaching to you. I will not ask you to be good men, for there is
something effeminate in the sound of such a request made to brawny,
strong fellows such as you are, with an oath ready to leap from your
lips, and a blow prepared to fly from your fists on provocation. I will
merely say to you that it is a great thing to be a Man!--a Man as God
meant him to be, brave, truthful, and self-reliant, with a firm faith
in the Divine Ordainment of Life as Life should be lived. There is no
disgrace in work;--no commonness,--no meanness. Disgrace, commonness,
and meanness are with those who pretend to work and never do anything
useful for the world they live in. The king who amuses himself at the
expense and ruin of his subjects is the contemptible person,--not the
labourer who digs the soil for the planting of corn which shall help to
feed his fellows. And the most despicable creature of our time and
century, is not the man who doubts Christ, or questions God--for Christ
was patient with the doubter, and God answers, through the medium of
science, every honest question--it is the man who pretends to believe
and lives on the pretence, while his conduct gives the lie to his
profession! That is why you--and why thousands of others like you, are
beginning to look upon many of the clergy with contempt, and to treat
their admonitions with indifference. That is why thousands of the
rising generation of men and women will not go to church. 'The parson
does not do anything for me,' is a common every-day statement. And that
the parson SHOULD do something is a necessary part of his business. His
'doing' should not consist in talking platitudes from the pulpit, or in
sending round a collection plate. And if he has no money, and will not
'sell half that he has and give to the poor' as commanded, he can at
any rate give sympathy. But this is precisely what he chiefly lacks.
The parson's general attitude is one of either superiority or
servility,--a 'looking down' upon his poor parishoners--a 'looking up'
to his rich ones. A disinterested, loving observation of the troubles
and difficulties of others never occurs to him as necessary. But this
was precisely the example Christ gave us--an unselfish example of
devotion to others--a supreme descent of the Divine into man to rescue
and bless humanity. Now I know all your difficulties and sorrows,--I
have worked among you, and lived among you--and I feel the pulse of
your existence beating in my own heart. I know that when a great
calamity overwhelms you all as it has done this week, you have no one
to comfort you,--no one to assure you that no matter how strange and
impossible it seems, you have been deprived of your associates for some
GOOD cause which will be made manifest in due season,--that they have
probably been taken to save them from a worse fate than the loss of
earth-consciousness in the sea. For that, scientifically speaking, is
all that death means--the loss of earth-consciousness,--but the gain of
another consciousness, whether of another earth or a heaven none can
say. But there is no real death--inasmuch as even a grain of dust in
the air will generate life. We must hold fast to the Soul of
things--the Soul which is immortal, not the body which is mortal. 'What
shall it profit a man if he gain the whole world and lose his own
soul!' That is what each man of us must find, and hold, and keep,--his
own soul! Apart from all creeds, and clergy, forms and rituals--that is
the vital matter. Stand clear of all things,--all alone if need be,
surrounded by the stupendous forces of this great universe,--let us
find,--each man of us--his own soul; find and keep it brave, truthful,
upright, and bound straight on for the highest,--the highest always!
And the very stars in their courses will help us--storms will but
strengthen us--difficulties but encourage us--and death itself shall
but give us larger liberty."

He ceased, and one by one the men drew closer to him, and thanked him,
in voices that were tremulous with the emotion he had raised in them.
The instinct which had led them to call him "Gentleman Leigh" had
proved correct,--and there was not a man among them all who did not
feel a thrill of almost fraternal pride in the knowledge that the
dauntless, hard-working "mate" who had fronted tempests with them, and
worked with them in all weathers, had without any boast or loquacious
preparation, made his name famous and fit for discussion in the great
world of London far away, a world to which none of them had ever
journeyed. And they pressed round him and shook his hand, and gave him
simple yet hearty words of cheer and goodwill, together with unaffected
expressions of regret that he was leaving them,--"though for that
matter," said one of them, "we allus felt you was a scholard-like, for
all that you was so handy at the nets. For never did a bit of shell or
weed come up from the sea but ye was a lookin' at it as if God had
throwed it to yer for particular notice. And when a man takes to
obsarvin' common things as if they were special birthday presents from
the Almighty, ye may be pretty sure there's something out of the
ordinary in him!"

Aubrey smiled, and pressed the hand of this roughly eloquent
speaker,--and then they all walked with him up from the shore to the
little cottage where he had lived for so many months, and at the gate
of which he bade them farewell.

"But only for a time," he said, "I shall see you all again. And you
will hear of me!"

"Ay, ay, we'll hear of ye--for we'll take the papers in just for news
of yer!" said Ben, with a rough laugh which covered his deeper
feelings, "And mebbe ye'll come back afore we's all drownded!"

And so with a few more kindly words they left him, and he stood at the
gate watching their stalwart figures disappear down the different
windings of the crooked and picturesque little street.

"God bless them all!" he murmured, "They have taught me many a grand
lesson!"

The next day he took his quiet departure in the early morning before
the village folks were up and stirring,--and a month later he addressed
a large meeting in one of the poorest and most densely populated
districts of London on "The Ethics of Christ versus the Clergy", which
attracted universal attention and created an enormous sensation. His
book began to sell in thousands where it had previously sold in
hundreds, and he earned sufficient from the profits of the sale to keep
him going in the simple fashion of clothes and food to which he had
strictly disciplined himself, so that he felt free to plunge into the
thick of the fight. And he straightway did so. His name became a terror
to liars, and a clarion sound of alarm in the ears of social
hypocrites. He wrote another book which obtained even a larger hearing
than the first--and he spoke to the people on an average once a week,
wherever he could assemble them together. All his addresses were made
gratuitously, and he soon resembled a sort of blazing torch in the
darkness, to which the crowds rushed for light and leading. In the
midst of the sensation his writings and orations were creating, a noble
lord, with several Church livings in his gift, asked him to stand for
Parliament, and offered to pay the expenses of his election. At first
Aubrey was sufficiently tempted by the offer to pause hesitatingly on
the verge of acceptance, but twenty-four hours' hard thinking promptly
pulled him together. "No," he said--"I see what you mean! You and your
party wish to tie my hands--to gag my mouth, and make me as one of
yourselves--no, I will not consent to it. I will serve the people with
all my life and soul!--but not in YOUR way!"

And to avoid further discussion he went straight out of England for a
time, and travelled through Europe, making friends everywhere, and
learning new phases of the "Christian Dispensation" at every turn in
his road. Paris had held him fascinated for a long while, not only
because he saw her doom written like that of Babylon in letters of
fire, and Ruin, like a giant bird of prey hovering over her with beak
and claw prepared to pick the very flesh from her bones,--but also
because he had met Angela Sovrani, one of the most rarely-gifted types
of womanhood he had ever seen. He recognised her genius at once, and
marvelled at it. And still more did he marvel at her engagement of
marriage with Florian Varillo. That such a fair, proud creature so
splendidly endowed, could consent to unite herself to a man so vastly
inferior, was an interesting puzzle to him. He had met Varillo by
chance in Naples one winter before he ever saw Angela, and knew that
half his claim to the notice of the social world there was the fact of
his betrothal to the famous "Sovrani." And moved by a strange desire to
follow out this romance, and also because he was completing his studies
of the Roman Church viewed as a "moral support to the education and
elevation of man," he, after leaving Paris, and paying a brief visit to
Florence on a matter of business which could not be attended to
otherwise than personally, went on as though drawn by some invisible
magnet to Rome. He had only been twenty-four hours in the city, when
chance had led him under the balcony where the sculptured angels
fronted the moon, and from whence the sweet voice of Sylvie Hermenstein
had floated towards him with the words,--

"Ti voglio ben assai, E tu non pensi a me."

And he who had faced crowds without a tremor, and had flung
thunderbolts of splendid defiance at shams, with the manner of a young
Ajax defying the lightning, now found himself strangely put out and
disturbed in his usual composure by the innocent aspect, and harmless
perfume of a rose,--a mere little pink petalled thing, with not even a
thorn on its polished green stalk! He had placed it in a glass of water
on his writing table, and his eyes rested upon it the morning after he
had received it with almost a reproachful air. What was its
golden-hearted secret? Why, when he studied it, did he see the soft hue
of a fair cheek, the flash of a bright eye, the drooping wave of a
golden web of hair, the dainty curve of a white arm on which the
sparkle of diamonds gleamed? How was it that he managed to perceive all
this in the leaves of a rose? He could not tell; and he was angry with
himself for his inability to explain the puzzle. He reminded himself
that he had business in Rome--"business," he repeated sternly to his
own conscience,--the chief part of which was to ascertain from some one
of the leading spirits at the Vatican the view taken by the Papacy of
the Ritualistic movement in England.

"If you can gauge correctly the real feeling, and render it in plain
terms, apart from all conventional or social considerations," wrote his
publisher in a letter which had just reached him--"that is, if you dare
to do so much--and I think you will scarcely hesitate--you will
undoubtedly give great and lasting help to Christian England." As he
read this over for the second or third time he remembered that he had
an appointment with a certain powerful personage, known as Monsignor
Gherardi, that morning at eleven.

"And you," he said, apostrophising the rose with a protesting shake of
his head, "were nearly making me forget it!" He lifted the flower out
of the water and touched it with his lips. "She was a fair
creature,--the woman who wore you last night!"--he said with a smile as
he put it carefully back again in its glass, "In fact, she was very
much like you! But though I notice you have no thorns, I dare say she
has!" He paused a moment, lost in thought, the smile still giving
warmth and light to his features; then with a quick movement of
impatience at his own delaying, threw on his coat and hat and left the
room, saying, "Now for Gherardi!"



XIX.

Set square and dark against the pale blue of the Italian sky the
Palazzo Sovrani, seen for the first time, suggests a prison rather than
a dwelling house,--a forbidding structure, which though of unsentient
marble, seems visibly to frown into the light, and exhale from itself a
cloud on the clearest day. Its lowest windows, raised several feet from
the ground, and barred across with huge iron clamps, altogether deprive
the would-be inquisitive stranger from the possibility of peering
within,--the monstrous iron gate, richly wrought with fantastic
scroll-work and heraldic emblems raised in brass, presents so cold and
forbidding a front that some of the youthful ladies who were Angela's
friends, were wont to declare that it gave them a palpitation of the
heart to summon up the necessary courage required to ring the great
bell. Within the house there was much of a similar gloom, save in
Angela's own studio, which she had herself made beautiful with a
brightness and lightness found in no other corner of the vast and
stately abode. Her father, Prince Pietro Sovrani, was of a reserved and
taciturn nature,--poor but intensely proud--and he would suffer no
interference by so much as a word or a suggestion respecting the manner
in which he chose to arrange or to order his household. His wife Gita
Bonpre, the only sister of the good Cardinal, had been the one love of
his life,--and when she died all his happiness had died with her,--his
heart was broken, but he showed nothing of his grief to the outside
world, save that in manner he was more silent and reserved than
ever,--more difficult to deal with,--more dangerous to approach. People
knew well enough that he was poor, but they never dared to mention
it,--though once an English acquaintance, moved by the best intentions
in the world, had suggested that he could make a good deal of money by
having a portion of the Palazzo Sovrani redecorated, and modernized, to
suit the comfort and convenience of travelling millionaires who might
probably be disposed to pay a high rent for it during the Roman
"season." But the proposal was disastrous in its results. Sovrani had
turned upon his adviser like an embodied thunder-cloud.

"When a prince of the House of Sovrani lets out apartments," he said,
"you may ask your English Queen to take in washing!"

And a saturnine smile, accompanied by the frowning bend of his white
fuzzy eyebrows over his flashing black eyes, had produced such a
withering, blistering effect on the soul of the unfortunate Englishman,
whose practical ideas of utility had exceeded his prudence, that he had
scarcely ever dared to look the irate Italian noble in the face again.

Just now, the Prince was in his library, seated in dignified
uprightness like a king enthroned to give audience, in a huge
high-backed chair, shadowed over by an ancient gilded baldacchino,
listening with a certain amount of grim patience to his daughter's
softly murmured narrative of her stay in Paris. He had received the
Cardinal an hour ago on his arrival, with first, a humble genuflexion
as became a son of the Church, and secondly with a kiss on both cheeks
as became a brother-in-law. The Cardinal's youthful companion Manual,
he had scarcely remarked, even while giving him welcome. These two had
gone to the suite of rooms prepared for the reception of His
Eminence,--but Angela, after hastily changing her travelling dress, had
come down to her father, anxious not only to give, but to hear
news--especially news of Florian Varillo. Prince Sovrani, however, was
not a man given to much social observation,--nor did he ever break
through his half cynical, half gloomy humour, to detail the gossip of
Rome, and he therefore sat more or less unmoved, while Angela told him
all she could think of that would interest him. At last with a little
delicate hesitation, she related the strange story of Abbe Vergniaud,
and added,

"And by this time, I suppose, the Holy Father has been told all!"

"Naturally," said the Prince, with a stern smile moving the hard
muscles of his mouth, "Moretti's love of scandal is as deep as that of
any old woman!--and the joy of excommunicating a soul from the
salvation of the Church must be too exquisite to admit of any delay! I
am sorry for Vergniaud, but I do not think he will suffer much. These
things are scarcely ever noticed in the press nowadays, and it will
only be a very limited circle that even learns of his excommunication.
Nevertheless, I am sorry--one is always sorry for brave men, even if
they are reckless. And the son is Gys Grandit! Corpo di Bacco! What a
denouement!"

He considered it a moment, looking straight before him at the rows of
ancient and musty books that adorned his walls,--then he gave a sudden
exclamation.

"Pesta! I had nearly forgotten! I knew there was a curious thing I had
to tell you, Angela,--but in the hurry of your arrival it had for the
moment escaped my mind . . ."

"About Florian?" asked Angela anxiously.

The Prince bent his brows upon her quizzically.

"Florian! What should I know about Florian? He has not been near me
since you left Rome. I fancy he will not be too attentive a son-in-law!
No, it is not about Florian. It is about your uncle Felix. Have you
heard of this miracle he has performed?"

Angela's eyes opened wide.

"A miracle! What do you mean by a miracle?"

"Santissima Madonna! A miracle is always a miracle," retorted her
father testily, "A something out of the common, and an upsetting of the
ordinary laws of nature. Did your uncle tell you nothing of his visit
to Rouen?"

"Nothing," replied Angela, "Nothing but the story of Manuel."

"Manuel? Who is he?"

"The boy he has with him now. Uncle Felix found him lost at night near
the Cathedral of Rouen, and has taken him under his protection ever
since."

"Altro! That is nothing!" said her father, "That is only one of Felix's
quixotic ideas. There is no miracle in that. But when a child is a
cripple from babyhood, and our Felix cures him by one simple prayer,
and makes him strong and well again--Gran Dio!--it is not remarkable
that such news creates a stir at the Vatican."

"But it cannot be true!" said Angela surprised, "Uncle Felix never said
a word about it. I am sure he knows nothing whatever of such a report!"

"Ebben! We will ask him presently,"--and the Prince raised himself
stiffly and slowly out of his throne-like chair, "Personally I have
considered Felix above any sort of priestly trickery; but after all, if
he has an ambition for the Papacy, I do not see why he should not play
for it. Others do!"

"Oh, father!" cried Angela, "How can you think such a thing of Uncle
Felix! He is as nearly a saint as any mortal man can be!"

"So I always thought, child--so I always thought!" replied the Prince,
with a vexed air, "But to perform such a miracle of healing as to cure
a child with a twisted spine and bent legs, by the mere utterance of a
prayer!--that is impossible!--impossible! It sounds like
charlatanism--not like Felix!"

As he spoke he straightened himself and stood upright, a tall, spare,
elegant figure of a man,--his dark complexioned face very much
resembling a fine bronze cast of the Emperor Aurelius. Angela rose too
and stood beside him, and his always more or less defiant eyes slowly
softened as he looked at her.

"You grow very like your mother," he said, with just the faintest
tremor in his voice--"Ah, la mia Gita!"

A sigh that was like a groan broke from his lips, and Angela laid her
head caressingly against his breast in silence. He touched her soft
hair tenderly.

"Very like your mother," he repeated, "Very like! But you will leave me
soon, as she has left me,--not for Heaven, no!--but for that doubtful
new life called marriage. It is not doubtful when there is love--love
in both hearts;--and if there is any difference at all, the love should
be greater on the man's side than on the woman's! Remember that, Angela
mia, remember that! The true lover is always spiritually on his knees
before the woman he loves; not only in passion, but in worship--in
reverence!"

"And is not Florian so?" murmured Angela timidly.

"I do not know, child; he may be! Sometimes I think that he loves
himself too much to love YOU as well as you deserve. But we shall see."

As he spoke a servant entered, carrying an exquisite basket of flowers,
and brought it to Angela who blushed and smiled divinely as she took it
and opened the envelope fastened to its handle and addressed to her,
which contained merely these words,--

     "A la mia dolcezza! Con voto d'eterno amore!
                      "FLORIAN."

"Are they not lovely?" she said, bending over the blossoms tenderly as
though she would have taken them all into her embrace, "Such a sweet
welcome home!"

Her father nodded, but gave no verbal response to her enthusiasm.
Presently he said,

"How about your picture? When will it be finished?"

"A month's work will be enough now," she replied, looking up
quickly--"And then--"

"Then it will remain in one of the galleries unsold!" said Sovrani,
with a touch of bitterness in his tone which he could not quell, "You
have chosen too large a canvas. From mere size it is unsaleable,--for
unless it were a marvel of the world no nation would ever purchase a
woman's picture."

Angela's delicate head drooped,--she turned away to hide the tears that
rushed to her eyes. Her father's words were harsh, yet eminently
practical; she knew he did not mean them unkindly, but that the
continual pinch of poverty was sometimes greater than he could endure
with patience. Angela had earned considerable sums of money by the
smaller pictures which had established her name; and the Prince had
bitterly grudged the time she had given to the enormous canvas which
had now remained so long in her studio covered up, even from his
eyes--for he had made up his mind that it was one of those fantastic
dreams of genius, which when they become realised into the substance of
a book or a picture, terrify the timid conventions of the world so
completely as to cause general avoidance.

"If Raffaelle were alive he would not paint a 'Transfiguration' now,"
he was wont to say, "The Church no longer employs great artists. It
keeps its money for speculation purposes. If a Michael Angelo were in
Rome he would find nothing to do."

Which statement was true enough. For the modern Italian loves money
next to his own precious skin, and everything beautiful or sacred is
sacrificed to this insatiable craze. There is no love, no honour, no
patriotism in Italy without careful calculation as to the cost of
indulging in these sentiments,--and what wreck of religion is left
merely panders to the low melodramatic temper of an ignorant populace.
Art is at its lowest ebb, it cannot live without encouragement and
support--and it is difficult for even the most enthusiastic creator in
marble or colour to carry out glorious conceptions for an inglorious
country. But Angela Sovrani--ambitious Angela,--was not painting for
Italy. She was painting for the whole world. She had dreams of seeing
her great picture borne away out of Rome to Paris, and London, to be
gazed upon by thousands who would take its lesson home to their hearts
and lives. Italy was merely a village in the area of her aspiring mind;
but she built her "castles in the air" alone; and never by so much as
the smallest hint allowed anyone to guess the far reaching scope of her
intentions. Truth to tell, she had obtained very little encouragement
during her long days and months of work, though in the sweetness of her
nature she pleased herself by imagining that Florian Varillo gave her a
complete and perfect sympathy. Yet even with Florian, one or two casual
remarks he had let fall lightly and unthinkingly, had vaguely startled
her, and set her wondering, "Perhaps he does not think much of my
abilities after all"--and had caused her for once to be closely
reserved upon the subject and treatment of her work, and to refuse a
glimpse of it even to him who was her elect Beloved. She had thought he
would perhaps have been pained at this inviolate secrecy on her
part,--she had feared he might take offence at finding the doors of her
studio always locked,--but on the contrary he appeared quite amused at
her uncommunicative humour, and jested about it as if she were a little
child playing in a dark corner at some forbidden game. She was somewhat
surprised at this,--the more so as he frequently spoke of the
importance of his own pictures for the Roman "Art Season,"--pictures to
which he really gave the attentive discussion and consideration a man
always bestows on matters of his personal business--but often when
Angela's work was spoken of, he smiled with a kindly tolerance, as one
who should say, "Dear girl! How sweetly she embroiders her simple
sampler!" And yet again, he never failed, when asked about it in
Angela's presence, to say that he was "sure Donna Sovrani would
astonish the world by what she was doing!" So that one never quite knew
where to have him, his nature being that curious compound of obsequious
servility and intense self-love which so often distinguishes the
Italian temperament. Angela however put every shadow of either wonder
or doubt as to his views, entirely aside,--and worked on with an
earnest hand and trusting heart, faithfully and with a grand patience
and self-control seldom found either in masculine or feminine heroes.
Sometimes her spirit sank a little, as now, when her father told her
that her picture would remain unsold in one of the galleries--but all
the same, some force within her urged her to go on with her intention
steadily, and leave all results to God. And the tears that had sprung
to her eyes at the smart of old Sovrani's rough speech, soon returned
to their source; and she was quite her composed sweet self again when
her uncle the Cardinal, accompanied by Manuel, entered the room,
holding an open letter in his hand, and looking strangely agitated.

"Brother, here is a matter which I cannot possibly understand," he
said, "Monsignor Gherardi writes here to congratulate me upon a miracle
I have worked in Rouen!--and summons me at once to the presence of His
Holiness! What can it mean? I have performed no miracle! Surely some
jest is being played with me,--and one most unbecoming to a man of
Gherardi's position and influence!"

Prince Sovrani took the letter from Bonpre's hand and read it in
silence.

"Yes--I have heard about it already," he said, "And if you indeed know
nothing, it is strange! But can you not remember--is there no clue to
such a report? Were there no sick children brought to you . . . ?"

"Oh, for that," answered the Cardinal quickly, "a little boy named
Fabien Doucet, was brought to me by the children of an inn-keeper of
the Hotel Poitiers where I stayed two nights, and to grant their
wishes, (and also because it is my duty to do what I can for the
suffering and the afflicted), I laid my hands upon him and prayed to
our Lord that he might be healed."

"Ebbene! Our Lord has then healed him," said Sovrani drily, "It is
remarkable!--but if the cure is truly accomplished, we shall have to
admit that the Deity does sometimes pay attention to our many prayers,
though for the most part they appear to fall upon a deaf, dumb, and
irresponsive Silence."

The Cardinal sat down, wearily resting his head on his hand.

"I do not like it!" he said, "It is altogether amazing to me; it seems
like a snare set to catch my soul! For I have no power to perform
miracles . . . I can only pray."

"And why should not your prayer be answered?" asked Manuel suddenly.

They had all forgotten the boy's presence in the room, and his voice
startled them. His young face was pale, yet tranquil--and the deep
tenderness that always dwelt in his eyes seemed deeper and softer at
this moment than ever.

"Truly I do not see why," said Prince Sovrani, bending his fierce
regard full on the lad as he spoke, and beginning to wonder like the
rest at his fairness and beauty, "Only as a rule, fanciuollo
mio--prayer is mere waste of breath--a demand without supply."

"Is that not perhaps the fault of the person who prays?" said Manuel,
"May that person not lack faith and pure intention? May he not even be
too self-absorbed to lift his soul high enough for an approach to God?
When the disciples were vexed that they could not cure a child that was
afflicted, and saw that their Master healed that child at once, they
asked why they were unable to do what He did. And He told them plainly,
'Because of your unbelief. For verily I say unto you, if ye have faith
as a grain of mustard seed ye shall say unto this mountain, remove from
yonder place, and it shall remove, and nothing shall be impossible to
you.' And I am sure that my lord the Cardinal's faith is greater than a
grain of mustard seed!"

They were all silent. Cardinal Bonpre turned his eyes thoughtfully on
the young speaker

"You were with me, child, when the little cripple sat on my knee and
held my crucifix," he said in a low tone, "You saw--you heard all. What
did I do?--what did I say?"

"You held him in your arms, even as Christ took little children in His
arms and blessed them," replied Manuel, "And you prayed--and in your
prayer you said--'King and Master of all such children, even as Thou
wert a child Thyself, be pleased to heal him of his sad infirmity. For
if Thou wilt, Thou canst make this bent body straight, and these
withered muscles strong,--from death itself Thou canst ordain life, and
nothing is impossible unto Thee!'"

There was a pause. Then Manuel added,--

"That is what you said, my lord Cardinal;--and when the child went
away, you told him that if the giving of your own life could make him
strong, he should have that life willingly. Some people might say that
without meaning it,--but you meant what you said,--every word came
straight from your heart. And should it then surprise you that God has
granted your prayer?"

Prince Sovrani listened to the dulcet young voice with a strange
emotion. Something holy and convincing seemed to emanate from the boy's
very presence, and though he, as became a modern Italian, was
thoroughly sceptical and atheistical, and would have willingly argued
against the very words of Christ as written in the Gospel, some curious
hesitation that was almost shamefacedness held him silent. But the
Cardinal was even more strongly moved. The earnest spirit of truth with
which Manuel appeared always to be environed,--his simple and straight
enunciation of the old, oft-quoted phrases used by the Divine Saviour
of the world,--and then his unfaltering memory of the simple prayer
that had been said for the comfort of the unfortunate little Fabien
Doucet, together with this strange and unexpected announcement of the
child's miraculous cure,--these things rushed over the mind of the good
Bonpre like an overwhelming flood, and confused his brain--strange
half-formed thoughts occurred to him that he dared not express, chief
among which was a vague, a terrifying idea that the young boy beside
him who spoke so sweetly, and almost so commandingly, must surely be an
Angel! Strange legends of the Church began to recur to him;--legends of
old-time when angels had descended to walk with priests in their
monastic seclusion, and instruct them as to the value of time, as in
the "Legend Beautiful," when the monk Felix, being perplexed by the
phrase "a day with God is as a thousand years," went to sleep in a
garden, soothed by the singing of the birds at sunset, and woke up to
find that in his slumber a century had rolled away! All manner of
fantastic notions swept in upon him, and he grew suddenly blind and
dizzy--rising from his chair totteringly he extended his hands--then
suddenly sank back again in a dead faint. Sovrani caught him as he
fell--and Angela ran for water, and tenderly bathed his forehead while
Manuel took his hand and held it fast.

"Too long a journey, and too much excitement!" said the Prince,--"Our
Felix is growing old,--he cannot stand fatigue. He is failing fast!"

"Oh, no," said Manuel brightly, "He is not failing! He is younger by
far than he seems! He is too strong to fail!"

And as he spoke the Cardinal opened his eyes and smiled with an
expression of perfect rapture.

"Why, what has ailed me?" he enquired, looking at Angela's anxious
face, "I had but gone for a moment into the presence of my Lord!" Here
he paused, and then gradually recovering himself entirely, sat upright.

"All is well with me!" he said, pressing the hand of Manuel in his own,
and releasing it again, "Do not fret, Angela,--it was the merest
passing faintness. Forgive me, brother, for alarming you thus
foolishly! As for the letter from the Vatican concerning this miracle,
I must needs present myself before His Holiness and assure him that I
know nothing of it,--that I did no more than pray--that I left the
crippled child still crippled--and that if indeed it be true he is
healed, it is by the merciful act of God and--the intervention of our
Lord and Saviour Christ, to Whom be all the praise and glory!"

He rose up again from his chair and stood full height,--a grand and
beautiful figure of noble old age, transfigured by the light of some
never-aging thought, some glorious inspiration. And Angela, who had
been startled and alarmed by his sudden fainting fit, was even more
overcome by the sight of him thus radiant and selfpossessed, and
dropping on her knees she caught his hand and kissed it, her tears
falling fast. He stooped and raised her.

"Child, why are you weeping?" he said tenderly, "Nay, I am not so ill
as you think me! I am well--strong!--ready for the doing of many things
in my Master's service! Pietro, take this dear girl and comfort her!"
and he put her gently into her father's arms,--"For myself, I have work
to do--work to do!--" he repeated musingly,--"I see trouble ahead!--but
I shall face it--and if God please--overcome it!" His, eyes flashed,
and after a moment he resumed, "I will write to Gherardi now--and
to-morrow--to-morrow I will speak!"

"Can I help you, brother?" asked the Prince, taken out of himself by
the air of splendour and sovereignty which seemed to surround the
Cardinal as with a divine halo, "You are fatigued with your
journey,--let me write for you!"

"No, Pietro! I must do this myself, and think well of all I should
say." He paused, then added, "They tell me Claude Cazeau, secretary to
the Archbishop of Rouen brought the news of this so-called miracle to
Rome. I should have liked to have seen that man to-night."

"You will see him at the Vatican," said Sovrani. with a touch of irony,
"That will be time enough! Oh, innocent Felix! Do you not see you will
be confronted with Cazeau? And that Gherardi and his set will be there
to note your every look and gesture, and privately judge as to whether
you and the Archbishop of Rouen concocted the miracle between you! And
that if you were to see this Cazeau to-night, that very meeting would
be taken as a sign of conspiracy!"

Over the pale features of the Cardinal rushed a warm glow of
indignation, but it died away as rapidly as it had come.

"True!" he said simply, "I forgot! If a good deed is done in the world
by the force of the undefined Spirit of Christ, it is judged as
trickery,--and we must never forget that even the Resurrection of our
Blessed Lord from the dead is believed by some to be a mere matter of
conspiracy among His disciples. True--I forgot the blindness,--the
melancholy blindness of the world! But we must always say, 'Father
forgive them, for they know not what they do!' I will write to
Gherardi,--and,--if you will permit me, I will remain in my own rooms
tonight for I must think and pray,--I must be alone . . ."

"Without me, my lord Cardinal?" asked Manuel softly.

"No, not without you!" and Bonpre looked at him with a smile, "Not
without you! I have no wish to be so much alone as your absence would
make me. Come!"

And lifting the heavy velvet portiere at the door, he held it back for
his "foundling" to pass,--and then slowly followed.



XX.

On the first floor of an ancient mansion, in a street which slopes down
towards the Tiber, there is a suite of dreary old rooms which must
evidently have once belonged to some great "Prince of the Church", (to
use the term which Cardinal Bonpre held so much in aversion,) if one
may form any opinion from the ecclesiastical designs on the faded green
hangings, which cling like moss to the damp walls, and give an
additional melancholy to the general gloom The "salon" or
audience-chamber is perhaps the best in repair, and possesses a
gorgeous, painted ceiling, bordered by a frieze of red and gold,
together with one or two large pictures, which perhaps if cleaned might
show the touch of some great Master, but which in their sad condition
of long neglect, present nothing to the view but a dark blur of
indistinct outlines. The rooms in their entirety composed the business,
or town dwelling of Monsignor Gherardi, one of the cleverest, most
astute, and most unscrupulous of men, to whom Religion was nothing more
than a means of making money and gaining power. There was scarcely a
Roman Catholic "community" in the world, in which Gherardi had not a
share,--and he was particularly concerned in "miraculous shrines",
which were to him exactly in the same category as "companies" are to
the speculator on the Stock Exchange. He had been cautious, prudent,
and calculating from his earliest years,--from the time when, as the
last male scion of the house of Gherardi he had been educated for the
Ecclesiastical career at the "College of Nobles". He had read widely,
and no religious or social movement took place anywhere without his
knowing of it and admitting it into his calculations as a sort of new
figure in his barking sum. He was an extensive shareholder in the
"Lourdes" business; and a careful speculator in all the religious
frenzies of the uneducated and superstitious. His career had been very
successful so far. He had amassed a considerable fortune; and away out
towards Frascati he had a superb Villa, furnished with every modern
luxury and convenience, (not rented in his own name, but in that of a
man whom he paid heavily to serve him as his tool and menial,)--where a
beautiful Neapolitan danseuse condescended to live as his mistress;--he
was a diplomat for himself if not for his country, and kept his finger
on the pulse of European politics as well as on the fluctuating fevers
of new creeds. But he never troubled himself seriously as to the
possible growth of any "movement", or "society", or "crusade"; as
experience had taught him that no matter how ardently thinkers may
propound theories, and enthusiasts support them, there is always a
dense and steady wave of opposition surging against everything
new,--and that few can be found whose patience will hold out
sufficiently long to enable them to meet and ride over that wet wall of
dull resistance.

Monsignor Gherardi was a most useful man at the Vatican, as he never
failed to comfort the Pope whenever that Holy Personage was cast down
or afraid of brooding disasters. When the Representative of the
ever-merciful Christ ventured to give it out as his Christian opinion
that the unhappy and maltreated Dreyfus would be found guilty Monsignor
Gherardi smilingly agreed with him. When His Holiness denounced
Freemasonry as a wicked association, formed for atheistical and
revolutionary purposes, Gherardi, though he knew well enough that it
was a fraternity formed for the mutual help and sustainment of its
members, denounced it too;--in the gardens of the Vatican, but not
elsewhere. There was nothing really either in the way of Freemasonry or
other sort of "society", that he was afraid of;--no anxiety whatever
troubled his mind, except the possibility of losing money by some
incautious speculation. In appearance he was an exceedingly handsome
man,--tall, with a fine figure and commanding features,--physical
advantages which greatly helped him to enforce his spiritual authority.
As he sat in his high-backed, gilded chair, turning over papers on his
desk, docketing this and marking that for reference, his dark eyes
sparkling with avidity as he counted up certain dividends obtained from
mysterious shares in "miracle" health resorts, and a smile of
satisfaction playing on the firm, well-shaped curve of his intellectual
but hard mouth, he looked an imposing personage enough, of the very
type to awe the weak and timorous. He was much entertained on this
particular morning,--one might almost say he was greatly amused. Quite
a humorous little comedy was being played at the Vatican,--a
mock-solemn farce, which had the possibility of ending in serious
disaster to the innocent,--and he, as a student of the wily and
treacherous side of human nature, was rather interested in its
development. Cardinal Felix Bonpre, a man living far away in an obscure
cathedral-town of France, where he had become renowned for good works
and saintly living, had now, after many years, come out of his long
voluntary retirement, and had performed a miracle!

"And very well done too!" murmured Monsignor Gherardi, smiling to
himself, "Well prepared, well thought out, and successfully
accomplished! Our good Felix is much cleverer than I gave him credit
for. First, he wins a renown for good works,--then he starts travelling
toward Rome, the Mother of our Faith,--and on his way to the sacred
city performs a miraculous cure! An excellent move! I see a possibility
of making the Cathedral of Rouen a popular shrine for healing. Yes,
much can be done there! Only I am sorry that Felix has made a little
mistake in Paris--just a little mistake!--in that matter of Vergniaud.
And it is exceedingly unfortunate that the son should turn out to be
Gys Grandit. No wonder the Holy Father is troubled;--no wonder! It is a
little drama of the age, and will no doubt prove complex in its
movement, and worth watching." Here his smile broadened,--and his eyes
glittered more keenly than ever "Yes!--it will be an excitement; and
one wants a little excitement now and then in the general monotony.
Since Agostino preached,--" here he paused, and a dark contraction
knitted his brows,--"Let me see!--this morning, yes!--this morning I
receive the English socialist Aubrey Leigh."

He turned in his chair, and glanced at the dial of a huge ticking clock
behind him, and saw that the hands were close on the appointed hour of
eleven. His smile slowly disappeared, and vanished altogether in a
heavy frown. "A dangerous man! I do not like his book--it is written in
melodramatic style, with heat and with enthusiasm, and will attract the
vulgar. He must be suppressed--but how?"

He rose and paced the room slowly, his long white hands clasped behind
his back, and the frown on his brows deepened;--how suppress a man who
had announced himself as free of every Church and Creed, and who was
resolved to stand by the moral ethics of Christ only? A man who desired
nothing for himself, not even money;--"But stop!" thought
Gherardi,--"that is absurd! Every man wants money! Every man must have
it, and the more he has, the more he seeks. There is no one in the
world who cannot be bought or bribed!"

At that moment the green hangings of the door were lifted, and the
Italian man-servant announced,--

"Il Signor Aubri Lee!"

Gherardi, who in his pacing to and fro had reached the window, wheeled
round abruptly and faced his entering visitor. The light fell aslant
upon his stately figure as he drew himself up to his full height, and
greeted Leigh with a suavely condescending bow and smile, while Aubrey
in turn glanced him up and down with a pleasurable consciousness of his
intellectual appearance, and evident combative temperament.

"You are welcome, Mr. Leigh," said Gherardi, speaking English with a
fluency of which he was pardonably proud, "Your letter from Florence
received my instant attention, and as you see, I have made it a point
to receive you at once--in spite of pressing business. Yes,--in spite
of pressing business! I confess I have been curious to see the writer
who has made himself so obnoxious to our dear friends and brothers, the
English clergy!"

A smile that was brilliant, but which conveyed no meaning whatever,
illumined his features; but for all reply to these words Aubrey simply
bowed and remained silent. Gherardi glanced at him sharply. Was he
intimidated already?--overawed at being in the presence of one who was
known to be a friend and confidant of the Pope? No--there was nothing
of fear or embarrassment in the composed attitude, proud manner, and
reserved expression of this slim, muscular man, with the bright hair
and keen eyes,--and Gherardi dropped his tone of patronage for one of
courtesy.

"Pray sit down!" he said, "I understand that you wish to obtain a
private audience of the Holy Father. That of course is impossible!"

Aubrey drew a chair slowly towards the desk where Gherardi had resumed
his own usual seat, and raised his eyes with a curious look of half
satirical questioning.

"Impossible!" he said, "And why?"

Gherardi almost laughed.

"Why? My dear sir, is it necessary to ask? Your name is sufficiently
well-known! and--I am sorry to tell you so,--but it is quite as
unpleasant at the Vatican as that of Gys Grandit!"

"Gys Grandit is a friend of mine," responded Aubrey composedly, "In
fact, I may almost say he is my disciple. I found him working in the
fields as a little peasant lad,--the love child, or 'bastard,' to put
it roughly, of some priest whose name he never told me. He was helping
to earn daily bread for his deserted mother whose maiden name he then
bore; and I helped to train his evident genius in the way it has since
developed."

"I cannot congratulate you on your pupil!" said Gherardi, smiling
coldly, "The offspring of a priest's sin is not likely to do the world
any credit. The son of the renegade Abbe Vergniaud may become
notorious, but never famous!"

Aubrey Leigh started up from his chair doubting whether he had heard
aright.

"The son of Abbe Vergniaud!" he exclaimed, "Is it possible! No, you
must surely be mistaken!--I know the Abbe,--I saw him in Paris but a
fortnight ago!"

"Indeed! Well, since that time strange things have happened," said
Gherardi, still preserving his calm inscrutability of demeanour, "We
have had our news from Monsignor Moretti, an envoy of ours in Paris, on
secret service. To put it briefly,--Vergniaud, for no particular cause
whatever, save perhaps the idea--(which may be only an idea)--that he
is going to die soon, has made a public confession of his
twenty-five-year-old crime and hypocrisy, in a blasphemous address
preached from the pulpit of Notre Dame de Lorette. The son, known to
the world as Gys Grandit, was present in the church, and fired a pistol
shot at his father, hoping to murder him,--then came the theatrical
denouement of the whole scene;--the Abbe ordered the gendarmes to
release the assassin, pronouncing him to be his son. And finally--the
saddest incident of all--there took place the mutual pardon and
reconciliation of both parties in the presence of one of our most
respected and beloved Princes of the Church, Cardinal Felix Bonpre,
whose grave error in this matter is causing poignant and loving sorrow
to the Holy Father!"

A curious expression began to appear in the delicate lines of Aubrey's
face--an expression which some of his London audiences knew so well,
and which generally meant war.

"You surprise me, Monsignor," he said in quiet accents,--"Events move
quickly, I know, in a quickly moving age,--still your news is entirely
unexpected. I never knew till now who the father of my friend Gys
Grandit was;--but now that I do know I think the public confession you
tell me of, was the only fitting reparation such a man as the Abbe
could make to the dead woman who was his wife in the sight of God, as
well as to his living son, and the public generally. I never quite
liked or trusted the Abbe; but if all this be true, he has risen a
hundred per cent, in my opinion! As for Cardinal Bonpre, one of the
noblest and purest of men, you surely cannot be in earnest when you
speak of his having committed a grave error!"

"You know the Cardinal?" asked Gherardi evading the question.

"I was presented to him in Paris the day before I left for Florence,"
replied Aubrey, "at the studio of his niece, Donna Angela Sovrani."

"Ah!" and Gherardi balanced a paper-knife lightly on the point of his
long forefinger, "An unpleasant woman that! One of the female
'geniuses' who presume nowadays to compete with men in art and
literature."

"In Donna Sovrani's case there can be no question of competition,"
answered Leigh quietly, "She is by far and away the best artist of her
time."

"You think so? Very good, very good!" and Gherardi laughed a little,
"You are very chivalrous! You have a touch of the American in you, have
you not?--there is a tendency in the men of the New World to be always
on their knees before women. Strange, very strange!"

"We begin our lives in that way," replied Leigh, "We kneel to our
mothers!"

A slight flush reddened Gherardi's yellow paleness, but he kept his
smile well in evidence.

"Charmingly expressed--very charmingly!" he said suavely, "And so you
have met our dear St. Felix! Well, well! And did he tell you all about
the wonderful miracle he performed at Rouen?"

A cloud of surprise intermingled with contempt darkened Leigh's
intellectual brows.

"Never!" he said emphatically, "I should not have thought so much of
him if he had laid any claim to such a pretence!"

Gherardi laughed again softly.

"What a pity," he observed, "What a pity you clever heretics are so
violent! You think the power of the Church is a decaying one, and that
our Lord has ceased to supply its ministers with the Spirit of Grace
and the powers of healing? But this is where you are mistaken! The
Church--the Roman Church--remains as it always was and always will be;
impregnable!--the source of inspiration, the seat of miracle, the only
clue and road to everlasting life! And as for its power--" here he
closed his hand and dropped it on the table with a silent force which
was strangely expressive, "its power is immeasurable! It reaches out in
every direction--it grasps--it holds,--it keeps! Why will you and your
co-workers 'kick' like St. Paul 'against the pricks'? It is quite
useless! The Church is too strong for any one of you--aye, and for any
army of you! Do you not hear the divine Voice from heaven calling daily
in your ears, 'Why persecutest thou Me?'"

"Yes," answered Aubrey deliberately, "I hear that every time I enter a
church! I hear it every time I see an ordained priest or minister of
the Gospel misusing his time in construing to his own purposes the
classic simplicity of Christ's doctrine. In some places of worship,
such as the tawdry church of the 'Annunziata' in Florence that protest
seems to reach its climax. When one sees the unwashen priests
expectorating every five minutes or so [Footnote: A fact] on the very
altars where they perform Mass;--when one notes the dirt, the neglect,
the gim-crackery;--the sickening and barbarous superstition everywhere
offered as being representative of sublime Deity,--the Force which has
raised the heaven above us with its endless star-patterns of living
universe,--then the cry of 'Why persecutest thou Me?' seems to roll
through the arches like the thunder which sometimes precedes a general
earthquake!"

Leigh's clear penetrating voice, artistically modulated to the
perfectly musical expression of thought, was not without its usual
effect, even on a mind so callous as that of Gherardi. He moved
uneasily in his chair,--he was inwardly fuming with indignation, and
for one moment was inclined to assume the melodramatic pose of the
irate Churchman, and to make himself into the figure of an approved
"stage" dignitary of religion, with out stretched arm, menacing eyes,
and words that were as darts to wound and sting. But looking under his
eye lids at the cold, half satirical tranquillity of Aubrey's pale
clear-cut features, he felt that any attempt at "acting" his part would
be seen through in a second by a man who was so terribly in earnest. So
with a benevolent and regretful air, he said,

"Yes!--no doubt things appear to you as they do not appear to us. The
spirit of faith enables us to see through all unsatisfactory outward
forms and ceremonies, to the actual divine mysteries which they
symbolise;--and heretics perceive incongruities, where we, by the grace
of God, see nothing but harmony! And though you, Mr. Leigh, receive the
information with incredulity and a somewhat blameable indifference, it
is a matter of rejoicing to us that Cardinal Bonpre has performed this
miracle of healing at Rouen. It would have raised him to a very high
place indeed in the Holy Father's estimation, had it not been for the
strange mistake he has unfortunately made with respect to the Abbe
Vergniaud."

"One may cure a sick person then, but one must not pardon a sinner?"
suggested Aubrey, "'For whether is it easier to say, Thy sins be
forgiven thee;' or 'Arise and walk?' The one is considered a
miracle;--the other a mistake!"

Gherardi's cold eyes glittered.

"We will not go into the technicalities of the question," he said
frigidly, "We will return to the point from whence we diverged. Your
wish expressed in this letter," and he drew one from a packet on the
table and glanced it over in a business-like way, "was to obtain a
private audience from the Pope. I repeat that to a mere civilian and
socialistic writer like yourself, that is impossible!"

Aubrey sat unmoved.

"I suppose if I were a prince of the blood-royal I should not be
refused an audience?" he said.

Gherardi's thick dark eyebrows went up with a movement of surprise at
such an irrational remark.

"That would make a difference certainly," he answered smiling, "The
claims of diplomacy have to be considered!"

"If a prince of the blood-royal whose private life was a scandal to the
world"--went on Aubrey, "who was guilty of every vice known in the
calendar,--who was neither intelligent nor sympathetic,--whose whole
career was one of self and self-indulgence,--I say if he were to seek a
private audience of the man who is declared to be the representative of
Christ in Christendom, he would obtain it! On the other hand, if a man
who had denied himself every personal gratification, and had sacrificed
his whole life in working for his fellow men, and to the following of
the teachings of the Gospel as far as it was possible,--but who yet had
got no further in world's wealth than to be earning from his writings a
few hundreds a year, he could NOT be received! Monsignor, this may be
diplomacy, but it is not Christianity!"

"I cannot enter into these matters with you--" began Gherardi
impatiently.

"No, you cannot, because you dare not!" said Aubrey boldly. "Man, you
are not a Christian! Why pretend to be one? Is it not time you left off
feigning what you do not feel? Is it not preposterous that you, at your
years, should consent to make your life a lie in the face of
Omnipresent Deity?"

Gherardi rose up pale and trembling.

"Mr. Leigh, if you have come here to insult me--"

"Insult you!" echoed Aubrey, "Not I! I would make a man of you if I
could,--but that is too late! You are a witness of imposture and a
supporter of it,--and we are none of us worthy to be called men if we
do either of these two things. You know as well as I do, that there is
no representative of the blameless Christ at the Vatican,--you know
there is only a poor weak old man, whose mind is swayed by the crafty
counsels of the self-seeking flatterers around him, and who passes his
leisure hours in counting up money, and inventing new means of gaining
it through forms of things that should be spiritual and divine. If you
BELIEVE Christ was God Incarnate, how dare you tamper with such a
Supernal Mystery?"

Gherardi turned his head slowly and looked round at Aubrey,--then
recovering his composure, sat down and pretended to turn over some
documents on the table, but Aubrey went on undeterred by his aspect of
frigidity, "How dare you, I say? The God in Man! Do you realize the
stupendous meaning of such a phrase? Do you not see that it means A
DIVINE LIFE PALPITATING THROUGH EVERY ATOM OF CREATION? A Force so
great, so pure and majestic, so absolute in Its working for good, and
yet so deliberate in Its movements that It will give Its creature Man
whole centuries of chance to find and save his own soul before utterly
destroying him? What has this sublime Power in common with the Pope,
who shuts himself up in his palace, a voluntary prisoner, all forsooth
because he is denied temporal power! Temporal power! What is temporal
power compared to spiritual power! If he were the true representative
of Christ he would move the world by deeds of benevolence, goodness,
and sanctity! In such a case as that of the unhappy Dreyfus for
instance, he would have issued a solemn warning and earnest reproach to
the French nation for their misguided cruelty;--he would have travelled
himself to Rennes to use his personal influence in obtaining an
innocent man's release with honour! That would have been Christian!
That would have been a magnificent example to the world! But what did
he do? Shut comfortably up in his luxurious palace where no harm could
touch him, where no crucifixion of the heart or soul could torture him,
he announced to his myrmidons his opinion that the wretched martyr
would be found guilty! And who can tell but that his utterance thus
unchristianly proclaimed did not help to sway the minds of the Rennes
Court-martial? Again, why are there so many poor in Italy? If the Pope
were the father indeed of those who are immediately around him, the
land should be like the fabled Paradise, flowing with milk and honey.
The Vatican is full of money and jewels. 'Sell half that thou hast and
give to the poor,' was the command of Christ.--Does the Pope do that?
Why does he not go out among the people and work in active sympathy
with them? Christ did so! Christ was never borne with solemn flourish
of trumpets like a mummy in a chair, under canopies of cloth of gold,
to give a blessing to a crowd who had got admission to see him by paid
ticket! Man, man! The theatrical jugglery of Rome is a blasphemy in the
sight of heaven;--and most truly did St. John declare this city,
throned on its seven hills, to be, 'MYSTERY, THE MOTHER OF HARLOTS AND
ABOMINATIONS OF THE EARTH.' And most clearly does God say at this
period of our time, 'Come out of her My people, that ye be not
partakers of her sins, and that ye receive not of her plagues. For her
sins have reached unto heaven, and God hath remembered her iniquities!'
The days of evil are drawing to an end; Rome must fall!"

Gherardi's breath came and went quickly,--but he kept up the outward
appearance of cold composure.

"You rant very well, Mr. Leigh!" he said, "You would make an excellent
Hyde Park orator! You have all the qualities which attract the vulgar;
but we--we of the Church know quite well how to deal with men of your
class,--their denunciations do not affect us at all. They amuse us
occasionally; and sometimes they pain us, for naturally we grieve for
the backslidings of refractory brethren. We regret the clamourings of
ignorance which arise from a strong personal desire for notoriety. That
passage in the Revelation of St. John, has been quoted scores of times
as being applicable to Rome, though as a matter of fact it distinctly
mentions Babylon." Here he smiled suavely. "And thanks to the workings
of an All-wise Influence, Rome was never more powerful than she is at
the present moment. Her ramifications are everywhere; and in England
she has obtained a firm footing. Your good English Queen has never
uttered one word of reproach against the spread of our Holy Religion
among her subjects! Our prayers for the conversion of England will yet
be granted!"

"Not while I live!" said Aubrey firmly, "Not while I can hold back but
a handful from such a disaster, and that handful shall hold back yet
another handful! The hand of Roman priestcraft shall never weigh on
England while there are any honest men left in it! The conversion of
England! The retrogression of England! Do you think such a thing is
likely to happen because a few misguided clerics choose to appeal to
the silly sentimentality of hysterical women with such church tricks
and rags of paganism as incense and candles! Bah! Do not judge the
English inward heart by its small outward follies, Monsignor! There are
more honest, brave, and sensible folk in the British Islands than you
think. And though our foreign foes desire our fall, the seed of THEIR
decay is not yet in us!"



XXI.

Gherardi sat for two or three minutes in absolute silence. Only the
twitching of his eyelids and a slight throbbing in the muscles of his
throat showed with what difficulty he suppressed his rising fury. But
his astute and crafty powers of reasoning taught him that it would be
worse than ridiculous to give way to anger in the presence of this
cool, determined man, who, though he spoke with a passion which from
its very force seemed almost to sound like "the mighty wind" which
accompanied the cloven tongues of fire at the first Pentecost, still
maintained his personal calm,--that immovable calmness which is always
the result of strong inward conviction. A dangerous man!--yes, there
was no doubt of that! He was one of those concerning whom Emerson
wrote, "let the world beware when a Thinker comes into it." Aubrey
Leigh was a thinker,--and more than that, he was a doer. He was of the
strong heroic type of genius that turns its dreams into facts, its
thoughts into deeds. He did not talk, in common with so many men, of
what they considered OUGHT to be done, without exerting themselves to
DO it;--he was sincerely in earnest, and cared nothing for any personal
loss or inconvenience he might suffer from carrying out his intentions.
And Gherardi saw that there was little or no possibility of moving such
a man from the firm ground of truth which he had elected to stand on.
There is nothing so inconvenient in this world as an absolutely
truthful person, who can both speak and write, and has the courage of
his convictions. One can always arrange matters with liars, because
they, being hampered by their own deceits, are compelled to study ways,
means, and chances for appearing honest. But with the man or woman who
holds truth dearer than life, and honour more valuable than
advancement, there is nothing to be done, now that governments cannot
insist on the hemlock-cure, as in the case of Socrates. Gherardi,
looking furtively under his eyelids at Leigh's strong lithe figure, and
classic head, felt he could have willingly poisoned or stabbed him. For
there were, and ARE great interests at stake in the so-called
"conversion of England,"--it is truly one of the largest financial
schemes ever set afloat in the world, if those whose duty it is to
influence and control events could only be brought to see the practical
side of the matter, and set a check on its advancement before it is too
late. Gherardi knew what great opportunities there were in embryo of
making large fortunes;--and not only of making large fortunes but of
obtaining incredible power. There was a great plan afoot of drawing
American and English wealth into the big Church-net through the medium
of superstitious fear and sentimental bigotry,--and an opposer and
enemy like Aubrey Leigh, physically handsome, with such powers of
oratory as are only granted to the very few, was capable of influencing
women as well as men--and women, as Gherardi well recognised, are the
chief supporters of the Papal system. Uneasily he thought of a certain
wealthy American heiress whom he had persuaded into thinking herself
specially favoured and watched over by the Virgin Mary, and who,
overcome by the strong imaginary consciousness of this heavenly
protection, had signed away in her will a million of pounds sterling to
a particular "shrine" in which he had the largest share of financial
profit. Now, suppose she should chance to come within the radius of
Leigh's attractive personality and teaching, and revoke this bequest?
Deeply incensed he sat considering, yet he was conscious enough of his
own impotency to persuade or move this man a jot.

"I am very sorry," he said at last without raising his eyes, and
carefully preserving an equable and mild tone of voice, "I am sorry you
are so harsh in your judgments, Mr. Leigh;--and still more sorry that
you appear to be bent on opposing the Roman Catholic movement in
England. I will do you the justice to believe that you are moved by a
sincere though erroneous conviction,--and it is out of pure kindness
and interest in you that I warn you how useless you will find the task
in which you have engaged. The force of Rome is impregnable!--the
interpretation of the Gospel by the Pope infallible. Any man, no matter
how gifted with eloquence, or moved by what he imagines to be
truth-(and alas! how often error is mistaken for truth and truth for
error!)--must be crushed in the endeavour to cope with such a divinely
ordained power."

"The Car of Juggernaut was considered to be divinely ordained," said
Aubrey, "And the wretched and ignorant populace flung themselves under
it in the fit of hysterical mania to which they were excited by the
priests of the god, and so perished in their thousands. Not THEY were
to blame; but the men who invented the imposture and encouraged the
slaughter. THEY had an ideal;--the priests had none! But Juggernaut had
its end--and so will Rome!"

"You call yourself a Christian?" asked Gherardi, with a touch of
derision.

"Most assuredly I do," replied Aubrey, "Most assuredly I am! I love and
honour Christ with every fibre of my being. I long to see that Divine
Splendour of the ages stand out white and shining and free from the mud
and slime with which His priests have bespattered Him. I believe in Him
absolutely! But I can find nowhere in His Gospel that He wished us to
turn Religion into a sort of stock-jobbing company managed by
sacerdotal directors in Rome!"

"What do you know about the 'sacerdotal directors' as you call them, of
Rome?" asked Gherardi slowly, his eyes narrowing at the corners, and
his whole countenance expressing ineffable disdain, "Do you think we
give out the complex and necessary workings of our sacred business to
the uneducated public?"

"No, I do not," replied Aubrey, "For you keep the public in the dark as
much as you can. Your methods of action are precisely those of the
priests of ancient Egypt, who juggled with what they were pleased to
call their sacred 'mysteries' in precisely the same way as you do. Race
copies race. Roman Christianity is grafted upon Roman Paganism. When
the Apostles were all dead, and their successors (who had never been in
personal touch with Christ) came on to the scene of action, they
discovered that the people of Rome would not do without the worship of
woman in their creed, so they cleverly substituted the Virgin Mary for
Venus and Diana. They turned the statues of gods and heroes into
figures of Apostles and Saints. They knew it would be unwise to deprive
the populace of what they had been so long accustomed to, and therefore
they left them their swinging censers, their gold chalices, and their
symbolic candles. Thus it is that Roman Catholicism became, and is
still, merely a Christian form of Paganism which is made to pay
successfully, just as the feasts and Saturnalia of ancient days were
made to pay as spectacular and theatrical pastimes. I should not blame
your Church if it declared itself to be an offshoot of Paganism at
once,--Paganism, or any other form of faith, deserves respect as long
as its priests and followers are sincere; but when their belief is a
mere pretence, and their system degenerates into a scheme of making
money out of the fond faiths of the ignorant, then I consider it is
time to protest against such blasphemy in the presence of God and all
things divine and spiritual!"

Gherardi had listened to these words very quietly, his countenance
gradually relaxing and smoothing into an amiable expression of
forbearance. He looked up now at Aubrey with a smile that was almost
benignant.

"You are quite right, Mr. Leigh!" he said gently, "I begin to
understand you now! I see that you have studied deeply, and you have
thought still more. If you will continue your studies and your thinking
also, you will see how difficult it is for us to move as rapidly with
the times as you would have us do. You must remember that it would be
quite possible for Holy Mother Church to rise at once to the high
scientific and psychical position you wish her to adopt, if it were not
for the mass of the ignorant, with whom one must have patience! You are
a man in the prime of life--you are zealous--eager for
improvement,--yes!--all that is very admirable and praiseworthy. But
you forget the numerous and widely differing interests with which we of
the Church have to deal. For the great majority of persons it would be
useless, for example, to give them lessons on the majesty of God's work
in the science of Astronomy. They would be confused, bewildered, and
more or less frightened out of faith altogether. They must have
something tangible to cling to--for instance,"--and he pressed the tips
of his fingers delicately together, "there are grades of intelligence
just as there are grades of creation; you cannot instruct a caterpillar
as you instruct a man. Now there are many human beings who are of the
caterpillar quality of brain--what are you to do with them? They would
not understand God as manifested in the solar system, but they would
try to please some favourite Saint by good conduct. Is it not better
that they should believe in the Saint than in nothing?"

"I cannot think it well for anyone to believe in a lie," said Aubrey
slowly, taken aback despite himself by Gherardi's sudden gentleness,
"There is a magnificent simplicity in truth;--truth which, the more it
is tested, the truer it proves. Where is there any necessity of
falsehood? Surely the marvels of nature could be explained with as much
ease as the supposed miracles of a Saint?"

"I doubt it!" answered Gherardi smiling, "You must admit, my dear sir,
that our scientific men are a great deal too abstruse for the
majority;--in some cases they are almost too abstruse for themselves!
You spoke just now of the priests of Egypt;--the oracles of Memphis
were clear reading compared to the involved sentences of some of our
modern scientists! Scientific books are hard nuts to crack even for the
highly educated; but for the uneducated, believe me, the personality of
a Saint is much more consoling than the movements of a star. Besides,
Humanity must have something human to love and to revere. The infinite
gradations of the Mind of God through Matter, appeal to none but those
of the very highest intellectual capability."

Aubrey was silent a moment, then he said,

"But even the most ignorant can understand Christ,--Christ as He
revealed Himself to the world in perfect beauty and simplicity as 'a
Man of sorrows and acquainted with grief.' There needs no Vatican, no
idolatry of the Pope, no superstitious images, no shrines of healing
and reliquaries to explain His sublime intention!"

"I am afraid, Mr. Leigh, you entertain a very optimistic view of
mankind," said Gherardi, "Unfortunately Christ is not enough for many
people. Christ was an Incarnation of God, and though He became Man he
'knew not sin.' He therefore stands apart; an Example, but not a
Companion. There are a certain class of sinners who like to think of
Saints;--human beings constituted like themselves, who have committed
errors, even crimes, and repented of them. This is a similar spirit to
that of the child who catches hold of any convenient support he can
find to guide his first tottering steps across the floor to his
mother,-the Saint helps the feeble-footed folk to totter their way
towards Christ. I assure you, our Church considers everything that is
necessary for the welfare of its weakest brethren."

"Yes,--I grant you that it is full of subtle means for approaching and
commanding the ignorant," said Aubrey. "But to the intellectual forces
it offers no progress."

"The intellectual forces can clear their own way!" declared Gherardi,
rising to his full imposing height, and beaming sovereign benevolence
on his visitor, "and can, if they choose, make their own Church. This
is the age of freedom, and no restraint is placed on the action of the
intellectually free. But the ignorant must always form the majority;
and in their ignorance and helplessness, will do wisely to remain like
obedient children under the sway of Rome!"

Aubrey rose also, and could not forbear an involuntary glance of
reluctant admiration at the stately figure and commanding attitude of
the man who confronted him with such a pride in the persistent
Jesuitical conviction that even a Lie may be used in religion for the
furtherance of conversion to the Truth.

"I do not see," Gherardi went on, smiling blandly, "why after all, you
should not be received by the Holy Father. I will try to arrange it for
you. But it would avail you very little, I imagine, as he is not
strong, and would not be capable of conversing with you for more than a
few minutes. I think it would serve your purpose much more to carefully
study the movements, and the work of what you call 'the stock-jobbing
company of sacerdotal directors,'" and here his smile became still more
broadly benevolent, "and take note of their divisions and subdivisions
of influence which extend from the very poorest and most abandoned to
the very highest and most cultured. You will then understand why I
maintain that Rome as a power is impregnable;--and why some of the more
far-sighted and prophetic among us look upon the Conversion of England
as an almost accomplished fact!"

Aubrey smiled; but he was not without the consciousness that from his
own particular point of view Gherardi had some excuse for his belief.

"According to your own written opinions," went on Gherardi, "for I have
read your books,--the Church of England is in a bad way. Its
Ritualistic form is very nearly Roman. Some of your Archbishops confess
to a liking for incense! You admit that the stricter forms of
Protestantism do not comfort the sick soul in times of need; well, what
would you Socialists and Freethinkers have? Would you do without a
Church altogether?"

"No," said Aubrey quickly, "But we would have a purified Church,--a
House of Praise to God--without any superstition or dogma."

"You must have dogma," said Gherardi complacently, "You must formulate
something out of a chaos of opinion. As for superstition, you will
never get rid of that weakness out of the human composition. If the
Church gives nothing for this particular mood of man to feed on, man
will invent something else OUTSIDE the Church. My dear sir, we have
thought of all these difficulties for ages! In religion one cannot
appeal solely to the intellect. One must touch the heart--the emotions.
Music, painting, colour, spectacle, all these are permitted us to use
for the good purpose of lifting the soul of a sinner to contemplate
something better than himself. Women and little children enter the
Church as well as men,--would you have THEM find no comfort? Must a
woman with a broken heart take her sorrows to the vast Silence of an
unreasonable God among universes of star systems? Or shall she find
hope, and a gleam of comfort in a prayer to a woman of the same clay as
herself in the person of the Virgin Mary? And remember, there is
something very beautiful in the symbol of the Virgin as applied to
womanhood! The Mother of God! Does it not suggest to your poetical mind
that woman is destined always to be the Mother of the God?--that is,
mother of the perfect man when that desirable consummation shall be
accomplished?"

"I have never doubted it.'" said Aubrey, "The Mother of Christ is to me
a symbol of womanhood for all time!" Gherardi smiled.

"Good! Then in spite of your denunciations you come very near to our
faith'"

"I never denied the beauty, romance, or mysticism of the Roman Catholic
Faith," said Aubrey, "If it were purified from the accumulated
superstition of ages, and freed from intolerance and bigotry, it would
perhaps be the grandest form of Christianity in the world. But the rats
are in the house, and the rooms want cleaning!"

"In every house there are those rats--in every room there is dirt!"
said Gherardi, "Presuming that you speak in a moral sense. What of your
Houses of Parliament? What of the French Senate? What of the Reichstag?
What of the Russian Autocracy?--the American Republic? In every quarter
the rats squeal, and the dirt gathers! The Church of Rome is purity
itself compared to your temporal governments! My dear sir," and
approaching, he laid a kindly hand on Aubrey's arm, "I would not be
harsh with you for the world! I understand your nature perfectly. It is
full of enthusiasm and zeal for righteousness,--your heart warms to the
sorrows of the human race,--you would lift up the whole world to God's
footstool; you would console--you would be a benefactor--you would
elevate, purify, rejuvenate, inspire! Yes! This is a grand mood--one
which has fired many a would-be reformer before you,--but you forget!
It is not the Church against which you should arm yourself--it is the
human race! It is not one or many religious systems with which you
should set yourself to contend--it is the blind brutishness of
humanity!" As he spoke, his tall form appeared to tower to an even
greater height,--his eyes flashed, and the intellectual pride and force
of his character became apparent in every feature of his face. "If
humanity in the mass asked us for Christ only; if men and women would
deny themselves the petty personal aim, the low vice, the crawling
desire to ingratiate themselves with Heaven, the Pharisaical
affectation of virtue--if they would themselves stand clear of 'vain
repetition' and obstinate egoism, and would of themselves live purely,
the Church would be pure! May I venture to suggest to you that men make
the Church, not the Church the men? We try to supply the spiritual
needs of the human being, such as his spiritual needs at present
are,--when he demands more we will give him more. At present his needs
are purely personal, and therefore low and tainted with
sensuality,--yet we drag him along through these emotions as near to
the blameless Christ as we can. When he is impersonal enough, unselfish
enough, loyal-hearted enough, to stand face to face with the glorious
manifestation of the Deity unaided, we can cast away his props, such as
superstitious observances, Saints and the like, and leave him,--but
then the Millennium will have come, and there will be new heavens and a
new earth!"

He spoke well, with force and fervour, and Aubrey Leigh was for a
moment impressed. After a slight pause however, he said,

"You admit the ignorance of human beings, and yet--you would keep them
ignorant?"

"Keep them ignorant!" Gherardi laughed lightly. "That is more than any
of us can do nowadays! Every liberty is afforded them to learn,--and if
they still remain barbarous it is because they elect to be so. But OUR
duty is to look after the ignorant more than the cultured! Quite true
it is that the Pope lost a magnificent opportunity in the Dreyfus
affair,--if he had spoken in favour of mercy and justice he would have
won thousands of followers; being silent he has lost thousands. But
this should be a great satisfaction to you, Mr. Leigh! For if the Holy
Father had given an example to the Catholic clergy to act in the true
Christian spirit towards Dreyfus, the Conversion of England might have
been so grafted on enthusiastic impulse as to be a much nearer
possibility than it is now!"

Aubrey was silent.

"Now, Mr. Leigh, I think you have gained sufficient insight into my
views to judge me with perhaps greater favour than you were inclined to
do at the beginning of our interview," continued Gherardi, "I assure
you that I shall watch your career with the greatest interest! You have
embarked in a most hopeless cause,--you will try to help the helpless,
and as soon as they are rescued out of trouble, they will turn and rend
you,--you will try to teach them the inner mysteries of God's working,
and they will say you are possessed of a devil! You will endeavour to
upset shams and hypocrisies, and the men of your press will write you
down and say you are seeking advertisement and notoriety for yourself.
Was there ever a great thinker left unmartyred? Or a great writer that
has not been misunderstood and condemned? You wish to help and serve
humanity! Enthusiast! You would do far better to help and serve the
Church! For the Church rewards; humanity has cursed and killed every
great benefactor it ever had INCLUDING CHRIST!"

The terrible words beat on Aubrey's ears like the brazen clang of a
tocsin, for he knew they were true. But he held his ground.

"There are worse things than death," he said simply.

Gherardi smiled kindly.

"And there are worse things than life!" he said,

"Life holds a good many harmless enjoyments, which I am afraid you are
putting away from you in your prime, for the sake of a mere chimera.
But--after all, what does it matter! One must have a hobby! Some men
like horse-racing, others book-collecting,--others pictures,--and so
forth--you like the religious question! Well, no doubt it affords you a
great many opportunities of studying character. I shall be very
happy--" here he extended his hand cordially, "to show you anything
that may be of interest to you in Rome, and to present you to any of
our brethren that may assist you in your researches. I can give you a
letter to Rampolla--"

Aubrey declined the offered introduction with a decided negative shake
of his head.

"No," he said, "I know Cardinal Bonpre; that is enough!"

"But there is a great difference between Rampolla and Bonpre," said
Gherardi, with twinkling eyes, "Bonpre is scarcely ever in Rome. He
lives a life apart--and has for a long while been considered as a kind
of saint from the privacy and austerity of his life. But he has
heralded his arrival in the Eternal City triumphantly--by the
performance of a miracle! What do you say to this?--you who would do
away with things miraculous?"

"I say nothing till I hear," answered Aubrey, "I must know what the
nature of the so-called miracle is. I am a believer in soul-forces, and
in the exhalation of spiritual qualities affecting or influencing
others: but in this there is no miracle, it is simply natural law."

"Well, you must interview the Cardinal yourself," said Gherardi
indulgently, "and tell me afterwards what you think about it, if indeed
you think anything. But you will not find him at home this morning. He
is summoned to the Vatican."

"On account of the miracle?--or the scandal affecting the Abbe
Vergniaud?" asked Aubrey.

"Both matters are under discussion, I believe," replied Gherardi
evasively, "But they are not in my province. Now, can I be of any
further service to you, Mr. Leigh?"

"No. I am sorry to have taken up so much of your time," said Aubrey,
"But I think I understand your views--"

"I hope you do," interrupted Gherardi, "And that you will by and by
grasp the fact that my views are shared by almost everyone holding any
Church authority. But you must go about in Rome, and make enquiries for
yourself  . . . now, let me see! Do you know the Princesse D'Agramont?"

"No."

"Oh, you must know her,--she is a great friend of Donna Sovrani's, and
a witty and brilliant personage in herself. She is rather of your way
of thinking, and so is out of favour with the Church. But that will not
matter to you; and you will meet all the dissatisfied and enthusiastic
of the earth in her salons! I will tell her to send you a card."

Aubrey said something by way of formal acknowledgment, and then took
his leave. He was singularly depressed, and his face, always quick to
show traces of thought, had somewhat lost its former expression of
eager animation. The wily Gherardi had for the time so influenced his
sensitive mind as to set it almost to the tune of the most despairing
of Tennyson's "Two Voices",

    "A life of nothings, nothing worth,
     From that first nothing ere his birth,
     To that last nothing under earth."

What was the use of trying to expound a truth, if the majority
preferred a lie?

    "Will one bright beam be less intense,
     When thy peculiar difference
     Is cancelled in the world of sense?"

And Gherardi noted the indefinable touch of fatigue that gave the
slight droop of the shoulders and air of languor to the otherwise
straight slim figure as it passed from his presence,--and smiled. He
had succeeded in putting a check on unselfish ardour, and had thrown a
doubt into the pure intention of enthusiastic toil. That was enough for
the present. And scarcely had Aubrey crossed the threshold--scarcely
had the echo of his departing footsteps died away--when a heavy velvet
curtain in the apartment was cautiously thrust aside, and Monsignor
Moretti stepped out of a recess behind it, with a dignity and composure
which would have been impossible to any but an Italian priest convicted
of playing the spy. Gherardi faced him confidently.

"Well?" he said, with a more exhaustive enquiry expressed in his look
than in the simple ejaculation.

"Well!" echoed Moretti, as he slowly advanced into the centre of the
room, "You have not done as much as I expected you would. Your
arguments were clever, but not--to a man of his obstinacy, convincing."

And sitting down, he turned his dark face and gleaming eyes full on his
confrere, who with a shrug of his massive shoulders expressed in his
attitude a disdainful relinquishment of the whole business.

"You have not," pursued Moretti deliberately, "grasped anything like
the extent of this man Leigh's determination and indifference to
results. Please mark that last clause,--indifference to results. He is
apparently alone in the world,--he seems to have nothing to lose, and
no one to care whether he succeeds or fails;--a most dangerous form of
independence! And in his persistence and eloquence he is actually
stopping--yes, I repeat it,--stopping and putting a serious check on
the advancement of the Roman Catholic party. And of course any check
just now means to us a serious financial loss both in England and
America,--a deficit in Vatican revenues which will very gravely
incommode certain necessary measures now under the consideration of His
Holiness. I expected you to grasp the man and hold him,--not by
intimidation but by flattery."

"You think he is to be caught by so common a bait?" said Gherardi,
"Bah! He would see through it at once!"

"Maybe!" replied Moretti, "But perhaps not if it were administered in
the way I mean. You seem to have forgotten the chief influence of any
that can be brought to bear upon the heart and mind of a man,--and that
is, Woman."

Gherardi laughed outright.

"Upon my word I think it would be difficult to find the woman suited to
this case!" he said. "But you who have a diplomacy deeper than that of
any Jew usurer may possibly have one already in view?"

"There is now in Rome," pursued Moretti, speaking with the same even
deliberation of accent, "a faithful daughter of the Church, whose
wealth we can to a certain extent command, and whose charm is
unquestionable,--the Comtesse Sylvie Hermenstein--"

Gherardi started. Moretti eyed him coldly.

"You are not stricken surely by the childlike fascination with which
this princess of coquettes rules her court?" he enquired sarcastically.

"I?" echoed Gherardi, shifting his position so that Moretti's gaze
could not fall so directly upon him. "I? You jest!"

"I think not!" said Moretti, "I think I know something about
women--their capabilities, their passions, their different grades of
power. Sylvie Hermenstein possesses a potent charm which few men can
resist, and I should not wonder if you yourself had been occasionally
conscious of it. She is one of those concerning whom other women say
'they can see nothing in her'. Ah!" and Moretti smiled darkly, "What a
compliment that is from the majority of women to one! This woman Sylvie
is unique. Where is her beauty? You cannot say--yet beauty is her very
essence. She cannot boast perfection of features,--she is frequently
hidden away altogether in a room and scarcely noticed. And so she
reminds me of a certain flower known to the Eastern nations, which is
difficult to find, because so fragile and small that it can scarcely be
seen, but when it is found, and the scent of it unwittingly inhaled, it
drives men mad!"

Gherardi looked at him with a broadly wondering smile.

"You speak so eloquently," he said, "that one would almost fancy--"

"Fancy nothing!" retorted Moretti quickly, "Fancy and I are as far
apart as the poles, except in the putting together of words, in which
easy art I daresay I am as great an adept as Florian Varillo, who can
write verses on love or patriotism to order, without experiencing a
touch of either emotion. What a humbug by the way, that fellow is!--"
and Moretti broke off to consider this new point--"He rants of the
honour of Italy, and would not let his finger ache for her cause! And
he professes to love the 'Sovrani' while all Rome knows that Pon-Pon is
his mistress!"

Gherardi wisely held his peace.

"The Comtesse Sylvie Hermenstein is the little magic flower you must
use;" resumed Moretti, emphasising his words with an authoritative
movement of his hand, "Use her to madden Aubrey Leigh. Bring them
together;--he will lose his head as surely as all men do when they come
under the influence of that soft deep-eyed creature, with the full
white breast of a dove, and the smile of an angel,--and remember, it
would be an excellent thing for the Church if he could be persuaded to
marry her,--there would be no more preaching then!--for the thoughts of
love would outweigh the theories of religion."

"You think it?" queried Gherardi dubiously.

"I know it!" replied Moretti rising, and preparing to take his
departure, "But,--play the game cautiously! Make no false move.
For--understand me well, this man Leigh must be silenced, or we shall
lose England!"

And with these last words he turned abruptly on his heel and left the
apartment.



XXII.

Cardinal Felix Bonpre sat alone in the largest and loneliest room of
the large and lonely suite of rooms allotted to him in the Palazzo
Sovrani,--alone at a massive writing table near the window, his head
resting on one hand, and his whole figure expressive of the most
profound dejection. In front of him an ancient silver crucifix gleamed
in the flicker of the small wood fire which had been kindled in the
wide cavernous chimney--and a black-bound copy of the Gospels lay open
as if but lately consulted. The faded splendour of certain gold
embroidered hangings on the walls added to the solemn and melancholy
aspect of the apartment, and the figure of the venerable prelate seen
in such darkening gloom and solitude, was the crowning completion of an
expressive and pathetic picture of patient desolation. So might a
martyr of the Inquisition have looked while the flames were getting
ready to burn him for the love of the gentle Saviour; and something of
the temper of such a possible predecessor was in the physically frail
old man, who just now was concentrating all the energies of his mind on
the consideration of a difficult question which is often asked by many
hearts in secret, but is seldom voiced to the public ear;--"Christ or
the Church? Which must I follow to be an honest man?"

Never had the good Cardinal been in such a strange predicament. Living
away from the great centres of thought and action, he had followed a
gentle and placid course of existence, almost unruffled, save by the
outside murmurs of a growing public discontent which had reached him
through the medium of current literature, and had given him cause to
think uneasily of possible disaster for the religious world in the near
future,--but he had never gone so far as to imagine that the Head of
the Church would, while being perfectly conscious of existing
threatening evils, deliberately turn his back to appeals for
help,--shut his ears to the cry of the "lost sheep of the House of
Israel", and even endeavour, with an impotence of indignation which was
as pitiable as useless, to shake a rod of Twelfth-century menace over
the advancement of the Twentieth!

"For the onward movement of Humanity is God's work," said the Cardinal,
"And what are we--what is even the Church--when it does not move side
by side in perfect and pure harmony with the order of Divine Law?"

And he was bitterly troubled in spirit. He had spent the whole morning
at the Vatican, and the manner of his reception there had been so
curiously divided between flattery and reproach that he had not known
what to make of it. The Pope had been tetchy and querulous,--precisely
in such a humour as one naturally expects so aged a man to be when
contradicted on any matter, whether trivial or important. For with such
advanced years the faculties are often as brittle as the bones, and the
failing powers of the brain are often brought to bear with more
concentration on inconsiderable trifles than on the large and important
affairs of life. He had questioned the Cardinal closely concerning the
miraculous cure performed at Rouen, and had become excessively angry
when the honest prelate earnestly disclaimed all knowledge of it. He
had then confronted him with Claude Cazeau, the secretary of the
Archbishop of Rouen, and Cazeau had given a clear and concise account
of the whole matter, stating that the child, Fabien Doucet, had been
known in Rouen since his babyhood as a helpless cripple, and that after
Cardinal Bonpre had prayed over him and laid hands on him, he had been
miraculously cured, and was now to be seen running about the city as
strong and straight as any other healthy child. And Bonpre listened
patiently;--and to all that was said, merely reiterated that if the
child WERE so cured, then it was by the special intervention of God, as
he personally had done no more than pray for his restoration. But to
his infinite amazement and distress he saw plainly that the Holy Father
did not believe him. He saw that he was suspected of playing a
trick,--a trick, which if he had admitted, would have been condoned,
but which if he denied, would cause him to be looked upon with distrust
by all the Vatican party. He saw that even the man Cazeau suspected
him. And then,--when the public confession of the Abbe Vergniaud came
under discussion,--the Pope had gathered together all the visible
remains of physical force his attenuated frame could muster, and had
hurled himself impotently against the wall of opposing fact with such
frail fury as almost to suggest the celebrated simile of "a reed shaken
with the wind". In vain had the Cardinal pleaded for Vergniaud's
pardon; in vain had he urged that after all, the sinner had branded
himself as such in the sight of all men; what further need to add the
ban of the Church's excommunication against one who was known to be
within touch of death? Would not Christ have said, "Go, and sin no
more"? But this simple quotation from the Gospels seemed to enrage the
representative of St. Peter more violently than before, and when Bonpre
left the Holy Presence he knew well enough that he was, for no fault of
his own, under the displeasure of the Vatican. How had it all come
about? Nothing could have been simpler than his life and actions since
he left his own Cathedral-town,--he had prayed for a sick child,--he
had sympathised with a sorry sinner,--that was all. And such deeds as
these were commanded by Christ. Yet--the Head of the Church for these
same things viewed him with wrath and suspicion! Wearily he sat,
turning over everything in his mind, and longing, with a weakness which
he fully admitted to his own conscience, to leave Rome at once and
return to his own home, there to die among his roses at peace. But he
saw it would never do to leave Rome just yet. He was bound fast hand
and foot. He was "suspect"! In his querulous fit the Pope had ordered
Claude Cazeau to return to Rouen without delay, and there gather
further evidence respecting the Cardinal's stay at the Hotel Poitiers,
and if possible, to bring the little Fabien Doucet and his mother back
to Rome with him. Pending the arrival of fresh proof, Bonpre, though he
had received no actual command, knew he was expected to remain where he
was. Weary and sick at heart, the venerable prelate sighed as he
reviewed all the entangling perplexities, which had, so unconsciously
to himself, become woven like a web about his innocent and harmless
personality, and so absorbed was he in thought that he did not hear the
door of his room open, and so was sot aware that his foundling Manuel
had stood for some time silently watching him. Such love and compassion
as were expressed in the boy's deep blue eyes could not however radiate
long through any space without some sympathetic response,--and moved by
instinctive emotion, Cardinal Felix looked up, and seeing his young
companion smiled,--albeit the smile was a somewhat sad one.

"Where have you been, my child?" he asked gently, "I have missed you
for some hours."

Manuel advanced a little, and stood between the pale afternoon light
reflected through the window, and the warmer glow of the wood fire.

"I have been to the strangest place in all the world!" he answered,
"The strangest,--and surely one of the most wicked!"

The Cardinal raised himself in his chair, and bent an anxious wondering
look upon the young speaker.

"One of the most wicked!" he echoed, "What place are you talking of?"

"St. Peter's!" answered Manuel, with a thrill of passion in his voice
as he uttered the name, "St. Peter's,--the huge Theatre misnamed a
Church! Oh, dear friend!--do not look at me thus! Surely you must feel
that what I say is true? Surely you know that there is nothing of the
loving God in that vast Cruelty of a place, where wealth and
ostentation vie with intolerant officialism, bigotry and
superstition!--where even the marble columns have been stolen from the
temples of a sincerer Paganism, and still bear the names of Isis and
Jupiter wrought in the truthful stone;--where theft, rapine and murder
have helped to build the miscalled Christian fane! You cannot in your
heart of hearts feel it to be the abode of Christ; your soul, bared to
the sight of God, repudiates it as a Lie! Yes!"--For, startled and
carried away by the boy's fervour, Cardinal Felix had risen, and now
stood upright, making a feeble gesture with his hands, as though
seeking to keep back the crushing weight of some too overwhelming
conviction,--"Yes--you would silence me!--but you cannot!--I read your
heart! You love God  . . . and I--I love Him too! You would serve
Him!--and I--I would obey Him! Ah, do not struggle with yourself, dear
and noble friend! If you were thrice crowned a martyr and saint you
could not see otherwise than clearly--you could not but accept Truth
when Truth is manifested to you,--you could not swear falsely before
God! Would the Christ not say now as He said so many centuries ago--'My
House is called the house of prayer, but ye have made it a den of
thieves!' Is it not truly a den of thieves? What has the Man of Sorrows
to do with all the evil splendour of St. Peter's?--its bronzes, its
marbles, its colossal statues of dead gods, its glittering altars, its
miserable dreary immensity, its flaring gilding and insolent vulgarity
of cost! Oh, what a loneliness is that of Christ in this world! What a
second Agony in Gethsemane!"

The sweet voice broke--the fair head was turned away,--and Cardinal
Felix, overcome by such emotion as he found it impossible to explain,
suddenly sank on his knees, and stretched out his arms to the young
slight creature who spoke with such a passion and intensity of yearning.

"Child!" he said, with tremulous appeal in his accents, "For God's
sake'--you who express your thoughts with such eloquence and fervent
pain!--tell me, WHO ARE YOU? My mind is caught and controlled by your
words,--you are too young to think as you do, or to speak as you
do,--yet some authority you seem to possess, which I submit to, not
knowing why; I am very old, and maybe growing foolish in my age--many
troubles are gathering about me in these latter days,--do not make them
more than I can bear!"

His words were to himself incoherent, and yet it seemed as if Manuel
understood them. Suffering himself to be clasped for a moment by the
old man's trembling hands, he nevertheless gently persuaded and
assisted him to rise, and when he was once more seated, stood quietly
by his side, waiting till he should have recovered from his sudden
agitation.

"Dear friend, you are weary and troubled in spirit," he said tenderly
then, "And my words seem to you only terrible because they are true! If
they grieve you, it is because the grief in your heart echoes mine! And
if I do think and speak more seriously than I should, it is for the
reason that I have been so much alone in the world,--left to myself,
with my own thoughts of God, which are not thoughts such as many care
for. I would not add to your sorrows,--I would rather lighten them if I
could--but I feel and fear that I shall be a burden upon you before
long!"

"Never!" exclaimed Bonpre fervently, "Never a burden on me, child!
Surely while I live you will not leave me?"

Manuel was silent for a little space. His eyes wandered from the
Cardinal's venerable worn features to the upstanding silver crucifix
that gleamed dully in the glow of the wood-embers.

"I will not leave you unless it is well for you that I should go," he
answered at last, "And even then, you will always know where to find
me."

The Cardinal looked at him earnestly, and with a searching
interrogation,--but the boy's face though sweetly composed, had a
certain gravity of expression which seemed to forbid further
questioning. And a deep silence fell between them,--a silence which was
only broken by the door opening to admit Prince Sovrani who, pausing on
the threshold, said,

"Brother, if you will allow yourself to be disturbed, Angela would like
to see you in her studio. There are several people there,--her fiance,
Varillo among the number,--and I think the girl would be glad of your
presence."

The Cardinal started as from a dream, and rose from his chair.

"I will come at once--yes--I will come," he said, "I must not be
selfish and think only of my own troubles!" He stood erect,--he was
still in the scarlet robes in which he had made his appearance at the
Vatican, and they fell regally about his tall dignified form, the vivid
colour intensifying the pallor of his thin features. A servant entering
at the moment with two large silver candelabra ablaze with lights,
created an effect of luminance in the room that made him appear to even
greater advantage as an imposing figure of ecclesiastical authority,
and Prince Pietro looked at him with the admiring affection and respect
which he, though a cynic and sceptic, had always felt for the brother
of his wife,--affection and respect which had if anything become
intensified since that beloved one's untimely death.

"You were well received at the Vatican?" he said tentatively.

"Not so well as I had hoped," replied the Cardinal patiently--"Not so
well! But the cloud will pass. I will go with you to the
studio,--Manuel, will you stay here?"

Manuel bent his head in assent; he had just closed the before open copy
of the Gospels, and now stood with his hand upon the Book.

"I will wait till you call me, my lord Cardinal," he replied.

Prince Pietro then led the way, and Cardinal Bonpre followed, his
scarlet robes sweeping behind him with a rich rustling sound, and as
the two entered the large lofty studio, hung with old tapestries, and
panelled with deeply carved and gilded oak, the room which was Angela
Sovrani's special sanctum, all the persons there assembled rose from
their different sitting or lounging attitudes, and respectfully bent
their heads to the brief and unostentatious benediction given to them
by the venerable prelate of whom all present had heard, but few had
seen, and everyone made way for him as Angela met and escorted him to a
seat on one of the old, throne-like chairs with which the Sovrani
palace was so amply supplied. When he was thus installed, he made the
picturesque centre of a brilliant little scene enough,--one of those
vivacious and bright gatherings which can be found nowhere so perfectly
blended in colour and in movement as in a great art-studio in Rome.
Italians are not afraid to speak, to move, to smile,--unlike the
Anglo-Saxon race, their ease of manner is inborn, and comes to them
without training, hence there is nothing of the stiff formality and
awkward gloom which too frequently hangs like a cloud over English
attempts at sociality,--and that particular charm which is contained in
the brightness and flashing of eyes, creates a dazzling effect
absolutely unknown to colder northern climes. Eyes,--so potent to
bewitch and to command, are a strangely neglected influence in certain
forms of social intercourse. English eyes are too often dull and
downcast, and wear an inane expression of hypocrisy and prudery; unless
they happen to be hard and glittering and meaningless; but in southern
climes, they throw out radiant invitations, laughing assurances,
brilliant mockeries, melting tendernesses, by the thousand flashes, and
make a fire of feeling in the coldest air. And so in Angela's beautiful
studio, among the whiteness of classic marbles, and the soft hues of
richly falling draperies, fair faces shone out like flowers, lit up by
eyes, whose light seemed to be vividly kindled by the heat of an
amorous southern sun,--Venetian eyes blue as a cornflower, Florentine
eyes brown and brilliant as a russet leaf in autumn, Roman eyes black
as night, Sicilian eyes of all hues, full of laughter and flame--and
yet among all, no sweeter or more penetratingly tender eyes than those
of Sylvie Hermenstein ever shot glances abroad to bewilder and dazzle
the heart of man. Not in largeness, colour or brilliancy lay their
charm, but in deep, langourous, concentrated sweetness,--a sweetness so
far-reaching from the orb to the soul that it was easy to sink away
into their depths and dream,--and never wish to wake. Sylvie was
looking her fairest that afternoon,--the weather was chilly, and the
close-fitting black velvet dress with its cape-like collar of rich
sables, well became her figure and delicately fair complexion, and many
a spiteful little whisper concerning her went round among more showy
but less attractive women,--many an involuntary but low murmur of
admiration escaped from the more cautious lips of the men. She was
talking to the Princesse D'Agramont, who with her brilliant dark beauty
could afford to confess ungrudgingly the charm of a woman so
spirituelle as Sylvie, and who, between various careless nods and
smiles to her acquaintance, was detailing to her with much animation
the account of her visit to the Marquis Fontenelle before leaving Paris.

"He must be very epris!" said the Princesse laughing, "For he froze
into a rigid statue of virtue when I suggested that he should escort me
to Rome! I did not wait to see the effect of my announcement that YOU
were already there!"

Sylvie lowered her eyes, and a faint colour crimsoned her cheeks.

"Then he knows where I am?" she asked.

"If he believes ME, he knows," replied Loyse D'Agramont, "But perhaps
he does not believe me! All Paris was talking about the Abbe Vergniaud
and his son 'Gys Grandit', when I left, and the Marquis appeared as
interested in that esclandre as he can ever be interested in anything
or anybody. So perhaps he forgot my visit as soon as it was ended. Abbe
Vergniaud is very ill by the way. His self-imposed punishment, and his
unexpected reward in the personality of his son, have proved a little
too much for him,--both he and 'Grandit' are at my Chateau," here she
raised her lorgnon, and peered through it with an inquisitive air,
"Tiens! There is the dear Varillo making himself agreeable as usual to
all the ladies! When does the marriage come off between him and our
gifted Sovrani?"

"I do not know," answered Sylvie, with a little dubious look, "Nothing
is contemplated in that way until Angela's great picture is exhibited."

The Princesse D'Agramont looked curiously at the opposite wall where an
enormous white covering was closely roped and fastened across an
invisible canvas, which seemed to be fully as large as Raffaelle's
"Transfiguration".

"Still a mystery?" she queried, "Has she never shown it even to you?"

Sylvie shook her head.

"Never!" and then breaking off with a sudden exclamation she turned in
the direction of the door where there was just now a little movement
and murmur of interest, as the slim tall figure of a man moved slowly
and with graceful courtesy through the assemblage towards that corner
of the studio where the Cardinal sat, his niece standing near him, and
there made a slight yet perfectly reverential obeisance.

"Mr. Leigh!" cried Angela, "How glad I am to see you!"

"And I too," said the Cardinal, extending his hand, and kindly raising
Aubrey before he could complete his formal genuflection, "You have not
wasted much of your time in Florence!"

"My business was soon ended there," replied Aubrey. "It merely
concerned the saving of a famous religious picture--but I find the
modern Florentines so dead to beauty that it is almost impossible to
rouse them to any sort of exertion . . ." Here he paused, as Angela
with a smile moved quickly past him saying,

"One moment, Mr. Leigh! I must introduce you to one of my dearest
friends!"

He waited, with a curious sense of impatience, and full beating of his
heart, answering quite mechanically one or two greetings from Florian
Varillo and other acquaintances who knew and recognised him--and then
felt, rather than saw, that he was looking into the deep sweet eyes of
the woman who had flung him a rose from the balcony of the angels, and
that her face, sweet as the rose itself, was smiling upon him. As in a
dream he heard her name, "The Comtesse Sylvie Hermenstein" and his own,
"Mr. Aubrey Leigh"; he was dimly aware of bowing, and of saying
something vague and formal, but all the actuality of his being was for
the moment shaken and transfigured, and only one strong and
overwhelming conviction remained,--the conviction that, in the slight
creature who stood before him gracefully acknowledging his salutation,
he had met his fate. Now he understood as he had never done before what
the poet-philosopher meant by "the celestial rapture falling out of
heaven";--for that rapture fell upon him and caught him up in a cloud
of glory, with all the suddenness and fervour which must ever attend
the true birth of the divine passion in strong and tender natures. The
calculating sensualist can never comprehend this swiftly exalted
emotion, this immediate radiation of light through all life, which is
like the sun breaking through clouds on a dark day. The sensualist has
by self-indulgence, blunted the edge of feeling, and it is impossible
for him to experience this delicate sensation of exquisite
delight,--this marvellous assurance that here and now, face to face,
stands the One for whom all time shall be merged into a Song of Love,
and upon whom all the sweetest thoughts of imagination shall be brought
to bear for the furtherance of mutual joy! Aubrey's strong spirit, set
to stern labour for so long, and trained to toil with but scant peace
for reward, now sprang up as it were to its full height of capability
and resolution,--yet its power was tempered with that tender humility
which, in a noble-hearted man, bends before the presence of the woman
whose love for him shall make her sacred. All his instincts bade him
recognise Sylvie as the completion and fulfilment of his life, and this
consciousness was so strong and imperative that it made him more than
gentle to her as he spoke his first few words, and obtained her consent
to escort her to a seat not far off from the Cardinal, yet removed
sufficiently from the rest of the people to enable them to converse
uninterruptedly for a time. Angela watched them, well pleased;--she too
had quick instincts, and as she noted Sylvie's sudden flush under the
deepening admiration of Aubrey's eyes, she thought to herself, "If it
could only be! If she could forget Fontenelle--if--"

But here her thoughts were interrupted by her own "ideal",--Florian
Varillo who, catching her hand abruptly, drew her aside for a moment.

"Carissima mia, why did you not introduce the Princesse D'Agramont to
Mr. Leigh rather than the Comtesse Hermenstein? The Princesse is of his
way of thinking,--Sylvie is not!" and he finished his sentence by
slipping an arm round her waist quickly, and whispering a word which
brought the colour to her cheeks and the sparkle to her eyes, and made
her heart beat so quickly that she could not speak for a moment. Yet
she was supposed by the very man whose embrace thus moved her, to be
"passionless!"

"You must not call her 'Sylvie'," she answered at last, "She does not
like such familiarity--even from you!"

"No? Did she tell you so?" and Florian laughed, "What a confiding
little darling you are, Angela! I assure you, Sylvie Hermenstein is not
so very particular--but there! I will not say a word against any friend
of yours! But do you not see she is already trying to make a fool of
Aubrey Leigh?"

Angela looked across the room and saw Leigh's intellectual head bending
closely towards the soft gold of Sylvie's hair, and smiled.

"I do not think Sylvie would willingly make a fool of anyone," she
answered simply, "She is too loyal and sincere. I fancy you do not
understand her, Florian. She is full of fascination, but she is not
heartless."

But Florian entertained a very lively remembrance of the recent rebuff
given to himself by the fair Comtesse, and took his masculine vengeance
by the suggested innuendo of a shrug of his shoulders and a lifting of
his eyebrows. But he said no more just then, and merely contented
himself with coaxingly abstracting a rose out of Angela's bodice,
kissing it, and placing it in his own buttonhole. This was one of his
"pretty drawing-room tricks" according to Loyse D'Agramont who always
laughed unmercifully at these kind of courtesies. They had been the
stock-in-trade of her late husband, and she knew exactly what value to
set upon them. But Angela was easily moved by tenderness, and the
smallest word of love, the lightest caress made her happy and satisfied
for a long time. She had the simple primitive notions of an innocent
woman who could not possibly imagine infidelity in a sworn love.
Looking at her sweet face, earnest eyes, and slim graceful figure now,
as she moved away from Florian Varillo's side, and passed glidingly in
and out among her guests, the Princesse D'Agramont, always watchful,
wondered with a half sigh how she would take the blow of disillusion if
it ever came; would it crush her, or would she rise the nobler and
stronger for it?

"Many a one here in this room to-day," mused the Princesse, "would be
glad if she fell vanquished in the hard fight! Many a man--shameful as
it seems--would give a covert kick to her poor body. For there is
nothing that frets and irks some male creatures so much as to see a
woman attain by her own brain and hand a great position in the world,
and when she has won her crown and throne they would deprive her of
both, and trample her in the mud if they dared! SOME male
creatures--not all. Florian Varillo for instance. If he could only get
the world to believe that he paints half Angela's pictures he would be
quite happy. I daresay he does persuade a few outsiders to think it.
But in Rome we know better. Poor Angela!"

And with another sigh she dismissed the subject from her mind for the
moment, her attention being distracted by the appearance of Monsignor
Gherardi, who just then entered and took up a position by the
Cardinal's chair, looking the picture of imposing and stately
affability. One glance of his eyes in the direction of Aubrey Leigh,
where he sat absorbed in conversation with the Comtesse Hermenstein,
had put the wily priest in an excellent humour, and nothing could
exceed the deferential homage and attention he paid to Cardinal Bonpre,
talking with him in low, confidential tones of the affairs which
principally occupied their attention,--the miraculous cure of Fabien
Doucet, and the defection of Vergniaud from the Church. Earnestly did
the good Felix, thinking Gherardi was a friend, explain again his utter
unconsciousness of any miracle having been performed at his hands, and
with equal fervour did he plead the cause of Vergniaud, in the spirit
and doctrine of Christ, pointing out that the erring Abbe was, without
any subterfuge at all, truly within proximity of death, and that
therefore it seemed an almost unnecessary cruelty to set the ban of
excommunication against a repentant and dying man. Gherardi heard all,
with a carefully arranged facial expression of sympathetic interest and
benevolence, but gave neither word nor sign of active partisanship in
any cause. He had another commission in charge from Moretti, and he
worked the conversation dexterously on, till he touched the point of
his secret errand.

"By the way," he said gently, "among your many good and kindly works, I
hear you have rescued a poor stray boy from the streets of Rouen--and
that he is with you now. Is that true?"

"Quite true," replied the Cardinal, "But no particular goodness can be
accredited to any servant of the Gospel for trying to rescue an orphan
child from misery."

"No--no, certainly not!" assented Gherardi--"But it is seldom that one
as exalted in dignity as yourself condescends--ah, pardon me!--you do
not like that word I see!"

"I do not understand it in OUR work," said the Cardinal, "There can be
no 'condescension' in saving the lost."

Gherardi was silent a moment, smiling a little to himself. "What a
simpleton is this Saint Felix!" he thought. "What a fool to run amuck
at his own chances of distinction and eminence!"

"And the boy is clever?" he said presently in kindly accents--"Docile
in conduct?--and useful to you?"

"He is a wonderful child!" answered the Cardinal with unsuspecting
candour and feeling, "Thoughtful beyond his years,--wise beyond his
experience."

Gherardi shot a quick glance from under his eyelids at the fine
tranquil face of the venerable speaker, and again smiled.

"You have no further knowledge of him?--no clue to his parentage?"

"None."

Just then the conversation was interrupted by a little movement of
eagerness,--people were pressing towards the grand piano which Florian
Varillo had opened,--the Comtesse Sylvie Hermenstein was about to grant
a general request made to her for a song. She moved slowly and with a
touch of reluctance towards the instrument, Aubrey Leigh walking beside
her.

"You are a musician yourself?--" she said, glancing up at him, "You
play--or you sing?"

"I do a little of both," he answered, "But I shall be no rival to you!
I have heard YOU sing!"

"You have? When?"

"The other night, or else I dreamed it," he said softly, "I have a very
sweet echo of a song in my mind with words that sounded like 'Ti
volglio bene', and a refrain that I caught in the shape of a rose!"

Their eyes met--and what Emerson calls "the deification and
transfiguration of life" began to stir Sylvie's pulses, and set her
heart beating to a new and singular exaltation. The warm colour flushed
her cheeks--the lustre brightened in her eyes, and she looked sweeter
and more bewitching than ever as she loosened the rich sables from
about her slim throat, and drawing off her gloves sat down to the
piano. Florian Varillo lounged near her--she saw him not at
all,--Angela came up to ask if she could play an accompaniment for
her,--but she shook her bright head in a smiling negative, and her
small white fingers running over the keys, played a rippling passage of
a few bars while she raised her clear eyes to Aubrey and asked him,--

"Do you know an old Brittany song called 'Le Palais D'Iffry'? No? It is
just one of those many songs of the unattainable,--the search for the
'Fortunate Isles', or the 'Fata Morgana' of happiness."

"Is happiness nothing but a 'Fata Morgana'?'" asked Aubrey gently,
"Must it always vanish when just in sight?"

His eyes grew darkly passionate as he spoke, and again Sylvie's heart
beat high, but she did not answer in words,--softening the notes of her
prelude she sang in a rich mezzo-soprano, whose thrilling tone
penetrated to every part of the room, the quaint old Breton ballad,

"Il serait un roi! Mais quelqu'un a dit, 'Non!--Pas pour toi! 'Reste en
prison,--ecoute le chant d'amour, 'Et le doux son des baisers que la
Reine a promit 'A celui qui monte, sans peur et sans retour Au Palais
D'Iffry!' Helas, mon ami, C'est triste d'ecouter le chanson sans le
chanter aussi!"

Aubrey listened to the sweet far-reaching notes--"Sans peur, et sans
retour, au Palais D'Iffry"! Thither would he climb--to that enchanted
palace of love with its rainbow towers glittering in the "light that
never was on sea or land"--to the throne of that queen whose soft eyes
beckoned him--whose kiss waited for him--everything now must be for
her--all the world for her sake, willingly lost or willingly won! And
what of the work he had undertaken? The people to whom he had pledged
his life? The great Christ-message he had determined to re-preach for
the comfort of the million lost and sorrowful? His brows
contracted,--and a sudden shadow of pain clouded the frank clearness of
his eyes. Gherardi's words came back to his memory,--"You have embarked
in a most hopeless cause! You will help the helpless, and as soon as
they are rescued out of trouble they will turn and rend you,--you will
try to teach them the inner mysteries of God's working and they will
say you are possessed of a devil!" Then he thought of another and
grander saying--"Whoso, putting his hand to the plough, looketh back,
is not fit for the Kingdom of God!--" and over all rang the enchanting
call of the siren's voice--

"Et le doux son des baisers que la Reine a promit A celui qui monte,
sans peur et sans retour Au Palais D'Iffry!"

and he so lost himself in a tangle of thought that he did not observe
how closely Monsignor Gherardi was studying every expression of his
face, and he started as if he had been awakened from a dream when
Sylvie's song ceased, and Sylvie herself glanced up at him.

"Music seems to make you sad, Mr. Leigh!" she said timidly.

"Not music--but sometimes the fancies which music engenders, trouble
me," he answered, bending his earnest searching eyes upon her, and
wondering within himself whether such a small, slight gossamer thing of
beauty, brilliant as a tropical humming-bird, soft and caressable as a
dove, could possibly be expected to have the sweet yet austere
fortitude and firmness needed to be a true "helpmeet" to him in the
work he had undertaken, and the life he had determined to lead. He
noted all the dainty trifles of her toilette half doubtingly, half
admiringly,--the knot of rich old lace that fastened her sables,--the
solitary star-like diamond which held that lace in careless
position--the numerous little touches of taste and elegance which made
her so unique and graceful among women--and a pang shot through his
heart as he thought of her wealth, and his own poverty. She meanwhile,
on her part, was studying him with all the close interest that a
cultured and refined woman feels, who is strongly conscious of having
awakened a sudden and masterful passion in a man whom she secretly
admires. A triumphant sense of her own power moved her, allied to a
much more rare and beautiful emotion--the sense of soul-submission to a
greater and higher life than her own. And so it chanced that never had
she looked so charming--never had her fair cheeks flushed a prettier
rose--never had her easy fascination of manner been so bewitchingly
troubled by hesitation and timidity--never had her eyes sparkled with a
softer or more irresistible languor. Aubrey felt that he was fast
losing his head as he watched her move, speak, and smile,--and with a
sudden bracing up of his energies resolved to make his adieux at once.

"I must be going,--" he began to say, when his arm was touched from
behind, and he turned to confront Florian Varillo, who smiled with all
the brilliancy his white and even teeth could give him.

"Why must you be going?" asked Varillo cheerily, "Why not stay and dine
with my future father-in-law, and Angela, and the eminent Cardinal? We
shall all be charmed!"

"Thanks, no!--I have letters to write to England . . ."

"Good-bye!" said the Comtesse Hermenstein at this juncture,--"I am
going to drive the Princesse D'Agramont round the Pincio, will you join
us, Mr. Leigh? The Princesse is anxious to know you--may I introduce
you?"

And without waiting for a reply, as the Princesse was close at hand,
she performed the ceremony of introduction at once in her own light
graceful fashion.

"Truly a strange meeting!" laughed Varillo, "You three ought to be very
good friends! The Comtesse Hermenstein is a devout daughter of the
Roman Church--Madame la Princesse is against all Churches--and you, Mr.
Leigh, are making your own Church!"

Aubrey did not reply. It was not the time or place to discuss either
his principles or his work, moreover he was strangely troubled by
hearing Sylvie described as "a devout daughter of the Roman Church."

"I am charmed!" said the Princesse D'Agramont, "Good fortune really
seems to favour me for once, for in the space of a fortnight I have met
two of the most distinguished men of the time, 'Gys Grandit', and
Aubrey Leigh!"

Aubrey bowed.

"You are too kind, Madame! Grandit and I have been friends for some
years, though we have never seen each other since I parted from him in
Touraine. But we have always corresponded."

"You have of course heard who he really is? The son of Abbe Vergniaud?"
continued the Princesse.

"I have heard--but only this morning, and I do not know any of the
details of the story."

"Then you must certainly come and drive with us," said Loyse
D'Agramont, "for I can tell you all about it. I wrote quite a brilliant
essay on it for the Figaro, and called it 'Church Morality'!" She
laughed. "Come,--we will take no denial!"

Aubrey tried to refuse, but could not,--the attraction,--the 'will o'
the wisp' magnetism of Sylvie's dainty personality drew him on, and in
a few minutes, after taking respectful leave of the Cardinal, Prince
Sovrani, and Angela, he left the studio in the company of the two
ladies. Passing Monsignor Gherardi on the way out he received a wide
smile and affable salute from that personage.

"A pleasant drive to you, Mr. Leigh," he said, "The view from the
Pincio is considered extremely fine!"

Aubrey made some formal answer and went his way. Gherardi returned to
the studio and resumed his confidential talk with Bonpre, while one by
one the visitors departed, till at last the only persons left in the
vast room were Angela and Florian Varillo, Prince Pietro, and the two
dignitaries of the Church. Florian was irritated, and made no secret of
his irritation to his fair betrothed, with whom he sat a little apart
from the others in the room.

"Do you want a love affair between Sylvie Hermenstein and that fellow
Leigh?" he enquired, "If so, it is probable that your desire will be
gratified!"

Angela raised her delicate eyebrows in a little surprise.

"I have no wish at all in the matter," she answered, "except to see
Sylvie quite happy."

"How very romantic is the friendship between you two women!" said
Varillo somewhat sarcastically, "You wish to see Sylvie happy,--and the
other day she told me she would form her judgment of me by YOUR
happiness! Really, it is most admirable and touching!"

Angela began to feel somewhat puzzled. Petulance and temper were not in
her character, and she was annoyed to see any touch of them in her
lover.

"Are you cross, Florian?" she asked gently, "Has something worried you
to-day?"

"Oh, I am often worried!" he replied;--and had he spoken the exact
truth he would have confessed that he was always seriously put out when
he was not the centre of attraction and the cynosure of women's
eyes--"But what does it matter! Do not think at all about me, cara mia!
Tell me of yourself. How goes the picture?"

"It is nearly finished now," she replied, her beautiful violet eyes
dilating and brightening with the fervour that inspired her whenever
she thought of her work, "I rise very early, and begin to paint with
the first gleam of daylight. I think I shall have it ready sooner than
I expected. The Queen has promised to come and see it here before it is
exhibited to the public."

"Margherita di Savoja is very amiable!" said Florian, with a tinge of
envy he could not wholly conceal, "She is always useful as a patron."

A quick flush of pride rose to Angela's cheeks.

"I do not need any patronage, Florian," she said simply yet with a
little coldness, "You know that I should resent it were it offered to
me. If my work is not good in itself, no 'royal' approval can make it
so. Queen Margherita visits me as a friend--not as a patron."

"There now! I have vexed you!" And Florian took her hand and kissed it.
"Forgive me, sweetest!--Look at me--give me a smile!--Ah! That is
kind!" and he conveyed an expression of warm tenderness into his eyes
as Angela turned her charming face upon him, softened and radiant with
the quick affection which always moved her at his voice and caress. "I
spoke foolishly! Of course my Angela could not be patronised--she is
too independent and gifted. I am very glad the Queen is coming!"

"The Queen is coming?" echoed Gherardi, who just then advanced. "Here?
To see Donna Sovrani's picture? Ah, that will be an excellent
advertisement! But it would have been far better, my dear young lady,
had you arranged with me, or with some other one of my confreres, to
have the picture sent to the Vatican for the inspection of His
Holiness. The Popes, as you know, have from time immemorial been the
best patrons of art!"

"My picture would not please the Pope," said Angela quietly, "It would
more probably win his denunciation than his patronage."

Gherardi smiled. The idea of a woman--a mere woman imagining that
anything which she could do was powerful enough to bring down Papal
denunciation! The strange conceit of these feminine geniuses! He could
almost have laughed aloud. But he merely looked her over blandly and
forbearingly.

"I am sorry," he said, "very sorry you should consider such a thing as
possible of your work. But no doubt you speak on impulse. Your
distinguished uncle, the Cardinal Bonpre, would be sadly distressed if
your picture should contain anything of a nature to bring you any
condemnation from the Vatican,--and your father . . ."

"Leave me out of it, if you please!" interrupted Prince Pietro, "I have
nothing whatever to do with it! Angela works with a free hand; none of
us have seen what she is doing."

"Not even you, Signor Varillo?" enquired Gherardi affably.

"Oh, I?" laughed Florian carelessly, "No indeed! I have not the least
idea of the subject or the treatment!"

"A mystery then?" said Gherardi, still preserving his bland suavity of
demeanour, "But permit me, Donna Sovrani, to express the hope that when
the veil is lifted a crown of laurels may be disclosed for you!"

Angela thanked him by a silent inclination of her head, and in a few
minutes the stately Vatican spy had taken his leave. As he disappeared
the Cardinal rose from his chair and moving somewhat feebly, prepared
to return to his own apartments.

"Dearest uncle, will you not stay with us to-night? Or are you too
tired?" asked Angela as she came to his side.

He raised her sweet face between his two wrinkled hands and looked at
her long and earnestly. "Dear child!" he said, "Dear brave little
child! For you must always be nothing more than a child to me,--tell
me, are you sure you are moved by the right spirit in the painting of
your picture?"

"I think so!" answered Angela gently, "Indeed, indeed, I think so! I
know that according to the teaching of our Master Christ, it is a TRUE
spirit!"

Slowly the Cardinal released her, and slowly and with impressive
earnestness traced the Cross on her fair brows.

"God bless you!" he said, "And God help you too! For if you work by
'the Spirit of Truth, the Comforter', remember it is the same Spirit
which our Lord tells us 'the world cannot receive because it seeth Him
not, neither knoweth Him.' And to testify of a Spirit which the world
cannot receive makes the world very hard to you!"

And with these words he gently leaned on the arm she proffered and left
the studio with her, the rich glow and voluminous folds of his scarlet
robes contrasting vividly with the simple black gown which Angela wore
without other adornment than a Niphetos rose to relieve its sombreness.
As she went with her uncle she looked over her shoulder and smiled an
adieu to Florian,--he, in his turn lightly kissed his hand to her, and
then addressed Prince Pietro, who, with the care of a man to whom
expense is a consideration, was putting out some of the tall lamps that
had illumined the dusk of the late afternoon.

"The good Cardinal is surely breaking up," he said carelessly, "He
looks extremely frail!"

"Young men sometimes break up before old ones!" returned the Prince
drily, "Felix is strong enough yet. You dine with us to-night?"

"If you permit--" said Varillo, with a graceful salutation.

"Oh, my permission does not matter'" said Sovrani eyeing him narrowly,
"Whatever gives pleasure to Angela must needs please me. She is all
that is left to me now in an exceedingly dull world. A riverderci! At
eight we dine."

Flonan nodded,--and took his departure, and the Prince for a moment
stood hesitating, looking at the great white covering on the wall which
concealed his daughter's mysterious work. His tall upright figure stiff
and sombre, looked as if cast in bronze in the half light shed by the
wood fire,--one lamp was still burning, and after a pause he moved from
his rigid attitude of gloomy consideration, and extinguished it, then
glancing round to see that all was in order, he left the studio,
closing its great oaken door behind him. Five minutes after he had gone
a soft step trod the polished floor, and the young Manuel, holding a
lighted taper, entered all alone. The flame of the little torch he
carried cast a soft golden glow about him as he walked noiselessly
through the great empty room, his blue eyes lifted to the marble heads
of gods and heroes which occupied their different positions on the
gilded and oaken brackets set against the tapestried walls,--and
presently he paused in front of Angela's hidden work. It was but a
moment's pause, and then, still with the same light step, and the same
bright glow reflected from the flame that glittered in his hand, he
passed through the room, lifted the velvet portiere at the other end
where there was another door leading to the corridor connected with the
Cardinal's apartments, and so unnoticed, disappeared.



XXIII.

Meanwhile, the Marquis Fontenelle had been nearly a fortnight in Rome,
living a sufficiently curious sort of life, and passing his time in a
constant endeavour to avoid being discovered and recognised by any of
his numerous acquaintances who were arriving there for the winter. His
chief occupation was of course to watch the Comtesse Sylvie,--and he
was rewarded for his untiring pains by constant and bewitching glimpses
of her. Sometimes he would see her driving, wrapped in furs, her tiny
Japanese dog curled up in a fold of her sables, and on her lap a knot
of violets, the fresh scent of which came to him like a sweet breath on
the air as she passed. Once he almost met her, face to face in the
gardens of the Villa Borghese, walking all alone, and reading a book in
which she seemed to be deeply interested. He made a few cautious
enquiries about her, and learnt that she lived very quietly,--that she
received certain "great" people,--especially Cardinals and Monsignori,
notably Monsignor Gherardi, who was a constant visitor. But of any
closer admirer he never gathered the slightest rumour, till one
afternoon, just when the sun was sinking in full crimson glory behind
the dome of St. Peter's, he saw her carriage come to a sudden halt on
the Pincio and she herself leaned out of it to shake hands with, and
talk to a tall fair man, who seemed to be on exceptionally friendly
terms with her. It is true she was accompanied in the carriage by the
famous Sovrani,--but that fact did not quell the sudden flame of
jealousy which sprang up in Fontenelle's mind--for both ladies appeared
equally charmed with the fair man, and their countenances were radiant
with pleasure and animation all the time they were in conversation with
him. When the carriage resumed its round again, the Marquis sauntered
by a side path where he could take quiet observation of his apparent
rival, who walked past him with a firm light step, looking handsome,
happy, and amazingly confident. There was an old man raking the path,
and of him Fontenelle asked carelessly,

"Do you know who that gentleman is?"

The gardener looked up and smiled.

"Ah, si, si! Il Signor Inglese! Molto generoso! Il Signor Aubri Lee!"

Aubrey Leigh! A "celebrity" then,--an English author;--not that all
English authors are considered "celebrities" in Rome. Italian society
makes very short work of spurious art, and closes its doors ruthlessly
against mere English "Grub Street". But Aubrey Leigh was more than an
author,--he was an influential power in the world, as the Marquis well
knew.

"A great religious reformer! And yet a victim to the little Sylvie!" he
mused, "Well! The two things will not work together. Though truly
Sylvie would captivate a John Knox or a Cromwell. I really think,--I
really do begin to think, that rather than lose her altogether, I must
marry her!"

And he went back to the obscure hotel where he had chosen temporarily
to reside in a meditative mood, and as he entered, was singularly
annoyed to see a flaring poster outside, announcing the arrival of
Miraudin and his whole French Company in Rome for a few nights only.
The name "MIRAUDIN" glared at him in big, fat, red letters on a bright
yellow ground; and involuntarily he muttered,

"D--n the fellow! Can I go nowhere in the world without coming across
him!"

Irritated, and yet knowing his irritation to be foolish,--for after
all, what was the famous actor to him?--what was there in his
personality to annoy him beyond the trivial fact of a curious personal
resemblance?--he retired to his room in no pleasant humour, and sitting
down began to write a letter to Sylvie asking her to be his wife. Yet
somehow the power of expression seemed lacking, and once or twice he
laid down his pen in a fit of abstraction, wondering why, when he had
sought Sylvie as a lover only, he had been able to write the most
passionate love phrases, full of ardour and poetry, and now, when he
was about to make her the offer of his whole life, his sentences were
commonplace and almost cold. And presently he tore up what he had been
writing, and paced the room impatiently.

"The fact is I shall make a bad husband, and I know it!" he said
candidly to himself, "And Sylvie will make a great mistake if she
accepts me!"

He walked to the window and looked out. His hotel was not in a
fashionable or frequented quarter of Rome, and the opposite view of the
street was anything but enlivening. Dirty, frowsy women,--idle men,
lounging along with the slouching gait which is common to the
'unemployed' Italian,--half-naked children, running hither and thither
in the mud, and screaming like tortured wild animals,--this kind of
shiftless, thriftless humanity, pictured against the background of ugly
modern houses, such as one might find in a London back slum, made up a
cheerless prospect, particularly as the blue sky was clouded and it was
beginning to rain. One touch of colour brightened the scene for a
moment, when a girl with a yellow handkerchief tied round her head
passed along, carrying a huge flat basket overflowing with bunches of
purple violets, and as Fontenelle caught the hue, and imagined the
fragrance of the flowers, he was surprised to feel his eyes smart with
a sudden sting of tears. The picture of Sylvie Hermenstein, with her
child-like head, fair hair, and deep blue eyes, floated before
him,--she was fond of violets, and whenever she wore them, their odour
seemed to be the natural exhalation of her sweet and spirituelle
personality.

"She is much too good for me!" he said half aloud, "To be perfectly
honest with myself, I know I have no stability of character, and I
cannot imagine myself remaining constant to any woman for more than six
months. And the best way is to be perfectly straight-forward about it."

He sat down again, and without taking any more thought wrote straight
from the heart of his present humour, addressing her by the name he had
once playfully bestowed upon her.

"Enchanteresse! I am here in Rome, and this brief letter is to ask,
without preamble or apology, whether you will do me the infinite honour
to become my wife. I confess to you honestly that I am not worth this
consideration on your part, for I am not to be relied upon. I repose no
confidence in myself, therefore I will leave it to you to measure my
audacity in making the suggestion that you should place a lifetime's
confidence in me. But with all my heart, (as much as I know of it at
the present), I desire to show you what respect so poor a life as mine
can give to one who deserves all tenderness, as well as trust. If I may
hope that you will pardon my past follies and libertinage with regard
to you,--if you can love me well enough to wear my not too exalted
name, and preserve my remaining stock of honour, summon me to your
presence, and I will endeavour, by such devotion and fidelity as in me
lies, to atone for whatsoever offence I may have given you previously
by my too passionate pursuit of your beauty. Yours, unless you decide
my fate otherwise,

"GUY BEAUSIRE DE FONTENELLE."

Thrusting this note into an envelope he hastily sealed it, but decided
not to post it till late at night, in order that Sylvie might only
receive it with the early morning, when her mind was fresh, and
unswayed by any opinions or events of a long day. And to pass the time
he strolled out to one of the many "osterie," or wine-houses which
abound in Rome,--a somewhat famous example of its kind in the Via
Quattro Fontane. Choosing a table where he could sit with his back
turned towards the door, so as to avoid being seen by either strangers
or possible friends, he took up the Giornale Romano, and ordered a
"mezzo-litro" of the "Genzano" wine, for which that particular house
has long been celebrated. He sat there about half an hour thus quietly
reading,--scarcely hearing the loud voices and louder laughter of the
men who came and went around him, when suddenly the name "Sylvie
Hermenstein" caught his ear. It was spoken carelessly and accompanied
with a laugh. Quietly laying down his newspaper, he sat very still in
his chair, keeping his back turned to the groups of wine drinkers who
were gathering in large numbers as the evening advanced, and listened.

"The most delicious little bonbon in the whole box! Jolie a craquer!"
said a man's voice.

"Chocolat fondant! Garantie tres pure!" cried another, his words being
followed by a shout of laughter.

Fontenelle gripped the arm of his chair, and held himself rigid, but
ready to spring.

"The Church always knows where to find the prettiest women," said the
first man who had spoken, "from the Santissima Madonna downwards! What
would become of the Pope if it were not for the women!"

"Bah! The Pope is only one man, but what would become of all the
Monsignori?" asked a voice different to the rest in mellowness and deep
quality, but with a touch of insolent mockery in its tone.

Another burst of laughter answered him.

Fontenelle turned in his chair and looked at the last speaker, and to
his amazement saw the actor, Miraudin. He was leaning carelessly
against the wine counter, a half-emptied "fiaschetto" in front of him,
and a full glass of wine in his hand.

"The Monsignori would be all desolate bachelors!" he went on, lazily,
"And the greatest rascal in the Vatican, Domenico Gherardi, would no
longer be the fortunate possessor of the wealth, the influence, and the
dear embraces of the fascinating Hermenstein!"

Scarcely had he spoken when the glass he held was dashed out of his
hand, and Fontenelle, white with fury, struck him smartly and full
across the face. A scene of the wildest confusion and uproar ensued.
All the men in the wine-shop crowded around them, and for a moment
Miraudin, blinded by the blow, and the wine that had splashed up
against his eyes, did not see who had struck him, but as he recovered
from the sudden shock and stared at his opponent, he broke into a wild
laugh.

"Diantre! Ban soir, Monsieur le Marquis! Upon my life, there is
something very strange in this! Fate or the devil, or both! Well! What
now!"

"You are a liar and a blackguard!" said Fontenelle fiercely, "And
unless you apologise for your insult to the lady whose name you have
presumed to utter with your mountebank tongue--"

"Apologise! I! Moi!--genie de France! Never!" retorted Miraudin with an
air of swaggering audacity, "All women are alike! I speak from
experience!"

White to the lips, the Marquis Fontenelle looked around.

"Are there any MEN here?" he asked, eying the crowd about him with
ineffable hauteur.

A young fellow stepped forward. "At your command, Marquis! You served
me once--I shall be happy to serve you now!"

Quickly Fontenelle shook hands with this timely friend. He recognised
in him a young Italian officer, named Ruspardi, an acquaintance of some
years back, to whom he had chanced to be useful in a pressing moment of
need.

"Thanks! Arrange everything for me, will you, Ruspardi? And as quickly
as possible!"

"It is nearly midnight now," said Ruspardi in a low tone, "Shall we say
five or six in the morning?"

"Yes--anything you like--but quickly!"

Then raising his head haughtily, he addressed Miraudin in distinct
tones.

"Monsieur Miraudin, you have greatly insulted and falsely slandered a
lady whom I have the honour to know. I have struck you for your lie;
and consider you worthy of no further treatment save a horsewhipping in
public. Gentlemen do not as a rule condescend to meet their paid
servants--actors and the like,--in single combat--but I will do you
that honour!"

And with these words he bowed haughtily to all present, and left the
scene of noisy disorder.

Out in the streets the moonlight lay in broad silver bands, like white
glistening ribbon spread in shining strips across the blackness, and
there was a moisture in the air which,--dropped as it were fresh, from
the surrounding hills,--cooled Fontenelle's flushed face and burning
brows. He walked rapidly,--he had a vague, unformed desire in his mind
to see Sylvie again if possible. He knew where she lived, and he soon
turned down the street where the quaint old central balcony of the Casa
D'Angeli thrust itself forward into the moon-rays among the sculptured
angels' wings,--and he saw that the windows were open. Pausing
underneath he waited, hesitating--full of strange thoughts and stranger
regrets. How poor and valueless seemed his life as he regarded it
now!--now when he had voluntarily placed it in jeopardy! What had he
done with his days of youth and prime? Frittered away every valuable
moment,--thrown to the winds every costly opportunity,--spent his
substance on light women who had kissed and clung to him one day, and
repulsed him the next. Well--and after? His heart beat thickly,--if he
could only see Sylvie for a moment! Hush! There was a murmur--a
voice--a ripple of sweet laughter; and moving cautiously back into the
shadows, he looked up--yes!--there she was--clad in some soft silvery
stuff that gathered a thousand sparkles from the light of the
moon,--her fair hair caught up in a narrow circlet of diamonds, and her
sweet face purely outlined against the dark worn stone of one of the
great carved angel-wings. But someone was with her,--someone whom
Fontenelle recognised at once by the classic shape of his head and
bright curly hair,--the man whom he had seen that very day on the
Pincio,--Aubrey Leigh. With a jealous tightening at his heart,
Fontenelle saw that Leigh held the soft plume of downy feathers which
served Sylvie for a fan, and that he was lightly waving it to and fro
as he talked to her in the musical, all-potent voice which had charmed
thousands, and would surely not be without its fascination for the
sensitive ears of a woman. Moving a little closer he tried to hear what
was being said,--but Leigh spoke very softly, and Sylvie answered with
equal softness, so that he could catch no distinct word. Yet the mere
tone of these two voices melted into a harmony more dulcet and perfect
than could be endured by Fontenelle with composure, and uttering an
impatient exclamation at his own folly he hastily left his retreat, and
with one parting glance up at the picture of fair loveliness above him
walked swiftly away. Returning to his hotel he saw the letter that he
had written to Sylvie lying on the table, and he at once posted it.
Then he began to prepare for his encounter with Miraudin. He dressed
quickly,--wrote a few business letters,--and was about to lie down for
a rest of an hour or so when the swift and furious galloping of a
horse's hoofs awoke the echoes of the quiet street, and almost before
he had time to realise what had happened, his friend Ruspardi stood
before him, breathless and wild with excitement.

"Marquis, you are tricked!" he cried, "Everything is
prepared--seconds,--pistols,--all! But your man--your man has gone!"

"Gone!" exclaimed Fontenelle furiously, "Where?"

"Out of Rome! In a common fiacre--taking his latest mistress, one of
the stage-women with him. They were seen driving by the Porta Pia
towards the Campagna half an hour ago! He dare not face fire--bully and
coward that he is!"

"I will go after him!" said Fontenelle promptly, "Half an hour ahead,
you say! Good!--I will catch him up. Can I get a horse anywhere?"

"Take mine," said Ruspardi eagerly, "he is perfectly fresh--just out of
the stable. Have you weapons?"

"Yes," and the Marquis unlocked a case, and loading two, placed them in
a travelling holder. Then, turning to Ruspardi he shook hands.

"Thanks, a thousand times! There are a few letters here--see to them if
I should not come back."

"What are you going to do?" asked Ruspardi, his excitement beginning to
cool a little, now that he saw the possible danger into which
Fontenelle was voluntarily rushing.

"Persuade the worthy mountebank either to come back or fight at once on
whatever ground I find him, and assume to be a gentleman--for once!"
said Fontenelle, carelessly. "Addio!"

And without further words he hurried off, and tossing a twenty-franc
piece to the sleepy hotel porter who was holding Ruspardi's horse
outside, he flung himself into the saddle and galloped away. Ruspardi,
young and hotblooded, was of too mercurial a disposition to anticipate
any really serious results of the night's adventure;--his contempt for
a coward was far greater than his fear of death, and he was delighted
to think that in all probability the Marquis would use his riding-whip
on Miraudin's back rather than honour him by a pistol shot. And so
dismissing all fears from his mind he took Fontenelle's letters in his
charge, and went straight out of the hotel singing gaily, charmed with
the exciting thought of the midnight chase which was going on, and the
possible drubbing and discomfiture of the "celebrated" Miraudin.

Meanwhile, under the flashing stars, and through the sleeping streets
of Rome, the Marquis galloped with almost breakneck haste. He was a
daring rider, and the spirited animal he bestrode soon discovered the
force of his governing touch,--the resolve of his urging speed. He went
by the Porta Pia, remembering Ruspardi's hurried description of the
route taken by the runaway actor, and felt, rather than saw the outline
of the Villa Torlonia, as he rushed past, and the Basilica of St.
Agnese Fuori le Mura, which is supposed to cover the tomb of the
child-martyr St. Agnes,--then across the Ponte Nomentano, till, two
miles further on, in the white radiance of the moon, he perceived,
driving rapidly ahead of him, the vehicle of which he was in pursuit.
Letting the reins fall loosely on the neck of his straining steed, he
raised himself in his stirrups, and by his own movements assisted the
animal's now perfectly reckless gallop,--and at last, hearing the
flying hoofs behind, the driver of the fiacre became seized with panic,
and thinking of possible brigands and how to pacify them, he suddenly
pulled up and came to a dead halt. A head was thrust out of the
carriage window,--Miraudin's head,--and Miraudin's voice shouted in bad
Italian,

"What are you stopping for, rascal! On with you! On with you! Five
hundred francs for your best speed!"

Scarcely had he uttered the words when the Marquis gained the side of
the vehicle, and pulling up his horse till it almost fell in rearing
backwards, he cried furiously,

"Lache! Tu vas te crever sur terre avant je te quitte!"

And he struck his riding-whip full in the actor's face.

Springing out of the fiacre Miraudin confronted his antagonist. His hat
was off--and his countenance, marked as it was with the crimson line of
the lash, lightened with laughter.

"Again! Monsieur le Marquis, je vous salue!" he said, "Kismet! One
cannot escape it! Better to fight with you, beau sire, than with
destiny! I am ready!"

Fontenelle at once dismounted, and tied his horse to the knotted bough
of a half-withered tree. Taking his pistols out of their holder he
proffered them to Miraudin.

"Choose!" he said curtly, "Or use your own if you have any,--but mine
are loaded,--take care yours are! Play no theatrical tricks on such a
stage as this! "And then he gave a comprehensive wave of his hand
towards the desolate waste of the Campagna around them, and the faint
blue misty lines of the Alban hills just rimmed with silver in the rays
of the moon.

At the first sight of the pistols the driver of the fiacre, who had
been more or less stupefied till now, by the suddenness of the
adventure, gave a sort of whining cry, and climbing down from his box
fell on his knees before Miraudin, and then ran a few paces and did the
same thing in front of the Marquis, imploring both men not to
fight,--not to get killed, on account of the trouble it would cause to
him, the coachman;--and with a high falsetto shriek a lady flung
herself out of the recesses of the closed vehicle, and clung to the
actor's arm.

"Mon Dieu! Mon Dieu! What is it you would do?" she cried, "Be killed
out here on the Campagna? and not a soul in sight--not a house--not a
shelter? And what is to become of me!--Me!--Me!--" and she tapped her
heaving bosom in melodramatic style, "Have you thought of ME?"

"You--you!" laughed Miraudin, tearing off the lace veil which she wore
wrapped loosely round her head and shoulders, "You, Jeanne Richaud!
What is to become of you? The same fate will attend you that attends
all such little moths of the footlights! Perhaps a dozen more lovers
after me--then old age, and the care of a third-class lodging-house for
broken-down actors!" Here he chose his weapon. "At your service,
Marquis!"

Jeanne Richaud, a soubrette, whose chief stock-in-trade had been her
large dark eyes and shapely legs, uttered a desperate scream, and threw
herself at the feet of the Marquis Fontenelle.

"Monsieur! Monsieur! Think for a moment! This combat is unequal--out of
rule! You are a gentleman,--a man of honour!--would you fight without
seconds? It is murder--murder--!"

Here she broke off, terrified in spite of herself by the immovability
of Fontenelle's attitude, and the coldness of his eyes.

"I regret to pain you, Madame," he said stiffly, "This combat was
arranged according to rule between Monsieur Miraudin and myself some
hours since--and though it seems he did not intend to keep his
engagement I intend to keep mine! The principals in the fight are
here,--seconds are, as their name implies, a secondary matter. We must
do without them."

"By no means!" exclaimed Miraudin, "We have them! Here they are! You,
Jeanne, will you be my second--how often you have seconded me in many a
devil's game--and you--cochon d'un cocher!--you will for once in your
life support the honour of a Marquis!"

And with these words he seized the unhappy Roman cab-driver by the
collar of his coat, and flung him towards Fontenelle, who took not the
slightest notice of him as he lay huddled up and wailing on the grass,
but merely stood his ground, silently waiting. Mademoiselle Jeanne
Richaud however was not so easily disposed of. Throwing herself on the
cold ground, thick with the dust of dead Caesars, she clung to
Miraudin, pouring out a torrent of vociferous French, largely
intermixed with a special slang of the Paris streets, and broken by the
hysterical yells when she saw her "protector" throw off his coat, and,
standing in his shirt-sleeves, take close observation of the pistol he
held.

"Is this your care of me?" she cried, "Mon Dieu! What a thing is a man!
Here am I alone in a strange country--and you endanger your life for
some quarrel of which I know nothing,--yet you pretend to love me! Nom
de Jesus! What is your love!"

"You do well to ask," said Miraudin, laughing carelessly, "What is my
love! A passing fancy, chere petite! We actors simulate love too well
to ever feel it! Out of the way, jou-jou! Your life will be amusing so
long as you keep a little beaute de diable. After that--the
lodging-house!"

He pushed her aside, but she still clung pertinaciously to his arm.

"Victor! Victor!" she wailed, "Will you not look at me--will you not
kiss me!"

Miraudin wheeled round, and stared at her amazed.

"Kiss you!" he echoed, "Pardieu! Would you care! Jeanne! Jeanne! You
are a little mad,--the moonlight is too much for you! To-morrow I will
kiss you, when the sun rises--or if I am not here--why, somebody else
will!"

"Who is the woman you are fighting for?" she suddenly demanded,
springing up from her crouching position with flushed cheeks and
flashing eyes. Miraudin looked at her with nonchalant admiration.

"I wish you would have looked like that sometimes on my stage," he
said, "You would have brought down the house! 'Woman!' No 'woman' at
all, but WOMEN! The glamour of them--the witchery of them--women!--the
madness of them! Women!--The ONE woman saves when the ONE woman exists,
but then,--we generally kill HER! Now, once more, Jeanne,--out of the
way! Time flies, and Monsieur le Marquis is in haste. He has many
fashionable engagements!"

He flashed upon her a look from the bright amorous hazel eyes, that
were potent to command and difficult to resist, and she cowered back,
trembling and sobbing hysterically as the Marquis advanced.

"You are ready?" he enquired civilly.

"Ready!"

"Shall we say twelve paces?"

"Excellent!"

Deliberately Fontenelle dug his heel into the ground and measured
twelve paces from that mark between himself and his antagonist. Then
with cold courtesy he stood aside for Miraudin to assure himself that
the measurement was correct. The actor complied with this formality in
a sufficiently composed way, and with a certain grace and dignity which
Fontenelle might almost have taken for bravery if he had not been so
convinced that the man was "acting" still in his mind, and was going
through a "part" which he disliked, but which he was forced to play.
And with it all there was something indefinable about him--something
familiar in the turn of his head, the glance of his eye, the movement
of his body, which annoyed Fontenelle, because he saw in all these
little personal touches such a strong resemblance to himself. But there
was now no time to think, as the moment for the combat drew near.
Jeanne Richaud was still weeping hysterically and expostulating with
the cab-driver, who paid no attention whatsoever to her pleadings, but
remained obstinately on his knees out of harm's way, begging the
"Santissima Madonna" and all his "patron saints" to see him safely with
his fiacre back to the city. That was all he cared for.

"We have no one to give us a signal," said Miraudin lightly, "But there
is a cloud on the moon. When it passes, shall we fire?"

The Marquis bowed assent.

For a moment the moon-rays were obscured,--and a faint sigh from the
wind stirred the long dry grass. A bat flew by, scurrying towards the
Catacombs of Alexander,--a shadow lay upon the land. The
combatants,--so singularly alike in form and feature,--stood rigidly in
position, their weapons raised,--their only witnesses a cabman and a
wanton, both creatures terrified out of their wits for themselves and
their own safety. Swiftly the cloud passed--and a brilliant silver
glory was poured out on hill and plain and broken column,--and as it
shone, the two shots were fired simultaneously--the two bullets whizzed
through the air. A light puff of smoke rose in the moonbeams--it
cleared--and Miraudin reeled backwards and fell heavily to the ground.
Fontenelle stood upright, but staggered a little,--instinctively
putting his hand to his breast. Jeanne Richaud rushed to the side of
her fallen lover.

"Victor! Victor!"

Miraudin struggled up to a half sitting position--the blood was welling
up thickly from a wound in his lungs. Half suffocated as he was, he
made a strong effort to speak, and succeeded.

"Not you--not you!" he gasped, "Do not touch me! Do not come near me!
Him!--him!" And he pointed to Fontenelle who still stood erect, swaying
slightly to and fro with a dazed far-off look in his eyes--but now--as
the frenzied soubrette beckoned him, he moved unsteadily to the side of
his mortally wounded opponent, and there, through weakness, not
emotion, dropped on his knees. Miraudin looked at him with staring
filmy eyes.

"How I have hated you, Monsieur le Marquis!" he muttered thickly, "How
I have hated you! Yes--as Cain hated Abel! For we--we are brothers as
they were--born of the same father--ah! You start!" for Fontenelle
uttered a gasping cry--"Yes--in spite of your pride, your lineage, your
insolent air of superiority--YOUR father was MY father!--the late
Marquis was no more satisfied with one wife than any of us are!--and
had no higher code of honour! YOUR mother was a grande dame,--MINE was
a 'light o' love' like this feeble creature!" and he turned his glance
for a moment on the shuddering, wailing Jeanne Richaud. "YOU were the
legal Marquis--_I_ the illegal genius! . . . yes--genius--!"

He broke off, struggling for breath.

"Do you hear me?" he whispered thickly, "Do you hear?"

"I hear," answered Fontenelle, speaking with difficulty, "You have
hated me, you say--hate me no more!--for hate is done with--and love
also!--I am--dying!"

He grasped the rank grass with both hands in sudden agony, and his face
grew livid. Miraudin turned himself on one arm.

"Dying! You, too! By Heaven! Then the Marquisate must perish! I should
have fired in the air--but--but the sins of the fathers . . . what is
it?" Here a ghastly smile passed over his features, "The sins of the
fathers--are visited on the children! What a merciful Deity it is, to
make such an arrangement!--and the excellent fathers!--when all the
children meet them--I wonder what they will have to say to each other I
wonder . . ." A frightful shudder convulsed his body and he threw up
his arms.

    "'Un peu d'amour,
      Et puis--bon soir!'

C'est ca! Bon soir, Marquis!"

A great sigh broke from his lips, through which the discoloured blood
began to ooze slowly--he was dead. And Fontenelle, whose wound bled
inwardly, turned himself wearily round to gaze on the rigid face
upturned to the moon. His brother's face! So like his own! He was not
conscious himself of any great pain--he felt a dizzy languor and a
drowsiness as of dreams--but he knew what the dreaming meant,--he knew
that he would soon sleep to wake again--but where? He did not see that
the woman who had professed to love Miraudin had already rushed away
from his corpse in terror, and was entreating the cabman to drive her
quickly from the scene of combat,--he realised nothing save the white
moonbeams on the still face of the man who in God's sight had been his
brother. Fainter and still fainter grew his breath--but he felt near
his heart for a little crumpled knot of filmy lace which he always
carried--a delicate trifle which had fallen from one of Sylvie's pretty
evening gowns once, when he had caught her in his arms and sworn his
passion. He kissed it now, and inhaled its violet perfume--as he took
it from his lips he saw that it was stained with blood. The heavy
languor upon him grew heavier--and in the dark haze which began to
float before his eyes he saw women's faces, some beautiful, some
devilish, yet all familiar,--he felt himself sinking--sinking into some
deep abyss of shadows, so dark and dreary that he shuddered with the
icy cold and horror, till Sylvie came, yes!--Sylvie's soft eyes shone
upon him, full of the pity and tenderness of some divine angel near
God's throne,--an angel of sweetness--an angel of forgiveness--ah!--so
sweet she was, so childlike, so trusting, so fair, so enticing in those
exquisite ways of hers which had pleaded with him, prayed to him, tried
to draw him back from evil, and incite him to noble thought; "ways"
that would have persuaded him to cleanse his flag of honour from the
mud of social vice and folly, and lift it to the heavens white and
pure! Ah, sweet ways!--sweet voice!--sweet woman!--sweet possibilities
of life now gone forever! Again that sinking,--that icy chill! His eyes
were closing--yet he forced himself to open them as he sank back
heavily on the turf, and then--then he saw the great white moon
descending on him as it seemed, like a shield of silver flung down to
crush him, by some angry god!

"Sylvie!--Sylvie!" he muttered, "I never knew--how much I loved
you--till-now! Sylvie!"

His eyes closed--a little smile flickered on his mouth for a
moment--and then the Shadow fell. And he lay stark and pallid in the
moonlight, close to the brother he had never known till the last hour
of life had revealed the bond of blood between them. Side by side they
lay,--strangely alike in death,--men to whom the possibilities of noble
living had been abundantly given, and who had wasted all their
substance on vanity. For Victor Miraudin, despite his genius and the
brilliancy of his art, was not likely to be longer remembered or
mourned than the Marquis Fontenelle. The fame of the actor is even less
than that of the great noble,--the actor's name is but a bubble on the
air which a breath disperses,--and the heir to a proud house is only
remembered by the flattering inscription on his tombstone. Forgotten
Caesars, greater than any living monarch, had mixed their bones with
the soil where these two sons of one father lay dead,--the bright moon
was their sanctuary lamp,--the stars their funeral torches,--the width
of the Campagna their bier, and the heavens their pall. And when the
two terrified witnesses of the fatal fight realised the position, and
saw that both combatants had truly perished, there were no regrets, no
lamentations, no prayers, no thought of going for assistance. With the
one selfish idea uppermost,--that of escaping immediate trouble--Jeanne
Richaud rallied her scattered wits, and dragging the praying and
gesticulating cab-driver up from his knees, she bade him mount his box
and drive her back to the city. Tremblingly he prepared to obey, but
not without unfastening the horse which the dead Marquis had so lately
ridden, and taking some trouble to attach it to his vehicle for his own
uses.

"For if we do this, they will never know!" he muttered with chattering
teeth, "A horse is always a horse--and this is a good animal, more
valuable than the men;--and when they find the men that is none of our
business. In--in with you, Madama! I will drive you into the
city,--that is, if you give me a thousand francs instead of the five
hundred your man promised me! Otherwise I will leave you here!"

"A thousand!" shrieked Richaud, "Oh, thief! You know I am a poor
stranger--Oh, mon Dieu! Do not murder me!" This, as the driver, having
hustled her into the vehicle and shut the door, now shook his dirty
fist at her threateningly. "Oh!--what a night of horror! Yes--yes!--a
thousand!--anything!--only take me back to Rome!"

Satisfied in his own mind that he had intimidated her sufficiently to
make her give him whatever he demanded, the driver who, despite his
native cupidity, was seriously alarmed for his own safety, hesitated no
longer, and the noise of the dashing wheels and the galloping hoofs
woke loud echoes from the road, and dull reverberations from the Ponte
Nomentano, as the equipage, with two horses now instead of one,
clattered out of sight. And then came silence,--the awful silence of
the Campagna--a silence like no other silence in the world--brooding
like darkness around the dead.



XXIV.

The next morning dawned with all the strange half mystical glow of
light and colour common to the Italian sky,--flushes of pink warmed the
gray clouds, and dazzling, opalescent lines of blue suggested the sun
without declaring it,--and Sylvie Hermenstein, who had passed a
restless and wakeful night, rose early to go on one of what her society
friends called her "eccentric" walks abroad, before the full life of
the city was up and stirring. She, who seemed by her graceful mignonne
fascinations and elegant toilettes, just a butterfly of fashion and no
more, was truly of a dreamy and poetic nature,--she had read very
deeply, and the griefs and joys of humanity presented an ever-varying
problem to her refined and penetrative mind. She was just now
interesting herself in subjects which she had never studied so closely
before,--and she was gradually arriving at the real secret of the
highest duty of life,--that of serving and working for others without
consideration for oneself. A great love was teaching her as only a
great love can;--a love which she scarcely dared to admit to herself,
but which nevertheless was beginning to lead her step by step, into
that mysterious land, half light, half shadow, which is the nearest
road to Heaven,--a land where we suffer gladly for another's sorrow,
and are joyous in our own griefs, because another is happy! To love ONE
greatly, means to love ALL more purely,--and to find heart-room and
sympathy for the many sorrows and perplexities of those who are not as
uplifted as ourselves. For the true mission of the divine passion in
its divinest form, is that it should elevate and inspire the soul,
bringing it to the noblest issues, and for this it must be associated
with respect, as well as passion. No true soul can love what it does
not sincerely feel to be worthy of love. And Sylvie--the brilliant
little caressable Sylvie, whose warm heart had been so long
unsatisfied, was, if not yet crowned by the full benediction of love,
still gratefully aware of the wonderful colour and interest which had
suddenly come into her life with the friendship of Aubrey Leigh. His
conversation, so different to the "small talk" of the ordinary man, not
only charmed her mind, but strengthened and tempered it,--his
thoughtful and tender personal courtesy filled her with that serenity
which is always the result of perfect manner,--his high and pure ideas
of life moved her to admiration and homage,--and when she managed to
possess herself of every book he had written, and had read page after
page, sentence after sentence, of the glowing, fervent, passionate
language, in which he denounced shams and glorified truth,--the
firmness and fearlessness with which he condemned religious hypocrisy,
and lifted pure Christianity to the topmost pinnacle of any faith ever
known or accepted in the world, her feelings for him, while gaining
fresh warmth, grew deeper and more serious, merging into reverence as
well as submission. She had a book of his with her as a companion to
her walk this very morning, and as she entered the Pamphili woods,
where she had a special "permesso" to go whenever she chose, and trod
the mossy paths, where the morning sun struck golden shafts between the
dark ilex-boughs, as though pointing to the thousands of violets that
blossomed in the grass beneath, she opened it at a page containing
these lines:--

"Who is it that dares assert that his life or his thoughts are his own?
No man's life is his own! It is given to him in charge to use for the
benefit of others,--and if he does not so use it, it is often taken
from him when he least expects it. 'THOU FOOL, THIS NIGHT THY LIFE
SHALL BE REQUIRED OF THEE!' No man's thoughts even, are his own. They
are the radiations of the Infinite Mind of God which pass through every
living atom. The beggar may have the same thought as the Prime
Minister,--he only lacks the power of expression. The more helpless and
inept the beggar, the greater the responsibility of the Premier. For
the Premier has received education, culture, training, and the choice
of the people, and to him is given the privilege of voicing the
beggar's thought. And not only the beggar's thought, but the thoughts
of all in the nation who have neither the skill nor the force to speak.
If he does not do what he is thus elected to do, he is but an
inefficient master of affairs. And what shall we say of the ministers
of Religion who are 'ordained' to voice the Message of Christ? To echo
the Divine!--to repeat the grand Ethics of Life,--the Law of Love and
Charity and Forbearance and Pity and Forgiveness! When one of these
highly destined servants of the Great King fails in his duty,--when he
cannot pardon the sinner,--when he looks churlishly upon a child, or
condemns the innocent amusements of the young and happy,--when he makes
the sweet Sabbath a day of penance instead of praise--of tyranny
instead of rest,--when he has no charity for backsliders, no sympathy
for the sorrowful, no toleration for the contradictors of his own
particular theory--do we not feel that his very existence is a
blasphemy, and his preaching a presumption!"

Here Sylvie raised her eyes from the book. She was near an ancient
cedar-tree whose dark spreading boughs, glistening with the early
morning dew, sparkled like a jewelled canopy in the sun,--at her feet
the turf was brown and bare, but a little beyond at the turn of the
pathway, a cluster of white narcissi waved their graceful stems to the
light wind. There was a rustic bench close by, and she sat down to rest
and think. Very sweet thoughts were hers,--such thoughts as sweet women
cherish when they dream of Love. Often the dream vanishes before
realisation, but this does not make the time of dreaming less precious
or less fair. Lost in a reverie which in its pleasantness brought a
smile to her lips, she did not hear a stealthy footstep on the grass
behind her, or feel a pair of dark eyes watching her furtively from
between the cedar-boughs,--and she started with surprise, and something
of offence also, as Monsigner Gherardi suddenly appeared and addressed
her,--

"Buon giorno, Contessa!"

She rose from her seat and saluted him in silence, instinctively
grasping the book she held a little closer. But Gherardi's quick glance
had already perceived the title and the name of its author.

"You improve the time!" he said, sarcastically, pacing slowly beside
her. "To one of your faith and devotion that book should be accursed!"

She raised her clear eyes and looked at him straightly,

"Is the sunlight accursed?" she said, "The grass or the flowers? The
thoughts in this book are as pure and beautiful as they!"

Gherardi smiled. The enthusiasm of a woman's unspoilt nature was always
a source of amusement to him.

"Your sentiments are very pretty and poetic!" he said, "But they are
exaggerated. That book is on the 'Index'!"

"Yes, of course it would be!" answered Sylvie quietly, "I have often
wondered why so much fine literature is condemned by the Church,--and
do you know, it occurred to me the other day that if our Lord had
WRITTEN what He said in the form of a book, it might be placed on the
'Index' also?"

Gherardi lifted his eyes from their scrutiny of the ground, and fixed
them upon her with a look of amazement that was almost a menace. But
she was not in the least intimidated,--and her face, though pale as the
narcissi she had just seen in blossom, was very tranquil.

"Are you the Comtesse Hermenstein?" said Gherardi then, after an
impressive pause, "The faithful, gentle daughter of Holy Church? or are
you some perverted spirit wearing her semblance?"

Sylvie laughed.

"If I am a perverted spirit you ought to be able to exorcise me,
Monsignor!" she said,--"With the incense of early Mass clinging to you,
and the holy water still fresh on your hands, you have only to say,
'Retro me Sathanas!' and if I am NOT Sylvie Hermenstein I shall melt
into thin air, leaving nothing but the odour of sulphur behind me! But
if I AM Sylvie Hermenstein, I shall remain invincible and
immovable,--both in myself and in my opinions!"

Gherardi controlled his rising irritation, and was silent for some
minutes, reflecting within himself that if the fair Countess had
suddenly turned restive and wayward, it was probably because she was
falling in love with the author whose works she defended, and taking
this into consideration, he judged it would be wisest to temporise.

"Invincible you always are!" he said in softer tones, "As many unhappy
men in Europe can testify!"

"Are you among them?" queried Sylvie mischievously, the light of
laughter beginning to twinkle and flash in her pretty eyes.

"Of course!" answered Gherardi suavely, though his heart beat thickly,
and the secret admiration he had always felt for the delicate beauty of
this woman who was so utterly out of his reach, made his blood burn
with mingled rage and passion. "Even a poor priest is not exempt from
temptation!"

Sylvie hummed a little tune under her breath, and looked up at the sky.

"It will be a lovely day!" she said--"There will be no rain!"

"Is that the most interesting thing you can say to me?" queried
Gherardi.

"The weather is always interesting," she replied, "And it is such a
safe subject of conversation!"

"Then you are afraid of dangerous subjects?"

"Oh no, not at all! But I dislike quarrelling,--and I am afraid I
should get very angry if you were to say anything more against the book
I am reading"--here she paused a moment, and then added steadily, "or
its author!"

"I am aware that he is a great friend of yours," said Gherardi gently,
"And I assure you, Contessa--seriously I assure you, I should be the
last person in the world to say anything against him. Indeed, there is
nothing to say, beyond the fact that he is, according to our religion,
a heretic--but he is a brilliant and intellectual heretic,--WELL WORTH
REDEEMING!" He emphasised the words, and shot a meaning glance at her;
but she did not appear to take his hint or fathom his intention. She
walked on steadily, her eyes downcast,--her tiny feet, shod in charming
little French walking shoes, peeping in and out with a flash of steel
on their embroidered points, from under the mysterious gleam of silk
flounces that gave a soft "swish," as she moved,--her golden hair
escaping in one or two silky waves from under a picturesque black hat,
fastened on by velvet ribbons, which were tied in a captivating knot
under the sweetest of little white chins, a chin whose firm contour
almost contradicted the sensitive lines of the kissable mouth above it.
A curious, dull sense of anger teased the astute brain of Domenico
Gherardi, as with all the dignified deportment of the stately
churchman, he walked on by her side. What was all his scheming worth,
he began to think, if this slight feminine creature proved herself more
than a match for him? The utmost he could do with his life and
ambitions was to sway the ignorant, cram his coffers with gold, and
purchase a change of mistresses for his villa at Frascati. But
love,--real love, from any human creature alive he never had won, and
knew he never should win. Sylvie Hermenstein was richer far than
he,--she had not only wealth and a great position, but the joys of a
natural existence, and of a perfect home-life were not denied to her.
Presently, seeing that they were approaching the gates of exit from the
Pamphili, he said,--

"Contessa, will you give me the favour of an hour's conversation with
you one afternoon this week? I have something of the very greatest
importance to say to you."

"Can you not say it now?" asked Sylvie.

"No, it would take too long,--besides, if walls have ears, it is
possible that gardens have tongues! I should not presume to trouble
you, were it not for the fact that my business concerns the welfare of
your friend, Mr. Aubrey Leigh, in whose career I think you are
interested,--and not only Mr. Leigh, but also Cardinal Bonpre. You will
be wise to give me the interview I seek,--unwise if you refuse it!"

"Monsignor, you have already been well received at my house, and will
be well received again,"--said Sylvie with a pretty dignity, "Provided
you do not abuse my hospitality by calumniating my FRIENDS, whatever
you may think of myself,--you will be welcome! What day, and at what
hour shall I expect you?"

Gherardi considered a moment.

"I will write," he said at last, "I cannot at this moment fix the time,
but I will not fail to give you notice. A riverderci! Benedicite!"

And he left her abruptly at the gates, walking rapidly in the direction
of the Vatican. Full of vague perplexities to which she could give no
name, Sylvie went homewards slowly, and as she entered her rooms, and
responded to the affectionate morning greetings of Madame Bozier, she
was conscious of a sudden depression that stole over her bright soul
like a dark cloud on a sunny day, and made her feel chilled and sad.
Turning over the numerous letters that waited her perusal, she
recognised the handwriting of the Marquis Fontenelle on one, and took
it up with a strange uneasy dread and beating of the heart. She read it
twice through, before entirely grasping its meaning, and then--as she
realised that the man who had caused her so much pain and shame by his
lawless and reckless pursuit of her in the character of a libertine,
was now, with a frank confession of his total unworthiness, asking her
to be his wife,--the tears rushed to her eyes, and a faint cry broke
from her lips.

"Oh, I cannot . . . I cannot!" she murmured, "Not now--not now!"

Madame Bozier looked at her in distress and amazement.

"What is the matter, dear?" she asked, "Some bad news?"

Silently Sylvie handed her Fontenelle's letter.

"Dear me! He is actually in Rome!" said the old lady, "And he asks you
to be his wife! Well, dear child, is not that what you had a right to
expect from him?"

"Yes--perhaps--but I cannot--not now!--Oh no, not now!" murmured
Sylvie, and her eyes, wet with tears, were full of an infinite pain.

"But--pardon me dear--do you not love him?"

Sylvie stood silent--gazing blankly before her, with such perplexity
and sorrow in her face that her faithful gouvernante grew anxious and
troubled.

"Child, do not look like that!" she exclaimed, "It cuts me to the
heart! You were not made for sorrow!"

"Dear Katrine,--we were all made for sorrow," said Sylvie slowly,
"Sorrow is good for us. And perhaps I have not had sufficient of it to
make me strong. And this is real sorrow to me,--to refuse Fontenelle!"

"But why refuse him if you love him?" asked Madame Bozier bewildered.

Sylvie sat down beside her, and put one soft arm caressingly round her
neck.

"Ah, Katrine,--that is just my trouble," she said, "I do not love him
now! When I first met him he attracted me greatly, I confess,--he
seemed so gentle, so courteous, and above all, so true! But it was
'seeming' only, Katrine!--and he was not anything of what he seemed.
His courtesy and gentleness were but a mask for licentiousness,--his
apparent truth was but a disguise for mere reckless and inconstant
passion. I had to find this bit by bit,--and oh, how cruel was the
disillusion! How I prayed for him, wept for him, tried to think that if
he loved me he might yet endeavour to be nobler and truer for my sake.
But his love was not great enough for that. What he wanted was the body
of me, not the soul. What _I_ wanted of him was the soul, not the body!
So we played at cross purposes,--each with a different motive,--and
gradually, as I came to recognise how much baseness and brutality there
is in mere libertinism,--how poor and paltry an animal man becomes when
he serves himself and his passions only, my attraction for him
diminished,--I grew to realise that I could never raise him out of the
mud, because he had lived by choice too long in it,--I could never
persuade him to be true, even to himself, because he found the ways of
falsehood and deceit more amusing. He did unworthy things, which I
could not, with all my admiration for him, gloze over or excuse;--in
fact, I found that in his private life and code of honour he was very
little better than Miraudin,--and Miraudin, as you know, one CANNOT
receive!"

"He is in Rome also," said Madame Bozier, "I saw his name placarded in
the streets only yesterday, and also outside one of the leading
theatres. He has brought all his Parisian company here to act their
repertoire for a few nights before proceeding to Naples."

"How strange he should be here!" said Sylvie, "How very strange! He is
so like the Marquis Fontenelle, Katrine! So very like! I used to go to
the theatre and frighten myself with studying the different points of
resemblance! be the rough copy of Fontenelle's,--and I always saw in
the actor what the gentleman would be if he continued to live as he was
doing. Miraudin, whose amours are a disgrace, EVEN to the
stage!--Miraudin, who in his position of actor-manager, takes
despicable advantage of all the poor ignorant, struggling creatures who
try to get into his company, and whose vain little heads are turned by
a stray compliment,--and to think that the Marquis Fontenelle should be
merely the better-born copy of so mean a villain! Ah, what useless
tears I have shed about it,--how I have grieved and worried myself all
in vain!--and now . . ."

"Now he asks you to marry him," said Madame Bozier gently, "And you
think it would be no use? You could not perhaps make him a better man?"

"Neither I nor any woman could!" said Sylvie, "I do not believe very
much in 'reforming' men, Katrine. If they need to reform, they must
reform themselves. We make our own lives what they are."

"Dear little philosopher!" said Madame Bozier tenderly, taking Sylvie's
small white hand as it hung down from her shoulder and kissing it, "You
are very depressed to-day! You must not take things so seriously! If
you do not love the Marquis as you once did--"

"As I once did--ah, yes!" said Sylvie, "I did love him. I thought he
could not be otherwise than great and true and noble-hearted--but--"

She broke off with a sigh.

"Well, and now that you know he is not the hero you imagined him, all
you have to do is to tell him so," said the practical Bozier
cheerfully, "Or if you do not want to pain him by such absolute
candour, give him his refusal as gently and kindly as you can."

Sylvie sighed again.

"I am very sorry," she said, "If I could have foreseen this--perhaps--"

"But did you not foresee it?" asked Madame Bozier persistently, "Did
you not realize that men always want what they cannot have--and that
the very fact of your leaving Paris increased his ardour and sent him
on here in pursuit?"

Sylvie Hermenstein was of a very truthful nature, and she had not
attempted to deny this suggestion.

"Yes--I confess I did think that if I separated myself altogether from
him it might induce him to put himself in a more honourable position
with me--but I did not know then--" she paused, and a deep flush
crimsoned her cheeks.

"Did not know what?" queried Madame Bozier softly.

Sylvie hesitated a moment, then spoke out bravely.

"I did not know then that I should meet another man whose existence
would become ten times more interesting and valuable to me than his!
Yes, Katrine, I confess it! There is no shame in honesty! And so, to be
true to myself, however much the Marquis might love me now, I could
never be his wife."

Madame Bozier was silent. She guessed her beloved pupil's heart's
secret,--but she was too tactful to dwell upon the subject, and before
the brief, half-embarrassed pause between them had ended, a servant
entered, asking,

"Will the Signora Contessa receive the Capitano Ruspardi?"

Sylvie rose from her seat with a look of surprise.

"Ruspardi?--I do not know the name."

"The business is urgent;--the Capitano is the bearer of a letter to the
Signora Contessa."

"Remain with me, Katrine," said Sylvie after a pause,--then to the
servant--"Show Captain Ruspardi in here."

Another moment, and a young officer in the Italian uniform entered
hurriedly,--his face was very pale,--and as the Comtesse Hermenstein
received him in her own serene sweet manner which, for all its
high-bred air had something wonderfully winning and childlike about it,
his self-control gave way, and when after a profound salute he raised
his eyes, she saw they were full of tears. Her heart began to beat
violently.

"You bring some bad news?" she asked faintly.

"Madama, I beg you not to distress yourself--this letter--" and he held
out a sealed envelope,--"was given to me specially marked, among
others, by my friend, the Marquis Fontenelle--last right before--before
he went to his death!"

"His death!" echoed Sylvie, her eyes dilating with horror--"His death!
What do you mean?"

Madame Bozier came quickly to her side, and put a hand gently on her
arm. But she did not seem to feel the sympathetic touch.

"His death!" she murmured. And with trembling fingers she opened and
read the last lines ever penned by her too passionate admirer.

"SWEETEST SYLVIE! Dearest and purest of women! If you ever receive this
letter I shall be gone beyond the reach of your praise or your blame.
For it will not be given to you at all unless I am dead. Dead, dear
Sylvie! That will be strange, will it not? To be lying quite still,
cold and stiff, out of the reach of your pretty warm white
arms,--deprived for ever and ever of any kiss from your rose-red
lips,--ah, Sylvie, it will be very cold and lonely! But perhaps better
so! To-night I saw you, up in your balcony, with someone who is a brave
and famous man, and who no doubt loves you. For he cannot fail to love
you, if he knows you. God grant you may be happy when I am gone! But I
want you to feel that to-night--to-night _I_ love you!--love you as I
have never loved you or any woman before--without an evil
thought,--without a selfish wish!--to the very height and breadth of
love, I love you, my queen, my rose, my saving grace of
sweetness!--whose name I shall say to God as my best prayer for pardon,
if I die to-night!

FONTENELLE."

Sylvie shuddered as with icy cold . . . a darkness seemed to overwhelm
her . . . she staggered a little, and Ruspardi caught her,
wondering--at the lightness and delicacy and beauty of her, as he
assisted Madame Bozier to lead her to a deep fauteuil where she sank
down, trembling in every nerve.

"And--he is dead?" she asked mechanically.

Ruspardi bowed a grave assent. She paused a moment--then forced herself
to speak again.

"How did it happen?"

In brief, concise words Ruspardi gave the account of the quarrel with
Miraudin,--and Sylvie shrank back as though she had received a blow
when she heard that her name had been the cause of the dispute.

"And this morning, hearing no news," continued Ruspardi, "I made
enquiries at the theatre. There I found everything in confusion;
Miraudin and a soubrette named Jeanne Richaud, had left Rome the
previous evening so the box-keeper said, and there was no news of
either of them beyond a note from the girl saying she had returned
alone to Paris by the first morning train. Nothing had been heard of
Miraudin himself;--I therefore, knowing all the circumstances, drove
out to the Campagna by the Porte Pia, the way that Miraudin had gone,
and the way I bade the Marquis follow;--but on the Ponte Nomentano I
met some of the Miserecordia carrying two corpses on the same
bier,--two corpses so strangely alike that they might almost have been
brothers!--they were the bodies of the Marquis Fontenelle
and,--Miraudin!"

Sylvie uttered a low cry and covered her face with her hands.

"Miraudin!" exclaimed Madame Bozier in horrified tones. "Miraudin! Is
he killed also?"

"Yes, Madame! Both shots must have been fired with deadly aim. They had
no seconds. Miraudin had hired a common fiacre to escape in from the
city, and the police will offer a reward for the discovery of the
driver. My horse, which my unfortunate friend Fontenelle rode, is gone,
and if it could be discovered, its possessor might furnish a clue;--but
I imagine it will be difficult, if not impossible to trace the
witnesses of the combat. The woman Richaud is on her way to Paris. But
by this time all Rome knows of the death of Miraudin; and in a few
hours all the world will know!"

"And what of the Marquis Fontenelle?" asked Madame Bozier.

"Madama, I posted all the letters he entrusted to my charge. The one I
have brought to the Contessa was enclosed in an envelope to me and
marked 'To be personally delivered in case of my death.' But among the
letters for the post was one to the Marquis's only sister, the Abbess
of a convent in Paris--she will probably claim her brother's remains."

He was silent. After a pause Sylvie rose unsteadily, and detached a
cluster of violets she wore at her neck.

"Will you--" her voice faltered.

But Ruspardi understood, and taking the flowers, respectfully kissed
the little hand that gave them.

"They shall be buried with him," he said. "His hand was clenched in
death on a small knot of lace--you perhaps might recognise
it,--yes?--so!--it shall be left as it was found."

And,--his melancholy errand being done,--he bowed profoundly once more,
and retired.

Sylvie gazed around her vaguely,--the letter of her dead admirer
grasped in her hand,--and his former letter, proposing marriage, lying
still open on the table. Her old gouvernante watched her anxiously, the
tears rolling down her cheeks.

"You are crying, Katrine!" she said, "And yet you knew him very
little,--he never loved you! I wish--I wish MY tears would come! But
they are all here--aching and hurting me--"and she pressed her hand to
her heart--"You see--when one is a woman and has been loved by a man,
one cannot but feel sorry--for such an end! You see he was not
altogether cruel!--he defended my name--and he has died for my sake!
For my sake!--Oh, Katrine! For MY sake! So he DID love me--at the last!
. . . and I--I--Oh, Katrine!--I wish--I wish the tears would come!"

And as she spoke she reeled--and uttering a little cry like that of a
wounded bird, dropped senseless.



XXV.

The death of the famous actor Miraudin was a nine days' wonder, and
about a three weeks' regret. He had made no reputation beyond that of
the clever Mime,--he was not renowned for scholarship,--he had made no
mark in dramatic literature,--and his memory soon sank out of sight in
the whirling ocean of events as completely as though he had never
existed. There was no reality about him, and as a natural consequence
he went the way of all Shams. Had even his study of his art been
sincere and high--had he sought for the best, the greatest, and most
perfect work, and represented that only to the public, the final
judgment of the world might perhaps have given him a corner beside
Talma or Edmund Kean,--but the conceit of him, united to an illiterate
mind, was too great for the tolerance of the universal Spirit of things
which silently in the course of years pronounces the last verdict on a
man's work. Only a few of his own profession remembered him as one who
might have been great had he not been so little;--and a few women
laughed lightly, recalling the legion of his "amours", and said, "Ce
pauvre coquin, Miraudin!" That was all. And for the mortal remains of
Guy Beausire de Fontenelle, there came a lady, grave and pale, clothed
in deep black, with the nun's white band crossing her severe and
tranquil brows,--and she, placing a great wreath of violets fresh
gathered from the Pamphili woods, and marked, "In sorrow, from Sylvie
Hermenstein", on the closed coffin, escorted her melancholy burden back
to Paris, where in a stately marble vault, to the solemn sound of
singing, and amid the flare of funeral tapers, with torn battle banners
drooping around his bier, and other decaying fragments of chivalry, the
last scion of the once great house of Fontenelle was laid to rest with
his fathers. Little did the austere Abbess, who was the chief mourner
at these obsequies, guess that the actor Miraudin, whose grave had been
hastily dug in Rome, had also a right to be laid in the same marble
vault;--proud and cold and stern as her heart had grown through long
years of pain and disappointment, it is possible that had she known
this, her sufferings might have been still more poignant. But the
secret had died with the dead so far as the world went;--there remained
but the Eternal Record on which the bond of brotherhood was
inscribed,--and in that Eternal Record some of us do our best not to
believe, notwithstanding the universal secret dread that we shall all
be confronted with it at last.

Meanwhile, events were moving rapidly, and the net of difficult
circumstance was weaving itself round the good Cardinal Bonpre in a
manner that was strangely perplexing to his clear and just mind. He had
received a letter from Monsignor Moretti, worded in curtly civil terms,
to the effect that as the Cardinal's miracle of healing had been
performed in France, he, as on Vatican service in Paris, found it his
duty to enquire thoroughly into all the details. For this cause, he,
Monsignor Moretti, trusted it would suit the Cardinal's convenience to
remain in Rome till the return of Monsieur Claude Cazeau, secretary to
the Archbishop of Rouen, who had been despatched back to that city on
the business connected with this affair. Thus Monsignor Moretti;--and
Cardinal Bonpre, reading between the lines of his letter, knew that the
displeasure of Rome had fallen upon him as heavily as it did upon the
eloquent and liberal-minded Padre Agostino when he made the mistake of
asking a blessing from Heaven on the King and Queen of Italy for their
works of charity among the poor. And he easily perceived where the real
trouble lay,--namely, in the fact of his having condoned the Abbe
Vergniaud's public confession. Out of the one thing there was an effort
being made to contrive mischief with the other,--and Bonpre, being too
frail and old to worry his brain with complex arguments as to the how
and why and wherefore of the machinations carried on at the Vatican,
resigned himself to God, and contenting his mind with meditation and
prayer, waited events patiently, caring little how they ended for
himself, provided they did not involve others in any catastrophe.
Moreover, there was a certain consolation contained in his enforced
waiting,--for his niece Angela had confided to him that the work of her
great picture had advanced more swiftly than she had imagined possible,
and that it was likely she would be able to show it to her relatives
and private friends in the course of a week or so.

"But Florian must see it first," she said, "Of course you know that!
Florian must always be first!"

"Yes," and the Cardinal stroked her hair tenderly, while his eyes
rested on her with rather a troubled look--"Yes--of course--Florian
first. I suppose he will always be first with you, Angela?--after God?"

"Always!" she answered softly, "Always--after God!"

And Felix Bonpre sighed--he knew not why--except that he was always
sorry for women who loved men with any very great exaltation or
devotion. That curiously tender adoration of a true woman's heart which
is so often wasted on an unworthy object, seemed to him like lifting a
cup of gold to a swine's snout. He found no actual fault with Florian
Varillo,--he was just a man as men go, with nothing very pronounced
about him, except a genius for fine mosaic-like painting. He was not a
great creator, but he was a delicate and careful artist,--a man against
whom nothing particular could be said, except perhaps that his manner
was often artificial, and that his conduct was not always sincere. But
he had a power of fascinating the opposite sex,--and Angela had fallen
a willing victim to his candid smile, clear eyes, charming voice, and
courteous ways,--and with that strange inconsistency so common to
gifted women, she was so full of "soul" and "over-soul" herself, that
she could not imagine "soul" lacking in others;--and never dreamed of
making herself sure that it elevated the character or temperament of
the man she loved.

    "Alas, the love of women! it is known
     To be a lovely and a fearful thing;
     For all of theirs upon that die is thrown
     And, if 'tis lost, life hath no more to bring!"
                                [Footnote: Byron]

During the time that matters were thus pending in Rome, Claude Cazeau,
well satisfied with himself, and the importance of being entrusted with
a special message from the Vatican to the Archbishop of Rouen, returned
to the Normandy capital with many ambitious speculations rife in his
brain, and schemes for improving the position of confidence with which
he had, by the merest chance, and the fluctuations of the Pope's
hunxour, been suddenly thrust. He took the Patoux family by surprise on
the evening of his arrival in Rouen, and much to his secret
satisfaction found Martine Doucet in their company. The children were
gone to bed, and the appearance of Cazeau in Papa Patoux's kitchen was
evidently not altogether the most agreeable circumstance that could
have happened at the Hotel Poitiers. He was civilly received, however,
and when he expressed his pleasure at seeing Madame Doucet present,
that worthy female lifted her eyes from her knitting and gave him a
suspicious glance of exceeding disfavour.

"I do not see what pleasure my company can give you, Monsieur," she
said curtly, "I am only a poor marketwoman!"

"But you have been singularly favoured by the protection and confidence
of a great Cardinal,--" began Cazeau.

"Protection--confidence--!" echoed Martine snappishly, "Nom de Jesus!
What is the man talking about! I never set eyes on the Cardinal in my
life. But that he cured my Fabien is enough to make me think of him as
a saint for ever,--though it seems there are some that would almost
make him out to be a devil for having done a good deed! And ever since
my boy was cured I have lived a life of torture and trouble--yes,
truly!--torn between two things, our Blessed Lord and the Church! But I
am trying my best to keep fast hold of our Lord, whatever the Church
may do to me!"

"Dear me!" said Cazeau blandly, turning with a smile and propitiatory
air to Patoux who sat silently smoking, "Madame Doucet seems a
little--what shall we say?--unduly excited? Yet surely the recovery of
her child should fill her with thanksgiving and make her a faithful and
devout servant--" "Pardon, Monsieur," interrupted Madame Patoux,
"Believe me, Martine is thankful enough, and devout enough,--but truly
it has been very hard for her to suffer the things that have been said
to her of late,--how that the child could never have been really
crippled at all, but simply shamming,--how that it was all a trick got
up between herself and the priests for the purpose of bringing visitors
and their money to Rouen,--for of course since the miracle was noised
abroad there have been many pilgrimages to Notre Dame, it having got
about that there was some mysterious spirit or angel in one of the
shrines,--for look you, our Archbishop, when he came to visit the
Cardinal here in this very hotel, distinctly remembers that His
Eminence assured him he had heard strange music in the Cathedral, when
truly there was no organ unlocked, and no organist on duty,--and then
there was something about the boy that His Eminence found lost that
night . . ."

"Stop! Stop!" said Cazeau, growing impatient, "Your eloquence is so
impressive, Madame, and you say so much that is excellent in one
breath, that you must pardon my inferior capacity in not being able to
follow you quite coherently! There are conflicting statements, you
say--"

"No, there are none," said Patoux himself, drawing his pipe out of his
mouth slowly, and looking intently at its well-sucked stem--"It is all
the same sort of thing. A child is sick--a child is cured--and it is
either God or the Devil who has done it. Some people prefer to think it
is the Devil,--some give the praise to God. It was exactly like that
whenever our Lord did a good deed. Half the folks said he was God,--the
other half that he had a devil. Jerusalem was like Rouen, Rouen is like
Jerusalem. Jerusalem was ancient and wicked; Rouen is modern and
wickeder,--that's all! As for music in the church, we have only the
Archbishop's warrant that the Cardinal ever said anything about hearing
music."

"'ONLY' the Archbishop's warrant!" echoed Cazeau meaningly.

"I said 'ONLY', Monsieur!--Make the best of it!" answered Patoux,
sticking his pipe into his mouth again, and resuming his smoke with
undisturbed tranquillity.

Cazeau hummed and hawed,--he was irritated yet vaguely amused too at
the singular self-assertion of these common folk who presumed to take
their moral measurement of an Archbishop! It is a strange fact, but
these same common folk always DO take these sorts of measurements.

"The inconsistencies--(if there are any--) in the story will soon be
cleared up," he said, with a benevolent assumption of authority, "At
least, I hope so! I am glad to say that I am entrusted with a message
to the Archbishop from our Holy Father, the Pope,--and I have also His
Holiness's instructions to request you, Madame Doucet, together with
your son Fabien, to accompany me back to Rome!"

Martine Doucet bounced up from her chair, and let fall her knitting.

"Me--me!" she cried, "ME go to Rome! Never! Wild horses will not drag
me there, nor shall you take my Fabien either! What should I do in
Rome?"

"Testify personally to the truth of the Cardinal's miracle," answered
Cazeau, gazing coldly at her excited face as though he saw something
altogether strange and removed from human semblance. "And bring your
child into the Holy Presence and relate his history. It will be nothing
but an advantage to you,--for you will obtain a patient hearing, and
the priceless boon of the Papal benediction!"

"Grand merci!" said Martine, "But I have lived more than half my time
without the Papal benediction, and I can work out the rest of my days
in the same way! Look you!--there is a great English Duke I am told,
who has an only son sorely afflicted, and he has taken this son to
every place in the world where the Church is supposed to work miracles
for the healing of the sick and the helpless,--all to no use, for the
poor boy is as sick and helpless as ever. How is that? What has the
Papal benediction done for him?"

"Woman, your tongue overrules your senses!" said Cazeau, with rising
temper, "You rail against the Church like an ungrateful heathen, even
though you owe your son's recovery to the Church! For what is Cardinal
Bonpre but a Prince of the Church?"

Martine stuck her arms akimbo, and surveyed him disdainfully.

"OH--HE!" she cried, "My tongue overrules my senses, Monsieur Clause
Cazeau! Take care that your cunning does not overrule yourself! Did I
ever deny the worth and the goodness of Cardinal Bonpre? Though if I
were to speak the whole truth, and if I were to believe the
nonsense-talk of a child, I should perhaps give the credit of the
miracle to the stray boy whom the Cardinal found outside the Cathedral
door--"Cazeau started--"For Fabien says that he began to feel strong
the moment that little lad touched him!"

"The boy!" exclaimed Cazeau--"The boy!"

A curious silence ensued. Jean Patoux lifting his drowsy eyes gazed
fixedly at the whitewashed ceiling,--Madame, his wife, stood beside him
watching the changes on Cazeau's yellow face--and Martine sat down to
take breath after her voluble outburst.

"The boy!" muttered Cazeau again--then he broke into a harsh laugh.

"What folly!" he exclaimed, "As if a little tramp of the streets could
have anything to do with a Church miracle! Martine Doucet, if you were
to say such a thing at the Vatican--"

"_I_ have not said it," said Martine angrily, "I only told you what my
Fabien says. I am not answerable for the thoughts of the child! That he
is well and strong--that he has the look and the soul of an angel, is
enough for me to praise God all my life. But I shall never say the Laus
Deo at the Vatican,--you will have no chance to trap me in that way!"

Cazeau stared at her haughtily.

"You must be mad!" he said, "No one wishes to 'trap' you, as you
express it! The miracle of healing performed on your child is a very
remarkable one,--it should not be any surprise to you that the Head of
the Church seeks to know all the details of it thoroughly, in order to
ratify and confirm it, and perhaps bestow new honour on the eminent
Cardinal--"

"I rather doubt that!" interposed Patoux slowly, "For I gather from our
Archbishop that the Holy Father was suspicious of some trick rather
than an excess of sanctity!"

Cazeau reddened through his pallid skin.

"I know nothing of that!" he said curtly, "But my orders are
imperative, and I shall seek the assistance of the Archbishop to
enforce and carry them out! For the moment I have the honour to wish
you good-night, Monsieur Patoux!--and you also, Mesdames!"

And he departed abruptly, in an anger which he was at no pains to
disguise. Personally he cared nothing about the miracle or how it had
been accomplished, but he cared very much for his own advancement,--and
he saw, or thought he saw, a chance of very greatly improving his
position among the ecclesiastical authorities if he only kept a cool
head and a clear mind. He recognised that there was a desire on the
part of the Pope to place Cardinal Bonpre under close observance and
restraint on account of his having condoned the Abbe Vergniaud's
confession to his congregation in Paris; and he rightly judged that
anything he could do to aid the accomplishment of that end would not be
without its reward. And the few words which Martine Doucet had let drop
concerning the stray boy who now lived under the Cardinal's protection,
had given him a new idea which he resolved to act upon when he returned
to Rome. For it was surely very strange that an eminent Prince of the
Church should allow himself to be constantly attended by a little tramp
rescued from the street! There was something in it more than
common,--and Cazeau decided that he would suggest a close enquiry being
made on this point.

Crossing the square opposite the Hotel Poitiers, he hesitated before
turning the corner of the street which led towards the avenue where the
Archbishop's house was situated. The night was fine and calm--the air
singularly balmy,--and he suddenly decided to take a stroll by the
river before finally returning to his rooms for the night. There is one
very quiet bit of the Seine in Rouen where the water flows between
unspoilt grassy banks, which in summer are a frequent resort for lovers
to dream the dreams which so often come to nothing,--and here Cazeau
betook himself to smoke and meditate on the brilliancy of his future
prospects. The river had been high in flood during the week, and the
grass which sloped towards the water was still wet, and heavy to the
tread. But Cazeau limited his walk to the broad summit of the bank,
being aware that the river just below flowed over a muddy quicksand,
into which, should a man chance to fall, it would be death and fast
burial at one and the same moment. And Cazeau set a rather exorbitant
value on his own life, as most men do whose lives are of no sort of
consequence to the world. So he was careful to walk where there was the
least danger of slipping,--and as he lit an excellent cigar, and puffed
the faint blue rings of smoke out into the clear moonlit atmosphere, he
was in a very agreeable frame of mind. He was crafty and clever in his
way,--one of those to whom the Yankee term "cute" would apply in its
fullest sense,--and he had the happy knack of forgetting his own
mistakes and follies, and excusing his own sins with as much ease as
though he were one of the "blood-royal" of nations. Vices he had in
plenty in common with most men,--except that his particular form of
licentiousness was distinguished by a callousness and cruelty in which
there was no touch of redeeming quality. As a child he had loved to
tear the wings off flies and other insects, and one of his keenest
delights in boyhood had been to watch the writhings of frogs into whose
soft bodies he would stick long pins,--the frogs would live under this
treatment four and five hours--sometimes longer, and while observing
their agonies he enjoyed "that contented mind which is a perpetual
feast." Now that he was a man, he delighted in torturing human beings
after the same methods applied mentally, whenever he could find a
vulnerable part through which to thrust a sharp spear of pain.

"The eminent Cardinal Bonpre!" he mused now; "What is he to me! If I
could force the Archbishop of Rouen into high favour at the Vatican
instead of this foolish old Saint Felix, it would be a better thing for
my future. After all, it was at Rouen that the miracle was
performed--the city should have some credit! And Bonpre has condoned a
heretic . . . he is growing old and feeble--possibly he is losing his
wits. And then there is that boy . . ."

He started violently as a fantastic shadow suddenly crossed his path,
in the moonlight, and a peal of violent laughter assailed his ears.

"Enfin! Toi, mon Claude!--enfin!--Grace a Dieu! Enfin!"

And the crazed creature, known as Marguerite, "La Folle", stood before
him, her long black hair streaming over her bare chest and gaunt arms,
her eyes dilated, and glowing with the mingled light of madness and
despair.

Cazeau turned a livid white in the moon-rays;--his blood grew icy cold.
What! After two years of dodging about the streets of Rouen to avoid
meeting this wretched woman whom he had tricked and betrayed, had she
found him at last!

"When did you come back from the fair?" cried the girl shrilly, "I lost
you there, you know-and you man-aged to lose ME--but I have
waited!--waited patiently for news of you! . . . and when none came, I
still waited, making myself beautiful! . . . see!--" And she thrust her
fingers through her long hair, throwing it about in wilder disorder
than ever. "You thought you had killed me--and you were glad!--it makes
all men glad to kill women when they can! But I--I was not killed so
easily,--I have lived!--for this night--just for this night! Listen!"
and she sprang forward and threw herself violently against his breast,
"Do you love me now? Tell me again--as you told me at the fair--you
love me?"

He staggered under her weight--and tried for a moment to thrust her
back, but she held him in a grip of iron, looking up at him with her
great feverish dark eyes, and grasping his shoulders with thin burning
hands. He trembled;--he was beginning to grow horribly afraid. What
devil had sent this woman whom he had ruined so long as two years ago,
across his path to-night? Would it be possible to soothe her?

"Marguerite--" he began.

"Yes, yes, Marguerite! Say it again!" she cried wildly, "Marguerite!
Say it again! Sweet--sweet and tenderly as you said it then! Poor
Marguerite! Your pale ugly face seemed the face of a god to her once,
because she thought you loved her--we all find men so beautiful when we
think they love us! Yes--your cold eyes and cruel lips and hard
brow!--it was quite a different face at the fair! So was mine a
different face--but you!--YOU have made mine what it is now!--look at
it! What!--you thought you could murder a woman and never be found out!
You thought you could kill poor Marguerite, and that no one would ever
know--"

"Hush, hush!" said Cazeau, his teeth chattering with the cold of his
inward terror, "I never killed you, Marguerite!--I loved you--yes,
listen!" For she was looking up at him with an attentive, almost sane
expression in her eyes. "I meant to write to you after the fair,--and
come to you . . ."

"Hush, hush!" said the girl, "Let me hear this!--this is strange news!
He meant to write to me--yet he let me die by inches in an agony of
waiting!--till I dropped into the darkness where I am now! He meant to
come to me--oh, it was very easy to come if he had chosen to
come,--before I wandered away into all this strangeness--this
shadow--this confusion and fire! But you see, it is too late now," and
she began to laugh again, "Too late! I have a strange idea that I am
dead, though I seem alive--I am in my grave; and so you must die also
and be buried with me! Yes, you must certainly die!--when one is cruel
and false and treacherous one is not wanted in the world!--better to go
out of it--and it is quite easy,--see!--this way!--"

And before he realised her intention she sprang back a step--then drew
a knife from her bosom, and with a sort of exultant shriek, stabbed him
furiously once--twice--thrice . . . crying out--"This for your lie!
This for my sorrow!--This for your love!--"

Reeling back with the agony of her murderous blows he made a fierce
effort to tear the knife from her hands, but she suddenly threw it a
long way from her towards the river, where it fell with a light splash,
and rushing at him twined her arms close about his neck, while her mad
laughter, piercing and terrible, rang out through the quiet air.

"Together!" she said, "That day at the fair we were together, and
now--we shall be together again! Come!--Come! I have waited long
enough!--your promised letter never came--you have kept me waiting a
long long while--but now I will wait no longer! I have found you!--I
will never let you go!"

Furiously, despite his wounds, he fought with her,--tried to thrust her
away from him,--and beat her backwards and downwards,--but she had the
strength of ten women in her maddened frame, and she clung to him with
the tenacity of some savage beast. All around them was perfectly
quiet,--there was not a soul in sight,--there was no place near where a
shout for help could have been heard. Struggling still, dizzy, blind
and breathless, he did not see that they were nearing the edge of the
slippery bank--all his efforts were concentrated in an endeavour to
shake off the infuriated creature, made more powerful in her very
madness by the just sense of her burning wrong and his callous
treachery--when all at once his foot slipped and he fell to the ground.
She pounced on him like a tigress, and fastened her fingers on his
throat,--clutching his flesh and breathlessly muttering,
"Never!--never! Never can you hide away from me any more!
Together--together! I will never let you go!--" till, as his eyes
rolled up in agony and his jaw relaxed, she uttered a shout of ecstasy
to see him die! He sank heavily under her fierce grasp which she never
relaxed for an instant, and his dead weight dragged her unconsciously
down--down!--she not heeding or knowing whither she was
moving,--down--still down!--till, as she clung to his inert body, madly
determining not to let it go, she fell,--fast grappling her betrayer's
corpse,--into the ominous stillness of the river. The flood opened, as
it were, to receive the two,--the dead and the living--there was a
slight ripple as though a mouth in the water smiled--then the usual
calm surface reflected the moon once more, and there was no sign of
trouble. Nothing struggled,--nothing floated,--all was perfectly
tranquil. The bells chimed from all the churches in the city a quarter
to midnight, and their pretty echoes were wafted across the water,--no
other sound disturbed the silence,--not a trace of the struggle was
left, save just one smeared track of grass and slime, which, if
examined carefully, might have been found sprinkled with blood. But
with the morning the earth would have swallowed those drops of human
life as silently as the river-quicksand had sucked down the bodies of
the betrayed and the betrayer;--in neither case would Nature have any
hint to give of the tragedy enacted. Nature is a dumb witness to many
dramas,--and it may be that she has eyes and ears and her own way of
keeping records. Sometimes she gives up long-buried secrets, sometimes
she holds them fast;--biding her time until the Judgment Day, when not
only the crime shall be disclosed but the Cause of the crime's
committal. And it may chance in certain cases, such as those of men who
have deliberately ruined the lives of trusting and loving women, that
the Cause may be proved a more criminal thing than the crime!

That night Martine Doucet slept badly, and had horrible dreams of being
dragged by force to Rome, and there taken before the Pope who at once
deprived her of her son Fabien, and ordered her to be shot in one of
the public squares for neglecting to attend Mass regularly. And Jean
Patoux and his wife, reposing on their virtuous marital couch,
conversed a long time about the unexpected and unwelcome visit of
Claude Cazeau, and the mission he had declared himself entrusted with
from the Vatican,--"And you may depend upon it," said Madame
sententiously, "that he will get his way by fair means or foul! I am
thankful that neither of OUR children were subjects for a
Church-miracle!--the trouble of the remedy seems more troublesome than
the sickness!"

"No, no," said her husband, "Thou dost not judge these things rightly,
my little one! God worked the remedy, as He works all good things,--and
there would be no trouble about it if it were not for the men's strange
way of taking it. Did ever our Lord do a good or a kind deed without
being calumniated for it? Did not all those men-fools in Jerusalem go
about 'secretly seeking how they might betray him'? That is a lesson
for us all,--and never forget, petite, that for showing them the
straight way to Heaven He was crucified!"

The next day a telegram was despatched from the Archbishop of Rouen to
Monsignor Moretti at the Vatican:--

"Claude Cazeau visited Hotel Poitiers last night, but has since
mysteriously disappeared. Every search and enquiry being made. Strongly
suspect foul play."



XXVI.

November was now drawing to a close, and St. Cecilia's Day dawned in a
misty sunrise, half cloud, half light, like smoke and flame
intermingled. Aubrey Leigh, on waking that morning, had almost decided
to leave Rome before the end of the month. He had learned all that was
necessary for him to know;--he had not come to study the antiquities,
or the dark memories of dead empires, for he would have needed to live
at least ten years in the city to gain even a surface knowledge of all
the Romes, built one upon another, in the Rome of to-day. His main
object had been to discover whether the Holy See existed as a grand and
pure institution for the uplifting and the saving of the souls of men;
or whether it had degenerated into an unscrupulous scheme for drawing
the money out of their pockets. He had searched this problem and solved
it. He had perceived the trickery, the dissimulation and hypocrisy of
Roman priestcraft. He had seen the Pope officiate at High Mass in the
Sistine Chapel, having procured the "introduction from very high
quarters" which, even according to ordinary guide-books, is absolutely
necessary,--the "high quarters" in this instance being Monsignor
Gherardi. Apart from this absurdity,--this impious idea of needing an
"introduction" to a sacred service professedly held for the worship of
the Divine, by the Representative of Christ on earth, he had watched
with sickening soul all the tawdry ceremonial so far removed from the
simplicity of Christ's commands,--he had stared dully, till his brows
ached, at the poor, feeble, scraggy old man with the pale, withered
face and dark eyes, who was chosen to represent a "Manifestation of the
Deity" to his idolatrous followers;--and as he thought of all the
poverty, sorrow, pain, perplexity, and bewilderment of the "lost sheep"
who were wandering to and fro in the world, scarcely able to fight the
difficulties of their daily lot, and unable to believe in God because
they were never allowed to understand or to experience any of His
goodness, such a passion of protest arose in him, that he could have
sprung on the very steps of the altar and cried aloud to the aged
Manager of the Stage-scene there, "Away with this sham of Christianity!
Give us the true message of Christ, undefiled! Sell these useless
broidered silks,--these flaunting banners;--take the silver, gold, and
bank-notes which hysterical pilgrims cast at your feet!--this Peter's
Pence, amounting to millions, whose exact total you alone know,--and
come out into the highways and byways of the cities of all lands,--call
to you the lame, the halt, the blind, the sickly, and diseased,--give
comfort where comfort is needed,--defend the innocent--protect the
just, and silence the Voce de la Verita which published under your
authority, callously advocates murder!"

And though he felt all this, he could only remain a dumb spectator of
the Show in which not the faintest shadow of Christianity according to
Christ, appeared--and when the theatrical pageant was over, he hurried
out into the fresh air half stupefied with the heavy sense of shame
that such things could be, and no man found true enough to the commands
of the Divine Master to shake the world with strong condemnation.

"Twelve fishermen were enough to preach the Gospel," he thought, "Yet
now there cannot be found twelve faithful souls who will protest
against its falsification!"

And on St. Cecilia's morning he was in sad and sober mood,--too vexed
with himself to contemplate his future work without a sense of pain and
disappointment and loneliness. He loved Sylvie Hermenstein, and
admitted his passion for her frankly to his own soul, but at the same
time felt that a union with her would be impossible. He had seen her
nearly every day since their first introduction to each other, and had
realised to the height of soul-intoxication the subtle charm of her
delicate beauty, and the sweetness of her disposition. But--(there was
a but in it,--there always is!) he was not sure of her constancy. The
duel between the Marquis Fontenelle and the actor Miraudin had
furnished food for gossip at all the social gatherings in Rome, and
Sylvie's name, freely mentioned as the cause of the dispute, had been
thus given an unpleasant notoriety. And though Aubrey Leigh was far too
chivalrous and noble-natured to judge and condemn a woman without
seeking for the truth from her own lips, he was indescribably annoyed
to hear her spoken of in any connection with the late Marquis. He had a
strong desire to ask Angela Sovrani a few questions concerning the
affair, but hesitated, lest his keen personal anxiety should betray the
depth of his feelings. Then, too, he was troubled by the fact that the
Hermenstein family had been from time immemorial devout Romanists, and
he felt that Sylvie must perforce be a firm adherent to that faith.

"Better to leave Rome!" he said to himself, "Better to shake off the
witchery of her presence, and get back to England and to work. And if I
cannot kill or quell this love in me, at any rate it shall serve me to
good purpose,--it shall make me a better and a braver man!"

He had promised to meet the Princesse D'Agramont that morning at the
Catacombs of St. Callistus, to see the illumination of the tomb of St.
Cecilia, which takes place there annually on the Saint's Feast-Day, and
he knew that Angela Sovrani and the Comtesse Hermenstein were to be of
the Princesse's party. He was somewhat late in starting, and hired a
fiacre to drive him along the Via Appia to his destination, but when he
arrived there Mass had already commenced. A Trappist monk, tall and
grim and forbidding of aspect, met him at the entrance to the Catacombs
with a lighted taper, and escorted him in silence through the gloomy
"Oratorium" and passage of tombs,--the torch he carried flinging
ghastly reflections on the mural paintings and inscriptions, till, on
reaching the tomb of St. Cecilia where the murdered saint once lay,
though her remains are now enshrined in the Church of St. Cecilia in
Trastevere, the Trappist suddenly left him at a corner to attend to
other incoming visitors, and disappeared. Aubrey looked around him,
vaguely touched and awed by the solemnity of the scene;--the damp walls
on which old Byzantine paintings of the seventh century were still
visible, though crumbling fast away,--the glimmering lights,--the
little crowd of people pressed together,--the brilliantly illuminated
altar,--the droning accents of the officiating priests;--and presently
the sound of a boy's exquisite young voice rose high and pure, singing
the Agnus Dei. St. Cecilia herself might have been enraptured by such
sweet harmony,--and Aubrey Leigh instinctively bent his head, moved
strongly by the holy and tender fervour of the anthem. Growing
accustomed to the flickering lights, he presently perceived the
Princesse D'Agramont a little in front of him,--and beside her were her
two friends, Angela Sovrani and Sylvie Hermenstein. Sylvie was
kneeling, and her face was hidden. Angela was seated,--and her eyes,
full of the radiance of thought and dreaming genius, were fixed on the
altar. Gradually he moved up till he reached the rough bench where they
were all together--the Princesse D'Agramont saw him at once, and signed
to him to take a vacant place next to Sylvie. He sat down very
gently--afraid to disturb the graceful figure kneeling within touch of
his hand--how devout she seemed, he thought! But as the Agnus Dei
ceased, she stirred, and rose quietly,--as quietly as a bent flower
might lift itself in the grass after the rush of the wind,--and gave
him a gentle salute, then sat down beside him, drooping her soft eyes
over her prayer-book, but not before he had seen that they were wet
with tears. Was she unhappy he wondered? It seemed impossible! Such a
woman could never be unhappy! With beauty, health, and a sunny
temperament,--wealth and independence, what could she know of sorrow!
It is strange how seldom a man can enter into the true comprehension of
a woman's grief, though he may often be the cause of the trouble. A
woman, if endowed with beauty and charm, ought never, in a man's
opinion, to LOOK sad, whatever she may FEEL. It is her business to
smile, and shine like a sunbeam on a spring morning for his delectation
always. And Aubrey Leigh, though he could thoroughly appreciate and
enter into the sordid woes of hard-worked and poverty-stricken
womankind, was not without the same delusion that seems to possess all
his sex,--namely, that if a woman is brilliantly endowed, and has
sufficient of this world's goods to ensure her plenty of friends and
pretty toilettes, she need never be unhappy. Sylvie's tears were
therefore a mystery to him, except when a jealous pang contracted his
generally liberal and tender soul, and he thought, "Perhaps she is
grieving for the Marquis Fontenelle!" He glanced at her every now and
again dubiously,--while the service went on, and the exquisite music
beat rhythmic waves against the ancient walls and roof of the murdered
Saint's tomb,--but her face, fair and childlike, was a puzzle to his
mind,--he could never make out from its expression whether she were
thoughtful or frivolous. Strange mistakes are often made in
physiognomy. Often the so-called "intellectual" face,--the
"touch-me-not" dignity--the "stalking-tragedy" manner, covers a total
lack of brain,--and often a large-featured, seemingly "noble" face, has
served as a mask for untold depths of villainy. The delicate, small
face of Nelson suggested nothing of the giant heroism in his nature,
and many a pretty, and apparently frivolous woman's face, which
suggests nothing but the most thoughtless gaiety, is a disguise for a
strong nature capable of lofty and self-sacrificing deeds. There is
nothing likely to be so deceptive as a human countenance,--for with the
exception of a few uncomfortably sincere persons, we all try to make it
disguise our feelings as much as we can.

The service concluded, and St. Cecilia solemnly commended once more to
her eternal rest, the people all rose and wandered like black ghosts,
through the darkness of the Catacombs, following the flicker of the
torches carried by the Trappist monks, who always perform the duty of
guides on this occasion,--and, once out in the open air, in the full
blaze of the sunshine which had now broken brilliantly through the mist
of the previously threatening rain-clouds, Aubrey Leigh saw with pain
that Sylvie looked very pale and ill. He ventured to say something
solicitous concerning this to the Princesse D'Agramont, whose bright
dark eyes flashed over him with an enigmatical look, half wonder, half
scorn.

"What strange creatures men are!" she said satirically, "Even you,
clever, and gifted with an insight into human nature, seem to be
actually surprised that our poor, pretty little Sylvie looks ill! With
half Rome declaring that she WAS the mistress of Fontenelle, and the
other half swearing itself black in the face that she IS the mistress
of Gherardi, she certainly ought to be very happy, ought she not?
Indeed, almost dancing with the joy and consolation of knowing how
pleasant her 'Society' friends are making her life for her!"

Aubrey's heart beat violently.

"Princesse," he said, in a low tone of vibrating earnestness, "If I
thought--if I could think such abominable lies were told of her . . ."

"Chut!" And the Princesse smiled rather sadly,--"It is not like you to
'pretend,' Mr. Leigh--You DO know,--you MUST know--that a coarse
discussion over her name was the cause of the duel between the Marquis
Fontenelle and that miserable vaurien of the stage, Miraudin,--gossip
generously lays the two deaths at her door--and the poor child is as
innocent of harm as the lilies we have just seen left to die in the
darkness of St. Cecilia's tomb. The fact is, she came to Rome to escape
the libertinage and amorous persecution of Fontenelle; and she never
knew till the day she heard of his death, that he had followed her. Nor
did I. In fact, I asked him to be my escort to Rome, and he refused.
Naturally I imagined he was still in Paris. So we were all in the
dark,--and as often happens in such cases, when the world does not know
whom to blame for a disaster, it generally elects to punish the
innocent. All the Saints we have heard about this morning, bear witness
to THAT truth!"

Aubrey lifted his eyes and looked yearningly at the sylph-like figure
of Sylvie walking a little ahead of him with her friend Angela.

"I thought," he said hesitatingly,--"I confess, I thought there might
have been something between her and the late Marquis . . ."

"Of course there was something!" answered the Princesse impatiently,
"Oh, mon Dieu! Plus de sottises! There always IS something where Sylvie
is, Mr. Leigh! She cannot smile or sing, or turn her head, or raise her
eyes, or smell a bunch of violets, without some one of your audacious
sex conceiving the idea of making himself agreeable and indispensable
to her. And when she will not compromise herself--(is that not your
convenient little phrase?)--she is judged much more severely than if
she had done so! And do you know why? Because you men can never endure
defeat in love-matters! You would rather spread abroad the rumour that
you had conquered, than confess that your libertinism had been
perceived and repulsed with indignation and scorn! And I will tell you
another thing if you do not know it. In the frequent destruction of an
innocent woman's reputation. it is a rejected suitor who generally
starts the first rumour and hands the lie over to debased women,
knowing that THEY may be trusted to keep it up!"

Aubrey flushed, and winced under the lash of her cutting words. "You
are very cruel, Princesse!" he said, "Surely unnecessarily bitterly
cruel!"

"Cher philosophe, I have loved!" she replied, "And that is why I am
cruel. I have loved and have been deceived in love,--and that kind of
thing often turns the most patient Griselda into an exceptionally
fierce tiger-cat! I am not quite a tiger-cat,--but I confess I do not
like one-sidedness in anything, Nature's tendency being to
equalise--equalise--till we are all flattened down into one level,--the
grave! At the present moment we are treading on a mixture of kings and
saints and heroes,--all one soil you see, and rather marshy,--badly in
need of draining at all times!" She laughed a little. "Frankly, I
assure you, it is to me the most deplorable arrangement that a true
woman should be destined to give all the passion and love of her life
to one man, while the same man scatters his worthless affections about
like halfpence among dozens of drabs! My dear Mr. Leigh, do not frown
at me in that tragic way! I am not blaming YOU! I am not in the least
inclined to put you in the general category,--at least not at present.
You do not look like the ordinary man, though you may be for all that!
Expression is very deceptive!" She laughed again, then added, "Think of
our sweet Angela, for instance! Unless a merciful Providence
intervenes, she will marry Florian Varillo,--and no doubt he will make
her invite Mademoiselle Pon-Pon to her house to dine and sleep!"

"She loves him!" said Aubrey simply.

"Yes, she loves him, because she deludes herself with the idea that he
is worthy of love. But if she were to find him out her whole soul would
indignantly repulse him. If she knew all _I_ know of him, she would
rather embrace the mildewy skeleton of San Carlo Borromeo, with the
great jewels glistening in his ghastly eye-sockets, than the well-fed,
fresh coloured Florian Varillo!"

"If you fear for her happiness, why not warn her?" asked Aubrey.

"Warn her against the one creature she loves in the world?" said the
Princesse, "Thanks very much! I would rather not. She would never speak
to me again, and I should lose every chance of comforting or helping
her when affliction comes--as of course it is bound to come! Each
individual man or woman makes his or her own life,--we poor 'friends'
can only stand and look on, waiting till they get into the muddle that
we have always foreseen, and then doing our best to drag them out of
it; but God Himself I think, could not save them from falling into the
muddle in the first place. As for Sylvie, I have advised her to leave
Rome and go back to Budapest at once."

Aubrey started.

"Why?"

"Why? Can you ask? Because she is misjudged here on account of
Fontenelle's death, and calumniated and wronged; because the women hate
her for her beauty and wealth, and the men hate her too because she
will not flatter them by accepting their ridiculous attentions. She
will be much happier in her own home,--such a grand old castle it
is!--a cluster of towers and broad battlements, with purple mountains
in the background, and tall pine-trees everywhere . . ."

"It must be lonely for her!" said Aubrey quickly, "She is so
mignonne--so caressable--so made for love and care and tenderness--"
Here he broke off, vexed with himself for having said so much,--and his
face flushed warmly. The Princesse stopped in her walk and looked at
him straightly.

"Mr. Leigh," she said, "I think--I hope you are an honest man! And do
you know the best advice I can give you?"

He answered no word, but his eyes questioned her meaning.

"Remain honest!" she said, smiling an answer to his look, "Be true to
your own instincts and highest impulses. Do not allow yourself to be
swayed by opinion or rumour; stand clear of both,--and treat even a
woman as you would treat a man!--squarely--candidly--faithfully!"

She moved on and rejoined her companions, and Aubrey followed. The
Comtesse Hermenstein's carriage was waiting for her, and the Comtesse
herself was just entering it with Angela Sovrani as he came up.

"Good-bye, Mr. Leigh," she said gently, extending her hand, "I may not
see you again perhaps. I am going home to Buda this week."

"Must you go?" he asked, looking earnestly into the lovely eyes,
lovelier than ever in their present sorrowful languor.

"I think so," she answered, "I may wait to see Angela's great picture,
but--"

"Do not hurry your departure," said Aubrey, speaking in a softer
tone--"Tell me--may I come and see you this evening,--just for a few
moments?"

His eyes rested on her tenderly, and at the passion of his glance her
own fell.

"If you like--yes," she murmured. And just then the Princesse
D'Agramont approached.

"May I drive you home, Mr. Leigh?" she asked.

"Thank you!" And Aubrey smiled as he accepted the invitation.

And presently the carriages started, Sylvie's light victoria leading,
and the Princesse D'Agramont's landeau following. Half way back to Rome
a picturesque little beggar, whose motley-coloured rags scarcely
clothed his smooth brown limbs, suddenly sprang out of a corner where
he had been in hiding with a great basket of violets, and threw the
whole fragrant heap dexterously into Sylvie's carriage, crying out,

"Bellissima Signora! Bellissima! Bellissima! Un soldo! Un soldo!"

Laughingly Sylvie threw out four or five francs, but Aubrey, carried
beyond all prudence by catching a glimpse of Sylvie's pretty head
gleaming above the great purple cluster of violets she had caught and
held, tossed a twenty-franc piece to the clever little rascal who had
by "suiting the action to the word, and the word to the action" as
Italians so often do, gained a week's earnings in one successful
morning.

And the evening came, misty but mild, with the moon peering doubtfully
through a fleecy veil of fine floating vapour, which, gathering flashes
of luminance from the silver orb, turned to the witch-lights of an
opal,--and Aubrey made his way to the Casa D'Angeli, which in his own
mind he called the "Palais D'lffry," in memory of the old Breton song
Sylvie had sung. On giving his name he was at once shown up into the
great salon, now made beautiful by the picturesque and precious things
accumulated there, and arranged with the individuality and taste of the
presiding spirit. She was quite alone, seated in a deep easy chair near
the fire,--and her dress, of some faint shell-pink hue, clung about her
in trailing soft folds which fell in a glistening heap of crushed
rose-tints at her feet, making a soft rest for her tiny dog who was
luxuriously curled therein. The firelight shed a warm glow around
her,--flickering brightly on her fair hair, on her white arms, and
small hands where one or two diamonds flashed like drops of dew,--and
Aubrey, as he entered, was conscious of an overpowering sense of
weakness, poverty of soul, narrowness of mind, incompetency of
attainment,--for the tranquillity and sweet perfection of the picture
his eyes rested upon--a picture lovelier than even the Gretchen which
tempted Goethe's Faust to Hell,--made him doubtful of his own
powers--mistrustful of his own worth. In his life of self-renunciation
among the poorer classes, he had grown accustomed to pity women,--to
look upon them more or less as frail, broken creatures needing help and
support,--sometimes to be loved, but far more often to be despised and
neglected. But Sylvie, Comtesse Hermenstein, was not of these,--he
knew, or thought he knew that she needed nothing. Beauty was hers,
wealth was hers, independence of position was hers; and if she had
given a smile or nod of encouragement, lovers were hers to command.
What was he that he should count himself at all valuable in her sight,
even as the merest friend? These despondent thoughts were doubly
embittered by the immense scorn he now entertained for himself that he
should have been such a fool as to listen for a moment to the silly and
malignant gossip circulated among the envious concerning a woman who
was admittedly the superior of those who calumniated her. For clearest
logic shows that wherever superiority exists, inferiority rises up in
opposition, and the lower endeavours to drag the higher down. Such
vague reflections, coursing rapidly through his, brain, gave him an air
of embarrassment and awkwardness not by any means common to him, as he
advanced, and Sylvie, half rising from her chair, greeted him in her
turn with a little touch of shyness which sent a wave of soft colour
over her face, and made her look ten times prettier than ever.

"I am glad to find you alone--" he began.

"Yes? I am generally alone," answered Sylvie with a little
smile--"except for Katrine--she would be here to welcome you this
evening, but she has a very bad neuralgic headache--"

"I am very sorry," murmured Aubrey, with hypocritical earnestness, all
the while devoutly blessing Madame Bozier's timely indisposition. "She
is a great sufferer from neuralgia, I believe?"

"Yes . . ." and Sylvie, to divert the cloud of embarrassment that
seemed to be deepening rather than dispersing for them both, rang the
bell with a pretty imperativeness that was rather startling to Aubrey's
nerves.

"What is that for?" he enquired irrelevantly.

"Only for coffee!"

Their eyes met,--the mutual glance was irresistible, and they both
laughed. Sylvia's Arab page entered in response to her summons, a
pretty dusky-skinned lad of some twelve years old, picturesquely
arrayed in scarlet, and bearing a quaintly embossed gilt salver with
coffee prepared in the Arabian fashion.

"Do you like coffee made in this way?" asked Sylvie, as she handed
Aubrey his cup.

Aubrey's eyes were fixed on the small white hand that looked so dainty,
curled over the trifle of Sevres china that was called a
coffee-cup,--and he answered vaguely,

"This way? Oh, yes--of course--any way!"

A faint smile lifted the rosy corners of Sylvie's mouth as she heard
this incoherent reply--and the Arab page rolled his dark eyes up at his
fair mistress with a look of dog-like affectionate enquiry, as to
whether perhaps some fault in his serving had caused that little
playful enigmatical expression on the face which he, in common with
many others of his sex, thought the fairest in the world. The coffee
dispensed and the page gone, there followed a spell of silence. The
fire burned cheerily in the deep chimney, and the great logs cracked
and spluttered as much as to say, "If these two curious people can find
nothing to talk about, we can!" And then, just as luck would have it, a
burning ember suddenly detached itself from the rest and fell out
blazing on the hearth--Sylvie sprang up to push it back, and Aubrey to
assist her,--and then, strange to relate--only the occult influences of
attraction know how it happened--the little difficulty of the burning
ember brought those two other burning embers of humanity together--for
Aubrey, hardly conscious of what he did, caught Sylvie's swaying,
graceful figure as she rose from bending over the fire, closely in his
arms, with a passion which mounted like a wave to tempest height, and
knew no further hesitation or obstacle.

"Sylvie! Sylvie! I love you!--my darling! I love you!--"

No answer came, for there was none needed. Her face was hidden on his
breast--but he felt rather than saw the soft white arms and dainty
hands moving tremblingly upwards, till they closed round him in the
dear embrace which meant for him from henceforth the faith and love and
devotion of one true heart through all the sorrows and perplexities as
well as the joys and triumphs of life. And when, with his heart
beating, and all his pulses thrilling with the new ecstacy that
possessed him, he whispered a word or two that caused the pretty golden
head to raise itself timidly--the beautiful dark blue eyes to grow
darker with the tenderness that overflowed the soul behind them, and
the sweet lips to meet his own in a kiss, as soft and fragrant as
though a rose had touched them, it was small blame to him that for a
moment he lost his self-possession, and drawing her closer in his arms,
showered upon her not only kisses, but whispered words of all that
tender endearment which is judged as "foolish" by those who have never
had the privilege of being made the subject of such priceless and
exquisite "fooling." And when they were calmer, and began to think of
the possibility of the worthy Bozier suddenly recovering from her
neuralgia and coming to look after her pupil,--or the undesired but
likely entrance of a servant to attend to the lamps, or to put fresh
wood on the fire, they turned each from the other, with reluctance and
half laughing decorum,--Sylvie resuming her seat by the fire, and
Aubrey flinging himself with happy recklessness in a low fauteuil as
near to her as could be permitted for a gentleman visitor, who might be
considered as enthusiastically expounding literature or science to a
fascinating hostess. And somehow, as they talked, their conversation
did gradually drift from passionate personalities into graver themes
affecting wider interests, and Aubrey, warming into eloquence, gave
free vent to his thoughts and opinions, till noticing that Sylvie sat
very silent, looking into the fire somewhat gravely, he checked himself
abruptly, fancying that perhaps he was treading on what might be
forbidden ground with her whose pleasure was now his law. As he came to
this sudden pause, she turned her soft eyes towards him tenderly, with
a smile.

"Well!" she said, in the pretty foreign accent which distinguished her
almost perfect English, "And why do you stop speaking? You must not be
afraid to trust me with your closest thoughts,--because how can our
love be perfect if you do not?"

"Sweetheart!" he answered, catching the white hand that was so
temptingly near his own, "Our love IS perfect!--and so far as I am
concerned there shall never be a cloud on such a dazzling sky!"

She smiled.

"Ah, you talk romance just now!" she said, "But Aubrey, I want our love
to be something more than romance--I want it to be a grand and helpful
reality! If I am not worthy to be the companion of your very soul, you
will not, you cannot love me long. Now, no protestations!" For he had
possessed himself of the dear little hand again, and was covering it
with kisses--"You see, it is very sweet just now to sit by the fire
together, and look at each other, and feel how happy we are--but life
does not go on like that. And your life, my Aubrey, belongs to the
world . . ."

"To you!--to you!" said Aubrey passionately, "I give it to you! You
know the song?--I set my life in your hand Mar it or make it sweet,--I
set my life in your hand, I lay my heart at your feet!"

Sylvie rose impulsively, and leaning over his chair kissed his forehead.

"Yes, I know! And I know you mean what you say! I could not imagine you
telling an untruth,--not even in making love!" and she laughed, "Though
there are many of your sex who think any amount of lies permissible
under similar circumstances! And it is just because I have found men
such practised liars, that I have the reputation of being heartless.
Did you ever think me heartless?"

Aubrey hesitated a moment.

"Yes," he admitted at last, frankly, "I did till I knew better. I was
told--"

"Stop! I know all you were told!" said Sylvie, drawing her slim figure
up with a pretty dignity as she moved back to her place by the
fire--"You were told that I was the cause of the death of the Marquis
Fontenelle. So I was, unhappily--but not through my own fault. The
actor Miraudin,--known to be one of the most coarse-minded and brutal
of men,--slandered me in public,--the Marquis defended me. Hence the
combat and its fatal end, which no one has deplored more bitterly than
I. Miraudin was never a gentleman,--Fontenelle could have been one had
he chosen. And I confess I cared very much for him at one time!"

"You loved him," said Aubrey, trying to master a pang of jealousy.

"Yes! I loved him!--till he proved himself unworthy of love."

There was a silence.

"I tell you all this," said Sylvie then slowly and emphatically, "that
you may know me at once as I am. I wish to hide nothing from you. I
have read all your books--I know your views of life--your hatred of
dissimulation--your contempt of a lie! In your love for me, you must
have complete knowledge of my nature, and confidence in my truth. I
would never give my life to any man unless he trusted me
absolutely,--unless I was sure he felt I was a real helpmate for him. I
love you--but I also love your work and your aims; and I go with all
your thoughts and wish to share all your responsibilities. But I must
feel that you will never misjudge me,--never set me down on the level
of mean and small-natured women, who cannot sacrifice themselves or
their personal vanities for another's sake. It is not for me to say
that the calumnies circulated concerning me are untrue,--it is for my
life to show and PROVE they are not! But I must be trusted--not
suspected; and if you give me your life as you say, I will give mine to
help make yours happier, asking from you in return just your
faith--your FAITH as well as your love!"

Like a fair queen she stood, royal in her look, bearing and attitude,
and Aubrey bent his head low in reverence before her as he once more
kissed her hand.

"My wife!" he said simply.

And the silence that followed was as that of God's benediction on that
perfect marriage which is scarcely ever consummated in all the
world,--the marriage of two souls, which like twin flames, unite and
burn upward clear to Heaven, as One.



XXVII.

Society soon learned the news of the Countess Hermenstein's betrothal
to the "eccentric Englishman," Aubrey Leigh,--and with its million
tongues discussed the affair in all tones,--most people preferring to
say, with the usual "society" kindness, that--"Leigh was not quite such
a self-sacrificing idealist as he seemed to be,--he was going to marry
for money." Some few ventured to remark that Sylvie Hermenstein was
charming in herself and well worth winning,--but the more practical
pooh-poohed this view of the case at once. "Pretty women are to be had
by the score," they said, "It is the money that tells!" Aubrey Leigh
caught these rumours, and was in a manner stung by them,--he said very
little however, and to all the congratulations he received, merely gave
coldly civil thanks. And so the gossips went to work again in their own
peculiar way, and said, "Well! She will have an iceberg for a husband,
that is one thing! A stuck up, insolent sort of chap!--not a bit of go
in him!" Which was true,--Aubrey had no "go." "Go" means, in modern
parlance, to drink oneself stupid, to bet on the most trifling passing
events, and to talk slang that would disgrace a stable-boy, as well as
to amuse oneself with all sorts of mean and vulgar intrigues which are
carried on through the veriest skulk and caddishness;--thus Aubrey was
a sad failure in "tip-top" circles. But the "tip-top" circles are not a
desirable heaven to every man;--and Aubrey did not care much as to what
sort of comments were passed on himself, provided he could see Sylvie
always "queen it" over her inferiors in that graceful, gracious way of
conquest which was her special peculiarity and charm. Among her friends
no one perhaps was happier in Sylvie's happiness than Angela Sovrani;
her nature was of that rare quality which vibrates like a harp to every
touch, and the joy of others swept over her with a gladness which made
her more glad than if she had received some priceless boon for her own
benefit. Florian Varillo was exceedingly angry at the whole
affair,--and whenever Sylvie's betrothal was spoken of he assumed an
expression of pained and personal offence which was almost grotesque.

"Such a marriage is ridiculous!" he declared,--"Everyone can see how
utterly unsuited the two are in tastes, habits and opinions! They will
rue the day they ever met!"

And not all the gentle remonstrances of his own fiancee Angela, could
soothe his ruffled humour, or make him accept the inevitable with
grace. Angela was exceedingly troubled and puzzled by his almost
childish waywardness,--she did not yet understand the nature of a man
who was to himself all in all, and who could not endure the idea that
any woman whom he personally condescended to admire should become the
possession of another, no matter how completely that woman might be
beyond his own reach. Poor Angela! She was very simple--very foolish
indeed;--she never imagined it could be possible for a man to carry on
five or six love-affairs at once, and never be found out. Yet this was
the kind of life her "ideal" found the most suitable to his habit and
temperament,--and he had made a mental note of Sylvie Hermenstein as
one whom he proposed to add to his little list of conquests. So that
her engagement of marriage to one who, though reserved in manner and
without "go," was yet every inch a gentleman, and a determined opposer
of sophistry and humbug, had considerably disturbed his little plans,
and the unsettlement of anything he had set his heart upon greatly
displeased him. He generally had his own way in most things, and could
not at all comprehend why he was not to have it now. But among all the
people who discussed the intended marriage there were two who were so
well satisfied as to be almost jubilant, and these were the Monsignori
Moretti and Gherardi. These worthies met together in one of the private
chambers set apart for the use of the Papal court in the Vatican, and
heartily congratulated each other on the subjugation and enthralment of
Aubrey Leigh, which meant, as they considered, the consequent removal
of a fierce opponent to the Roman Catholic movement in England.

"Did I not tell you," said Moretti, as he untied some papers he had
been carrying, and sat down at a table to glance over them, "Did I not
tell you that when all other arguments fail, the unanswerable one of
woman can be brought in to clinch every business?"

Gherardi, though in a way contented, was not altogether so sure of his
goal. He remembered, with an uncomfortable thrill of doubt, the little
skirmish of words he had had with the fair Sylvie in the Pamphili woods.

"You take your thoughts for deeds, and judge them as fully accomplished
while they are still in embryo!" he said, "It is true that the
engagement of marriage is settled,--but can you be certain that in
religious matters the wife may not go with her husband?"

"What!" exclaimed Moretti, opening his dark eyes quickly, as a flash of
hell-fire illumined them at the very idea, "Do you suggest that Sylvie
Hermenstein,--the last of her race--a race which, back to its earliest
source, has been distinguished for its faithful allegiance to
Mother-Church, and has moreover added largely to the Papal
revenues--could be otherwise than our obedient and docile daughter? Per
la Santissima Madonna!--if I thought she could turn against us her
marriage should never take place!"

And he brought his fist down with a fierce blow on the papers before
him.

"The marriage should never take place!" echoed Gherardi, "How could you
prevent it?"

"The Pope himself should intervene!" said Moretti, with increasing
fury, losing a little of his self-control, "Gran Dio! Conceive for a
moment the wealth of the Hermensteins being used to promulgate the
reformer Leigh's threadbare theories, and feed his rascal poor! Do you
know what Sylvie Hermenstein's fortune is? No, I suppose you do not!
But I do! She tries to keep it a secret, but I have made it my business
to find out! It is enormous!--and it is ever increasing. With all the
fanciful creature's clothes and jewels and unthinking way of living her
life, she spends not a quarter, nor half a quarter of her income,--and
yet you actually venture to suggest that her power is so slight over
the man who is now her promised husband, that she would voluntarily
allow him to use all that huge amount of money as he pleased, OUTSIDE
the Church?"

Moretti spoke with such passionate insistence that Gherardi thought it
prudent not to irritate him further by argument. So he merely said,

"You expect her to persuade him to embrace our faith?"

"Naturally!" answered Moretti, "And she can, and will do so. If she
cannot or will not, she must be MADE to do so!"

He bent over his papers again and rustled them impatiently, but his
hand trembled. The pale December sunlight glittered through a
stained-glass window above him, and cast deep violet rays about his
chair,--Gherardi stood where the same luminance touched his pale face
with a crimson glow as of fire.

"This is a busy morning with us," said Moretti, without looking up,
"The excommunication of Denis Vergniaud will be pronounced
to-day,--and, what is even more important,--Cardinal Bonpre is summoned
by His Holiness's command to wait upon him this afternoon, bringing the
boy,--that boy who is always with him--"

"Ah, there is a history there!" interrupted Gherardi, "It should be
remembered that this boy was a witness of the miracle in Rouen, and he
was also present at the Vergniaud scandal in Paris--he should have been
sent for ere now. He, more than anyone, must surely know how the
miracle was accomplished,--for the worthy Felix tells me he is 'wise
beyond his years'!"

"So! His wisdom will be put to the test to-day!" said Moretti coldly,
"Do you not think it strange"--here he raised his eyes from his papers,
"and somewhat incriminating too--always supposing the miracle is a case
of conspiracy--that no trace has been discovered of the man Claude
Cazeau?"

Gherardi had moved to a book-case, and was standing close to it,
turning over a vellum-bound manuscript.

"Yes--the whole business looks as black as murder!" he said.

Moretti looked at him sharply.

"Murder? You suppose--"

"That Claude Cazeau has been murdered? Certainly I suppose it! It is
more than a week now since we heard that he had mysteriously
disappeared, and still there is no news. What can it be but murder? But
I do not for a moment suppose that our good Saint Felix is concerned in
it!"

And he smiled, turning over the vellum volume carelessly.

Moretti knitted his dark brows.

"No--no!" he said musingly, "That would not be possible! Cardinal
Bonpre is not that kind of man--he would rather bear the heaviest
weight of punishment for himself than allow another to suffer. That I
KNOW of him;--and though I do not admire his extreme views on this
point, and do not think them politic, I give him full credit for this
particular and uncommon form of--eccentricity!"

"Or Christianity!" said Gherardi, still smiling.

Moretti pushed aside his papers, and leaning his head on one hand
frowned meditatively at the amethyst light which streamed radiantly
through the jewel-like window above him. "Yes--or Christianity, if you
like!" he said, "For Christianity pur et simple, WOULD be eccentricity.
In its primitive simplicity it is an impossible creed. Founded by the
Divine it needs divine beings to comprehend and follow it,--beings not
of this world nor addicted to the things of this world. And to exist in
the world, made of the world's clay, and the world's inherited
associations, and yet not be of it, is to be judged crazed! True, there
have been saints and martyrs,--there are saints and martyrs now,
unknown and unheard of, but nevertheless consumed by flames more cruel
perhaps than those which physically burn the flesh;--idealists,
thinkers, dreamers, heralds of future progress,--and how are they
estimated? As madmen all! To be human, and yet above humanity, is the
supreme sin! For that very affront the multitude cried out, 'Not this
man, but Barabbas!' And to this day we all prefer Barabbas to Christ.
Hence the power of the Church!"

Gherardi put back the volume he had been glancing at, on its shelf, and
looked at his confrere with a certain amount of admiring respect. He
had been long an interested student of the various psychological
workings of Moretti's mind,--and he knew that Moretti's scheming brain
was ever hard at work designing bold and almost martial plans for
securing such conversions to the Church as would seriously trouble the
peace of two or three great nations. Moretti was in close personal
touch with every crowned head in Europe; he was acquainted more closely
than anyone alive with the timidities, the nervous horrors, the sudden
scruples, the sickening qualms of conscience, and the overwhelming
fears of death which troubled the minds of certain powerful personages
apparently presenting a brave front to the world,--and he held such
personages in awe by the very secrets which they had, in weak moments,
entrusted to him. Gherardi even was not without his own fears,--he
instinctively felt that Moretti knew more about himself than was either
safe or convenient.

"We all live for Barabbas," pursued Moretti, an ironical smile playing
on his thin lips, "Not for Christ! Barabbas, in the shape of the
unscrupulous millionaire, robs the world!--and we share the spoils,
pardon his robberies, and set him free. But whosoever lives outside
Dogma, serving God purely and preaching truth,--him we crucify!--but
our Robber,--our murderer of Truth, we set at liberty! Hence, as I said
before, the power of the Church!"

Carried away by his thoughts, he rose, and pacing the room, talked more
to himself than to Gherardi.

"The Church supports the robber, because he is always a coward and
cannot stand alone. The murderer of his fellow-men's good name is
naturally a liar, and fears lest his lies should find him out. Fear!
That is the keynote on which we of Rome play our invincible march of
triumph! The Church appeals to the ignorant, the base, the sensual, the
false, and the timorous; and knowing that they never repent, but are
only afraid, retains them by fear!--fear, not love! Christ taught
love--but hate is the more popular virtue! Hence again, the power of
the Church!"

"Your argument is perfectly orthodox!" said Gherardi, with a smile.

"Hate is a grand, a strong quality!" went on Moretti, "It makes
nations, it builds up creeds! If men loved one another what should they
need of a Church? But Hate!--the subtle sense which makes the
ultra-respectable thank God that he is not as other men are!--the
fierce emotion which almost touches ecstacy when the wronged individual
thinks his enemy will go to hell!--the fine fever which sets father
against son, creed against creed, nation against nation!--hate is the
chief mainspring of human motives! From hate and envy spring emulation
and conquest--and we of the Church encourage the haters to hate on!
They make Us!--they emulate each other in the greed of their gifts to
us, which give them notoriety and advertise their generosity,--WE fan
the flame and encourage the fury! For the world must have a
religion--it crucified Christ, but the Church, built up in His name,
takes just and daily revenge for His murder! We do not save--we kill!
We do not rescue--we trample down! We humiliate,--we crush wherever we
can, and it is well and fitting we should do so! For Humanity is a
brute beast, and serves us best under the lash. Rome made many a
blunder in the old days of barbarity and ignorance--but now we have a
thousand forces put into our hands instead of one or two,--forces to
terrorise--forces to compel!--and the power of Rome wielded by the
Popes of the days to come, shall be indeed a power irresistible!"

He stood enrapt,--his hand upraised, his eyes flashing, then recalling
himself, turned abruptly on Gherardi with an impatient gesture.

"You can repeat all this," he said sarcastically, "in your next
eloquent discourse with Aubrey Leigh! It will save you the trouble of
thinking! His influence with the English masses will be but a brief
phenomenon,--the blind and brutal stupidity of the people he seeks to
serve will soon dishearten and discourage him, and then he will come to
us through his wife, and his conversion will be a triumph worth
winning,--a step in the right direction. And now to other matters.
These papers," and he sat down at the table once more, "are, I think,
sufficiently in order to be placed before His Holiness. But you may as
well look through them with me first. Later on, the affair of Cardinal
Bonpre will occupy all our time  . . ."

"It is an 'affair' then?" asked Gherardi, "The 'saint' is in trouble?"

"All 'saints' get into trouble!" answered Moretti, "It is only sinners
who receive honour! Cardinal Bonpre has made the fatal mistake of
reading Jesus Christ's Gospel instead of Church Doctrine! His creed is
Love,--his duty, as I have just explained to you, if he would be a
faithful son of the Church, is Hate!"

"Love forms no part of your nature then?" asked Gherardi, hardly
knowing why he put the question, yet curious as to the answer.

"I am of the world!" replied Moretti coldly, "And I hate accordingly. I
hate, and in my hate, aspire to crush those who in turn hate me! That
is the human code, and one that must be strictly practised by all who
would rule mankind. Never do anything for those who can do nothing for
you! Firmly oppose those who oppose you! Revenge yourself on those who
despitefully use you! We do revenge ourselves,--and we reward all who
help us to our revenge! For example, Denis Vergniaud has cast
opprobrium on his calling, and made a scandal and a shame of the Church
before his congregation in Paris;--we excommunicate him! It is no use,
but we do it on principle. And we are still unable to explain away, or
offer any excuse for Cardinal Bonpre's mistake in condoning and
pardoning his offence. Therefore it follows as you say, that the
'saint' is in trouble!"

"Notwithstanding the miracle?"

"Notwithstanding the miracle!" echoed Moretti, "For the miracle is
doubtful. The Holy Father is not satisfied of its truth. Yes--there is
no doubt about it, Saint Felix is in trouble! It would be better for
him had he never come out of his long retirement. But perhaps he was
compelled to look after his Rouen foundling!"

A smile flickered faintly over Gherardi's face, but he said not a word
in answer. Discovering an error in one of the documents he was
examining, he called Moretti's attention to it, and the conversation
drifted to everyday trivial subjects. But the thoughts of both men were
elsewhere, and not even the news received that morning of the bequest
of one hundred thousand pounds to the Shrine of Lourdes from a deluded
believer in the miraculous Virgin there, absorbed so much of their
reflective brain powers as the imminent trial--for it was little
else--of Cardinal Bonpre, in the presence of the boy to whom he so
openly gave his confidence and protection.

Meanwhile, the good Felix himself was very sorely troubled. During his
sojourn in Rome, he had grown thinner and paler, and the fine,
spiritual delicacy of his features had become more intensified, while
his clear blue eyes shone from under their deeply arched brows with a
flashing luminance that was almost unearthly. Often, when about to
enter his room with unthinking haste, his brother-in-law, Prince
Pietro, would see him kneeling before his crucifix absorbed, one might
almost say entranced, in prayer. And he would softly move away again
with a deep sense of awe, and a feeling that some higher power than any
on earth, sustained the venerable prelate, and inspired both his words
and actions. But with all his patient, sometimes passionate prayer,
earnest meditations, and constant study of the Gospels, the Cardinal
himself was more or less heavy-hearted,--and his Master's phrase--"My
soul is exceeding sorrowful even unto death!" was one which he often
breathed in the solitude and extremity of his own position. The news of
the disappearance of Claude Cazeau had materially added to his
difficulties--and now he had been commanded, with a certain
peremptoriness in the summons, to wait upon the Sovereign Pontiff in a
private audience, bringing with him the boy who could, or would give no
further account of himself than that of a world's waif and stray.
Prepared for this visit and arrayed in all the splendour befitting his
rank in the Church, the gentle old man looked paler and more fragile
than ever, and the vague trouble he felt at the express injunction laid
upon him concerning Manuel, showed itself in the deep furrows of
anxiety marked upon his brow, and the pain in his thoughtful eyes.
Prince Pietro's own man-servant had assisted him to dress for the
impending ceremonial, and just as the last folds of his regal attire
were being set in place a knock was heard at the door of his apartment,
and Prince Pietro himself entered.

"A telegram for you, brother Felix," he said, "I have brought it
myself, thinking it may perhaps immediately concern your visit to the
Pope to-day."

The Cardinal, with a gentle word of thanks, opened the envelope handed
to him.

"Praise be to God!" he said simply, as he read its contents, "Vergniaud
has passed to the Higher tribunal!"

And he crossed himself reverently on brow and breast.

"Dead?" exclaimed Sovrani.

"To this world, yes!" answered Bonpre, "He died peacefully last night.
This message is from his son."

A faint ironical smile flickered over Sovrani's dark features.

"The ban of excommunication has not been declared!" he said, "It will
be a somewhat belated announcement!"

Cardinal Bonpre folded the telegram, ready to take with him to the
Vatican.

"The Church can excommunicate even the dead!" he said sorrowfully, "If
such an extreme measure is judged politic it will doubtless be carried
out!"

"Wonderful Christian charity," murmured Sovrani under his breath, "to
excommunicate a corpse! For that is all they can do. The Soul of the
man is God's affair!"

Cardinal Bonpre answered nothing, for just then the young Manuel
entered the room, in readiness to accompany his venerable protector and
friend to the Vatican, and the old man's eyes rested upon him with a
wistful, wondering trouble and anxiety which he could not conceal.
Manuel smiled up at him--that rare and beautiful smile which was like
sunshine in darkness--but the Cardinal's sad expression did not alter.

"The Abbe Vergniaud is no more," he said gently, as the boy drew near,
"His sins and sufferings are ended!"

"And his joys have begun!" answered Manuel, "For he set his life right
with the world before he left it!"

"Child, you talk as a very wise man might!" said Prince Sovrani, his
rugged brows smoothing into a kindly smile. "But the unfortunate Abbe
is not likely to be judged in that way. It will be said of him that he
scandalized the world before he left it!"

"When truth is made scandal, and right is made wrong," said Manuel, "It
will surely be a God-forgotten world!"

"WILL be? I think it is already!" said Prince Pietro. "It is said that
the patience of the Almighty is unwearied,--but I do not feel sure of
that in my own mind. Science teaches us that many a world has been
destroyed before now,--and sometimes I feel as if our turn were soon
coming!"

Here the man-servant having completely finished arranging the
Cardinal's attire, made respectful obeisance and left the room, and the
Cardinal himself proceeded into the adjoining salon, where he found his
niece Angela waiting to see him.

"Dearest uncle," she said, making her pretty genuflection as he
approached her, "I must ask you to forgive me for coming to your rooms
just now when your time is so much taken up, and when I know you have
to go to the Vatican,--but I want to tell you one thing that may
perhaps please you,--my picture is finished!"

"Finished!" echoed the Cardinal--then tenderly taking her hands, he
added, "I congratulate you, dear child, with all my heart!--and I pray
that the reward of your long and patient toil may be worthy of you. And
when are we to see your work?"

"To-morrow!" answered Angela, and her cheeks flushed, and her eyes
sparkled, "I shall be busy all today arranging it for exhibition in the
best light. To-morrow morning Florian is to see it first,--then my
father will come, and you--and Manuel!" and she smiled as she met the
boy's gentle look,--"And Queen Margherita has promised to be here at
mid-day."

"Florian first! And then your father!" said Prince Pietro, with a touch
of melancholy in his tone, "Ah well, Angela mia!--I suppose it must
always be so! The lover's love--the stranger's love,--is greater than
the love of years, the love of home! Yet sometimes, I fancy that the
lover's love often turns out to be a passing impulse more than a real
truth, and that the home-love reasserts itself afterwards with the best
and the holiest power!"

And not trusting himself to say more, he abruptly left the room. Angela
looked after him, a little troubled. The Cardinal took her hand.

"He is your father, dear girl!" he said gently, "And he cannot but feel
it hard--at first--to be relegated to a second place in your
affections."

Angela sighed.

"I cannot help it!" she said, "Florian is my very life! I should have
no ambition--no joy in anything if he did not love me!"

Over the Cardinal's fine open face there came an expression of great
pain.

"That is idolatry, Angela!" he said gravely, "We make a grievous
mistake when we love human beings too deeply,--for they are not the
gods we would make of them. Like ourselves, they are subject to sin,
and their sins often create more unhappiness for us than our own!"

"Ah! But we can save our beloved ones from sin!" answered Angela, with
a beautiful upward look of exaltation,--"That is love's greatest
mission!"

"It is a mission that cannot always be fulfilled"--said the Cardinal
sorrowfully,--then, after a pause he added--"The Abbe Vergniaud is
dead."

"Dead!" And Angela turned very pale. "His son--"

"His son sends the message--" and he handed her the telegram he had
received. She read it, and returned it to him,--then made the sign of
the cross.

"May he rest in peace!" He died true!"

"Yes, he died true. But remember, child, neither Truth nor Love are
spared their crown of thorns. Love cannot save--would that it could! It
may warn--it may pray--it may watch--it may hope,--but if despite its
tenderness, the sinner sins, what can love do then?"

"It can pardon!" said Angela softly.

Deeply moved, the good Felix took her hand and patted it gently.

"Dear child, God grant your powers of forgiveness may never be put to
the test!" he ejaculated fervently. "The one unforgivable sin according
to our Lord, is treachery;--may THAT never come your way!"

"It can never come my way through Florian!" answered Angela
smiling,--"and for the rest--I do not care!"

Manuel stood by silently, with thoughtful, downcast eyes--but at these
last words of hers he raised his head and looked full at her with a
touch of melancholy in his straight regard.

"Ah, that is wrong!" he said, "You SHOULD care!--you MUST care for the
rest of the world. We must all learn to care for others more than
ourselves. And if we will not learn, God sometimes takes a hard way of
teaching us!"

Angela's head drooped a little. Then she said,

"I DO care for others,--I think perhaps my picture will prove that for
me. But the tenderness I have for the sorrows of the world is
impersonal; and perhaps if I analysed myself honestly, I feel even that
through my love for Florian. If he were not in the world, I am afraid I
should not love the world so much!"

The Cardinal said no more, for just then a servant entered and
announced that His Eminence's carriage was in waiting. Angela bending
low once more before her uncle, kissed his apostolic ring, and said
softly--"To-morrow!"

And Manuel echoed the word, "To-morrow!" as she bade them both a
smiling "addio" and left the apartment. When she had gone, and he was
left alone with his foundling, the Cardinal stood for a few minutes
absorbed in silent meditation, mechanically gathering his robes about
him. After a pause of evident hesitancy and trouble, he approached the
boy and gently laid a hand upon his shoulder.

"Manuel," he said, "Do you understand whom it is that you are going to
see?"

"Yes," replied Manuel quickly, "The Head of the Church. One who holds
an office constituted by man long after Christ. It was founded upon the
name and memory of the Apostle Peter, who publicly denied all knowledge
of His Master. That is how I understand the person I am to see to-day!"

Cardinal Bonpre's face was a study of varying expressions as he heard
these words.

"My child, you must not say these things in the Pope's presence!"

Manuel lifted his radiant eyes with a look of calm confidence.

"Dear friend, you must trust me!" he said, "They have sent for me, have
they not, to this place you call the Vatican? They desire to see me,
and to question me. That being so, whatever God bids me say, I will
say; fearing nothing!"

A strong tremour shook the Cardinal's nerves,--he essayed to find words
of wisdom and instruction, but somehow language failed him,--he felt
blinded and strengthless, and warned by this impending sense of
feebleness, made an instant effort to brace himself up and master the
strange fainting that threatened to overwhelm him as it had frequently
done before. He succeeded, and without speaking again to Manuel, but
only bending one earnest look upon him, he quitted his rooms and
proceeded slowly down the great marble staircase of the Palazzo
Sovrani,--a staircase famous even in Rome for its architectural
beauty--Manuel stepping lightly at his side--and reaching his carriage,
entered it with his foundling, and was rapidly driven away.

Arrived at the Vatican, the largest palace in the world, which
contains, so historians agree in saying, no less than eleven thousand
different apartments with their courts and halls and corridors, they
descended at the Portone di Bronzo,--the Swiss Guard on duty saluting
as the Cardinal passed in. On they went into the vestibule, chilly and
comfortless, of the Scala Pia;--and so up the stone stairs to the
Cortile do San Damaso, and thence towards the steps which lead to the
Pope's private apartments. Another Guard met them here and likewise
saluted,--in fact, almost at every step of the way, and on every
landing, guards were on duty, either standing motionless, or marching
wearily up and down, the clank, clank of their footsteps waking dismal
echoes from the high vaulted roofs and uncarpeted stone corridors. At
last they reached the Sala Clementina, a vast unfurnished hall, rich
only with mural decorations and gilding, and here another Guard met
them who, without words, escorted the Cardinal and his young companion
through a number of waiting-rooms, made more or less magnificent by
glorious paintings, wonderful Gobelin tapestries, and unique
sculptures, till they reached at last what is called the anti-camera
segreto, where none but Cardinals are permitted to enter and wait for
an audience with the Supreme Pontiff. At the door of this "Holy of
Holies" stood a Guarda Nobile on sentry duty,--but he might have been a
figure of painted marble for all the notice he took of their approach.
As they passed into the room, which was exceedingly high and narrow,
Monsignor Gherardi rose from a table near the window, and received the
Cardinal with a kind of stately gravity which suitably agreed with the
coldness and silence of the general surroundings. A small lean man,
habited in black, also came forward, exchanging a few low whispered
words with Gherardi as he did so, and this individual, after saluting
the Cardinal, mysteriously disappeared through a little door to the
right. He was the Pope's confidential valet,--a personage who was
perhaps more in the secrets of everybody and everything than even
Gherardi himself.

"I am afraid we shall have to keep you waiting a little while," said
Gherardi, in his smooth rich voice, which despite its mellow ring had
something false about it, like the tone produced by an invisible crack
in a fine bell, "Your young friend," and here he swept a keen,
inquisitive glance over Manuel from face to feet, and from feet to face
again, "will perhaps be tired?"

"I am never tired!" answered Manuel.

"Nor impatient?" asked Gherardi with a patronising air.

"Nor impatient!"

"Wonderful boy! If you are never tired or impatient, you will be
eminently fitted for the priesthood," said Gherardi, his lip curling
with a faint touch of derision, "For even the best of us grow sometimes
weary in well-doing!"

And turning from him with a movement which implied both hauteur and
indifference, he addressed himself to Bonpre, whose face was clouded,
and whose eyes were troubled.

"The unfortunate affair of our friend Vergniaud will be settled
to-day," he began, when the Cardinal raised one hand with a gentle
solemnity.

"It is settled!" he returned, "Not even the Church can intervene
between Vergniaud and his Maker now!"

Gherardi uttered an exclamation of undisguised annoyance.

"Dead!" he ejaculated, his forehead growing crimson with the anger he
inwardly repressed--"Since when?"

"Last night he passed away," replied the Cardinal. "according to the
telegram I have just received from--his son. But he has been dying for
some time, and what he told me in Paris was no lie. I explained his
exact position to you quite recently, on the day you visited my niece
at her studio. He had a serious valvular disease of the heart,--he
might, as the doctors said, have lived, at the utmost, two years--but
the excitement of recent events has evidently proved too much for him.
As I told you, he felt that his death might occur at any moment, and he
did not wish to leave the world under a false impression of his
character. I trust that now the Holy Father may be inclined to pardon
him, in death, if not in life!"

Gherardi walked up and down the narrow room impatiently.

"I doubt it!" he said at last, "I very much doubt it! The man may be
dead, but the scandal he caused remains. And his death has made the
whole position very much more difficult for you, my lord Cardinal! For
as Vergniaud is not alive to endure the penalty of his offence, it is
probable YOU may have to suffer for having condoned it!"

Felix Bonpre bent his head gently.

"I shall be ready and willing to suffer whatever God commands!" he
answered, "For I most faithfully believe that nothing can injure my
soul while it rests, as I humbly place it, in His Holy keeping!"

Gherardi paused in his pacing to and fro, and gazed at the frail
figure, and fine old face before him, with mingled compassion and
curiosity.

"You should have lived in the early days of the Faith," he said, "You
are too literal--too exact in your following of Christian ethics. That
sort of thing does not work nowadays. Dogma must be maintained!"

"What is dogma?" asked Manuel suddenly.

Gherardi gave him a careless glance.

"Cardinal Bonpre must teach you that in extenso!" he replied, with a
little smile--"But briefly,--dogma is an opinion or theory derived from
the Gospels, and formulated as doctrine, by the Church."

"An opinion or theory of man, founded on the words of Christ?" said
Manuel.

"Just so!"

"But if Christ was divine, should any man presume to formulate a theory
on what He Himself said?" asked Manuel. "Are not his own plain words
enough?"

Gherardi stared at the young speaker half angrily.

"His own plain words enough?" he repeated mechanically. "What do you
mean, boy?"

"I mean," answered Manuel simply, "that if He were truly a
Manifestation of God in Himself, as the Church declares Him to be, _I_
WONDER THAT MAN CAN DARE TO FORMULATE MERE DOGMA ON GOD'S OWN
UTTERANCE!"

There was a dead pause. After a few minutes of chill silence Gherardi
addressed the Cardinal.

"Your young friend has a dangerous tongue!" he said sternly, "You had
best warn or command him that he set a guard upon it in the Holy
Father's presence!"

"There is no need to either warn or command me!" said Manuel, a smile
irradiating his fair face as he met the angry eyes of Gherardi with the
full calmness of his own--"I have been sent for, and I am here. Had I
not been sent for I should not have come. Now that I have been called
to answer for myself I will answer,--with truth and without fear. For
what can any man cause me to suffer if I am to myself true?"

Another heavy pause ensued. An invisible something was in the air,--a
sense of that vast supernatural which is deeply centered at the core of
the natural universe,--a grave mystery which seemed to envelop all
visible things with a sudden shadow of premonitory fear. The silence
prevailing was painful--almost terrible. A great ormolu clock in the
room, one of the Holy Father's "Jubilee" gifts, ticked the minutes
slowly away with a jewel-studded pendulum, which in its regular
movements to and fro sounded insolently obtrusive in such a stillness.
Gherardi abstractedly raised his eyes to a great ivory crucifix which
was displayed upon the wall against a background of rich purple
velvet,--Manuel was standing immediately in front of it, and the
tortured head of the carven Christ drooped over him as though in a
sorrow-stricken benediction. A dull anger began to irritate Gherardi's
usually well-tempered nerves, and he was searching in his mind for some
scathing sentence wherewith to overwhelm and reprove the confident ease
of the boy, when the door leading to the Pope's apartments was slowly
pushed open to admit the entrance of Monsignor Moretti. Cardinal Bonpre
had not seen him since the day of the Vergniaud scandal in Paris,--and
a faint colour came into his pale cheeks as he noted the air of
overbearing condescension and authority with which Moretti, here on his
own ground, as one of the favorites of the Pope, greeted him.

"The Holy Father is ready to receive you," he said, "But I regret to
inform your Eminence that His Holiness can see no way to excuse or
condone the grave offence of the Abbe Vergniaud,--moreover, the fact of
the sin-begotten son being known to the world as Gys Grandit, makes it
more than ever necessary that the ban of excommunication should be
passed upon him. Especially, as those uninstructed in the Faith, are
under the delusion that the penalty of excommunication has become more
or less obsolete, and we have now an opportunity for making publicly
known the truth that it still exists, and may be used by the Church in
extreme situations, when judged politic and fitting."

"Then in this case the Church must excommunicate the dead!" said the
Cardinal quietly.

Moretti's face turned livid.

"Dead?" he exclaimed, "I do not believe it!"

Silently Bonpre handed him the telegram received that morning. Moretti
read it, his eyes sparkling with rage.

"How do I know this is not a trick?" he said, "The accursed atheist of
a son may have telegraphed a lie!"

"I hardly think he would condescend to that!" returned the Cardinal
calmly, "It would not be worth his while. You must remember, that to
one of his particular views, Church excommunication, either for his
father or himself, would mean nothing. He makes himself responsible for
his conduct to God only. And whatever his faults he certainly believes
in God!"

Moretti read through the telegram again.

"We must place this before His Holiness," he said, "And it will very
seriously annoy him! I fear your Eminence," here he gave a quick
meaning look at Bonpre, "will be all the more severely censured for
having pardoned the Abbe's sins."

"Is it wrong to forgive sinners?" asked Manuel, his clear young voice
breaking through the air like a silver bell rung suddenly,--"And when
one cannot reach the guilty, should one punish the innocent?"

Moretti scowled fiercely at the fair candid face turned enquiringly
near his own.

"You are too young to ask questions!" he said roughly--"Wait to be
questioned yourself--and think twice--aye three times before you
answer!"

The bright expression of the boy's countenance seemed to become
intensified as he heard.

"'Take no thought how or what ye shall speak, for it shall be given you
in that same hour what ye shall speak!'" he said softly--"'For it is
not ye that speak, but the Spirit of your Father which speaketh in
you!'"

Moretti flushed angrily, and his hand involuntarily clenched.

"Those words were addressed by our Lord to His Apostles," he
retorted--"Apostles, of whom our Holy Father the Pope is the one
infallible representative. They were not spoken to an ignorant lad who
barely knows his catechism!"

"Yet were not the Apostles themselves told," went on Manuel steadily,
"to be humble as ignorant children if they would enter the Kingdom of
Heaven? And did not Christ say, 'Whoso offendeth one of these little
ones which believe in Me, it were better for him that a millstone were
hanged about his neck, and that he were drowned in the depths of the
sea!' I am sure there are many such little ones who believe in
Christ,--perhaps too, without knowing any catechism,--and even Apostles
must beware of offending them!"

"Does this boy follow your teaching in the quoting of Scripture with so
glib a tongue?" asked Moretti, turning sharply round upon the Cardinal.

Bonpre returned his angry look with one of undisturbed serenity.

"My son, I have taught him nothing!" he replied, "I have no time as
yet--and I may add--no inclination, to become his instructor. He speaks
from his own nature."

"It is a nature that needs training!" said Gherardi, smiling blandly,
and silencing by a gesture Moretti's threatening outburst of wrath, "To
quote Scripture rashly, without due consideration for the purpose to
which it is to be applied, does not actually constitute an offence, but
it displays a reprehensible disregard and ignorance of theology.
However, theology," here he smiled still more broadly, "is a hard word
for the comprehension of the young! This poor little lad cannot be
expected to grasp its meaning."

Manuel raised his bright eyes and fixed them steadily on the priest's
countenance.

"Oh, yes!" he said quietly, "I understand it perfectly! Originally it
meant the Word or Discourse of God,--it has now come to mean the words
or discourses, or quarrels and differences of men on the things of God!
But God's Word remains God's Word--eternally, invincibly! No man can
alter it, and Christ preached it so plainly that the most simple child
cannot fail to understand it!"

Moretti was about to speak when again Gherardi interrupted him.

"Patience! Patience!" he said soothingly, "Perchance we must say"--this
with a flash of derision from his dark crafty eyes, "that a prophet
hath arisen in Israel! Listen to me, boy! If Christ spoke as plainly as
you say, and if all He preached could be understood by the people, why
should He have founded a Church to teach His doctrine?"

"He did not found a Church," answered Manuel, "He tried to make a Human
Brotherhood. He trusted twelve men. They all forsook Him in His hour of
need, and one betrayed Him! When He died and arose again from the dead,
they sought to give themselves a Divine standing on His Divinity. They
preached His Word to the world--true!--but they preached their own as
well! Hence the Church!"

Moretti's angry eyes rolled in his head with an excess of wrath and
amazement.

"Surely some evil spirit possesses this boy!" he exclaimed irately,
"Retro me Sathanas! He is a rank heretic--a heathen! And yet he lives
in the companionship of Cardinal Felix Bonpre!"

Both priests looked at the Cardinal in angry astonishment, but he stood
silent, one wrinkled hand holding up the trailing folds of his scarlet
robe,--his head slightly bent, and his whole attitude expressive of
profound patience and resignation. Manuel turned his eyes upon him and
smiled tenderly.

"It is not the fault of Cardinal Bonpre that I think my own thoughts,"
he said, "or that I speak as I have spoken from the beginning. He found
me lost and alone in the world,--and he sheltered me, knowing not whom
he sheltered! Let what blame there is in me therefore be mine alone,
and not his or another's!"

His young voice, so full of sweetness, seemed to melt the cold and
heavy silence into vibrations of warm feeling, and a sudden sense of
confusion and shame swept over the callous and calculating minds of the
two men, miscalled priests, as they listened. But before they could
determine or contrive an answer, the door was thrown open, and the lean
man in black entered, and pausing on the threshold bowed
slightly,--then raising his hand with a gesture which invited all to
follow him, turned again and walked on in front,--then crossing a small
antechamber, he drew aside a long curtain of purple damask heavily
fringed with gold, and opened a farther door. Here he stood back, and
allowed Cardinal Bonpre to pass in first, attended by
Manuel,--Monsignori Gherardi and Moretti followed. And then the valet,
closing the door behind them, and pulling the rich curtain across, sat
down himself close outside it to be within call when the Holy Father
should summon his attendance by means of a bell which hung immediately
over his head. And to while away the time he pulled from his pocket
that day's issue of a well-known Republican paper,--one of the most
anti-Papal tendency, thereby showing that his constant humble
attendance upon the Head of the Church had not made him otherwise than
purely human, or eradicated from his nature that peculiar quality with
which most of us are endowed, namely, the perversity of spirit which
leads us often to say and do things which are least expected of us. The
Pope's confidential valet was not exempt from this failing. He like the
Monsignori, enjoyed the exciting rush and secret risk of money
speculation,--he also had his little schemes of self-advancement; and,
as is natural to all who are engaged in a certain kind of service, he
took care to read everything that could be said by outsiders against
the person or persons whom he served. Thus, despite the important
capacity he filled, he was not a grade higher than the ordinary butler,
who makes it his business to know all the peccadilloes and failings of
his master. "No man is a hero to his valet" is a very true axiom,--and
even the Head of the Church, the Manifestation of the Divine, the
"Infallible in Council," was a mere Nothing to the little man in black
who had the power to insist on His Holiness changing a soiled cassock
for a clean one.



XXVIII.

There are certain moments in life which seem weighted with the history
of ages--when all the past, present and future merge into the one
omnipresent Now,--moments, which if we are able to live through them
with courage, may decide a very eternity of after-glory--but which, if
we fail to comprehend their mission, pass, taking with them the last
opportunity of all good that shall ever be granted to us in this life.
Such a moment appeared, to the reflective mind of Cardinal Bonpre, to
have presented itself to him, as for the second time in ten days, he
found himself face to face with the Sovereign Pontiff, the pale and
aged man with the deep dark eyes set in such cavernous sockets, that as
they looked out on the world through that depth of shadow, seemed more
like great jewels in the head of a galvanised skeleton than the eyes of
a living human being. On this occasion the Pope was enthroned in a kind
of semi-state, on a gilded chair covered with crimson velvet; and a
rich canopy of the same material, embroidered and fringed with gold,
drooped in heavy folds above him. Attired in the usual white,--white
cassock, white skull cap, and white sash ornamented with the emblematic
keys of St. Peter, embroidered in gold thread at the ends,--his
unhandsome features, pallid as marble, and seemingly as
cold,--bloodless everywhere, even to the lips,--suggested with dreadful
exactitude a corpse in burial clothes just lifted from its coffin and
placed stiffly upright in a sitting position. Involuntarily Cardinal
Bonpre, as he made the usual necessary genuflections, thought, with a
shrinking interior sense of horror at the profanity of his own idea,
that the Holy Father as he then appeared, might have posed to a painter
of allegories, as the frail ghost of a dead Faith. For he looked so
white and slender and fragile and transparent,--he sat so rigidly, so
coldly, without a movement or a gesture, that it seemed as if the touch
of a hand might break him into atoms, so brittle and delicate a figure
of clay was he. When he spoke, his harsh voice, issuing from the long
thin lips which scarcely moved, even in utterance, was startling in its
unmelodious loudness, the more so when its intonation was querulous, as
now.

"It is regrettable, my lord Cardinal," he said slowly, keeping his dark
eyes immovably fixed on the venerable Felix,--"that I should be
compelled to send for you so soon again on the same matters which,
since your arrival in Rome, have caused me so much anxiety. This
miracle,--of which you are declared to be the worker,--though for some
inscrutable reason, you persist in denying your own act,--is not yet
properly authenticated. And, to make the case worse, it seems that the
unfortunate man, Claude Cazeau, whom we entrusted with our instructions
to the Archbishop of Rouen, has suddenly disappeared, leaving no trace.
Naturally there are strong suspicions that he has met with a violent
death,--perhaps at the hands of the Freemasons, who are ever at work
conspiring against the Faith,--or else through the intrigues of the
so-called 'Christian Democrats,' of whom 'Gys Grandit' is a leader. In
any case, it is most reprehensible that you, a Cardinal-prince of the
Church, should have permitted yourself to become involved in such a
doubtful business. The miracle may have taken place,--but if so, you
should have no cause to deny your share in it; and however much you may
be gifted with the power of healing, I cannot reconcile your duty to us
with the Vergniaud scandal! Since you were here last, I have
investigated that matter thoroughly,--I have read a full report of the
blasphemous address the Abbe preached from his pulpit in Paris, and I
cannot, no I cannot"--here the Pope raised his thin white hand with a
gesture of menace that was curiously powerful for one so seemingly
frail--"I cannot forgive or forget the part you have taken in this
deplorable affair!"

The Cardinal looked up with a touch of pain and protest.

"Holy Father, I strove to obey the command of Christ--'Forgive that ye
may be forgiven'!--I cannot be sorry that I did so obey it;--for now
the offender is beyond the reach of either punishment or absolution. He
must answer for his deeds to God alone!"

The Pope turned his eyes slowly round in his waxenlike head to
Gherardi--then to Moretti--and seeing confirmation of the news in their
looks, fixed them again as immovably as before upon the Cardinal. The
faint shadow of a cold smile flickered on his long slit-like mouth.

"Dead!" he murmured, and he nodded slowly, and beat with one finger on
the back of the other hand, as though keeping time mechanically to some
funeral march in his brain. "Dead! A fortunate thing for him! An escape
from worse than death, so far as this life is concerned! But what of
the next?--'where the worm dieth not and the fire is not quenched!'"
And here the representative of St. Peter smiled pallidly. "Dead!--but
his works live after him; and his sin-begotten son also lives, to
spread his pernicious writings through the world, and incite the
already disobedient to further license. Therefore the Church must still
publicly condemn his memory, as a warning to the faithful. And you,
Cardinal Bonpre, must receive from us a necessary measure of
correction, for having pardoned one who in his last discourse to
humanity attacked the Church and slandered it. To one of your eminence
and reputation, the lesson may seem hard, but a chastening reproof can
but purify the spirit, and free it from that pride which apes humility!"

The Cardinal bent his head patiently and remained silent.

Monsignor Moretti advanced a step towards the Papal throne.

"The boy"--he began.

A slight animation warmed the chill lifelessness of the Pope's
features. "True! I had almost forgotten!" he said. Then to the
Cardinal, "Where is the boy you rescued from the streets, who lives
with you, and who witnessed the miracle at Rouen?"

Manuel had till now stood aside, half hidden in the shadow of the
crimson damask which, falling from ceiling to floor in rich luxurious
folds, draped the corners of the room, but at these words he advanced
at once.

"I am here!" he said.

Fronting the Pope, with his fair head thrown back, and his blue eyes
flashing with all the soul-light of a swift, unwarped intelligence, he
stood,--and the white shrunken figure of the old man in the gilded
chair raised itself as if by some interior electric force, slowly,
slowly--higher and higher--the deep-set old eyes staring into the
brilliant youthful ones--staring--staring till they seemed to protrude
and tremble under their shelving brows, like the last sparks of a flame
about to fall into extinction. Gherardi made a quick step forward.

"My lord Cardinal!" he said significantly, "Should not your waif and
stray have been taught how to comport himself before he came here? He
does not kneel to the Holy Father!"

The Cardinal opened his lips to speak, but Manuel stayed him by a
slight gesture.

"I may not kneel to any man!" he said, "But to God only! For it is
written,' Call no man your Father upon the earth, for One is your
Father which is in Heaven. Neither be ye called Masters, for One is
your Master, even Christ.' How then," and he came nearer to the Pope's
foot-stool, "can you be called 'Father'? or 'Holy'? For there is none
Holy but God!"

The deep silence which had fallen like a spell upon them all in the
antechamber, fell now with redoubled impressiveness. The Pope, gripping
the arms of his gilded chair, forced himself fully upright, and his
lips trembled.

"Whence came you, and of what parentage are you?" he asked slowly,
enunciating his words with even more than his usual harsh distinctness.

"That is my own secret!" answered the boy--"The Cardinal accepted me
without question!"

"Which is but a fresh proof of the Cardinal's unwisdom," said the Pope
severely, "And we shall not follow his example in this or in any other
matter!" And turning to Moretti he enquired, "Does this boy understand
he is here as a witness to the miracle effected at Rouen?"

"As a witness to the Truth--yes! I understand!" said Manuel quickly,
before Moretti could answer. "The miracle was no miracle!"

"No miracle!" exclaimed the Pope, moved at last from his usual
inflexibility, "Do you hear that, Domenico?" turning excitedly to
Gherardi, "No miracle!"

"No miracle!" repeated Manuel, steadily--"Nothing but the law of Nature
working in response to the law of God, which is Love! The child was
healed of his infirmity by the power of unselfish prayer. Are we not
told 'Ask and ye shall receive'? But the asking must be pure! The
prayer must be untainted by self-interest! God does not answer prayer
that is paid for in this world's coin! No miracle was ever wrought for
a fee! Only when perfect love and perfect faith exist between the
creature and the Creator, are all things possible!"

A nervous twitching of the Pope's features showed his suppressed
irritation at this reply.

"The boy jests with us!" he said angrily, "He defends his benefactor,
but he either does not understand, or else is regardless of our
authority!"

"What, do you not also believe?" asked Manuel, placing one foot on the
first step of the Pope's throne, and looking him straightly in the
face, "Do you not even affirm that God answers prayers? Do YOU not
pray? Do you not assert that you yourself are benefited and
helped--nay, even kept alive by the prayers of the faithful? Then why
should you doubt that Cardinal Bonpre has, by his prayer, rescued one
life--the life of a little child? Is not your Church built up for
prayer? Do you not command it? Do you not even insist upon the 'vain
repetitions' which Christ forbade? Do you not summon the people to pray
in public?--though Christ bade all who truly sought to follow Him to
pray in secret? And amid all the false prayers, the unthinking, selfish
petitions, the blasphemous demands for curses and confusion to fall
upon enemies and contradictors, the cowardly cryings for pardon from
sinners who do not repent, that are sent up to the throne of the Most
High,--is it marvellous that one prayer, pure of all self and
sophistry, ascending to God, simply to ask for the life of a child
should be heard and granted?"

His voice rang through the silence with a pure intonation, unlike any
human voice in the world--and as he spoke, the Pope slowly drew back in
his chair, further and further away from the young, beautiful face that
confronted his own so steadily. The dumb sense of stupefaction that had
before possessed Gherardi and Moretti in the presence of this child,
seized them again now,--and slow tears welled up into the Cardinal's
eyes, as, clasping his withered hands, he waited in fear and awe,
listening and wondering,--overwhelmed by the strangeness of the scene.
Like a shrunken white mummy set in a gilded sarcophagus, the
representative of St. Peter huddled himself together, reflections of
the daylight on the crimson hangings around him casting occasional
gleams of crimson athwart his bony hands and cadaverous
features;--while on the first step of his throne the aerial form of the
beautiful boy, with his fair face, full flashing eyes, and radiant
hair, stood like an Angel suddenly descended at the portal of the
mummy's tomb.

"Faith must surely be weaker in these days than in the days of Christ,"
continued Manuel, "The disciples were not always wise or brave; but
they believed in the power of their Master! You,--with so many
centuries of prayer behind you,--will surely not say as John
did--'Master, we saw one casting out devils in Thy name, and he
followeth not us!' Because this miracle is unexpected and exceptional,
do you say of your good Cardinal, 'He followeth not us'? Remember how
Christ answered,--'Forbid him not, for there is no man which shall do a
miracle in my name that can speak evil of me!'"

Still the same silence reigned. A shaft of sunlight falling through the
high oriel window, touched the boy's hair with a Pentecostal flame of
glory.

"You sent for me," he went on, "and I have come! They say I must be
taught. Will you teach me? I would know many things! Tell me for one,
why are You here, shut away from the cities, and the people? Should you
not be among them? Why do you stay here all alone? You must be very
unhappy!"

A sudden quivering light illumined the jewel-like dark eyes of the
seeming mummy in the chair--its lips moved--but no sound came from them.

"To be here all alone!" went on Manuel, "And a whole world outside
waiting to be comforted! To have vast wealth lying about you
unused--with millions and millions of poor, starving, struggling, dying
creatures, near at hand, cursing the God whom they have never been
taught to know or to bless! To be safely sheltered while others are in
danger! To know that even kings and emperors are trembling on their
thrones because of the evil days that are drawing near in punishment
for evil deeds!--to feel the great pulsating ache of the world's heart
beating through every hour of time, and never to stretch forth a hand
of consolation! Surely this must make you very sad! WILL YOU NOT COME
OUT WITH ME?"

With a strong effort the Pope raised himself and looked into the
pleading Angel-face. With his sudden movement, Gherardi and Moretti
also stirred from their frozen attitudes of speechless amazement, and
would have approached, but that the Pope signed them away with so
fierce and impatient a gesture that they shrank back appalled. And
still he gazed at Manuel as if his very soul were passing through his
eyes.

"Come out with you!" he said, in a hoarse, faint whisper--"Come out
with you!"

"Yes!--come out with me!" repeated Manuel, his accents vibrating with a
strange compelling sweetness, "Come out and see the poor lying at the
great gates of St. Peter's--the lame, the halt, the blind--come and
heal them by a touch, a prayer! You can, you must, you shall heal
them!--if you WILL! Pour money into the thin hands of the
starving!--come with me into the miserable places of the world,--come
and give comfort! Come freely into the courts of kings, and see how the
brows ache under the crowns!--and the hearts break beneath the folds of
velvet and ermine! Why stand in the way of happiness, or deny even
emperors peace when they crave it? Your mission is to comfort, not to
condemn! You need no throne! You want no kingdom!--no settled place--no
temporal power! Enough for you to work and live as the poorest of all
Christ's ministers,--without pomp, without ostentation or public
ceremonial, but simply clothed in pure holiness! So shall God love you
more! So shall you pass unscathed through the thick of battle, and
command Brotherhood in place of Murder! Go out and welcome
Progress!--take Science by the hand!--encourage Intellect!--for all
these things are of God, and are God's gifts divine! Live as Christ
lived, teaching the people personally and openly;--loving them, pitying
them, sharing their joys and sorrows, blessing their little children!
Deny yourself to no man;--and make of this cold temple in which you now
dwell selfimprisoned, a home and refuge for the friendless and the
poor! COME OUT WITH ME!"

As he thus spoke, with a living, breathing enthusiasm of entreaty,
which might have moved even the dry bones in the valley of the
prophet's vision to rise up and become a great standing army, the
Pope's figure seemed to grow more and more attenuated,--his worn white
hands grasping the gilt arms of his chair, looked like the claws of a
dead bird--and his face, shrunken and withered, like a Chinese ivory
carving of some forgotten idol.

"Come out with me and minister with your own hands to the aged and
dying!" pursued Manuel, "And so shall you grow young! Command that the
great pictures, the tapestries, the jewels, the world's trash of St.
Peter's, be sold to the rich, who can afford to set them in free and
open places where all the poorest may possess them! But do not You
retain them! You do not need them--your treasure must be sympathy for
all the world! Not ONE section of the world,--not ONE form of
creed,--but for all!--if you are truly the Dispenser of Christ's
Message to the earth! Come--unprotected, save by the Cross! Come with
no weapon of defence--'heal the sick, cleanse the lepers, raise the
dead, cast out devils! Freely ye have received, freely give! Provide
neither gold nor silver nor brass in your purse,'--come, and by your
patience--your gentleness--your pardon--your love to all men, show that
'the Kingdom of Heaven is at hand!' Walk fearless in the thick of
battles, and your very presence shall engender peace! For the Holy
Spirit shall surround and encompass you; the fiercest warriors shall
bend before you, as they never would if you assumed a world's throne or
a world's sovereignty! Come, uncrowned, defenceless;--but strong in the
Spirit of God! Think of all the evil which has served as the foundation
for this palace in which you dwell! Can you not hear in the silence of
the night, the shrieks of the tortured and dying of the Inquisition? Do
you never think of those dark days, ten and twelve hundred years after
Christ, when no virtue seemed left upon the earth?--when the way to
this very throne was paved by poison and cold steel?--when those who
then reigned here, and occupied Your place, led such infamous lives
that the very dogs might have been ashamed to follow in their
footsteps!--when they professed to be able to sell the Power of the
Holy Ghost for so much gold and silver? Remember the words, 'Whoso
shall blaspheme against the Holy Ghost it shall not be forgiven him,
either in this world or in the world to come.' Look back upon the
Past--and look out upon the Present! Try to understand the sufferings
of the forsaken people!--the pain--the bewilderment--the groping for
life in death!--and come out with me! Come and preach Christ as He
lived and died, and WAS, and IS! COME OUT WITH ME!"

The dreadful, dumb spell remained unbroken. The loom seemed invested
with a strange solemnity--the figures of the human beings in it were
like images frozen into rigidity--even Cardinal Bonpre appeared
stricken by this mental paralysis, and not a fold of his rich attire
stirred with so much as a pulsation of natural breath. Only Manuel
seemed truly alive--his slight boyish figure was instinct with
ardour--his face was radiant, and his eyes brilliant as stars. And now,
withdrawing himself a little from the motionless creature seated
stiffly on the Papal throne, with its deep, dark eyes alone giving sign
of life by their unwearied stare and feverish glitter, he raised his
head with a royal gesture of mingled appeal and warning.

"Come out with me!" he exclaimed, "For there are wonderful things in
the world to-day!--wonderful, beautiful, and terrible! Take your share
in them, and find God in every glory! For with all the wisdom and the
splendour,--with all the flashing light of Heaven poured out upon the
darkness of the Sorrowful Star, its people are weary,--they are lost in
the confusion and clamour of their own desires--they would fain serve
God, but know not where to find Him, because a thousand, aye a million
churches stand in the way!--churches, which are like a forest of dark
trees, blocking out the radiance of the Sun! God, who manifests His
power and tenderness in the making of the simplest leaf, the smallest
bird, is lost to the understanding and affection of humanity in the
multitude of Creeds! Come out with me,--simple and pure, gentle and
strong! Tell all the lost and the wandering that there never was, and
never will be but one God supreme and perfect, whose name is Love,
whose work is Love!--and whose Messenger, Christ, pronounced the New
Commandment Love instead of Hate! Come out with me while it is yet day,
for the night cometh when no man can work! Come and lift up the world
by your very coming! Stretch out your hands in benediction over kings
and beggars alike!--there are other roses to give than Golden ones to
Queens! There are poor women who share half they earn with those still
poorer--there are obscure lives which in their very obscurity, are
forming the angel-nature, and weaving the angel's crown!--look for
these in the world--give THEM your Golden Roses! Leave rulers and
governments alone, for you should be above and beyond all rulers and
governments! You should be the Herald of peace,--the Pardoner of sin,
the Rescuer of the fallen, and the Refuge of the distressed! Come out
with me, and be all this to the world, so that when the Master comes He
may truly find you working in His vineyard!"

Another dead pause ensued. Not a sound, not a breath disturbed the
heavy silence which seemed to have grown deeper than before. And
Manuel, looking eagerly again and closely into the Pope's face, went on
with increasing ardour and passion.

"Come out with me!" he said, "Or if you will not come,--then beware of
the evil days which are at hand! The people are wandering to and fro,
crossing all lands, struggling one against the other, hoarding up
useless gold, and fighting for supremacy!--but 'the day of the Lord
shall come like a thief in the night, and blessed is he who shall be
found watching!' Watch! The hour is growing dark and full of
menace!--the nations are as frightened children, losing faith, losing
hope, losing strength! Put away,--put away from you the toys of
time!--quench in your soul the thirst for gold, for of this shall come
nothing but corruption! Why trifle with the Spirit of holy things? Why
let your servants use the Name of the Most High to cover hypocrisy? Why
crave for the power of temporal things which passes away in the dust of
destroyed kingdoms? For the Power of the Spirit is greater than all!
And so it shall be proved! The Spirit shall work in ways where it has
never been found before!--it shall depart from the Churches which are
unworthy of its Divine inspiration!--it shall invest the oaths of
Science!--it shall open the doors of the locked stars! It shall display
the worlds invisible;--the secrets of men's hearts, and of closed
graves!--there will be terror and loss and confusion and shame to
mankind,--and this world shall keep nothing of all its treasures but
the Cross of Christ! Rome, like Babylon, shall fall!--and the Powers of
the Church shall be judged as the Powers of Darkness rather than of
Light, because they have rejected the Word of their Master, and 'teach
for doctrine the commandments of men!' Disaster shall follow swift upon
disaster, and the cup of trembling shall be drained again to its last
dregs, as in the olden days, unless,--unless perchance--you will come
out with me!"

With the last words a sort of galvanic shock seemed to be imparted to
the rigid figure in the chair. Springing upright suddenly, his voice
rang out like a clarion, discordantly yet clearly.

"In the name of God," he cried, "Who and what is this boy! How came he
with Cardinal Bonpre? And you, Domenico!--do you stand by and permit
this affront to me!--the living Head of the Church! From a child!--a
tramp of the streets!--who dares to speak to me!--who dares to
reproach, to prophesy--aye, to blaspheme! and teach Me,--"

"As One having authority,--and not as the Scribes!" said Manuel, with
one swift flashing glance, which like a shaft of lightning seemed to
pierce through flesh and bone,--for, as he met that radiant and
commanding look, the jewel-like eyes of the Pope lost their lustre and
became fixed and glassy,--he put his hand to his throat with a choking
gasp for breath,--and like a dead body which had only been kept in
place by some secret mechanical action, he fell back in his chair
senseless, his limbs stretching themselves out with a convulsive
shudder into stark immovability.

Gherardi started from his stupor, and rushed to his assistance, ringing
the bell violently which summoned the valet from the antechamber,--and
Moretti, with a fierce oath, pushing Manuel aside, rushed to the chair
in which the Pope's fainting figure lay,--all was confusion;--and in
the excitement and terror which had overwhelmed Cardinal Bonpre at the
unprecedented scene, Manuel suddenly touched him on the arm.

"Follow me!" he said, "We are no longer needed here! Come!--let us go
hence!"

Hardly knowing what he did the old man obeyed, trembling in every limb
as Manuel, grasping him firmly by the hand, led him from the apartment,
and on through the winding corridors of the huge building, out into the
open air. No one questioned them,--no one interfered with their
progress. Benediction was being sung in one of the many chapels of St.
Peter's, and the solemn sound of the organ reached them, softened and
mellowed by distance, as they stood on the steps of the Vatican, where
the Cardinal, pausing to recover breath and equanimity, gazed at his
strange foundling in alarm and bewilderment.

"Manuel!" he murmured feebly, "Child!--what have you done!"

"Only what I am bound to do!" replied Manuel simply, "I have said no
more than it is right to say, if Christ's words are true! Dear friend,
be at peace! You will not suffer misjudgment long!"

The music stealing out from the distant chapel, floated round them in
large circles of solemn melody,--and the glow of sunset lit the clear
sky with a warm red radiance, flecked with golden clouds of glory.

"He would not come with me!" said Manuel, with a slight gesture
backward to the sombre portals they had just passed, "And he will never
come! But YOU will!"

And smiling,--with his fair face turned to the radiant sky,--he rested
his hand lightly on the Cardinal's arm as they descended the broad
marble steps, and left the great Palace of the Popes together.



XXIX.

While the foregoing scene was taking place at the Vatican, Angela
Sovrani, left to herself for some hours, took the opportunity to set
her great picture "on view" for the coming morrow. Locking both doors
of her studio, she began to arrange the room; her huge canvas was
already on a movable easel supplied with wheels, which ran lightly and
easily over the polished floor without making any sound. At its summit
a brass rod was attached, and on this a curtain of golden-coloured silk
was hung, the folds of which at present concealed the painting from
view. The top-light of the studio was particularly good on this special
afternoon, as the weather was clear, and the Roman sky translucent and
bright as an opal, and Angela, as she wheeled her "great work" into
position, sang for pure lightness of heart and thankfulness that all
was done. In her soul she had the consciousness that what she had
produced from her brain and hand was not altogether unworthy. For,
though to the true artist, no actual result can ever attain to the
beauty of the first thought or ideal of the thing to be performed,
there is always the consolation that if one's best and truest feeling
has been earnestly put into the work, some touch, however slight, of
that ideal beauty must remain. The poet's poem is never so fine as the
poet's thought. The thought is from the immortal and invincible
soul,--the poem has to be conveyed through the grosser body, clothed in
language which must always be narrow and inadequate. Hence the artist's
many and grievous limitations. To the eyes of the spirit all things
appear transfigured, because lifted out of the sphere of material
vision. But when we try to put these "beautiful things made new, for
the delight of the sky-children" on paper or canvas, in motionless
marble or flexible rhyme,--we are weighted by grosser air and the
density of bodily feeling. So it was with Angela Sovrani, iwhose
compact little head were folded the splendid dreams of genius like
sleeping fairies in a magic cave;--and thoughtful and brilliant though
she was, she could not, in her great tenderness for her affianced lover
Florian Varillo, foresee that daily contact with his weaker and smaller
nature, would kill those dreams as surely as a frost-wind kills the
buds of the rose,--and that gradually, very gradually, the coarser
fibre of his intelligence mingling with hers, would make a paltry and
rough weaving of the web of life, instead of a free and gracious
pattern. She never thought of such possibilities--she would have
rejected the very idea of them with scorn and indignation. She would
have declared that her love for Florian was the very root and source of
her art,--that for him she worked--for him she lived. So indeed she
believed, in her finely-fervent self-delusion,--but it was not ordained
that this glamour should last,--for hers was a nature too rare and
valuable to be sacrificed, and the Higher destinies had begun to
approve her as precious. Therefore, as is the case with all precious
things, the furnace was preparing for the shaping of the gold,--the
appointed Angel of her Fate was already hovering near, holding ready
the cup of bitterness which all must drain to the dregs, before knowing
what it is to drink of "the new wine in the Kingdom of God."

"I wonder," thought the girl now, as she stepped lightly from one
corner of her studio to the other, rearranging a vase here--a bust
there--and imparting to the whole room that indefinable air of grace
and luxury which can only be bestowed by the trained hand of a
practised artist,--"I wonder if Florian will be proud? People will
certainly talk of my picture,--some will praise and some will condemn;
and this mixture of praise and condemnation is what is called Fame. But
will my beloved love me more? Will he be glad that I am found worthy in
the world's sight?--or will he think I am usurping his place? Ah!" and
she paused in her work, looking vaguely before her with thoughtful,
wondering eyes, "That is where we women workers have to suffer! Men
grudge us the laurel, but they forget that we are trying to win it only
that we may wear the rose more fittingly! A woman tries to do a great
and a noble thing, not that she may vex of humiliate a man by
superiority,--but that she may be more worthy to be his mate and helper
in the world,--and also, that her children may reverence her for
something more than the mere animal duties of nursing and tenderness.
How proud to-day would be any man or woman who could point to Rosa
Bonheur and say, 'She was my mother!' And yet perhaps this idea of mine
is too fantastic,--the Brownings left a son--and he has nothing of
their genius or their enthusiasm."

She moved to the grand piano and set it open; as she did so a thought
of Sylvie came across her mind, and she smiled.

"Dear little rose-bud of a woman!" she mused, "How glad I am that she
is happy! And how delightful it is to see the pride she takes in Aubrey
Leigh!--how she studies his books, and pores over his statistics and
theories! I really believe she knows them all by heart! And what
wonderful schemes she is building up in her mind for the people in whom
he is so interested! What a sensation she will make if she intends to
work with her husband as thoroughly and devotedly as her ideas imply!
Her marriage will be an immense disappointment to certain persons I
could name!" and she smiled, "Dear Sylvie! With all her goodness, and
grace and beauty, her name will sound more obnoxious at the Vatican
than even the name of Gys Grandit!"

She had lifted a cluster of lilies from a vase to regroup them, and as
her thoughts turned in this direction she bent her eyes upon their
large white blooms meditatively, and a faint rose flush warmed her
cheeks.

"Ce sont des fleurs etranges, Et traitresses, avec leurs airs de
sceptres d'anges, De thyrses lumineux pour doigts de seraphins, Leurs
parfums sont trop forts, tout ensemble, et trop fins."

"It is strange," she thought, "that I should have corresponded so many
months with 'Gys Grandit' through my admiration for his books--and that
he should turn out to be the son of poor Abbe Vergniaud! Cyrillon! It
is a pretty name! And since we met--since that terrible scene in the
church in Paris,--since he knew who I was, he has not written. And, and
for his poor father's death . . . I suppose he thought it was
sufficient to telegraph the news of the death to my uncle. But I am
sorry he does not write to me any more!--I valued his letters--they
were such brilliant essays on all the movements and politics of the
time. It was just a little secret of mine;--it was pleasant to think I
was in correspondence with such a genius. However, he has had so much
to think of since then . . ." She set the lilies in their vase again,
inhaling their delicious odour as she did so.

"The flowers of the saints and martyrs!" she said, "I do not wonder
that the artists chose them for that purpose; they are so white-and
pure-and passionless . . ."

A slight crash disturbed her self-communion, and she hastened to see
what had fallen. It was a small clay figure of "Eros",--a copy of a
statuette found in the ruins of Pompeii. The nail supporting its
bracket had given way. Angela had been rather fond of this little work
of art, and as she knelt to pick up the fragments she was more vexed at
the accident than she cared to own. She looked wistfully at the pretty
moulded broken limbs of the little god as she put them all in a heap
together.

"What a pity!" she murmured, "I am not at all superstitious, yet I wish
anything in the room had come to grief rather than this! It is not a
good omen!"

She moved across the floor again and stood for a moment inert, one hand
resting lightly on the amber silk draperies which veiled her picture.

"There was no truth at all in that rumour about Florian's
'Phillida';--'Pon-Pon,' as they call her," she thought, "She serves as
a model to half the artists in Rome. Unfortunate creature. She is one
of the most depraved and reckless of her class, so I hear--and Florian
is far too refined and fastidious to even recognise such a woman,
outside his studio. The Marquis Fontenelle only wished to defend
himself by trying to include another man in the charge of libertinage,
when he himself was meditating the most perfidious designs on Sylvie.
Poor Fontenelle! One must try and think as kindly as possible of him
now--he is dead. But I cannot think it was right of him to accuse my
Florian!"

Just then she heard a soft knocking. It came from the door at the
furthest end of the studio, one which communicated with a small stone
courtyard, which in its turn opened out to a narrow street leading down
to the Tiber. It was the entrance at which models presented themselves
whenever Angela needed them.

"Angela!" called a melodious voice, which she recognised at once as the
dearest to her in the world. "Angela!"

She hurried to the door but did not open it.

"Florian!" she said softly, putting her lips close to the panel,
"Florian, caro mio! Why are you here?"

"I want to come in," said Florian, "I have news, Angela! I must see
you!"

She hesitated a moment longer, and then she undid the bolt, and
admitted him. He entered with a smiling and victorious air.

"I am all alone here," she said at once, before he could speak, "Father
is at Frascati on some business--and my uncle the Cardinal is at the
Vatican. Will you not come back later?"

For all answer, Florian took her in his arms with quite a reverent
tenderness, and kissed her softly on brow and lips.

"No, I will stay!" he said, "I want to have you all to myself for a few
minutes. I came to tell you, sweetest, that if I am to be the first to
see your picture and pass judgment on it, I had better see it now, for
I am going away to-morrow!"

"Going away!" echoed Angela, "Where?"

"To Naples," he answered, "Only for a little while. They have purchased
my picture 'Phillida et les Roses' for one of the museums there, and
they want me to see if I approve of the position in which it is to be
placed. They also wish to honour me by a banquet or something of the
kind--an absurdly unnecessary affair, but still I think it is perhaps
advisable that I should go."

He spoke with an affectation of indifference, but any observer of him
whose eyes were not blinded by affection, could have seen that he
exhaled from himself an atmosphere of self-congratulation at the
banquet proposition. Little honours impress little minds;--and a faint
thrill of pain moved Angela as she saw him thus delighted with so poor
and ordinary a compliment. In any other man it would have moved her to
contempt, but in Florian--well!--she was only just a little sorry.

"Yes, perhaps it might look churlish of you not to accept," she said,
putting away from her the insidious suggestion that perhaps if Florian
loved her as much as he professed, an invitation to a banquet at Naples
would have had no attraction for him as compared with being present at
the first view of her picture on the morning she had herself
appointed--"I think under the circumstances you had better not see the
picture till you come back!"

"Now, Angela!" he exclaimed vexedly, "You know I will not consent to
that! You have promised me that I shall be the first to see it--and
here I am!"

"It should be seen by the morning light," said Angela, a touch of
nervousness beginning to affect her equanimity,--"This light is pale
and waning, though the afternoon is so clear. You cannot see the
coloring to the best advantage!"

"Am I not a painter also?" asked Varillo playfully, putting his arm
round her waist,--"And can I not guess the effect in the morning light
as well as if I saw it? Come, Angela mia! Unveil the great prodigy!"
and he laughed,--"You began it before we were affianced;--think what
patience I have had for nearly two years!"

Angela did not reply at once. Somehow, his light laugh jarred upon her.

"Florian," she said at last, raising her truthful, beautiful eyes fully
to his, "I do not think you quite understand! This picture has absorbed
a great deal of my heart and soul--I have as it were, painted my own
life blood into it--for I mean it to declare a truth and convey a
lesson. It will either cover me with obloquy, or crown me with lasting
fame. You speak jestingly, as if it were some toy with which I had
amused myself these three years. Do you not believe that a woman's work
may be as serious, as earnest, and strongly purposeful as a man's?"

Still clasping her round the waist, Florian drew her closer, and
pressing her head against his breast, he looked down on her smiling.

"What sweet eyes you have!" he said, "The sweetest, the most trusting,
the most childlike eyes I have ever seen! It would be impossible to
paint such eyes, unless one's brushes were Raffaelle's, dipped in holy
water. Not that I believe very much in holy water as a painter's
medium! "He laughed,--he had a well-shaped mouth and was fond of
smiling, in order that he might show his even pearly teeth, which
contrasted becomingly with his dark moustache. "Yes, my Angela has
beautiful eyes,--and such soft, pretty hair!" and he caressed it
gently, "like little golden tendrils with a beam of the sunlight caught
in it! Is not that a pretty compliment? I think I ought to have been a
poet instead of a painter!"

"You are both," said Angela fondly, with a little sigh of rest and
pleasure as she nestled in his arms--"You will be the greatest artist
of your time when you paint large subjects instead of small ones."

His tender hold of her relaxed a little.

"You think 'Phillida et les Roses' a small subject?" he asked, with a
touch of petulance in his tone, "Surely if a small study is perfect, it
is better than a large one which is imperfect?"

"Of course it is!" replied the girl quickly--"By smallness I did not
mean the size of the canvas,--I meant the character of the subject."

"There is nothing small in the beauty of woman!" declared Varillo, with
an enthusiastic air--"Her form is divine! Her delicious flesh
tints--her delicate curves--her amorous dimples--her exquisite
seductiveness--combined with her touching weakness--these qualities
make of woman the one,--the only subject for a painter's brush, when
the painter is a man!"

Involuntarily Angela thought of "Pon-Pon," who had posed for the
"Phillida," and a little shiver ran over her nerves like a sudden wind
playing on the chords of an AEolian harp. Gently she withdrew herself
from her lover's embrace.

"And when the painter is a woman, should the only subject for her brush
be the physical beauty of man?" she asked.

Varillo gave an airy gesture of remonstrance.

"Carissima mia! You shock me! How can you suggest such a thing! The two
sexes differ in tastes and aspirations as absolutely as in form. Man is
an unfettered creature,--he must have his liberty, even if it reaches
license; woman is his dependent. That is Nature's law. Man is the
conqueror--woman is his conquest! We cannot alter these things. That is
one reason for the prejudice existing against woman's work--if it
excels that of man, we consider it a kind of morbid growth--an
unnatural protuberance on the face of the universe. In fact, it is a
wrong balance of the intellectual forces, which in their action, should
always remain on the side of man."

"But if man abuses his power, may it not be taken from him altogether?"
suggested Angela tranquilly, "If man, knowing that a life of
self-indulgence destroys his intellectual capacity, still persists in
that career, and woman, studying patiently to perfect herself, refuses
to follow his example of vice, may it not happen that the intellectual
forces may range themselves on the side of right rather than wrong, and
invest woman with a certain supremacy in the end? It is a problem worth
thinking of!"

Varillo looked sharply at her. Had she heard anything of his private
life in Rome?--a life he kept carefully concealed from everyone who
might be likely to report his little amusements at the Palazzo Sovrani?
A slight, very slight touch of shame pricked him, as he noted the grace
of her figure, the dainty poise of her head on her slim white
throat--the almost royal air of dignity and sweetness which seemed to
surround her,--there was no doubt whatever of her superiority to the
women he generally consorted with, and for a moment he felt
remorseful,--but he soon dismissed his brief compunction with a laugh.

"No, sweet Angela," he said gaily, "it is not worth thinking of!
Believe me! I will not enter into any such profound discussions with
you. My present time is too short, and your attractions too many! Why
did you slip out of my arms so unkindly just now? Surely you were not
offended? Comeback! Come, and we will go up to the great picture as
lovers should, together--entwined in each other's arms!--and you shall
then draw the mysterious curtain,--or shall I?"

She still hesitated. Then after a pause, she came towards him once
more, the soft colour alternately flushing and paling her cheeks, as
she laid her hand on his arm.

"You did not answer me," she said, "when I asked you just now if you
believed that a woman's work could be as purposeful as a
man's--sometimes indeed more so. You evaded the question. Why?"

"Did I evade it?" and Varillo took her hand in his own and kissed
it,--"Dolcesza mia, I would not pain you for the world!"

A slight shadow clouded her face.

"You will not pain me," she answered, "except by not being true to
yourself and to me. You know how I have worked,--you know how high I
have set my ambition for your sake--to make myself more worthy of you;
but if you do honestly think that a woman's work in art must always be
inferior to a man's, no matter how ardently she studies--no matter even
if she has so perfected herself in drawing, anatomy, and colouring as
to be admitted the equal of men in these studies--if the result must,
in your mind, be nevertheless beneath that of the masculine attainment,
why say so,--because then--then--"

"Then what, my sweet philosopher?" asked Florian lightly, again kissing
the hand he held.

She fixed her eyes fully on him. "Then," she replied slowly, "I should
know you better--I should understand you more!"

An unpleasant twinge affected his nerves, and his eyelids quivered and
blinked as though struck by a sudden shaft of the sun. This was the
only facial sign he ever gave of the difficulty he at times experienced
in meeting the straight, clear glance of his betrothed.

"You would know me more, and love me less? Is that it?" he said
carelessly. "My dear girl, why do you press the point? If you will have
it, I tell you frankly, I think women are growing very clever, much too
clever in fact,--and that the encouragement and impetus given to them
in the Arts is a very great mistake. Because they are not all geniuses
like my Angela! You are one in a thousand--or rather one in a
million,--and for one Angela Sovrani we shall have a world of female
daubers calling themselves artists and entering into competition with
us, as if we had not already quite enough competition among our own
sex! I honestly believe that with very rare exceptions woman's work is
decidedly inferior and mediocre as compared to man's."

Quickly Angela disengaged herself from his hold, her lips
trembling--her eyes were full of a strange fire and brilliancy,--her
slight figure seemed to grow taller as she stood for a moment like a
queen, regarding him steadfastly from under her fair, level brows.

"Then come and see!" she said, "I am not proud--I make no boast at all
of what I have done--and no one perceives or deplores the faults of my
work more than I do--but I know I have not altogether failed!"

She moved away from him and stood opposite her veiled canvas,--then as
Florian followed and joined her, with a swift action which had
something of defiance as well as grace in it, she swept aside the
concealing curtain. Florian recoiled with an involuntary cry,--and then
remained motionless and silent,--stricken dumb and stupid by the
magnificent creation which confronted him. This Angela's masterpiece! A
woman's work! This stupendous conception! This perfect drawing! This
wondrous colouring! Fully facing him, the central glory of the whole
picture, was a figure of Christ--unlike any other Christ ever imagined
by poet or painter--an etherealised Form through which the very light
of Heaven itself seemed to shine,--supreme, majestic, and austerely
God-like;--the face was more beautiful than any ever dreamed of by the
hewers of the classic marbles--it was the face of a great
Archangel,--beardless and youthful, yet kingly and commanding. Round
the broad brows a Crown of Thorns shone like a diadem, every prickly
point tipped with pale fire,--and from the light floating folds of
intense white which, cloud-like, clung about the divine Form, faint
flashes of the lightning gleamed. Above this grand Christ, the heavens
were opened, pouring out a rain of such translucent purity of colour
and radiance as never had been seen in any painted canvas before--but
beneath, the clouds were black as midnight--confused, chaotic, and
drifting darkly on a strong wind as it seemed into weird and witch-like
shapes, wherein there were seen the sun and moon revolving pallidly,
like globes of fire lost from their orbits and about to become extinct.
And among those shifting black films were a crowd of human creatures,
floating and falling into unknown depths of darkness, and striking out
wild arms of appeal and entreaty and despair,--the faces of these were
all familiar, and were the life-like portraits of many of those
pre-eminent in the history of the time. Chief among them was the
Sovereign Pontiff, waxen and wan and dark-eyed,--he was depicted as
fastening fetters of iron round the body of a beautiful youth,
laurel-crowned, the leaves of the laurel bearing faint gold letters
which spelt the word "Science." Huddled beside him was a well-known
leader of the Jesuits, busily counting up heaps of gold,--another
remarkable figure was that of a well-known magnate of the Church of
England, who, leaning forward eagerly, sought to grasp and hold the
garment of the Pope, but was dragged back by the hand of a woman
crowned with an Imperial diadem. After these and other principal
personages came a confusion of faces--all recognisable, yet needing
study to discern;--creatures drifting downwardly into the
darkness,--one was the vivisectionist whose name was celebrated through
France, clutching at his bleeding victim and borne relentlessly onwards
by the whirlwind,--and forms and faces belong to men of every
description of Church-doctrine were seen trampling underneath them
other human creatures scarcely discernible. And over all this blackness
and chaos the supernal figure of the Christ was aerially poised,--one
hand was extended and to this a woman clung--a woman with a beautiful
face made piteous in its beauty by long grief and patient endurance. In
her other arm she held a sleeping child--and mother and child were
linked together by a garland of flowers partially broken and faded. Her
entreating attitude,--the sleeping child's helplessness--her worn
face,--the perishing roses of earth's hope and joy,--all expressed
their meaning simply yet tragically, and as the Divine Hand supported
and drew her up out of the universal chaos below, the hope of a new
world, a better world, a wiser world, a holier world, seemed to be
distantly conveyed. But the eyes of the Christ were full of reproach,
and were bent on the Representative of St. Peter binding the
laurel-crowned youth, and dragging him into darkness,--and the words
written across the golden mount of the picture, in clear black letters,
seemed to be actually spoken aloud from the vivid color and movement of
the painting. "Many in that day will call upon Me and say, Lord, Lord,
have we not prophesied in Thy name, and in Thy name cast out devils,
and done many wonderful works?"

"Then will I say to them, I never knew you! Depart from me all ye that
work iniquity!"

As an Allegory the picture was a daring yet sublime reproach to the
hypocrisy of the religious world,--as a picture it was consummate in
every detail, and would have been freely admitted as a masterpiece of
Raffaelle had Raffaelle been fortunate enough to paint it. Still
Varillo kept silence. Angela's heart beat so loudly that she could
almost hear it in the deep silence of the room. Every fine little nerve
in her body was strained--to the utmost height of suspense,--she was
afraid to look at her lover, or disturb the poise of his mental
judgment by the lightest movement. And he? Thoughts, black as the chaos
of cloud she had so powerfully portrayed, were stirring in his
soul,--thoughts, base and mean and cowardly, which, gradually gathering
force as he dwelt upon them, began to grow and spring up to a devilish
height worked into life and being by a burning spark of jealousy,
which, long smouldering in his nature, now leaped into a flame. No
trace of the wicked inner workings of his mind, however, darkened the
equanimity of his features, or clouded the serene, soft candour of his
eyes, as he at last turned towards the loving, shrinking woman, who
stood waiting for his approval, as simply and sweetly as a rose might
wait for the touch of the morning sun. Slowly, and like little pellets
of ice, his first words fell from his lips,

"Did you do it all yourself?"

The spell was disturbed--the charm broken. Angela turned very
white--she drew a deep breath--and the tension on her nerves
relaxed,--her heart gave one indignant bound--and then resumed its
usual quiet beating, as with a strong effort she gathered all her
dignity and force together, and replied simply,

"Can you ask?"

He looked at her. What an embodied insult to the arrogance of man she
was! She!--a mere woman!--and the painter of the finest picture ever
seen since Raffaelle and Michael Angelo left the world to work
elsewhere. "Chaste as ice, pure as snow, thou shalt not escape
calumny!" In his imagination he saw the world crowning her with
imperishable bays--he heard the denunciation of the Vatican and the
condemnation of the Churches, thunder uselessly against the grand
lesson of her work, while crowds gathered adoringly before the most
perfect Christ ever painted!--and he saw her name written up in letters
of gold on the scroll of those whom history numbers as immortal! It
should not be! It should never be! And again he spoke, enunciating his
words with difficulty, for his lips were dry.

"It is very fine! Quite marvellous, in fact!--almost unprecedented!
That is why I ask, 'did you do it all yourself?' You must not be
offended, Angela! I mean so well! You see the conception--the breadth
of treatment--the gradation and tone of colour--are all absolutely
masculine. Who first suggested the idea to you?"

Still very pale, breathing quickly yet lightly, and maintaining an air
of calm which was almost matter of fact, she answered,--

"No one! Though perhaps, if it is traced to its source, it arose in my
mind from seeing the universal dissatisfaction which most intelligent
people feel with religion, as administered to them by the Churches.
That, and a constant close study of the New Testament, set the thought
in my brain,--a thought which gradually expressed itself in this form.
So far as any work belongs to the worker, it is entirely my own
creation. I am sorry you should have implied any doubt of it!"

Here her voice trembled a little, but she quickly steadied it. He
smiled--a little difficult smile--and slipping his right hand between
his coat and vest, felt for something he always carried there. It
should never be!

"My dear Angela!" he said, with a gracious tranquillity that was almost
dignity, "I do not doubt you in the least!--I merely SUGGEST what all
the world will SAY! There is not an art-critic alive who will accept
this--this extraordinary production--as the work of a woman! It is the
kind of thing which might have been produced hundreds of years ago by a
great master setting his pupils to work at different sections of the
canvas,--but that one woman, painting all alone for three years, should
have designed and executed such a masterpiece--yes!--I will admit it is
a masterpiece!--is an unheard of and altogether an extraordinary thing,
and you must not wonder if competent judges reject the statement with
incredulity!"

"It does not matter to me," said Angela, "what they reject or accept.
You admit it is a masterpiece--that is enough for me. It is my own
work, and you know it is!"

"Dear little one!" he said, laughing forcedly, "How do I know? You have
never admitted me into the studio once while you were at work!"

"Florian!"

The exclamation broke from her lips like a cry of physical pain.

"That was a mistake of yours!" he went on recklessly, his eyes
beginning to glitter with the fever raging in his mind, "You should not
have shut the doors against your lover, my beloved! Nor would you admit
your father either! That looks very strange!"

White as a snowflake, yet with blazing eyes, Angela turned upon him.

"Florian!" she said, "Do you--you of all people in the world--you to
whom I have given all my love and confidence--mean to suggest that my
work is not my own?"

He looked at her, smiling easily.

"Sweet Angela, not I! I know your genius--I worship it! See!" and with
a light grace he dropped on one knee, and snatching her hand, kissed
it--then springing up again, he said, "You are a great creature, my
Angela!--the greatest artist in the world,--IF WE CAN ONLY MAKE THE
WORLD BELIEVE IT!"

Something in his voice, his manner, moved her to a vague touch of
dread. Earnestly she looked at him,--wonderingly, and with a passionate
reproach in her pure, true eyes. And still he smiled, while the fiends
of envy and malice made havoc in his soul.

"My glorious Angela!" he said, "My bride, my beautiful one! A veritable
queen, to whom nations shall pay homage!" He threw one arm round her
waist and drew her somewhat roughly to him. "You must not be vexed with
me, sweetheart!--the world is a cruel world, and always doubts great
ability in woman! I only prepare you for what most people will say. But
_I_ do not doubt!--I know your power, and triumph in it!" He paused a
moment, breathing quickly,--his eyes were fixed on the picture,--then
he said, "If I may venture to criticise--there is a shadow--there, at
the left hand side of the canvas--do you not see?"

She disengaged herself from his clasp.

"Where?" she asked, in a voice from which all spirit and hopefulness
had fled.

"You are sad? My Angela, have I discouraged you? Forgive me! I do not
find fault,--this is a mere nothing,--you may not agree with me,--but
does not that dark cloud make somewhat too deep a line near the faded
roses? It may be only an effect of this waning light,--but I do think
that line is heavy and might be improved. Be patient with me!--I only
criticise to make perfection still more perfect!"

Listlessly she moved closer to the picture, turning away from him as
she did so.

"Just the slightest softening of the tone--the finishing touch!" he
murmured in caressing accents; while to himself he muttered--"It shall
not be! It shall never be!" Then with a swift movement his hand
snatched at the thing he always carried concealed near his breast--a
flash of pointed steel glittered in the light,--and with one stealthy
spring and pitiless blow, he stabbed her full and furiously in the back
as she stood looking at the fault he had pretended to discover in her
picture! One choking cry escaped her lips--

"Florian--you! YOU--Florian!" Then reeling, she threw up her arms and
fell, face forwards on the floor, insensible.

He stood above her, dagger in hand,--and studied the weapon with
strange curiosity. It was crimson and wet with blood. Then he stared at
the picture. A faint horror began to creep over him. The great Christ
in the centre of the painting seemed to live and move, and float
towards him on clouds of blinding glory. His breath came and went in
uneasy gasps.

"Angela!" he muttered thickly,--"Angela!" She lay prone and horribly
still. He was afraid to touch her. What had he done? Murdered her? Oh
no!--he had done nothing--nothing at all,--she had merely fainted--she
would be well presently! He smiled foolishly at this, still gazing
straight at the picture, and holding the sharp blood-stained blade in
his hand.

"My love!" he said aloud,--then listened--as though waiting for an
answer. And still he stared persistently at the glorious figure of the
Christ, till the Divine eyes seemed to flash the fire of an everlasting
wrath upon his treacherous soul.

"To destroy the work? Or claim it?" he mused, "Either would be easy!
That is, if she were dead!--." he paused,--amazed at his own thought.
"If she were dead, it would be easy to swear _I_ had painted the
picture! If she were dead!" Again he listened. "Angela!" he whispered.

A door banging in the house startled him from his semi-stupor. His eyes
wandered from the picture to the inanimate form lying at his feet.

"Sweet Angela!" he said, a cold smile flickering on his lips, "You were
always unselfish! You wished me to be the greatest artist of my
time!--and perhaps I shall be!--now YOU are dead! My love!"

A sudden clatter of horses' hoofs and rolling wheels wakened hollow
echoes from the great stone courtyard below. It was the Cardinal
returning from the Vatican. A panic seized him--his teeth chattered as
with icy cold. He sprang swiftly to the door by which Angela had
admitted him, and opened it cautiously,--then slinking out, locked it
carefully behind him, took the key,--and fled. Once in the street, he
never paused till he reached the corner of a dark projecting wall
over-looking the Tiber, and here, glancing nervously round lest he
should be observed, he flung his murderer's dagger and the key of the
studio both into the water. Again he paused and listened--looking up at
the frowning windows of the Palazzo Sovrani which could be dimly seen
from where he stood. He had not meant to kill Angela. Oh no! He had
come to the studio, full of love, prepared to chide her tenderly for
the faults in her work,--till he saw that it was faultless; to make a
jest of her ambition,--till he realized her triumph! And then,--then
the devil had seized him--then--! A scarlet slit in the western horizon
showed where the sun had sunk,--a soft and beautiful after-glow
trembled over the sky in token of its farewell. A boy came strolling
lazily down the street eating a slice of melon, and paused to fling the
rind over the wall. The innocent, unconscious glance of the stripling's
eyes was sufficient to set up a cowardly trembling in his body,--and
turning round abruptly so that even this stray youth might not observe
him too closely, he hurried away. And the boy, never regarding him at
all, strolled on with the mellow taste of the fruit he had just enjoyed
in his mouth, and presently, as if inspired thereby, awoke the
slumbering echoes of the street with his high, fluting young treble,
singing, "Che faro senza Eurydice!"



XXX.

Meanwhile Cardinal Bonpre had once more reached his own apartments,
thankful enough to be there after his difficult experience at the
Vatican. But he was neither fatigued nor depressed by what had
occurred,--on the contrary he was conscious of an extraordinary vigour
and lightness of heart, as though he had suddenly grown young again.
Changing his scarlet robes of office for his every-day cassock, he
seated himself restfully, and with a deep sigh of relief, in his easy
chair near the writing-table, and first of all closing his eyes for a
moment, while he silently prayed for guidance to the Supreme Judge of
all secret intentions, he called Manuel to his side.

"My child," he said gently, "I want you to listen to me very
attentively. I do not think you quite understand what you have done
to-day, do you?"

Manuel raised his eyes with a clear look of confidence.

"Yes. I have spoken to the Head of the Church of Rome," he
answered,--"That is all. I have said to him, as Christ once said to the
very Peter whom he represents, 'Thou savourest not the things that be
of God, but those that be of men.'"

The Cardinal regarded him straightly.

"True! But for you, a mere child, to say to the Head of the Church what
Christ said to St. Peter, will be judged as blasphemy. I have never
urged you, as you know, to tell me who you are, or where you came from.
I do not urge you now. For I feel that you have been sent to me for
some special purpose--that young as you are, you have been entrusted by
a Higher Power with some mission to me--for you possess the spirit of
inspiration, prophecy and truth. I dare not question that spirit!
Wherever I find it, in the young, in the old, in the wise or the
ignorant I give it welcome. For you have uttered not only what I have
myself thought, but what half the world is thinking, though you are
only one of those 'babes and sucklings out of whose mouth the Lord hath
ordained wisdom.' But what you have said at the Vatican will be judged
as heresy--and I shall be counted heretic for having permitted you to
speak thus boldly."

"Your permission was not asked," said Manuel simply, "I was summoned to
the Vatican, but I was not told what to say to the Pope. I spoke as I
felt. No one interrupted me. The Pope listened to all my words. And I
said no more than is true."

"Truth is judged as libel nowadays in the world," answered the
Cardinal, "And we have to confront the fact that we have incurred the
displeasure, and have also invited the vengeance of the Sovereign
Pontiff. Thus we must expect to suffer."

"Then he who is called the visible Head of Christianity objects to the
truth, and is capable of vengeance!" said Manuel, "That is a strange
contradiction! But I will suffer whatever he pleases to inflict upon
me. You shall suffer nothing!"

The Cardinal smiled gravely.

"My child, I am old, and whatever trouble is in store for me cannot
last long. But I must guard you from harm with all the remaining powers
of my life. Having constituted myself your protector and defender, I
must continue to protect and defend. And so, Manuel, tomorrow or the
next day I shall take you away to England. So far, at least, I will
defy the powers of Rome!"

His eyes flashed, and his whole person seemed to be invested with
sudden strength, dignity and command. He pointed to the crucifix on the
table before him.

"He, the Holy One of the Heavens, was crucified for speaking the
truth,--I can do no better than follow His divine example! If my soul
is stretched on the crossbeams of injustice--if every tender emotion of
my heart is tortured and slain--if I am stripped of honour and exposed
to contempt, what matter! My glorious Master suffered likewise."

Manuel was silent. He stood near the great chimney where the wood fire
burned and crackled, casting a ruddy glow through the room. After a few
minutes he turned his fair head towards the Cardinal with an earnest,
scrutinising gaze in his expressive eyes.

"Then, dear friend, you are not angry? You do not reproach me for what
I have done?"

"Reproach you? I reproach no one!" said Bonpre,--"Least of all, a
child! For you speak unconsciously--as genius speaks;--you cannot weigh
the meaning of your words, or the effect of what you say on the worldly
or callous minds which have learned to balance motives and meanings
before coining them into more or less ambiguous language. No!--I have
nothing to reproach you with, Manuel,--I am thankful to have you by my
side!"

His eyes rested again upon the crucifix for a moment, and he went on,
more to himself than to the boy,--

"In the early days of our Lord, He spoke to the wise men in the Temple,
and they were 'astonished at his understanding and answers.' But they
did not reprove Him,--not then,--on the contrary, they listened. How
often in our own days do young children ask us questions to which we
cannot reply, and which they themselves perchance could easily answer
if they but knew how to clothe their thoughts with speech! For the
Spirit of God is made manifest in many ways, and through many
methods;--sometimes it whispers a hint or a warning to us in the petals
of the rose, sometimes in the radiance of the sunset on the sea,
sometimes in the simple talk of a child younger even than you
are,--'Except ye become as little children--!"

He paused in his dreamy utterance, and turned in his chair listening.
"What is that?" There was a noise of hurrying footsteps and murmuring
voices,--that sort of half-muffled confusion in a household which bodes
something wrong,--and all at once Prince Sovrani threw open the door of
the Cardinal's apartments without ceremony, crying out as he entered,--

"Where is Angela?"

The Cardinal rose out of his chair, startled and alarmed.

"Angela?" he echoed, "She is not here!"

"Not here!" Prince Sovrani drew a sharp breath, and his face visibly
paled,--"It is very strange! Her studio is locked at both
entrances--yet the servants swear she has not passed out of the house!
Besides she never goes out without leaving word as to where she has
gone and when she is coming back!"

"Her studio is locked on both sides!" repeated the Cardinal, "But that
is quite easy to understand--her picture is unveiled, and no one is to
be permitted to see it until to-morrow."

"Yes--yes--" said the Prince Pietro impatiently, "I know all that,--but
where is Angela herself? There is no sign of her anywhere! She cannot
have gone out. Her maid tells me she was not dressed to go out. She was
in her white working gown when last seen. Santissima Madonna!"--and old
Sovrani gave a wild gesture of despair--"If any harm has happened to
the child . . ."

"Harm? Why what harm could happen? What harm could happen?" said the
Cardinal soothingly,--"My dear brother, do not alarm yourself
needlessly--"

"Let us go to the studio," interposed Manuel suddenly--"She may not
have heard you call her."

He moved in his gentle light way out of the room, and without another
word they followed. Outside the studio door they paused, and Prince
Sovrani tried again and again to open it, calling "Angela!" now loudly,
now softly, now entreatingly, now commandingly, all to no purpose. The
servants had gathered on the landing, afraid of they knew not what, and
one old man, the Prince's valet, shook his head dolefully at the
continued silence.

"Why not break open the door, Eccellenza?" he asked anxiously, "I know
the trick of those old locks--if the Eccellenza will permit I can push
back the catch with a strong chisel."

"Do so then," replied his master, "I cannot wait--there is something
horrible in the atmosphere!--something that chokes me! Quick! This
suspense will kill me!"

The old valet hurried away, and in two or three minutes, during which
time both Prince Sovrani and the Cardinal knocked and called again
outside the door quite uselessly, he returned with a strong iron chisel
which he forced against the lock. For some time it resisted all
efforts--then with appalling suddenness gave way and flew back, the
door bursting wide open with the shock. For one instant the falling
shadows of evening made the interior of the room too dim to see
distinctly--there was a confused blur of objects,--the carved summit of
a great easel,--a gold picture-frame shining round a wonderful mass of
colouring on canvas--then gradually they discerned the outline of a
small figure lying prone at the foot of the easel, stiff and
motionless. With a dreadful cry of despair Sovrani dashed into the room.

"Angela! Angela!"

Falling on his knees he raised the delicate figure in his arms,--the
little head drooped inanimate on his shoulder, and with the movement a
coil of golden hair became unbound, and fell in soft waves over his
trembling hands--the fair face was calm and tranquil--the eyes were
closed,--but as the distracted man clasped that inert, beloved form
closer, he saw what caused him to spring erect with a terrible oath,
and cry for vengeance.

"Murdered!" he exclaimed hoarsely--"Murdered! Brother, come close!--see
here! Will you talk to me of God NOW! My last comfort in life--the last
gift of my Gita, murdered!"

The affrighted Cardinal tottered forward, and looking, saw that a deep
stain of blood oozed over the soft white garments of the lifeless girl,
and he wrung his hands in despair.

"My God! My God!" he moaned, "In what have we offended Thee that Thou
shouldst visit us with such heavy affliction? Angela, my child!--my
little girl!--Angela!"

The servants had by this time clustered round, a pale and terrified
group, sobbing and crying loudly,--only the old valet retained
sufficient presence of mind to light two or three of the lamps in the
studio. As this was done, and the sudden luminance dispersed some of
the darker shadows in the room, the grand picture on the easel was
thrown into full prominence,--and the magnificent Christ, descending in
clouds of glory, seemed to start from the painted canvas and move
towards them all. And even while he wrung his hands and wept, the
Cardinal's glance was suddenly caught and transfixed by this
splendour,--he staggered back amazed, and murmured feebly--"Angela!
THIS is her work!--this her great picture, and she--she is dead!"

Sovrani suddenly clutched him by the arm, and drew him close to the
couch where he had just laid the body of his daughter down.

"Now, where was this God you serve, think you, when this happened?" he
demanded, in a hoarse whisper, while his aged eyes glittered
feverishly, and his stern dark face under the tossed white hair was as
a frowning mask of vengeance,--"Is the world so rich in sweet women
that SHE should be slain?"

Half paralysed with grief, the unhappy Cardinal sank on his knees
beside the murdered girl,--taking the passive hand he kissed it, the
tears flowing down his furrowed cheeks. Her magnificent picture shone
forth, a living presence in the room, but the thoughts of all were for
the dead only, and the distracted Sovrani saw nothing but his child's
pale, set face, closed eyes, and delicate figure, lying still with the
red stain of blood spreading through the whiteness of her garments.
None of them thought of Manuel--and it was with a shock of surprise
that the Cardinal became aware of him, and saw him approaching the
couch, raising his hand as he came, warningly.

"Hush, hush!" he said, very gently, "It may be that she is not dead!
She will be frightened when she wakes if she sees you weeping!"

Prince Sovrani caught the words.

"When she wakes!" he cried, "Poor boy, you do not know what you say!
She will never wake! She is dead!"

But Manuel was bending closely over the couch, and looking earnestly
into Angela's quiet face. Cardinal Bonpre watched him wonderingly. And
the old Prince stood, arrested as it were in the very midst of his
wrath and sorrow by some force more potent than even the spirit of
vengeance. The sobbing servants held their breath--and all stared as if
fascinated at the young boy, as after a pause, he took Angela's hand
that hung so inertly down, in one of his own, and with the other felt
her heart. Then he spoke.

"She is not dead!" he said simply,--"She has only swooned. Let someone
fetch a physician to attend her--see!--she breathes!"

With a wild, half-smothered cry Prince Sovrani sprang forward to see
for himself if this blessed news was true. He and the Cardinal both,
seized with a passionate anxiety, gazed and gazed at the fair beloved
face in hope, in fear and longing,--and still Manuel stood beside the
couch, stroking the small hand he held with thoughtful care and
tenderness. All at once a faint sigh parted the sweet lips,--the bosom
heaved with a struggle for breath. Her father fell on his knees,
overcome, and hiding his face in his hands sobbed aloud in the
intensity of his relief and joy, while the Cardinal murmured a devout
'Thank God!' A few minutes passed, and still the fluttering uncertain
breathings came and went, and still Manuel stood by the couch, quietly
watchful. Presently the closed eyelids quivered and lifted,--and the
beautiful true eyes shone star-like out upon the world again! She
stirred, and tried to raise herself, but sank back exhausted in the
effort. Then seeing the Cardinal, she smiled,--and her gaze wandered
slowly to the bent, white-haired figure crouching beside her, whose
whole frame was shaken by sobs.

"Father!" she murmured--"Dearest father! What is it?"

He lifted his tear-stained, agonised face, and seeing that the tender
eyes regarding him were full of fear and wonder as well as love, he
instantly controlled himself, and rising from his knees, kissed her
gently.

"I thought you were dead, my darling!" he said softly--"Hush now--do
not speak! Lie quite still! You are hurt a little,--you must rest!--you
will be better,--much better presently!"

But Angela's looks had again wandered, and now they were fixed on
Manuel. Over her whole face there came a sudden life and radiance.

"Manuel!" she said eagerly--"Manuel, stay with me! Do not leave me!"

Manuel smiled in answer to her appealing eyes, and came nearer.

"Do not fear!" he said--"I will stay!"

She closed her eyes again restfully, and her breathing grew lighter and
easier. Just then one of the servants entered with the physician who
was accustomed to attend the Sovrani household. His arrival roused
Angela completely,--she became quite conscious, and evidently began to
remember something of what had happened. The doctor raised her to see
where she was injured, and quickly cutting away her blood-stained
vesture, tenderly and carefully examined the wound.

"I cannot understand how it is that she is not dead!" he said at
last--"It is a miracle! This is a stab inflicted with some sharply
pointed instrument,--probably a dagger--and was no doubt intended to be
mortal. As it is, it is dangerous--but there is a chance of life." Then
he addressed himself to Angela, who was looking at him with wide-open
eyes and a most piteous expression. "Do you know me, my child?"

"Oh, yes, doctor!" she murmured faintly.

"Do you suffer much pain?"

"No."

"Then can you tell me how this happened? Who stabbed you?"

She shuddered and sighed.

"No one!--that I can remember!"

Her eyes closed--she moved her hands about restlessly as though seeking
for something she had lost.

"Manuel!"

"I am here!" answered the boy gently.

"Stay with me! I am so tired!"

Again a convulsive trembling shook her fragile body from head to foot,
and again she sighed as though her heart were breaking,--then she lay
passively still, though one or two tears crept down her cheeks as they
carried her tenderly up to her own room and laid her down on her simple
little white bed, softly curtained, and guarded by a statue of the
Virgin bending over it. There, when her cruel wound was dressed and
bandaged, and the physician had given her a composing draught, she fell
into a deep, refreshing slumber, and only Manuel stayed beside her as
she slept.

Meanwhile, down in the studio, Prince Sovrani and the Cardinal stayed
together, talking softly, and gazing in fascinated wonder,
bewilderment, admiration and awe at Angela's work unveiled. All the
lamps in the room were now lit, and the great picture--a sublime Dream
resolved into sublime Reality--shone out as much as the artificial
light would permit,--a jewel of art that seemed to contain within
itself all the colour and radiance of a heaven unknown, unseen yet
surely near at hand. The figure and face of the approaching Saviour,
instinct with life, expressed almost in positive speech the words,
"Then shall ye see the Son of Man coming in the clouds with great power
and glory"!--and if Cardinal Bonpre had given way to the innermost
emotions of his soul, he could have knelt before the exalted purity of
such a conception of the Christ,--a god-like ideal, brought into
realization by the exalted imagination, the holy thoughts, and the
faithful patient work of a mere woman!

"This--" he said, in hushed accents--"This must be the cause of the
dastardly attempt made to murder the child! Some one who knew her
secret,--some one who was aware of the wonderful power and magnificence
of her work,--perhaps the very man who made the frame for it,--who can
tell?"

Prince Pietro meditated deeply, a frown puckering his brows,--his
countenance was still pale and drawn with the stress of the mingled
agony and relief he had just passed through, and the anxiety he felt
concerning Angela's immediate critical condition.

"I cannot hold the position yet!--" he said, at last--"That is to say,
I am too numb and stricken with fear to realize what has happened! See
you! That picture is marvellous!--a wonder of the world!--it will crown
my girl with all the laurels of a lasting fame,--but what matter is it
to me,--this shouting of the public,--if she dies? Will it console me
for her loss, to call her a Raffaelle?"

"Nay, but we must not give up hope!"--said the Cardinal
soothingly--"Please God, you will not lose her! Be glad that she is not
dead,--and remember that it is almost by a miracle that she lives!"

"That is true--that is true!" murmured old Sovrani, ruffling his white
hair with one hand, while he still stared abstractedly at his
daughter's picture--"You are very patient with me, brother!--you have
all the kindness as well as all the faithfulness of your sister,--the
sweetest woman the sun was ever privileged to shine on! Well, well!
What did you say to me? That this picture must have been the cause of
the attempted murder? Maybe,--but the poor hard-working fellow who made
the frame for it, could not have done such a deed,--he has been a
pensioner of Angela's for many a long day, and she has given him
employment when he could not obtain it from others. Besides, he never
saw the picture. Angela gave him her measurements, and when the frame
was finished he brought it to her here. But he had nothing whatever to
do with setting the canvas in it,--that I know, for Angela herself told
me. No, no!--let us not blame the innocent; rather let us try to find
the guilty."

At that moment a servant entered with a large and exquisitely arranged
basket of lilies-of-the-valley, and a letter.

"For Donna Sovrani," he said, as he handed both to his master.

The Prince took the basket of lilies, and moved by a sudden fancy, set
it gently in front of Angela's great work. Glancing at the
superscription of the letter, he said,--

"From Varillo. I had better open it and see what he says."

He broke the seal and read the following:

"SWEETEST ANGELA,--I am summoned to Naples on business, and therefore,
to my infinite regret, shall not be able to see the great picture
to-morrow. You know,--you can feel how sorry I am to disappoint both
you and myself in a pleasure which we have so long lovingly
anticipated, but as the Queen has promised to make her visit of
inspection, I dare not ask you to put off the exhibition of your work
till my return. But I know I shall come back to find my Angela crowned
with glory, and it will be reserved for me to add the last laurel leaf
to the immortal wreath! I am grieved that I have no time to come and
press my 'addio' on your sweet lips,--but in two or three days at most,
I shall be again at your feet. Un bacio di

FLORIAN."

"Then he has left for Naples?" said Bonpre, to whom Prince Pietro had
read this letter--"A sudden departure, is it not?"

"Very sudden!"

"He will not know what has happened to Angela--"

"Oh he will be sure to hear that!" said the Prince--"To-night it will
be in all the newspapers both of Rome and Naples. Angela's light cannot
be hidden under a bushel!"

"True. Then of course he will return at once."

"Naturally. If he hears the news on his way, he will probably be back
to-night--" said Sovrani, but his fuzzy brows were still puckered. Some
uncomfortable thought seemed to trouble him,--and presently, as if
moved by a sudden inexplicable instinct, he took the basket of lilies
away from where he had set it in front of his daughter's picture, and
transferred it to a side-table. Cardinal Bonpre, always observant,
noticed his action.

"You will not leave the flowers there?" he queried.

"No. The picture is a sacred thing!--it is an almost living Christ!--in
whom Varillo does not believe!"

The Cardinal lifted his eyes protestingly.

"Yet you let the child marry him?"

Sovrani passed one hand wearily across his brows.

"Let us not talk of marriage," he said--"Death is nearer to us to-day
than life! I am opposed to the match--I always have been,--and who
knows--who knows what may not yet prevent it--" He paused,
thinking,--then turning a solicitous glance on his brother-in-law's
frail figure he said--"Felix, you look weary,--let me attend you to
your own rooms, that you may rest. We need you with us,--it may be that
we shall need you more than we have ever done! Pray for us,
brother!--Pray for my Angela, that she may be spared--"

His harsh voice broke,--and tears trickled down his furrowed cheeks.

"See you!" he said, pointing in a kind of despair to the magnificent
"Coming of Christ"--"If Raffaelle or Angelo had dared to paint this in
their day, the world would be taking a lesson from it now! If it were a
modern man's work, that man would be a centre for hero-worship! But
that a WOMAN should create such a masterpiece!--and that woman my
Angela! Do you know what it means, Felix?--what Fame always means, what
it always must mean--for a woman? Just what has already happened,--the
murderous dagger-thrust--the coward stab in the back--and the little
child's cry of the tender broken heart we heard just now--'Stay with
me!--I am so tired!'"

The Cardinal pressed his hand sympathetically, too profoundly moved
himself to speak.

"This picture will bring down the thunders of the Vatican!--" went on
Sovrani--"And those thunders will awaken a responsive echo from the
world! But not from the Old World--the New! The New World!--yes--my
Angela's work is for the living present, the coming future--not for the
decayed Past!"

As he spoke, he dropped the silken curtain before the picture and hid
it from view.

"We will raise it again when the painter lives--or dies!" he said
brokenly.

They left the studio, Prince Pietro extinguishing the lights, and
giving orders to his servant to put a strong bar across the door they
had forced open,--and the Cardinal, feeling more lonely than he had
done for many days, owing to the temporary absence of Manuel who was
keeping watch over Angela, returned to his own apartments full of grave
thoughts and anxious trouble. He had meant to leave Rome at once,--but
now, such a course seemed more than impossible. Yet he knew that the
scene which had, through himself indirectly, occurred at the Vatican,
would have its speedy results in some decisive and vengeful action, if
not on the part of the Supreme Pontiff, then through his ministers and
advisers, and Bonpre was sufficiently acquainted with the secret ways
of the Church he served, to be well aware of its relentlessness in all
cases where its authority was called into question. The first step
taken, so he instinctively felt, would be to deprive him of Manuel's
companionship,--the next perhaps, to threaten him with the loss of his
own diocese. He sighed heavily,--yet in his own tranquil and pious mind
he could not say that he resented the position his affairs had taken.
Accustomed as he was always, to submit the whole daily course of his
life to the ruling of a Higher Power, he was framed and braced as
temperately for adversity as for joy,--and nothing seemed to him either
fortunate or disastrous except as concerned the attitude in which the
soul received the announcement of God's will. To resent affliction was,
in his opinion, sinful; to accept it reverently and humbly as a means
of grace, and endeavour to make sweetness out of the seeming bitterness
of the divine dispensation, appeared to him the only right and natural
way of duty,--hence his clear simplicity of thought, his patience,
plain faith, and purity of aim. And even now, perplexed and pained as
he was, much more for the sorrow which had befallen his brother-in-law,
than for any trouble likely to occur personally to himself, he was
still able to disentangle his thoughts from all earthly cares--to lift
up his heart, unsullied by complaint, to the Ruler of all
destinies--and to resign himself with that Christian philosophy, which
when truly practised, is so much more powerful than all the splendid
stoicism of the heroic pagans, to those

           "Glorious God-influences,
    Which we, unseeing, feel and grope for blindly,
    Like children in the dark, knowing that Love is near!"

Meanwhile Prince Pietro, moved by conflicting sentiments and
forebodings which he was unable to explain to himself, and only
strongly conscious of the desire to be avenged on his daughter's
cowardly assailant, whoever it might be, muffled himself in a well-worn
"Almaviva" cloak, his favourite out-door garment, pulled his hat down
over his eyes, and so, looking like a fierce old brigand of the
mountains, went out, not quite knowing why he went, but partly impelled
by a sense of curiosity. He wanted to hear something,--to find
something,--and yet he could not agree with himself as to the nature of
the circumstance he sought to discover. There was a lurking suspicion
in his mind to which he would not give a name,--a dark thought that
made him tremble with mingled rage and horror,--but he put it away from
him as a hint offered by the Evil One--an insidious suggestion as
hideous as it was unnatural. The afternoon had now closed into night,
and many stars were glistening bravely in the purple depths of the
clear sky,--the air was mild and balmy,--and as he crossed the road to
turn down the little side street leading to the Tiber, where Florian
Varillo had stood but a few hours previously, a flower-girl met him
with a large basket of white hyacinths and held them up to his eyes.

"Ecco la primavera, Signor!" she said, with a smile.

He shook his head, and turned abruptly away,--as he did so, his foot
struck against some slight obstacle. Stooping to examine it, he saw it
was the empty leathern sheath of a dagger. He picked it up, and studied
it intently. It was elaborately adorned with old rococco work, and was
evidently the ornamental covering of one of those small but deadly
weapons which Italians, both men and women, so often wear concealed
about their persons, for the purpose of taking vengeance, when deemed
necessary, on an unsuspecting enemy. Slipping the thing into his
pocket, the Prince looked about him, and soon recognised his
bearings,--he was standing about six yards away from the private
back-entrance to his daughter's studio. He walked up to the door and
tried it,--it was fast locked.

"Yes--I remember!--the servants told me--both doors were locked,--and
from this they said the key was gone,--" he muttered, then paused.

Presently, actuated by a sudden impulse, he turned and walked swiftly
with long impatient strides through the more populated quarters of Rome
towards the Corso, and he had not proceeded very far in this direction
before he heard a frenzied and discordant shouting which, though he
knew it did not yet bear the truth in its harsh refrain, yet staggered
him and made his heart almost stand still with an agony of premonitory
fear.

   "Morte di Angela Sovrani!"
   "Assassinamento di Angela Sovrani!"
   "Morte subito di Angela Sovrani!"
   "Assassinamento crudele della bella Sovrani!"

Prince Pietro held his breath in sharp pain, listening. How horrible
was the persistent cry of the newsvendors!--hoarse and shrill--now
near--now far!--

   "Morte di Angela Sovrani!"

How horrible!--how horrible! He put his hands to his ears to try and
shut out the din. He had not expected any public outcry--not so
soon--but ill news travels fast, and no doubt the very servants of his
own household were responsible for having, in the extremity of their
terror, given away the report of Angela's death. The terrible shouts
were like so many cruel blows on his brain,--yet--half-reeling with the
shock of them, he still went on his way,--straight on to the house and
studio of Florian Varillo. There, he rang the bell loudly and
impatiently. A servant opened the door in haste, and stared aghast at
the tall old man with the white hair and blazing eyes, who was wrapped
in a dark cloak, the very folds of which seemed to tremble with the
suppressed rage of the form it enveloped.

"Il Principe Souvrani!" he stammered feebly, falling back a little from
the threshold.

"Where is your master?" demanded Sovrani.

"Eccellenza, he has gone to Naples!"

"When did he leave?"

"But two hours ago, Eccellenza!"

Prince Pietro held up the dagger-sheath he had just found.

"This--belongs--to--him--does it not?" he asked slowly, detaching his
words with careful directness.

The man answered readily and at once.

"Yes, Eccellenza!"

Sovrani uttered a terrible oath.

"Let me pass!"

The servant made a gesture of protest.

"But--Eccellenza--my master is not here! . . ."

Prince Pietro paying no heed to him, strode into the house, and
brusquely threw open the door of a room which he knew to be Varillo's
own specially private retreat. A woman with a mass of bright
orange-gold hair, half-dressed in a tawdry blue peignoir trimmed with
cheap lace, was sprawling lazily on a sofa smoking a cigarette. She
sprang up surprised and indignant,--but shrank back visibly as she
recognised the intruder, and met the steady tigerish glare of the old
man's eyes.

"Where is your lover?" he asked.

"Eccellensa! You amaze--you insult me--!"

"Basta!" and Sovrani came a step nearer to her, his wrath seeming to
literally encompass him like a thunder-cloud--"Play me no tricks! This
is not the time for lying! I repeat my question--where is he? You, the
companion of his closest thoughts,--you, his 'model'--you, Mademoiselle
Pon-Pon, his mistress--you must know all his movements. Tell me then,
where he is--or by heaven, if you do not, I will have you arrested for
complicity in murder!"

She fell back from him trembling, her full red mouth half open,--and
her face paling with terror.

"Murder!" she whispered--"Dio mio! Dio mio!"

"Yes--murder!" and the Prince thrust before her wide-opened eyes the
dagger-sheath he held--"What! Have you not heard? Not yet? Not though
the whole city rings with the news? What news? That Angela Sovrani is
dead! That she--my daughter--the sweetest, purest, most innocent and
loving of women as well as the greatest and most gifted--has been
mortally stabbed in her own studio this very day by some cowardly fiend
unknown! Unknown did I say? Not so--known! This sheath belongs to
Florian Varillo. Where is he? Tell me at once--if only to save YOURSELF
trouble!"

Overcome by fear, and to do her justice, horror as well, the miserable
Pon-Pon threw herself on her knees.

"I swear he has gone to Naples!" she cried--"On my word!--as I live!--I
swear it!--he has gone! He seemed as usual,--he was not in any
haste--he left no message--he said he would be back in two or three
days--he sent flowers to la Donna Sovrani--he wrote to her
 . . . O Santissima Virgine! . . . I swear to you I know nothing!"

The Prince eyed her with grim attention.

"They are shouting it in the streets--" he said--"Listen!" He held up
one hand,--she cowered on the floor--she could hear nothing, and she
stared at him in fascinated terror--"They are telling all Rome of the
death of my child! First Rome--and then--the world! The world shall
hear of it! For there is only one Angela Sovrani,--and earth and heaven
cry out for justice in her name! Tell this to the devil who has bought
you for his pleasure! I leave the message with you,--tell him that when
the world clamours for vengeance upon her murderer, I KNOW WHERE TO
FIND HIM!"

With that, he put the dagger-sheath back in his breastpocket with
jealous care, and left her where she crouched, shivering and moaning.
Walking as in a dream he brushed past the astonished and frightened
servant unseeingly, and went out of the house into the street once
more. There he paused dizzily,--the stars appeared to rock in the sky,
and the houses seemed moving slowly round him in a sort of circular
procession. The shouting of the newsvendors which had ceased for a
while, began again with even louder persistency.

"Morte di Angela Sovrani!"

"La bella Sovrani!--Assassinamento crudele!"

The old man's heart beat in strong hammer-strokes,--he listened
vaguely,--his tall figure shaking a little with the storm pent-up
within him, till all at once as if the full realization of the position
had only just burst upon him, he uttered a sharp cry--

"Her lover! Her promised husband! One whom she trusted and loved more
than her own father! The hope of her life!--the man whose praise was
sweeter to her than the plaudits of the whole world!--he--even he--her
MURDERER! For even if she lives in body, he has murdered her soul!"

He looked up at the deep starlit heavens, his dark face growing livid
in the intensity of his wrath and pain.

"May God curse him!" he whispered thickly--"May all evil track his
footsteps, and the terrors of a cursed conscience hound him to his
death! May he never know peace by day or night!--may the devils in his
own soul destroy him! God curse him!"

He clenched his fist and raised it threateningly,--and gathering his
cloak about him tried to walk on,--but there was a black mist before
his eyes . . . he could not see--he stumbled forward blindly, and would
have fallen, had not a strong arm caught him and held him upright. He
turned a dazed and wondering look on the man whose friendly grasp
supported him,--then, with an exclamation, made a trembling attempt to
raise his hat.

"Il Re!" he murmured feebly--"Il Re!"

King Humbert--for it was he--held him still more closely.

"Courage, amico!" he said kindly--"Courage!--yes--yes!--I know--I have
heard the news! All Italy will give you vengeance for your child! We
will spare no pains to discover her murderer. But now--you are ill--you
are weary--do not try to speak--come with me! Let me take you
home--come!"

A great sob broke from the old man's breast as he yielded to his
Sovereign's imperative yet gentle guidance, and before he could realize
the situation, he was in the King's own carriage, with the King beside
him, being rapidly driven back to his own house. Arrived at the Palazzo
Sovrani, a strange sight greeted them. The great porte-cochere was wide
open, and, pressing through it, and surrounding the stately building at
every point was a vast crowd,--densely packed and almost absolutely
silent. Quite up to the inner portico these waiting thousands
pressed,--though, as they recognised the Royal liveries, they did their
best to make immediate way, and a low murmur arose "Evviva il Re!" But
there was no loud shouting, and the continued hush was more distinctly
recognisable than the murmur. Prince Sovrani gazed bewilderedly at the
great throng as the carriage moved slowly through, and putting his hand
to his head murmured--

"What--what is this! I do not understand--why are these people here?"

The King pressed his hand.

"All the world honours and loves your daughter, my friend!" he said,
"And Rome, the Mother of Nations, mourns the loss of her youngest child
of genius."

"No--no, not loss!--she is not dead--" began Sovrani stammeringly,--"I
should have told your Majesty--she is grievously wounded--but not dead
. . ."

At that moment the carriage stopped. The door of the Sovrani palace was
open, and in the centre of a group of people that had gathered within,
among whom were Aubrey Leigh, Sylvie Hermenstein, and the Princesse
D'Agramont, stood Cardinal Bonpre and Manuel. Manuel was a little in
advance of the rest, and as the King and Prince Sovrani alighted, he
came fully forward, his eyes shining, and a smile upon his lips.

"She will recover!" he said, "She is sleeping peacefully,--and all is
well!" His voice rang clear and sweet, and was heard by everyone on the
outskirts of the crowd. The good news ran from mouth to mouth, till all
the people caught it up and responded with one brief, subdued, but
hearty cheer. Then, without bidding, they began to disperse, and the
King, baring his head in the presence of Cardinal Bonpre, gave up his
self-imposed charge of old Sovrani, who, faint and feeble, grasped
Aubrey Leigh's quickly proffered arm, and leaned heavily upon it.

"He needs care," said Humbert gently,--"The shock has moved him
greatly!"

"Your Majesty is ever considerate of the sorrows of others," said the
venerable Felix with emotion, "And God will bless you as He blesses all
good men!"

The King bowed reverently to the benediction. Then he looked up with a
slight smile.

"It is not wise of your Eminence to say so,--in Rome!" he
observed,--"But I thank you, and am grateful!"

His keen eyes rested for a moment on Manuel,--and the fair aspect of
the boy seemed to move him to a sense of wonder--but he did not speak.
With a light salute to all present he re-entered his carriage and was
driven away--and Aubrey Leigh led Prince Sovrani into his own library
where, when he was seated, they all waited upon him eagerly, the fair
Sylvie chafing his cold hands, and the Princesse D'Agramont practically
making him drink a glass of good wine. Gradually, warmth and colour and
animation came back to his pale features,--his fears were soothed,--his
heart relieved, and a smile crossed his lips as he met Sylvie's
earnest, anxious eyes.

"What a pretty rosebud it is!" he said softly,--"Full of sunshine--and
love!"

With returning strength he gathered up the forces of his native pride
and independence and rose from his chair.

"I am well--quite well again now!" he said, "Where is the boy, Manuel?"

"Gone back to Angela," replied the Cardinal, "He said he would watch
her until she wakes."

"An angel watching an angel!" then said the Prince musingly, "That is
as it should be!" He paused a moment, "The King was very kind. And you,
Princesse--and you, bella Contessina!" and he courteously bent over
Sylvie's little hand and kissed it,--"You are all much too good to an
old man like me! I am strong again--I shall be ready to speak--when
Angela bids. But I must wait. I must wait!" He ruffled his white hair
with one hand and looked at them all very strangely. "That was a great
crowd outside--all waiting to hear news of my girl! If--if they knew
who it was that stabbed her--"

"Do you know?" cried Aubrey quickly.

"Per Dio!" And Sovrani smiled, "I thought Englishmen were phlegmatic,
and here is one ablaze, and ready to burst like a bomb! No!--I did not
say I knew!--but I say, if the crowd had known, they would have lynched
him! Yes, they would have torn him to pieces!
 . . . and he would have deserved it! He will deserve it!--If he is ever
found! Come--we will all sup here together this evening--sorrow
strengthens the bonds of friendship . . . and I will tell you . . ."

He paused, and again the strange far-off look came into his eyes.

"I will tell you--" he went on slowly--"how I found my Angela lying
dead, as I thought--dead at the feet of Christ!"



XXXI.

Meanwhile Florian Varillo had not gone to Naples. He had been turned
back by a spectre evoked from his own conscience--coward fear. He was
on his way to the station when he suddenly discovered that he had lost
the sheath of his dagger. A cold perspiration broke out on his forehead
as this fact flashed upon him. What had he done with it? Surely he had
drawn the weapon out and left the sheath in his breast pocket as
usual--but no!--search as he would, he could not find it. It must have
dropped on the floor of Angela's studio! If that were so, he would be
traced!--most surely traced--as the sheath was of curious and uncommon
workmanship, and many of his friends had seen it. He had told everybody
he was going to Naples, and of course he would be followed there. Then,
he would not go! But he went to the station as if bent on the journey,
and took a ticket for Naples. Then, setting down his portmanteau on a
bench, he surreptitiously tore off the label on which his name was
written, and tearing it up in small bits scattered the fragments on the
line. After this, he walked away leisurely, leaving the portmanteau
behind him for there was nothing in it by which he could be traced, and
sauntered slowly out of the station into the streets of Rome once more.
Hailing the first fiacre he saw, he told the driver to take him to
Frascati. The man was either lazy or sulky.

"Why not take the train, Signor?"

"Because I wish to drive!" replied Varillo. "What is your fare?"

"Twenty-five francs for half the way!" said the man, showing his white
teeth in a mischievous grin.

"Good!"

The driver was surprised, as he had not thought his terms would be
accepted. But he made no further demur, and Varillo jumped into the
vehicle, his teeth chattering with an inward terror he could not
control. "Drive quickly!" he said.

The man shouted an affirmative, and they clattered away through the
streets, Varillo shrinking back in the carriage overcome by panic. What
a fool he had been!--what a fool! He ought to have told Pon-Pon. If the
dagger-sheath were found and taken to his residence, it would be
recognised instantly! And all Rome would rise against Angela Sovrani's
murderer. Murderer! Yes,--that was what he had chosen to make of
himself!

"It was all an impulse," he muttered,--"Just a hot impulse, nothing
more! Just a sudden hatred of her which made me stab her! It was enough
to make any man angry to see such a picture as that painted by a woman!
Her fame would have ruined mine! But I never meant to kill her--no--no,
I never meant to kill her!"

Shuddering and whimpering, he huddled himself in a corner of the
carriage, and did not dare to look out of the window to see which way
he was being driven. He only rallied a little when the wheels moved
more quietly and smoothly, and he knew that he was on the open road,
and out of Rome. Suddenly, after jolting along a considerable time, the
vehicle stopped, and the driver shouted to him. Varillo dashed down the
window and put his head out, almost beside himself with rage.

"What are you stopping for! What are you stopping for!" he yelled. "Go
on--go on--we are not half way to Frascati yet! Go on, I tell you!"

"Ma-che! Eccellenza, I only stopped to ask a question!"

"What question--what? Is this a time for asking questions?" cried
Varillo,--"The night is falling,--I want to get on!"

"But we are going on as fast as we can!" expostulated the driver,--"It
is only this--there is an albergo on the way--where we can get food and
wine. Would the Eccellenza like to stop there? It is as far as I can
go, for I am wanted to-night in Rome."

"Very well--stop where you like--only get on now!" said Varillo,
pulling his head in with a jerk. And sinking back in his seat again he
wiped his hot face and cursed his miserable destiny. It would have been
all right if he had only remembered that sheath! No one would have got
on such a track of suspicion as that he, the lover and affianced
husband of Angela, was her brutal assassin!

"I wrote a loving letter and sent her flowers," he argued with himself,
"when I knew she would be dead! But her father would have got them, and
he would have wired to me in Naples, and I should have come back
overcome with sorrow,--and then I should have told them all how the
picture was a secret between my Angela and myself,--how _I_ had painted
the greater part of it, and how she in her sweetness had wished me to
surprise the world,--the plan was perfect, but it is all
spoiled!--spoiled utterly through that stupid blunder of the sheath!"

Such a trifle! It seemed to him incredible--unjust--that so slight a
thing could intervene between him and the complete success of his
meditated treachery. For notwithstanding the fact that he had been a
great reader and student of books, he now, in this particular hour of
his own emergency, completely forgot what all the most astute and
learned writers have always expounded to an inattentive world--namely,
the fact that crime holds within itself the seed of punishment.
Sometimes that seed ripens quickly,--sometimes it takes years to
grow,--but it is always there. And it generally takes root in a mere,
slight circumstance, so very commonplace and casual as to entirely
escape the notice of the criminal, till the network of destiny is woven
so closely about him that he can no longer avoid it,--and then he is
shown from what a trifling cause the whole result has sprung. Varillo's
present state of mind was one of absolute torture, for he felt that
whoever found the sheath of his dagger would at once recognise it and
declare the owner. If Angela had only been wounded,--if SHE had found
it--she would never have given up the name of its possessor,--the
miserable man knew her straight, pure soul intimately enough for that!

"If she heard, she would shield me and defend me at the cost of her own
life!" he said--"She was always like that! SHE would never listen to
anything that was said against me,--and if she lived, she would love me
still, and never say that I had tried to kill her!" and he actually
smiled at the thought. "How strangely some women are
constituted!--especially women like Angela, who set up an exalted
standard of life, and accommodate their daily conduct to it! They are
sublime fools!--and so useful to men! We can do anything we like with
them. We can ruin them--and they bear their shame in silence. We can
laugh away their reputations over a game at billiards, and they are too
pure and proud to even attempt to defend themselves. We can vilify
whatever work they do, and they endure the slander,--we can murder
them--" he paused," Yes, we can murder them, and they die, without so
much as leaving a curse behind them!
Extraordinary!--angelic--superb!--and a wise Fate has ordained that we
men shall never sacrifice ourselves for SUCH women, or go mad for the
love of them! We love the virago better than the saint; we are afraid
of the woman who nags at us and gives us trouble--who screams vengeance
upon us if we neglect her in a trifle--who clamours for our money, and
insists on our gifts--and who keeps our lives in a perpetual fever of
excitement and terror. But the innocent woman we hate--very naturally!
Her looks are a reproach to us, and we like to kill her when we
can--and we often succeed morally,--but THAT is not called murder. The
other way of killing is judged as a crime--and--then--the punishment is
death!"

As this word passed his lips in a whisper, he trembled violently.
Death! It had a chill sound--yet he had not thought so when he
associated it with Angela. For of course Angela was dead. Was she not?
Surely she must be--he had driven the dagger straight home!

"She could not possibly live," he muttered--"Not after such a well
directed blow. And that amazing picture! If I could but claim it as my
work, I should be the greatest artist in the world! It would be quite
easy to make out a proof--only that cursed dagger-sheath is in the way!"

He was startled out of his reverie by another stoppage of the carriage,
and this time the driver jumped down from his box and came to the door.

"This is as far as I can take you, Signor," he said, looking curiously
at his passenger,--"It is quite half way to Frascati. There is the inn
I told you of--where those lights are," and he pointed towards the
left,--"The carriage road does not go up to it. It is a great place for
artists!"

"I am not an artist!" said Varillo brusquely.

"No? But artists are merry company, Eccellenza!--" suggested the
driver, wishing to make up for his previous sulkiness by an excess of
amiability--"And for a night, the albergo is a pleasant resting place
on the way to Frascati, for even the brigands who sup there are
good-natured!"

"Ah! There are brigands, are there?" said Varillo, getting out of the
fiacre and beginning to recover something of his usual composure,--"And
I daresay you are one of them if the truth were known! Here is your
money." And he gave the man two gold pieces, one of twenty francs, the
other of ten.

"Eccellenza, I have no change--"

"I want none!" said Varillo airily,--"You asked twenty-five
francs--there are thirty. And now--as you say you have business in
Rome, be off with you!"

The man needed no second bidding; delighted with his thirty francs, he
called a gay "Buona notte, Signor!" and turning his horse's head jogged
down the road at a tolerably smart pace. The horse knew as well as the
driver, that the way now lay homeward, and lost no time. Varillo, left
to himself, paused a moment and looked about him. The Campagna! How he
hated it! Should he pass the night at that albergo, or walk on? He
hesitated a little--then made for the inn direct. It was a bright, cosy
little place enough, and the padrona, a cheery, dark-eyed woman seated
behind the counter, bade him smiling welcome.

Lodging--oh yes! she said, there was a charming room at the Signor's
disposal, with a view from the windows which in the early morning was
superb! The Signor was an artist?

"No!" said Varillo, almost fiercely--"I am a tourist--travelling for
pleasure!"

Ah! Then the view would enchant the Signor, because it would be quite
new to him! The room should be prepared at once! Would the Signor take
supper?

Yes,--the Signor would take supper. And the Signor went and sat in a
remote corner of the common-room, with a newspaper of a week old,
pretending to read its contents. And supper was soon served to him,--a
tasty meal enough, flavoured with excellent wine,--and while he was
drinking his third glass of it, a man entered, tall and
broad-shouldered, wrapped in a heavy cloak, which he only partially
loosened as he leaned against the counter and asked for a cup of
coffee. But as he caught sight of the dark face, Varillo shrank back
into his corner, and put up his newspaper to shield himself from
view,--for he saw that the new-comer was no other than Monsignor
Gherardi. His appearance seemed to create a certain amount of
excitement and vague alarm in the little inn; the padrona evidently
knew him well, and hastened to serve him herself with the coffee he
asked for.

"Will you not sit down, Eccellentissima?" she murmured deferentially.

"No, I am in haste!" replied Gherardi, glancing carelessly about
him--"My carriage waits outside. There is strange news in Rome
to-night! The famous artist, Angela Sovrani, has been found in her
studio, murdered!"

The padrona uttered a little cry.

"Murdered!"

"So it seems! Here are the papers from which they cry the news. I will
leave them with you. It is perhaps the judgment of Heaven on the
Sovrani's uncle, Cardinal Bonpre!"

The mistress of the inn crossed herself devoutly.

"Guiosto cielo!--Would Heaven punish a Cardinal?"

"Certainly! If a Cardinal is a heretic!"

The stout padrona clasped her hands and shuddered.

"Not possible!"

"Quite possible!" And Gherardi drained his coffee-cup. "And when so
great a personage of the Church is a renegade, he incurs two
punishments--the punishment of God and the punishment of the Church!
The one comes first--the other comes--afterwards! Buena notte!"

And throwing down the money for his refreshment, Gherardi cast another
glance around him, muffled himself up in his coat and went out into the
night. Florian Varillo breathed again. But he was not left in peace for
long. The padrona summoned her husband from the kitchen where he
performed the offices of cook, to read the halfpenny sheets of news her
visitor had left with her.

"Look you!" she said in a low voice, "The wicked Monsignor who has
thee, my poor Paolo, in his clutches for debt, has just passed by and
left evil tidings!--that beautiful girl who painted the famous pictures
in Rome, has been murdered! Do you not remember seeing her once with
her father at Frascati?"

Paolo, a round-faced, timid-looking little Piedmontese, nodded
emphatically.

"That do I!" he answered--"Fair as an angel--kind-hearted too,--and
they told me she was a wonder of the world. Che, che! Murdered! And who
could have murdered her? Someone jealous of her fame! Poor thing--she
is engaged to be married too, to another artist named Florian Varillo.
Gran Dio! He will die of this misery!" And they bent their heads over
the paper together and read the brief announcement headed
"Assassinamento di Angela Sovrani!"

A sudden crash startled them. Varillo had sprung up from his table in
haste and overset his glass. It fell, shivering to atoms on the floor.

"Pardon!" he exclaimed, laughing forcedly,--"A thousand apologies! My
hand slipped--it was an accident--"

"Do not trouble yourself, Signor," said the landlord, Paolo, cautiously
going down on his fat knees to pick up the fragments--"It was an
accident as you say. And truly one's nerves get shaken nowadays by all
the strange things one is always hearing! Myself, I tremble to think of
the murder of the Sovrani--the poor girl was so innocent of evil--and
see you!--we might all be murdered in our beds with such villains about
. . ."

He broke off, surprised at the angry oath Varillo uttered.

"Per Dio! Can you not talk of something else?" he said
hoarsely,--"There is a murder nearly every day in Rome!"

Without waiting for a reply he hastily strode out of the inn, banging
the door behind him. He had engaged his room there for the
night--true!--but--after all this foolish gabble he resolved he would
not go back. They would still talk of murder, if he did! Murder was in
the air! Murder seemed written in letters of fire against the clear sky
now luminous with the moon and stars! He was in a fever and a fury--he
walked on and on, little heeding where he went. What the devil had
brought Gherardi to that particular inn at that particular time of
night? He could not imagine. For though he knew most scandals in Rome,
the scandal of the priest's "villa d'amour" at Frascati, was a secret
too closely guarded for anyone save the sharpest of professional
detectives to discover, and he was totally ignorant of it. He wondered
restlessly whether the crafty Vatican spy had seen him while pretending
not to see? If that were so, then he was lost! He could not satisfy
himself as to whether he had really escaped observation, and tormented
by this reflection he walked on and on, the burning impetus of his
thoughts hastening his footsteps. A cold wind began to rise,--a chill,
damp breath of the Campagna, bringing malaria with it. He felt heated
and giddy, and there was a curious sense of fulness in his veins which
oppressed him and made him uncertain of his movements. Presently he
stopped, and stood gazing vaguely from left to right. He was surely not
on the road to Frascati? There was a tall shadowy building not far from
him, surrounded with eucalyptus trees--he tried to locate it, but
somehow though, as a native of Rome and an artist, he was familiar with
most of the Campagna, he did not recognise this part of it. How bright
the stars were! Living points of fire flashing in dense purple!--one
could never paint them! The golden round of the moon spreading wide
reflections on the road, seemed to his excited mind like a magic ring
environing him, drawing him in, pointing him out as the one criminal
for whom all the world was seeking. He had no idea of the time,--his
watch had stopped. He began to count up hours. He remembered that when
he had gone to see Angela, it was about four o'clock. He had known
perfectly well that she was alone, for he had seen the Cardinal drive
past him in the streets on the way to the Vatican, and he had heard at
his "Cercolo" or club, that Prince Sovrani had gone out of Rome for a
few hours. And, thus informed, he had timed his visit to Angela well.
Then, had he meant to kill her? No. He was quite certain that he never
had had any such intention. Then what had been his purpose? First, to
see her picture, and then to condemn it. Not harshly, but gently--with
the chill toleration and faint commiseration of the critic who pretends
to judge everything. He knew--none better--the glowing ardour and
enthusiasm of the genius which was as much a part of Angela as colour
is part of a rose,--his intention had been to freeze all that warmth
with a few apparently kind words. For he had never thought it possible
that she,--a mere woman,--could evolve from her own brain and hand,
such a poetic, spiritual and magnificent conception as "The Coming of
Christ." And when he saw what she had done, he bitterly envied her her
power,--he realized the weakness of his own efforts as compared with
her victorious achievement, and he hated her accordingly, as all men
hate the woman who is intellectually superior to themselves. After all,
there was no way out of it, but the way he had chosen,--to kill her and
make an end! To kill her and make an end! He muttered these words over
and over to himself, as he stood irresolutely watching the broad
patterns of the moonlight, and thinking confusedly about the time.
Yes,--it was four o'clock when he went to Angela's studio,--it must
have been five, or past that hour when he left it,--when he slunk down
the side-street which led to the river, and threw the key and his
dagger together into the muddy tide. After that he had gone home,--and
had superintended his valet, while that individual packed his
portmanteau for Naples--and then--and then? Yes,--then he had written
to Angela,--one of the pretty gracious little notes she was accustomed
to receive from him,--how strange it was to write to a dead girl!--and
he had gone out to the nearest florist's shop, and chosen a basket of
lilies to send to her,--lilies were for dead maidens always,--and he
had sent the flowers and his love letter together. Then surely it must
have been about half-past six? He tried to fix the hour, but could not,
and again his thoughts went rambling on. After sending the lilies, he
had returned to his own house, and Pon-Pon had prepared a "petit cafe"
for him, and he had partaken of it, and had smoked a couple of
cigarettes with her, and then had said a leisurely good-bye, and had
started for the railway-station en route for Naples. What train had he
intended to go by? The eight o'clock express. He remembered that. But
on the way, he had discovered that loss of the dagger-sheath,--an
unforeseen fatality that had turned him back, and brought him to where
he now stood meditating. How long did the driver of that fiacre he
hired, take to bring him to the wayside inn on the road to Frascati?
This he could not determine,--but to his uncertain memory it seemed to
have been an unusually tedious and tiresome journey. And now--here he
was--with no habitation in sight save the solitary building whose walls
loomed darkly through the eucalyptus trees. He went towards it after a
while, walking slowly and almost mechanically;--he was extremely tired,
and an oppressive sense of heat and weariness combined made him anxious
to obtain a night's lodging somewhere,--no matter in what sort of
place. Anything would be better than sleeping out on the Campagna, an
easy prey to the worst form of fever. As he approached more nearly to
the house among the trees, he saw that it was surrounded by a very
high, closely intertwisted iron railing,--and when he came within a few
paces of what appeared to be the entrance, he was startled by the
sudden heavy clang of a bell, which, striking through the still air,
created such harsh clamour that he instinctively shivered at the sound.
He paused,--and again the dismal boom crashed on his ears,--then as its
echo died away another deep monotone, steadily persistent, began to
stir the silence with words,--words, which to Florian Varillo in his
nervous excitation of mind sounded hellish and horrible.

   "Libera me Domine, de morte aeterna!"
   "In die ilia tremenda!"
   "Quando coeli movendi suntet terra!"
   "Dum veneris judicare saeculum per ignem!"

He listened, and a cold sweat broke out on his forehead. With that
strange weakness and effeminacy which often distinguishes the artistic,
and particularly the Italian artistic temperament, he was excessively
superstitious, and this unexpected chanting of a psalm of death seemed
to him at the moment, of supernatural and predetermined origin, devised
on purpose to intensify the growing terrors of his coward conscience.

   "Tremens factus sum ego!"
   "Et timeo, dum discussio venerit, atque venerit ira!"

Once more the great bell tolled heavily, and its discordant tone seemed
to tear his brain. He uttered an involuntary cry,--every weak impulse
in his soul was aroused,--and in the excess of a miserable self-pity he
longed to excuse himself for his crime of treachery and cruelty to the
innocent woman who loved him,--to throw the blame on someone else,--if
he could only find that someone else! Anything rather than own himself
to be the mean wretch and traitor that he was. For he was a cultured
and clever man,--a scholar,--an artist,--a poet;--these things were not
consistent with murder! A man who painted beautiful pictures,--a man
who wrote exquisite verses,--he could never be suspected of stabbing a
helpless trusting woman in the back out of sheer jealousy, like a
common hired assassin! No no! He could never be suspected! Why had he
not thought of his intellectual gifts,--his position in the world of
art, before? No one in their senses could possibly accuse him in the
way he had imagined!--and even if the dagger-sheath were found, some
explanation might be given,--someone else might be found guilty . . .

   "Quando coeli movendi sunt et terra;
    Dum veneris judicare saeculum per ignem!"

Again that horrible bell! Moved by a sudden desperate determination to
find out what this mysterious chanting was, and where it came from, he
braced himself up and walked resolutely and quickly on to a great
gateway, cross-barred and surmounted with tall spikes,--and there
seized by fresh panic, he clung to the grating for support and stared
through it affrightedly, his teeth chattering and his whole frame
shaking as with an ague fit. What were those dark terrible figures he
saw? Were they phantoms or men? Gaunt and black and tall, they swayed
to and fro, now bending, now rising, in the misty splendour of the
moonlight,--they were busy with the ground, digging it and casting out
shovels full of earth in heaps beside them. Each ghostly figure stood
by itself apart from its companions,--each one worked at its task
alone,--and only their voices mingled in harsh dismal unison as, with
the next stroke of the solemn bell, they chanted

   "Dies ilia dies irae,
    Calamitatis et miseriae!"

"No!" shrieked Varillo suddenly, shaking the gateway like an infuriated
madman--"What are you doing in there? Who told you to sing my mass or
prepare my grave? I am not ready, I tell you! Not ready! I have done
nothing to deserve death--nothing!--I have not been tried!--you must
wait--you must wait till you know all--you must wait! . . ."

His voice choked in utterance, and thrusting one hand through the
grating he made frantic gesticulations to the spectral figure nearest
him. It paused in its toil and lifted its head,--and from the dark
folds of a drooping cowl, two melancholy deep-set eyes glittered out
like the eyes of a famished beast. The other spectres paused also, but
only for a moment,--the bell boomed menacingly over their heads once
more, and again they dug and delved, and again they chanted in dreary
monotone--

   "Dies magna et amara valde,
    Dum veneris judicare!
    Libera nos Domine, de morte aeterna, in die illa tremenda!"

Wild with terror Varillo shook the gate more furiously than before.

"Stop I tell you!" he cried--"It is too soon! You are burying me before
my time. You have no proof against me--none! I am young,--full of life
and strength--the world loves me--wants me!--and I--I will not die!--no
I will not!--not yet! Not yet--I am not ready! Stop--stop! You do not
know what you are doing--stop! You are driving me mad with your
horrible singing!" And he shrieked aloud. "Mad, I tell you!--mad!"

For one hazy moment he saw some of the dark figures begin to move
towards him--he clutched at them--fought with them--tore at their
garments,--he would have killed them all, he thought, if the moonlight
had not come in between him and them, and shut him up in a cold silver
circle of ice from which he could not escape,--yet he went on
struggling and talking and shrieking, contending sometimes, as he
fancied, with swords and daggers, and trying to find his way through
strange storms of mingled fire and snow--till all at once some strong
invisible force swooped down upon him, lifted him up and carried him
away--and he remembered no more.



XXXII.

Away in Paris, a vast concourse of people were assembled round an open
grave in Pere-la-Chaise, wherein the plain coffin of the Abbe Vergniaud
had just been lowered. The day was misty and cold, and the sun shone
fitfully through the wreaths of thin vapour that hung over the city,
occasionally gleaming on the pale fine face of the famous "Gys
Grandit", who, standing at the edge of the grave spoke his oration over
the dead.

"To this, to this," he cried, "oh people of Paris, we all must come!
Our ambitions, our hopes, our dreams, our grand reforms, our loves and
joys end here, so far as this world is concerned! He whom we have just
laid in the earth was skilled in many devious ways of learning,--gifted
with eloquence, great in scholarship, quick with the tongue as with the
pen, he was a man whom perchance all France would have called famous
had it not been for me! I am the blot on my father's name! I am the sin
for which he has made the last expiation! People of Paris, for years he
lived and worked among you,--outwardly smiling, witty of speech and
popular with you all,--but inwardly a misery to himself in his own
conscience, because he knew his life was not what he professed it to
be. He knew that he did not believe what he asked YOU to accept as
true. He knew that he had guilt upon his soul,--he knew that all the
sins which none of you could guess at, God saw. For there is a God! Not
the God of the priests, but the God of the Universe and of man's
natural and spiritual instinct. He from whom nothing escapes,--He who
ordains where every drop of dew shall fall,--He whose omnipresent
vision perceives the flight of every small bird in the air and
predetermines the building of its nest, and the manner of its end,--He
is the God whom none can deceive. Those who dream they can play false
with Him are mistaken. This dead man, my father, living among you for
years, was contented for years to seem like you,--yes!--for you all
have something which you think you can cover up from the searching eye
of Fate; and many of you pretend to be what you are not,--while many
more wear the aspect of men over the souls of beasts. My father who
rests here to-day at our feet, was a priest of the Roman Church. In
that capacity he should have been clothed with sanctity. Human, yet
removed from common frailty. Yet reckless of his order, heedless of his
vows, he, priest as he was, turned libertine, and betrayed an innocent
woman. He destroyed her name--killed her honour--broke her heart!
Libertines of all classes from kings to commoners, do this kind of
thing every day, and deem it but a small fault of character.
Nevertheless it is a crime!--and for a crime there is always
punishment! For everything that is false,--for everything that is
mean,--for everything that is contemptible and cowardly, punishment
comes,--if not soon, then late. In this case vengeance was
forestalled,--for the sinner, repenting in time, took his vengeance on
himself. He confessed his sin before you all! That was brave! How many
of you here to-day would have such courage! How many of you would throw
off your cloaks of virtue and admit your vices?--or having admitted
them, try to amend them? But this is what my father did. And for this
he should be honoured! He told you all fully and frankly that his
professions of faith were false and vain and conventional; and that he
had seemed to you what he was not. Now the committal of a sin is one
thing,--but the frankly repentant confession of that sin is another.
Some of you will say--Who am I that I should judge my father? Why truly
I am nothing!--and should have been nothing but the avenger of my
mother's life and broken-hearted misery. For that I lived,--for that I
was ready to die! What a trivial object of existence it must seem to
you Parisians nowadays!--to avenge a mother's name! Much better to
fight a duel for some paltry dancer! Yes!--but I am not so constituted.
From my childhood I worked for two things--vengeance and ambition; I
put ambition second, for I would have sacrificed it all to the fiercer
passion. But when I sought to fulfil my vengeance, the man on whom I
would have taken it, himself changed it into respect, pity, admiration,
affection,--and I loved what I had so long hated! So even I, bent on
cruelty, learned to be kind. But not so the Church! The Church of Rome
cannot forgive the dead priest whom we have laid in all-forgiving
Mother Earth to-day! Had he lived, the sentence of excommunication
would have been pronounced against him,--now that he is dead, it is
quite possible it may still be pronounced against his memory. But what
of that? We who know, who feel, who think,--we are not led by the
Church of Rome, but by the Church of Christ! The two things are as
different as this grave differs from high Heaven! For we believe that
when Magdalen breaks a precious box of perfume at the feet of Christ
'she hath wrought a good work'. We also believe that when a man stands
'afar off', saying 'Lord, be merciful to me a sinner!' he goes back to
his house again justified more than he who says 'Lord, I thank Thee I
am not as other men!' We believe that Right is right, and that nothing
can make it wrong! And simply speaking, we know it is right to tell the
truth, and wrong to tell a lie. For a lie is opposed to the working
forces of Nature, and those forces sooner or later will attack it and
overcome it. They are beginning now in our swiftly advancing day, to
attack the Church of Rome. And why? Because its doctrine is no longer
that of Christ, but of Mammon! This is what my father felt and knew,
when he addressed his congregation for the last time in Notre Dame de
Lorette. He knew that he was doomed by disease to a speedy
death,--though he little guessed how soon that death would be. But
feeling the premonition of his end, he resolved to speak out,--not to
condone or excuse himself for having preached what he could not believe
all those years,--but merely to tell you how things were with him, and
to trust his memory to you to be dealt with as you choose. He has left
a book behind him,--a book full of great and noble thoughts expressed
with most pathetic humility; hence I doubt not that when you see the
better soul of him unveiled in his expressed mind, you will yet give
him the fame he merits. His Church judges him a heretic and castaway
for having confessed his sin at last to the people whom he so long
deceived,--but I for this, judge him as an honest man! And I have some
little right to my opinion, for as Gys Grandit I have sought to
proclaim the thoughts of many--"

He paused till the murmur of enthusiasm at mention of the name by which
he was known through France should have ceased. It rose on the air in a
sort of bee-like humming monotone, and then died away, while many
people stood on tip-toe and craned their necks eagerly over each
other's shoulders to catch a glimpse of the daring writer whose works
threatened to upset a greater power than any throne, the Roman Church.

"I have tried," he resumed quietly, "as I say, to proclaim the thoughts
of many! The people of France, like the peoples of many other nations,
are losing God in a cloud of priest-craft. Look up to this broad canopy
of heaven,--look up to yonder driving clouds heavy with rain, through
which the great sun gleams like a golden shield,--that is the temple of
the real God! That sparkling roof of air through which the planets roll
in their tremendous orbits, bends over the wise and the foolish, the
just and the unjust; the sun shines as kindly on the face of the street
outcast as on that of the great lady who is often more soiled in soul
than her miserable sister. The rich man can provide for himself no
finer quality of light than is vouchsafed to the poor. The flowers in
the field spring up as graciously under the feet of the beggar as the
king. The Church of the true God is Equality!--the altar, the
sacrament, the final resting-place of the dead, Equality! Your
revolutionary cry was and is still,--Liberty, Equality, and
Fraternity!--but when you shout those words, you know not what you are
calling for. Your demand is instinctive,--the cry of a child for its
parents. It is not for temporal things that you clamouras the foolish
imagine,--it is for eternal things! Liberty of thought,--Equality in
work--Fraternity in faith! But your political leaders, ever at work for
themselves, misread these words for you, even as your priests misread
Christ's Gospel. They make out for you that you want Liberty of
action--Equality of riches, Fraternity in position. These things are by
Nature's law, impossible. They are not wanted,--and reasonable
consideration will prove to you that you do not want them,--otherwise
you would be asking for a disordered universe, a chaos instead of a
world! The strong must always prevail,--but by strong, I do not mean
the strong liar or the strong evil-doer. No! For a lie contains in
itself the germ of rottenness which shall kill--and the evil-doer is
not strong but weak, because cowardly. There is no strength in fear; no
power in disease! Hence I repeat again, the strong must prevail--and by
the strong, I mean the Good! Evil is always weak,--it flourishes for a
day, a month, a year, or if you will, a thousand years, for a thousand
years are but a moment in the sight of Heaven; but for ever and ever
justice is done,--for ever and ever Right comes uppermost, and the
Strong which is God, than whom is none stronger, and who is all
Goodness--prevails! Liberty of thought should be the privilege of every
human creature, but we must never mistake it for Liberty of action.
Liberty of action is restrained by law in the world of nature, and must
be equally restrained in the world of men. But insist on Equality in
work! What do I mean by Equality in work? I mean this,--that every
man's work is entitled to consideration and respect, in every phase of
life. The road-mender works well and makes a smooth way for men and
horses;--he deserves my honour for his skill,--he has it,--he shall
have it,--for I know he can teach me many things of which I am
ignorant. The chief of the State works well,--organizes;--puts grave
matters in order and establishes necessary government--he also shall
have my respect,--he has it,--he deserves his carriage and pair as
fully as the road-mender deserves his dinner. We should not grudge or
envy either man the reward due to their separate positions. The
nightingale has a sweet voice,--the peacock screams--the one is plain
in colour, the other gorgeous,--and there is no actual equality; yet
the one bird does not grudge the other its position, inasmuch as though
there is no Equality there is Compensation. So it is with men. There is
always Compensation in every lot. So it should be; so it must be.
Equality in work means simply, respect for every kind of work done, and
contempt for none except for him who does no work at all! And lastly
the word 'Fraternity.' Glorious word, meaning so much!--holding
suggestions of peace, joy and purity in its mere utterance! Not a
Fraternity of possession--for then should we become lower than the
beasts, who have their own separate holes, their separate mates, their
separate young--but Fraternity of Faith!--the one Faith that teaches us
to cry 'Abba Father,'--that makes us understand Christ as our
Brother--and all of us the children of one family,--one creation moving
on in process of evolvement to greater things! Let any priest tell me
that I am not a child of God, and I will retort that he, by such an
utterance, has proved himself a child of the devil. Ignorant, sinful,
full of miserable imperfections as I am, I am of God as the ant is, the
worm, the fly!--and if I have no more of God in me than such insects,
still I am thankful to have so much! What priest shall dare to say how
much or how little of God there was in the composition of this man
lying in the grave at our feet, who was my father? Excommunication! Who
can excommunicate the soul from its Creator? Who can part the sunbeam
from the sun? Excommunication! The human being who, on what he calls
Church authority, shall thrust his brother away from any form of
communion which he himself judges and accepts as valuable, is one of
those whom Christ declared to be 'in danger of hell-fire.' For there is
no man who can, if he be true to himself, condemn his brother man, or
say to him, 'Stand back! I am holier than thou!' Therefore, for him
whom we lay down to rest to-day, let there be pardon and peace! Let us
remember that for all his sins he atoned, by full confession;--by
publicly branding himself in the sight of that society in whose
estimation he had till then seemed something superior,--by voluntarily
resigning himself to the wrath of the Church of which he was a
professed servant. Cursed by his Creed, he may now perchance be blessed
by his Creator! For he died, clean-souled and true--washed of
hypocrisy,--with no secret vice left unhidden for others to rake up and
expose to criticism. Whatsoever wrong he did, he openly
admitted--whatever false things he said, he retracted. I believe--and I
am sure we all believe, that his spirit thus purified, is acceptable to
God. He has left no lies behind him--no debts--no wrongs to be avenged.
He told you all, people of Paris, what he was before he left you,--and,
looking down into this dark grave, we know what he is. A senseless,
sightless, stiffening form of clay, from which the soul that animated
it into action has fled. Let the Church excommunicate this poor corpse
of my father,--let it muster its forces against his memory as it will,
I swear before you all, that memory shall live! Yes--for I, his son,
will guard it; I whom he so late acknowledged as his own flesh and
blood, will be a shield of defence for his name till I die! If priests
would attack him, they must attack him through me!--and I, despite a
thousand Churches, a thousand Creeds, a thousand Sacraments, will
firmly maintain that a man who frankly repents his sins and is openly
honest with the world before he leaves it, is a better Christian than
he, who for the sake of mere appearances and conventionality, juggles
with death and passes to his Maker's presence in a black cloud of lies!
Better to be crucified with Christ, than live with the High Priests and
Pharisees of the modern Jerusalem of our social conditions! Truth may
seem to perish on the Cross of injustice--it may be buried in a sealed
sepulchre, the entrance to which may be closed up by a great stone of
Mammon-bulk and heaviness--but the moment must come when the Angel
descends from Heaven--when the stone is rolled away--and the eternal,
living God rises again and walks the world in the glory of a new dawn!"

He ended--and for a moment there was a deep silence. There had been no
funeral service, for no priest would attend the burial of the heretic
Abbe. So, after a brief pause, Cyrillon knelt down by the grave,--and
carried away by the solemnity of the scene, as well as by their own
emotional excitement, more than half the crowd knelt with him, as,
bending his head reverently over his clasped hands, he prayed aloud--

"Oh God of Love, whose tenderness and care for Thy creation is
everywhere disclosed to us, from the smallest atom of dust, to the
stupendous majesty of Thy million worlds in the air,--give we beseech
Thee, to this perished clay which once was man, the beauty which
transforms vile things to virtuous, and endows our seeming death with
life! Let Thy eternal Law of Resurrection so work upon this senseless
body that it may pass through Earth to Heaven, and there find finer
grades of being, higher forms of development, greater opportunities of
perfection. And for the Soul, which is Thine own breath of fire, O God,
receive it, purified from sin, and make it worthy of the final purpose
for which Thou hast destined it from the beginning! And grant unto us,
left here to still work out our own salvation on this the planet Thou
hast chosen for our trial, the power to comprehend Thy laws, and
faithfully to obey them,--to forgive as we would be forgiven,--to love
as we would be loved,--and to lift our thoughts from the appearance of
this grave to the Reality of Thy beneficence, which hath ordained Light
out of Darkness, and out of Death, Life, as proved most gloriously to
us by Christ our Brother, our Teacher and our Master! Amen!"

His prayer finished, the young man rose, and taking a wreath of ivy,
which he had travelled to Touraine himself to bring from the walls of
the simple cottage where his mother had lived and worked and died, he
dropped it gently on the coffin and signed to the grave-diggers to fill
in the earth. Then turning to the crowd, he said,

"My friends, I thank you all for the sympathy which has brought you
here to-day. 'It is finished.' The dead man is at rest! And now as you
go,--as you return to your own homes,--homes happy or unhappy as the
case may be, I will only ask you to remember that there is no
permanence or virtue in falsehood whether it be falsehood religious or
falsehood political,--and he who dies truthfully dealing with his
fellow-men, lives again with God, and is not, as Scripture says 'dead
in his sins,' but born again to a new and more hopeful existence!"

With the last words he gave the sign of dismissal. The people began to
disperse slowly and somewhat reluctantly, every member of the crowd
being curious to obtain a nearer view of the young orator who not only
spoke his thoughts fearlessly, but whose pen was as a scythe mowing
down a harvest of shams and hypocrisies, and whose frank utterance from
the heart was so honest as to be absolutely convincing to the public.
But he, after giving a few further instructions to the men who were
beginning to close in his father's grave, walked away with one or two
friends, and was soon lost to sight in one of the many winding paths
that led from the cemetery out into the road, so that many who
anxiously sought to study his features more nearly, were disappointed.
One person there was, who had listened to his oration in wonder and
open-mouthed admiration,--this was Jean Patoux. He had taken the
opportunity offered him in a "cheap excursion" from Rouen to Paris, to
visit a cousin of his who was a small florist owning a shop in the Rue
St. Honore,--and by chance, he and this same cousin, while quietly
walking together down one of the boulevards, had got entangled in the
press of people who were pouring into Pere-la-Chaise on this occasion,
and had followed them out of curiosity, not at all knowing what they
were going to see. But the florist, known as Pierre Midon, soon
realised the situation and explained it all to his provincial relative.

"It is the Abbe Vergniaud they are burying," he said,--"He was a
wonderful preacher! All fashionable Paris used to go and hear him till
he made that pretty scandal of himself a month or so ago. He was a
popular and a social favourite; but one fine morning he preached a
sermon to his congregation all against the Church, and for that matter
against himself too, for he then and there confessed before everybody
that he was no true priest. And as he preached,--what think you?--a
young man fired a pistol shot at him for his rascality, as everyone
supposed, and when the gendarmes would have taken the assassin, this
same Abbe stopped them, and refused to punish HIS OWN SON! What do you
think of that for a marvel? And something still more marvellous
followed, for that very son who tried to kill him was no other than Gys
Grandit, the man we have just heard speaking, though nobody knew it
till a week afterwards. Such a scene you never saw in a church!--Paris
was wild with excitement for a dozen hours, which is about as long as
its fevers last,--and the two of them, father and son, went straight
away to a famous Cardinal then staying in Paris,--and he, by the way,
was in the church when the Abbe publicly confessed himself--Cardinal
Bonpre--"

"Ah!" interrupted Patoux excitedly, "This interests me! For that most
eminent Cardinal stayed at my inn in Rouen before coming on here!"

"So!" And Cousin Pierre looked rather surprised. "Without offence to
thee, Jean, it was a poor place for a Cardinal, was it not?"

"Poor, truly,--but sufficient for a man of his mind!" replied Patoux
tranquilly,--"For look you, he is trying to live as Christ lived,--and
Christ cared naught for luxury."

Pierre Midon laughed.

"By my faith! If priests were to live as Christ lived, Paris might
learn to respect them!" he said,--"But we know that they will not,--and
that few of them are better than the worst of us! But to finish my
story--this Abbe and the son whom he so suddenly and strangely
acknowledged, went to this Cardinal Bonpre for some reason--most
probably for pardon, though truly I cannot tell you what happened--for
almost immediately, the Abbe went out of Paris to the Chateau
D'Agramont some miles away, and his son went with him, and there the
two stayed together till the old man died. And as for Cardinal Bonpre,
he went at once to Rome with his niece, the famous painter, Angela
Sovrani,--I imagine he may have interceded with the Pope, or tried to
do so for the Abbe, but whatever happened, there they are now, for all
I know to the contrary. And we heard that the Church was about to
excommunicate, or had already excommunicated Vergniaud, though I
suppose Cardinal Bonpre had nothing to do with that?"

"Not he!" said Patoux firmly, "He would never excommunicate or do any
unkind thing to a living soul--that I am pretty sure of. He is the very
Cardinal who performed the miracle in my house that has caused us no
end of trouble,--and he is under the displeasure of the Pope for it
now, if all I hear be true."

"That is strange!" said Pierre with a laugh,--"To be under the
displeasure of the Pope for doing a good deed!"

"Truly, it seems so," agreed Patoux,--"But you must remember there was
no paying shrine concerned in it! Mark you that, my Pierre! Even our
Lady of Bon Secours, near to Rouen as she is, was not applied to. The
miracle took place in the poor habitation of an unknown little
inn-keeper,--that is myself,--and there was no solemnity at all about
it--no swinging of incense--no droning of prayers--no lighting of
candles--no anything, but just a good old man with a crippled child on
his knee, praying to the Christ whom he believed was able to help him.
And--and--"

He broke off suddenly and crossed himself. Pierre Midon stared at the
action.

"What ails thee, Jean?" he asked brusquely,--"Hast thou remembered a
dead sin, or a passing soul?"

"Neither," replied Patoux slowly, "But only just the thought of another
child--a waif and stray whom the good Cardinal found in the streets of
Rouen, outside our great Cathedral door. A gentle lad!--my wife was
greatly taken with him;--and he was present in my house too, when the
miracle of healing was performed."

"And for that, is there any need to cross thyself like a mumbling old
woman afraid of the devil?" enquired his cousin.

Patoux smiled a slow smile.

"Gently, Pierre--gently!" he said. "Thou art of Paris,--I of the
provinces. That makes all the difference in the way we look at life.
There are very few holy things in great cities,--but there are many in
the country. Every day when I am at home I go out of the town to work
in my field,--and I feel the clean breath of the wind, the scent of the
earth and the colours of the sky and the flowers,--and I know quite
well there is a God, or these blessings could not be. For if there were
only Chance and a Man to manage the universe, a pretty muddle we should
have of it! And when I see or think of a holy thing, I sign the cross
out of old childhood's habit,--so just now, when I remembered the boy
whom the Cardinal rescued from the streets, I knew I was thinking of a
holy thing; and that explains my action."

"How dost thou prove a waif of the streets a holy thing?" enquired
Pierre curiously.

Patoux shrugged his shoulders, and gave a wide deprecatory wave of both
hands.

"Ah, that is more than I can tell you!" he said,--"It is a matter
beyond my skill. But the boy was a fair-faced boy,--I never saw him
myself--"

Midon laughed outright.

"Never saw him thyself!" he cried,--"And yet thou dost make the sign of
the cross at the thought of him! Diantre! Patoux, thou art crazy!"

"Maybe--maybe," said Patoux mildly,--they were walking together out of
the cemetery by this time in the wake of the rapidly dispersing
crowd,--"But I have always taken my wife's word,--and I take it now.
And she has said over and over again to me that the boy had a rare
sweet nature. And then--the child whom the Cardinal healed,--Fabien
Doucet,--will always insist upon it that it was the touch of that same
boy which truly cured him and not the Cardinal at all!"

"Mere fancy!" said Pierre carelessly,--"And truly if it were not for
knowing thee to be honest, I should doubt the miracle altogether!"

"And thou wouldst be of the majority!" said Patoux equably--"For our
house has been a very bee-hive of buzz and trouble ever since a bit of
good was done in it--and Martine Doucet, the mother of the cured child,
has led the life of the damned, thanks to the kindness of her
neighbours and friends! And will you believe me, the Archbishop of
Rouen himself took the trouble to walk into the market-place and assure
her she was a wicked woman,--that she had taught her boy to play the
cripple in order to excite pity,--and I believe he thinks she is
concerned in the strange disappearance of his clerk, Claude Cazeau. For
this same Cazeau came to our house one night when Martine was there,
and told her he had instructions to take her to Rome to see the Pope,
and her child with her, for the purpose of explaining the miracle in
her own words, and giving the full life-history of herself and the
little one. And she was angry,--ah, she can be very angry, poor
Martine!--she has a shrill tongue and a wild eye, and she said out
flatly that she would not go, and furthermore that she would not be
caught in a priest's trap, or words to that effect. And this clerk,
Cazeau,--a miserable little white-livered rascal, crawled away from my
door in a rage with us all, and was never seen again. The police have
hunted high and low for trace of him, but can find none. But I have my
suspicions--"

"What are they?" enquired Midon,--"That he went out like Judas, and
hanged himself?"

"Truly he might have done that without loss or trouble to anyone!" said
Patoux tranquilly,--"But he thought too well of himself to be quite so
ready for a meeting with le bon Dieu! No!--I will tell you what I
think. There was a poor girl who used to roam about the streets of our
town, called Marguerite, she was once a sensible, bright creature
enough, the only daughter of old Valmond the saddler, who died from a
kick from his favourite horse one day, and left his child all alone in
the world. She was a worker in a great silk-factory, and was happy and
contented, so it seemed, till--well! It is the old story--a man with a
woman, and the man is most often the devil in it. Anyway, this
Marguerite went mad on her love-affair,--and we called her 'La
Folle,'--not harshly--for all the town was kind to her. I mentioned her
name once in the presence of this man Cazeau, and he started as if an
adder had bitten him. And now--he has disappeared--and strange to say,
so has she!"

"So has she!" echoed Midon, opening his eyes a little wider--"Then what
do you suppose?--"

"Just this," said Patoux, emphasizing his words by marking them out
with a fat thumb on the palm of the other hand--"That Cazeau was the
villain of the piece as they say in the theatres, and that she has
punished him for his villainy. She used to swear in her mad speech that
if ever she met the man who had spoilt her life for her, she would kill
him; and that is just what I believe she has done!"

"But would she kill herself also?" demanded Pierre--"And what has
become of one or both bodies?"

"Ah! There thou dost ask more than I can answer!" said Patoux. "But
what is very certain is, that both bodies, living or dead, have
disappeared. And as I said to my wife when she put these things into my
head,--for look you, my head is but a dull one, and if my wife did not
put things into it, it would be but an emptiness altogether,--I said to
my wife that if she were right in her suspicions--and she generally is
right--this Marguerite had taken but a just vengeance. For you will not
prove to me that there is any man living who has the right to take the
joy out of a woman's soul and destroy it."

"It is done every day!" said Midon with a careless shrug,--"Women give
themselves too easily!"

"And men take too greedily!" said Patoux obstinately--"What virtue
there is in the matter is on the woman's side. For she mostly gives
herself for love's sake,--but the man cares naught save for his own
selfish pleasure. As a man myself, I am on the side of the woman who
revenges herself on her betrayer."

"For that matter so am I!" said Midon. "Women have a hard time of it in
this world, even under the best of circumstances,--and whatever man
makes it harder for them, should be horse-whipped within an inch of his
life, if I had my way. I have a wife--and a young daughter--and my old
mother sits at home with us, as cheery and bright a body as you would
find in all France,--and so I know the worth of women. If any rascal
were to insult my girl by so much as a look, he would find himself in
the ditch with a sore back before he had time to cry 'Dieu merci!'"

He laughed;--Patoux laughed with him, and then went on,--

"I told thee of the miracle in my house, and of the boy the Cardinal
found in the streets,--well!--these things have had their good effect
in my own family. My two children, Henri and Babette--ah! What
children! God be praised for them! As bright, as kind as the
sunlight,--and their love for me and their mother is a great thing--a
good thing, look you!--one cannot be sufficiently grateful for it. For
nowadays, children too often despise their parents, which is bad luck
to them in their after days; but ours, wild as they were a while ago,
are all obedience and sweetness. I used often to wonder what would
become of them as they grew up--for they were wilful and
angry-tempered, and ofttimes cruel in speech--but I have no fear now.
Henri works well at his lessons, and Babette too,--and there is
something better than the learning of lessons about them,--something
new and bright in their dispositions which makes us all happy. And this
has come about since the Cardinal stayed with us; and also since the
pretty boy was found outside the Cathedral!"

"That boy seems to have impressed thee more than the Cardinal himself!"
said Midon--"but now I remember well--on the day the Abbe Vergniaud
preached his last sermon, and was nearly shot dead by his own son,
there was a rumour that his life had been saved by some boy who was an
attendant on the Cardinal, and who interposed himself between the Abbe
and the flying bullet,--that must have been the one you mean?"

"No doubt--no doubt!" said Patoux, nodding gravely--"There was
something about him that seemed a sort of shield against evil--or at
least, so said my wife,--and so say my children. Only the other day, my
boy Henri--he is big and full of mischief as boys will be--was playing
with two or three younger lads, and one of them like a little sneak,
stole up behind him and gave him a blow with a stick, which broke in
two with the force of the way the young rascal went to work with it.
Now, thought I, there will be need for me to step out and stop this
quarrel, for Henri will beat that miserable little wretch into a jelly!
But nothing of the sort! My boy turned round with a bright
laugh--picked up the two pieces of the stick and gave them back to the
little coward with a civil bow "Hit in front next time!" he said. And
the little wretch turned tail and began to boo-hoo in fine
fashion--crying as if he had been hurt instead of Henri. But they are
the best friends in the world now. I asked Henri about it afterwards,
and he turned as red as an apple in the cheeks. 'I wanted to kill him,
father,' he said,--'but I knew that the boy who was with Cardinal
Bonpre would not have done it--and so I did not!' Now look you, for a
rough little fellow such as Henri, that was a great victory over his
passions--and there is no doubt the Cardinal's little foundling was the
cause of his so managing himself."

Pierre Midon had nothing to say in answer,--the subject was getting
beyond him, and he was a man who, when thought became difficult, gave
up thinking altogether.

And while these two simple-minded worthies were thus talking and
strolling together home through the streets of Paris, Cyrillon
Vergniaud, having parted from the few friends who had paid him the
respect of their attendance at his father's grave, was making his way
towards the Champs Elysees in a meditative frame of mind, when his
attention was suddenly caught and riveted by a placard set up in front
of one of the newspaper kiosks at the corner of a boulevard, on which
in great black letters, was the name "Angela Sovrani." His heart gave
one great bound--then stood still--the streets of the city reeled round
him, and he grew cold and sick. "Meurtre de la celebre Angela Sovrani!"

Hardly knowing what he was about, he bought the paper. The news was in
a mere paragraph briefly stating that the celebrated artist had been
found stabbed in her studio, and that up to the present there was no
trace of the unknown assassin.

Passionate and emotional as his warm nature was, the great tears rushed
to Cyrillon's eyes. In one moment he realized what he had been almost
unconsciously cherishing in his own mind ever since Angela's beautiful
smile had shone upon him. When in the few minutes of speech he had had
with her she admitted herself to be the mysterious correspondent who
had constantly written to him as "Gys Grandit," fervently sympathising
with his theories, and urging him on to fresh and more courageous
effort, he had been completely overcome, not only with surprise, but
also with admiration. It had taken him some time to realize that she,
the greatest artist of her day, was actually his unknown friend of more
than two years' correspondence. He knew she was engaged to be married
to her comrade in art, Florian Varillo, but that fact did not prevent
him from feeling for her all the sudden tenderness, the instinctive
intimacy of spirit with spirit, which in the highest natures means the
highest love. Then,--they had all been brought together so
strangely!--his father, and himself, with Cardinal Bonpre,--and
she--the Cardinal's fair niece, daughter of a proud Roman house,--she
had not turned away from the erring and repentant priest whom the
Church had cast out; she had given him her hand at parting, and had
been as sweetly considerate of his feelings as though she had been his
own daughter. And when he was ill and dying at the Chateau D'Agramont,
she had written to him two or three times in the kindest and tenderest
way, and her letters had not been answered, because the Abbe was too
ill to write, and he, Cyrillon, had been afraid--lest he should say too
much! And now--she was dead?--murdered? No!--he would not believe it!

"God is good!" said Cyrillon, crushing the paper in his hand and
raising his eyes to the cloudy heavens--"He does nothing that is
unnecessarily cruel. He would not take that brilliant creature away
till she had won the reward of her work--happiness! No!--something
tells me this news is false!--she cannot be dead! But I will start for
Rome to-night."

He returned to the cheap pension where he had his room, and at once
packed his valise. With all his fame he was extremely poor; he had for
the most part refused to take payment for his books and pamphlets which
had been so freely spread through France, preferring to work for his
daily bread in the fields of an extensive farm near his birthplace in
Touraine. He had begun there as a little lad, earning his livelihood by
keeping the birds away from the crops--and had steadily risen by
degrees, through his honesty and diligence, to the post of
superintendent or bailiff of the whole concern. No one was more trusted
than he by his employers,--no one more worthy of trust. But his wages
were by no means considerable,--and though he saved as much as he
could, and lived on the coarsest fare, it was a matter of some trouble
for him to spare the money to take him from Paris to Rome. What cash he
had, he carried about him in a leathern bag, and this he now emptied on
the table to estimate the strength of his finances. Any possibility of
changing his mind and waiting for further news from Rome did not occur
to him. One of his chief characteristics was the determined way he
always carried through anything he had set his mind upon. In one of his
public speeches he had once said--"Let all the powers of hell oppose
me, I will storm them through and pass on! For the powers of Heaven are
on MY side!"--the audacity and daring of this utterance carrying away
his audience in a perfect whirlwind of enthusiasm. And though it is
related of a certain cynical philosopher, that when asked by one of his
scholars for a definition of hell, he dashed into the face of his
enquirer an empty purse for answer, the lack of funds was no obstacle
to Cyrillon's intended journey.

"Because if I can go no other way, I will persuade the guard to let me
ride in the van, or travel in company with a horse or dog--quite as
good animals as myself in their way," he thought.

With a characteristic indifference to all worldly matters he had
entirely forgotten that the father whom he had just buried had died
wealthy, and that his entire fortune had been left to the son whom he
had so lately and strangely acknowledged. And when,--while he was still
engaged in counting up his small stock of money,--a knock came at the
door, and a well-dressed man of business-like appearance entered with a
smiling and propitiatory air, addressing him as "Monsieur Vergniaud,"
Cyrillon did not know at all what to make of his visitor. Sweeping his
coins together with one hand, he stood up, his flashing eyes glancing
the stranger over carelessly.

"Your name, sir?" he demanded--"I am not acquainted with you."

The smiling man unabashed, sought about for a place to put down his
shiny hat, and smiled still more broadly.

"No!" he said--"No! You would not be likely to know me. I have not the
celebrity of Gys Grandit! I am only Andre Petitot--a lawyer, residing
in the Boulevard Malesherbes. I have just come from your father's
funeral."

Cyrillon bowed gravely, and remained silent.

"I have followed you," pursued Monsieur Petitot affably, "as soon as I
could, according to the instructions I received, to ask when it will be
convenient for you to hear me read your father's will?"

The young man started.

"His will!" he ejaculated. He had never given it a thought. "Yes. May I
take a chair? There are only two in the room, I perceive! Thanks!" And
the lawyer sat down and began drawing off his gloves,--"Your father had
considerable means,--though he parted with much that he might have
kept, through his extraordinary liberality to the poor--"

"God bless him!" murmured Cyrillon.

"Yes--yes--no doubt God will bless him!" said Monsieur Petitot
amicably--"According to your way of thinking, He ought to do so. But
personally, I always find the poor extremely ungrateful, and God
certainly does not bless ME whenever I encourage them in their habits
of idleness and vice! However, that is not a question for discussion at
present. The immediate point is this--your father made his will about
eighteen months ago, leaving everything to you. The wording of the will
is unusual, but he insisted obstinately on having it thus set down--"

Here the lawyer drew a paper out of his pocket, fixed a pair of
spectacles on his nose, and studied the document intently--"Yes!--it
reads in this way:--' Everything of which I die possessed to my son,
Cyrillon Vergniaud, born out of wedlock, but as truly my son in the
sight of God, as Ninette Bernadin was his mother, and my wife, though
never so legalised before the world, but fully acknowledged by me
before God, and before the Church which I have served and disobeyed.' A
curious wording!" said Petitot, nodding his head a great many
times--"Very curious! I told him so--but he would have it his own
way,--moreover, I am instructed to publish his will in any Paris paper
that will give it a place. Now this clause is to my mind exceedingly
disagreeable, and I wish I could set it aside."

"Why?" asked Cyrillon quietly.

"My dear young man! Can you ask? Why emphasise the fact of your
illegitimacy to the public!"

"Why disguise it?" returned Cyrillon. "You must remember that I have
another public than the merely social,--the people! They all know what
I am, and who I am. They have honoured me. They shall not despise me.
And they would despise me if I sought to hold back from them what my
father bade me tell. Moreover, this will gives my mother the honour of
wifehood in the sight of God,--and I must tell you, monsieur l'avocat,
that I am one of those who care nothing what the world says so long as
I stand more or less clear with the world's Creator!"

His great dark eyes were brilliant,--his face warm with the fire of his
inward feeling. Monsieur Petitot folded up his document and looked at
him with an amiable tolerance.

"Wonderful--wonderful!" he said--"But of course eccentricities WILL
appear in the world occasionally!--and you must pardon me if I venture
to think that you are certainly one of them. But I imagine you have
nograsped the whole position. The money--I should saythe fortune--which
your father has left to you, will make you a gentleman--"

He paused, affrighted. Drawing himself up to his full height, young
Vergniaud confronted him in haughty amazement.

"Gentleman!" he cried--"What do you mean by the term? A loafer?--a
lounger in the streets?--a leerer at women? Or a man who works for
daily food from sunrise to sunset, and controls his lower passions by
hard and honest labour! Gentleman! What is that? Is it to live lazily
on the toil of others, or to be up and working one's self, and to eat
no bread that one has not earned? Will you answer me?"

"My dear sir, you must really excuse me!" said Petitot nervously--" I
am quite unable to enter into any sort of discussion with you on these
things! Please recollect that my life as a lawyer, depends entirely on
men's stupidities and hypocrisies,--if they all entertained your views
I should have to beg in the streets, or seek another profession. In my
present business I should have nothing whatever to do. You perceive the
position? Yes, of course you do!" For Cyrillon with one of the quick
changes of mood habitual to him, smiled, as his temporary irritation
passed like a cloud, and his eyes softened--"You see, I am a
machine,--educated to be a machine; and I am set down to do certain
machine-like duties,--and one of these duties is,--regardless of your
fame, your eccentric theories, your special work which you have chosen
to make for yourself in the world,--to put you in possession of the
money your father left you--"

"Can you now--at once--" said Cyrillon suddenly--"give me enough money
to go to Rome to-night?"

Monsieur Petitot stared.

"To go to Rome to-night?" he echoed--"Dear me, how very extraordinary!
I beg your pardon! . . . of course--most certainly! I can advance you
any sum you want--would ten thousand francs suffice?"

"Ten thousand francs!" Cyrillon laughed. "I never had so much money in
all my life!"

"No? Well, I have not the notes about me at the moment, but I will send
you up that sum in an hour if you wish it. Your father's will entitles
you to five million francs, so you see I am not in any way endangering
myself by advancing you ten thousand."

Cyrillon was quite silent. The lawyer studied him curiously, but could
not determine whether he was pleased or sorry at the announcement of
his fortune. His handsome face was pale and grave,--and after a pause
he said simply--

"Thank you! Then I can go to Rome. If you will send me the money you
speak of I shall be glad, as it will enable me to start to-night. For
the rest,--kindly publish my father's will as he instructed you to
do,--and I--when I return to Paris, will consult you on the best way in
which I can dispose of my father's millions."

"Dispose of them!" began Petitot amazedly. Young Vergniaud interrupted
him by a slight gesture.

"Pardon me, Monsieur, if I ask you to conclude this interview! For the
present, I want nothing else in the world but to get to Rome as quickly
as possible!--apres ca, le deluge!"

He smiled--but his manner was that of some great French noble who
gently yet firmly dismisses the attentions of a too-officious
servant,--and Petitot, much to his own surprise, found himself bowing
low, and scrambling out of the poorly furnished room in as much
embarrassment as though he had accidentally stumbled into a palace
where his presence was not required.

And Cyrillon, left to himself, gathered up all the coins he had been
counting out previous to the lawyer's arrival, and tied them again
together in the old leathern bag; then having closed and strapped his
little travelling valise, sat down and waited. Punctually to the time
indicated, that is to say, in one hour from the moment Petitot had
concluded his interview with the celebrated personage whom he now
mentally called "an impossible young man," a clerk arrived bringing the
ten thousand francs promised. He counted the notes out
carefully,--Cyrillon watching him quietly the while, and taking
sympathetic observation of his shabby appearance, his thread-bare coat,
and his general expression of pinched and anxious poverty.

"You will perceive it is all right, Monsieur," he said humbly, as he
finished counting.

"What are you, mon ami?" asked Cyrillon; scarcely glancing at the notes
but fixing a searching glance on the messenger who had brought them.

"I?" and the clerk coughed nervously and blushed,--"Oh, I am nothing,
Monsieur! I am Monsieur Petitot's clerk, that is all!"

"And does he pay you well?"

"Thirty francs a week, Monsieur. It is not bad,--only this--I was young
a few years ago, and I married--and two dear little ones came--so it is
a pull at times to make everything go as it should--not that I am sorry
for myself at all, oh no! For I am well off as the people go--"

Cyrillon interrupted him.

"Yes--as the people go! That is what you all say, you patient, brave
souls! See you, my friend, I do not want all this money--"and he took
up a note for five hundred francs--"Take this and make the wife and
little ones happy!"

"Monsieur!" stammered the astonished clerk--"How can I dare--!"

"Dare! Nay, there is no daring in freely taking what your brother
freely gives you! You must let me practise what I preach, my friend,
otherwise I am only a fraud and unfit to live. God keep you!"

The clerk still stood trembling, afraid to take up the note, and unable
through emotion to speak a word, even of thanks. Upon which, Cyrillon
folded up the note and put it himself in the man's pocket.

"There!--go and make happiness with that bit of paper!" he said--"Who
can tell through what dirty usurer's hand it has been, carrying curses
with it perchance on its way! Use it now for the comfort of a woman and
her little children, and perhaps it will bring blessing to a living man
as well as to a departed soul!"

And he literally put the poor stupefied fellow outside his door,
shutting it gently upon him.

That night he left for Rome. And as the express tore its grinding way
along over the iron rails towards the south, he repeated to himself
over and over again as in a dream--

"No--Angela Sovrani is not dead! She cannot be dead! God is too good
for that. He will not let her die before she knows--before she knows I
love her!"



XXXIII.

The chain of circumstance had lengthened by several links round the
radiant life of Sylvie Hermenstem since that bright winter morning when
she had been startled out of her reverie, in the gardens of the Villa
Borghese, by the unexpected appearance of Monsignor Gherardi. The
untimely deaths of the Marquis Fontenelle and the actor Miraudin in the
duel over her name, had caused so much malicious and cruel gossip, that
she had withdrawn herself almost entirely from Roman society, which
had, with one venomous consent, declared that she was only marrying
Aubrey Leigh to shield herself from her esclandre with the late
Marquis. And then the murderous attack on her friend Angela Sovrani,
which occurred almost immediately after her engagement to Aubrey was
announced, had occupied all her thoughts--so that she had almost
forgotten the promise she had made to grant a private interview to
Gherardi whenever he should seek it. And she was not a little vexed one
morning when she was talking to her betrothed concerning the plans
which were now in progress for their going to England as soon as
possible, to receive a note reminding her of that promise, and
requesting permission to call upon her that very afternoon.

"How very unfortunate and tiresome!" said Sylvie, with a charming pout
and upward look at her lover, who promptly kissed the lips that made
such a pretty curve of disdain--"I suppose he wants to give me a
serious lecture on the responsibilities of marriage! Shall I receive
him, Aubrey? I remember when I met him last that he had something
important to say about Cardinal Bonpre."

"Then you must certainly give him an audience," answered Aubrey--"You
may perhaps find out what has happened to bring the good Cardinal into
disfavour at the Vatican, for there is no doubt that he is extremely
worried and anxious. He is strongly desirous of leaving Rome at once
with that gentle lad Manuel, who, from all I can gather, has said
something to displease the Pope. Angela is out of danger now--and I am
trying to persuade the Cardinal to accompany us to England, and be
present at our marriage."

"That would be delightful!" said Sylvie with a smile,--"But my Aubrey,
where are we going to be married?"

"In England, as I said--not here!" said Aubrey firmly--"Not here, where
evil tongues have spoken lies against my darling!" He drew her into his
arms and looked at her fondly. "I want you to start for England soon,
Sylvie--and if possible, I should like you to go, not only with the
faithful Bozier, but also in the care of the Cardinal. I will precede
you by some days, and arrange everything for your reception. And then
we will be married--in MY way!"

Sylvie said nothing--she merely nestled like a dove in the arms of her
betrothed, and seemed quite content to accept whatever ordinance he
laid down for the ruling of her fate.

"I think you must see Gherardi," he resumed--"Write a line and say you
will be happy to receive him at the hour he appoints."

Sylvie obeyed--and despatched the note at once to the Vatican by her
man-servant.

Aubrey looked at her intently.

"I wonder--Sylvie, I wonder--" he began, and then stopped.

She met his earnest eyes with a smile in her own.

"You wonder what, caro mio?" she enquired.

"I wonder whether you could endure a very great trial--or make a very
great sacrifice for my sake!" he said,--then as he saw her expression,
he took her little hand and kissed it.

"There! Forgive me! Of course you would!--only you look such a slight
thing--such a soft flower of a woman--like a rose-bud to be worn next
the heart always--that it seems difficult to picture you as an
inflexible heroine under trying circumstances. Yet of course you would
be."

"I make no boast, my Aubrey!" she said gently.

He kissed her tenderly,--reverently,--studying her sweet eyes and
delicate colouring with all the fond scrutiny of a love which cannot
tire of the thing it loves.

"Are you going round to see Angela this morning?" he asked.

"Yes, I always go. She is much better--she sits up a little every day
now."

"She says nothing of her assassin?"

"Nothing. But I know him!"

"We all know him!" said Aubrey sternly--"But she will never speak--she
will never let the world know!"

"Ah, but the world will soon guess!" said Sylvie--"For everyone is
beginning to ask where her fiance is--why he has shown no anxiety--why
he has not been to see her--and a thousand other questions."

"That does not matter! While she is silent, no one dare accuse him.
What a marvellous spirit of patience and forgiveness she has!"

"Angela is like her name--an angel!" declared Sylvie impulsively, the
tears springing to her eyes--"I could almost worship her, when I see
her there in her sickroom, looking so white and frail and sad,--quiet
and patient--thanking us all for every little service done--and never
once mentioning the name of Florian--the man she loved so passionately.
Sometimes the dear old Cardinal sits beside her and talks--sometimes
her father,--Manuel is nearly always with her, and she is quite easy
and content, one would almost say happy when he is there, he is so very
gentle with her. But you can see through it all the awful sorrow that
weighs upon her heart,--you can see she has lost something she can
never find again,--her eyes look so wistful--her smile is so sad--poor
Angela!"

Aubrey was silent a moment. "What of the Princesse D'Agramont?"

"Oh, she is simply a treasure!" said Sylvie enthusiastically--"She and
my dear old Bozier are never weary in well-doing! As soon as Angela can
be moved, the Princesse wants to take her back to Paris,--because then
Rome can be allowed to pour into her studio to see her great picture."

"What does Angela say to that?"

"Angela seems resigned to anything!" answered Sylvie. "The only wish
she ever expresses is that Manuel should not leave her."

"There is something wonderful about that boy," said Aubrey
slowly--"From the first time I saw him he impressed me with a sense of
something altogether beyond his mere appearance. He is a child--yet not
a child--and I have often felt that he commands me without my realising
that I am so commanded."

"Aubrey! How strange!"

"Yes, it is strange!--" and Aubrey's eyes grew graver with the
intensity of his thought--"There is some secret--but--" he broke off
with a puzzled air--"I cannot explain it, so it is no use thinking
about it! I went to Varillo's studio yesterday and asked if there had
been any news of him--but there was none. I wonder where the brute has
gone!"

"It would be well if he had made exit out of the world altogether,"
said Sylvie--"But he is too vain of himself for that! However, his
absence creates suspicion--and even if Angela does not speak, people
will guess for themselves what she does not say. He will never dare to
show himself in Rome!"

Their conversation was abruptly terminated here by the entrance of
Madame Bozier with a quantity of fresh flowers which she had been out
to purchase, for Sylvie to take as usual on her morning visit to her
suffering friend; and Aubrey took his leave, promising to return later
in the afternoon, after Monsignor Gherardi had been and gone.

But he had his own ideas on the subject of Gherardi's visit to his fair
betrothed,--ideas which he kept to himself, for if his surmises were
correct, now was the time to put Sylvie's character to the test. He did
not doubt her stability in the very least, but he could never quite get
away from her mignonne child-like appearance of woman, to the
contemplation of the spirit behind the pretty exterior. Her beauty was
so riante, so dazzling, so dainty, that it seemed to fire the very air
as a sunbeam fires it,--and there was no room for any more serious
consideration than that of purely feminine charm. Walking dreamily,
almost unseeingly through the streets, he thought again and yet again
of the sweet face, the rippling hair, the laughing yet tender eyes, the
sunny smile. Behind that beautiful picture or earth-phantom of
womanhood, is there that sword of flame, the soul?--the soul that will
sweep through shams, and come out as bright and glittering at the end
of the fight as at the beginning?--he mused;--or is it not almost too
much to expect of a mere woman that she can contend against the anger
of a Church?

He was still thinking on this subject, when someone walking quickly
came face to face with him, and said--

"Aubrey!" He started and stared,--then uttered a cry of pleasure.

"Gys Grandit!"

The two men clasped each other's hands in a warm, strong grasp--and for
a moment neither could speak.

"My dear fellow!" said Aubrey at last--"This is indeed an unexpected
meeting! How glad I am to see you! When did you arrive in Rome?"

"This morning only," said Cyrillon, recovering his speech and his
equanimity together--"And as soon as I arrived, I found that my hopes
had not betrayed me--she is not dead!"

"She?" Aubrey started--"My dear Grandit! Or rather I must call you
Vergniaud now--who is the triumphant 'she' that has brought you thus
post haste to Rome?"

Cyrillon flushed--then grew pale.

"I should not have spoken!" he said--"And yet, why not! You were my
first friend!--you found me working in the fields, a peasant lad,
untrained and sullen, burning up my soul with passionate thoughts
which, but for you, might never have blossomed into action,--you
rescued me--you made me all I am! So why should I not confess to you at
once that there is a woman I love!--yes, love with all my soul, though
I have seen her but once!--and she is too far off, too fair and great
for me: she does not know I love her--but I heard she had been
murdered--that she was dead--"

"Angela Sovrani!" cried Aubrey.

Cyrillon bent his head as a devotee might at the shrine of a saint.

"Yes--Angela Sovrani!"

Aubrey looked at his handsome face glowing with enthusiasm, and saw the
passion, the tenderness, the devotion of a life flashing in his fine
eyes.

"Love at first sight!" he said with a smile--"I believe it is the only
true fire! A glance ought to be enough to express the recognition of
one soul to its mate. Well! Angela Sovrani is a woman among ten
thousand--the love of her alone is sufficient to make a man better and
nobler in every way--and if you can win her--"

"Ah, that is impossible! She is already affianced--"

Aubrey took his arm.

"Come with me, and I will tell you all I know," he said--"For there is
much to say,--and when you have heard everything, you may not be
altogether without hope."

They turned, and went towards the Corso, which they presently entered,
and where numbers of passers-by paused involuntarily to look at the two
men who offered such a marked contrast to each other,--the one
brown-haired and lithe, with dark, eager eyes,--the other with the slim
well set up figure of an athlete, and the fair head of a Saxon king.
And of the many who so looked after them, none guessed that the one was
destined in a few years' time to create a silent and bloodless French
Revolution, which should give back to France her white lilies of faith
and chivalry,--or that the other was the upholder of such a perfect
form of Christianity as should soon command the following of thousands
in all parts of the world.

And while they thus walked through the Roman crowd, the two women they
severally loved were talking of them. In Angela's sick-room, softly
shaded from the light, with a cheery wood fire burning, Sylvie sat by
her friend, telling her all she could think of that would interest her,
and rouse her from the deep gravity of mood in which she nearly always
found her. The weary days of pain and illness had given Angela a
strange, new beauty,--her face, delicate and pale, seemed transfigured
by the working of the soul within,--and her eyes, tired as they were
and often heavy with tears, had a serenity in their depths which was
not of earth, but all of Heaven. She was able now to move from her bed,
and lie on a couch near the fire,--and her little white hands moved
caressingly and with loving care among the bunches of beautiful flowers
which Sylvie had laid on her coverlet,--daffodils, anemones, narcissi,
violets, jonquils, and all the sweet-scented flowers of early spring
which come to Rome in December from the blossoming fields of Sicily.

"How sweet they are!" she said with a half sigh,--"They almost make me
in love with life again!"

Sylvie said nothing, but only kissed her.

"How good you are to me, dearest Sylvie!" she then said--"You deserve
to be very happy!"

"Not half so much as you do!" responded Sylvie tenderly--"I am of no
use at all to the world; and you are! The world would not miss me a
bit, but it would not find an Angela Sovrani again in a hurry!"

Angela raised a cluster of narcissi and inhaled their fine and delicate
perfume. There were tears in her eyes, but she hid them with a spray of
the flowers.

"Ah, Sylvie, you think too well of me! To be famous is nothing. To be
loved is everything!"

Sylvie looked at her earnestly.

"You are loved," she said.

"No, no!" she said--"No, I am not loved. I am hated! Hush, Sylvie!--do
not say one word of what is in your mind, for I will not hear it!"

She spoke agitatedly, and her cheeks flushed a sudden feverish red.

Sylvie made haste to try and soothe her.

"My darling girl, I would not say anything to vex you for the world!
You must not excite yourself--"

"I am not excited," said Angela, putting her arms round her friend and
drawing her fair head down till it was half hidden against her own
bosom--"No--but I must speak--bear with me for a minute, dear! We all
have our dreams, we women, and I have had mine! I dreamt there was such
a beautiful thing in the world as a great, unselfish love,--I fancied
that a woman, if gifted with a little power and ability above the rest
of her sex, could make the man she loved proud of her--not jealous!--I
thought that a lover delighted in the attainments of his beloved--I
thought there was nothing too high, too great, too glorious to attempt
for the sake of proving oneself worthy to be loved! And now--I have
found out the truth, Sylvie!--a bitter truth, but no doubt good for me
to know,--that men will kill what they once caressed out of a mere
grudge of the passing breath called Fame! Thus, Love is not what I
dreamed it; and I, who was so foolishly glad to think that I was loved,
have wakened up to know that I am hated!--hated to the very extremity
of hate, for a poor gift of brair and hand which I wish--I wish I had
never had!"

Sylvie raised her head and gently put aside the weak trembling little
hands that embraced her.

"Angela, Angela! You must not scorn the gifts of the gods! No, No!--you
will not let me say anything--you forbid me to express my thoughts
fully, and I know you are not well enough to hear me yet--but one day
you WILL know!--you will hear,--you will even be thankful for all the
sorrow you have passed through,--and meanwhile, dear, dearest Angela,
do not be ungrateful!"

She said the word boldly yet hesitatingly, bending over the couch
tenderly, her eyes full of light, and a smile on her lips. And taking
up a knot of daffodils she swept their cool blossoms softly across
Angela's burning forehead, murmuring--

"Do not be ungrateful!"

"Ungrateful--!" echoed Angela,--and she moved restlessly.

"Yes, darling! Do not say you wish you never had received the great
gifts God has given you. Do not judge of things by Sorrow's measurement
only. I repeat--you ARE loved--though not perhaps where you most relied
on love. Your father loves you--your uncle loves you--Manuel loves you
. . ."

Angela interrupted her with a protesting gesture.

"Yes--I know," she murmured, "but--"

"But you think all this love is worthless, as compared with a love that
was no love at all?" said Sylvie. "There! We will not speak about it
any more just now,--you are not strong, and you see things in their
darkest light. Shall I talk to you about Aubrey?"

"Ah! That is a subject you are never tired of!" said Angela with a
faint smile. "Nor am I."

"Well, you ought to be," answered Sylvie gaily, "for I am too blindly,
hopelessly in love to know when to stop! I see nothing else and know
nothing else--it is Aubrey, Aubrey all the time. The air, the sunlight,
the whole world, seem only an admirable exposition of Aubrey!"

"Then how would you feel if he did not love you any more?" asked Angela.

"But that is not possible!" said Sylvie. "Aubrey could not change. It
is not in him. He is not like our poor friend Fontenelle."

"Ah! That love of yours was only fancy, Sylvie!"

"We all have our fancies!" answered the pretty Comtesse, looking very
earnestly into Angela's eyes. "We are not always sure that what we
first call love is love. But I had much more than a fancy for the
Marquis Fontenelle. If he had loved me--as I think he did at the
last--I should certainly have married him. But during all the time I
knew him he had a way of relegating all women to the same
level--servants, actresses, ballet-dancers, and ladies alike,--he would
never admit that there is as much difference between one woman and
another as between one man and another. And this is a mistake many men
make. Fontenelle wished to treat me as Miraudin would have treated his
'leading lady';--he judged that quite sufficient for happiness. Now
Aubrey treats me as his comrade,--his friend as well as his love, and
that makes our confidence perfect. By the way, he spoke to me a great
deal yesterday about the Abbe Vergniaud, and told me all he knew about
his son Cyrillon."

"Ah, the poor Abbe!" said Angela. "They are angry with him still at the
Vatican--angry now with his dead body! But 'Gys Grandit' is not of the
Catholic faith, so they can do nothing with him."

"No. He is what they call a 'free-lance,'" said Sylvie. "And a
wonderful personage he is! I You have seen him?"

A faint colour crept over Angela's pale cheeks.

"Yes. Once. Just once, in Paris, on the day his father publicly
acknowledged him. But I wrote to him long before I knew who he realty
was."

"Angela! You wrote to him?"

"Yes. I admired the writings of Gys Grandit--I used to buy all his
books as they came out, and study them. I wrote to him--as many people
will write to a favourite author--not in my own name of course--to
express my admiration, and he answered. And so we corresponded for
about two years, not knowing each other's identity till that scene in
Paris brought us together--"

"How VERY curious,--ve--ry!" said Sylvie, with a little mischievous
smile. "And so you are quite friends?"

"I think so--I believe so--" answered Angela--"but since we met, he has
ceased to write to me."

Sylvie made a mental note of that fact in her own mind, very much to
the credit of "Gys Grandit," but said nothing further on the subject.
Time was hastening on, and she had to return to the Casa D'Angeli to
receive Monsignor Gherardi.

"I am going to be lectured I suppose," she said laughingly. "I have not
seen the worthy Domenico since my engagement to Aubrey was announced!"

Angela looked at her intently.

"Are you at all prepared for what he will say?"

"Not in the least. What CAN he say?"

"Much that may vex you," said Angela. "Considering Aubrey Leigh's
theories, he may perhaps reproach you for your intended marriage--or he
may bring you information of the Pope's objection."

"Well! What of that?" demanded Sylvie.

"But you are a devout Catholic--"

"And you? With a great Cardinal for your uncle you paint 'The Coming of
Christ'! Ah!--I have seen that picture, Angela!"

"But I am different,--I am a worker, and I fear nothing," said Angela,
her eyes beginning to shine with the latent force in her that was
gradually resuming its dominion over her soul--"I thought long and
deeply before I put my thought into shape--"

"And _I_ thought long and deeply before I decided to be the companion
of Aubrey's life and work!" said Sylvie resolutely. "And neither the
Pope or a whole college of Cardinals will change my love or prevent my
marriage. A riverderci!"

"A riverderci!" echoed Angela, raising herself a little to receive the
kiss her friend tenderly pressed on her cheeks. "I shall be anxious to
know the result of your interview!"

"I will come round early to-morrow and tell you all," promised Sylvie,
"for I mean to find out, if I can, what happened at the Vatican when
Cardinal Bonpre last went there with Manuel."

"My uncle is most anxious to leave Rome," said Angela musingly.

"I know. And if there is any plot against him he MUST leave Rome--he
SHALL leave it! And we will help him!"

With that she went her way, and an hour or so later stood, a perfect
picture of grace and beauty, in the grand old rooms of the Casa
D'Angeli, waiting to receive Gherardi. She had taken more than the
usual pains with her toilette this afternoon, and had chosen to wear a
"creation" of wonderful old lace, with knots of primrose and violet
velvet caught here and there among its folds. It suited her small
lissom figure to perfection, and her only ornaments were a cluster of
fresh violets, and one ring sparkling on her left hand,--a star of rose
brilliants and rubies, the sign of her betrothal.

Punctual to the hour appointed, Gherardi arrived, and was at once shown
into her presence. There was a touch of aggressiveness and irony in his
manner as he entered with his usual slow and dignified step, and though
he endeavoured to preserve that suavity and cold calmness for which he
was usually admired and feared by women, his glance was impatient, and
an occasional biting of his lips showed suppressed irritation. The
first formal greetings over, he said--

"I have wished for some time to call upon you, Contessa, but the
pressure of affairs at the Vatican--"

He stopped abruptly, looking at her. How provokingly pretty she
was!--and how easily indifferent she seemed to the authoritative air he
had chosen to assume.

"I should, I know, long ere this have offered you my felicitations on
your approaching marriage--"

Sylvie smiled bewitchingly, and gave him a graceful curtsey.

"Will you not sit down, Monsignor?" she then said. "We can talk more at
our ease, do you not think?"

She seated herself, with very much the air of a queen taking possession
of a rightful throne, and Gherardi was vexedly aware that he had not by
any means the full possession of his ordinary dignity or self-control.
He took a chair opposite to her and sat for a moment perplexed as to
his next move. Sylvie did not help him at all. Ruffling the violets
among the lace at her neck, she looked at him attentively from under
her long golden-brown lashes, but maintained a perfect silence.

"The news has been received by the Holy Father with great pleasure," he
said at last. "His special benediction will grace your wedding-day."

Sylvie bent her head.

"The Holy Father is most gracious!" she replied quietly. "And he is
also more liberal than I imagined, if he is willing to bestow his
special benediction on my marriage with one who is considered a heretic
by the Church."

He flashed a keen glance at her,--then forced a smile. "Mr. Leigh's
heresy is of the past," he said--"We welcome him--with you--as one of
us!"

Sylvie was silent. He waited, inwardly cursing her tranquillity. Then,
as she still did not speak, he went on in smooth accents-- "The Church
pardons all who truly repent. She welcomes all who come to her in
confidence, no matter how tardy or hesitating their approach. We shall
receive the husband of our daughter Sylvie Hermenstein, with such joy
as the prodigal son was in old time received--and of his past mistakes
and follies there shall be neither word nor memory!"

Then Sylvie looked up and fixed her deep blue eyes steadily upon him.

"Caro Monsignor!" she said very sweetly. "Why talk all this nonsense to
me? Do you not realise that as the betrothed wife of Aubrey Leigh I am
past the Church counsel or command?"

Gherardi still smiled.

"Past Church counsel or command?" he murmured with an indulgent air, as
though he were talking to a very small child. "Pardon me if I am at a
loss to understand--"

"Oh, you understand very well!" said Sylvie. "You know perfectly--or
you should--that a wife's duty is to obey her husband,--and that in
future HIS Church,--not yours,--must be hers also."

"Surely you speak in riddles?" said Gherardi, preserving his suave
equanimity. "Mr. Leigh is (or was) a would-be ardent reformer, but he
has no real Church."

"Then I have none!" replied Sylvie.

There was a moment's silence. A black rage began to kindle in
Gherardi's soul,--rage all the more intense because so closely
suppressed.

"I am still at a loss to follow you, Contessa," he said coldly. "Surely
you do not mean to imply that your marriage will sever you from the
Church of your fathers?"

"Monsignor, marriage for me means an oath before God to take my husband
for better or for worse, and to be true to him under all trial and
circumstances," said Sylvie. "And I assuredly mean to keep that oath!
Whatever his form of faith, I intend to follow it,--as I intend to obey
his commands, whatever they may be, or wherever they may lead. For
this, to me, is the only true love,--this to me, is the only possible
'holy' estate of matrimony. And for the Church--a Church which does not
hesitate to excommunicate a dying man, and persecute a good one,--I
will leave the possibility of its wrath, together with all other
consequences of my act--to God!"

For one moment Gherardi felt that he could have sprung upon her and
throttled her. The next, he had mastered himself sufficiently to
speak,--this woman, so slight, so beautiful, so insolent should not
baffle him, he resolved!--and bending his dark brows menacingly, he
addressed her in his harshest and most peremptory manner.

"You talk of God," he said, "as a child talks of the sun and moon, with
as little meaning, and less comprehension! What impertinence it is for
a woman like yourself,--vain, weak and worldly,--to assert your own
will--your own thought and opinion--in the face of the Most High! What!
YOU will desert the Church? YOU whose ancestors have for ages been
devout servants of the faith? YOU, the last descendant of the Counts
Hermenstein, a noble and loyal family, will degrade your birth by
taking up with the rags and tags of humanity--the scarecrows of life?
And by your sheer stupidity and obstinacy, you will allow your
husband's soul to be dragged to perdition with your own! You call it
love--to keep him an infidel? You call it marriage--to be united to him
without the blessings of Holy Church? Where is your reason?--Where is
your judgment?--Where your faith?"

"Not in my bank, Monsignor!" replied Sylvie coldly. "Though that is the
place where you would naturally expect to find these virtues
manifested, and the potency of their working substantially proved!
Pardon!--I have no wish to offend--but your manner to ME is offensive,
and unless you are disposed to discuss this matter temperately, I must
close our interview!"

Gherardi flushed a dark red, then grew pale. After all, the Countess
Hermenstein was in her own house,--she had the right to command his
exit if she chose. Small and slight as she was, she had a dignity and
power as great as his own, and if anything was to be gained from her it
was necessary to temporize. Among many other qualifications for the
part he had to play in life, he was an admirable actor, and would have
made his fortune on the legitimate stage,--and this "quick change"
ability served him in good stead now. He rose from his chair as though
moved by uncontrollable agitation, and walked to the window, then
turned again and came slowly and with bent head towards her.

"Forgive me!" he said simply. "I was wrong!"

Sylvie, easily moved to kindness, was touched by this apparent humility
on the part of a man so renowned for unflinching hauteur, and she at
once gave him her hand.

"I shall forget your words!" she said gently. "So there is nothing to
pardon."

"Thank you for your generosity," he said, still standing before her and
preserving his grave and quiet demeanour. "In my zeal for Holy Church,
my tongue frequently outruns my prudence. I confess you have hurt
me,--cruelly! You are a mere child to me--young, beautiful,
beloved,--and I am growing old; I have sacrificed all the joys of life
for the better serving of the faith--but I have kept a few fair
dreams--and one of the fairest was my belief in YOU!"

Sylvie looked at him searchingly, but his eyes did not flinch in
meeting hers.

"I am sorry you are disappointed, Monsignor," she began, when he raised
his hand deprecatingly.

"No--I am not disappointed as yet!" he said, with an affectation of
great kindness. "Because I do not permit myself to believe that you
will allow me to be disappointed! Just now you made a passing
allusion--and I venture to say a hasty and unworthy one--to your
'bank,' as if my whole soul were set on retaining you as a daughter of
the Church for your great wealth's sake only! Contessa, you are
mistaken! Give me credit for higher and nobler motives! Grant me the
right to be a little better--a little more disinterested, than perhaps
popular rumour describes me,--believe me to be at least your friend--"

He paused--his voice apparently broken by emotion, and turning away his
head he paced the room once more and finally sat down, covering his
eyes with one hand, in an admirably posed attitude of fatigue and
sorrow.

Sylvie was perplexed, and somewhat embarrassed. She had never seen him
in this kind of humour before. She was accustomed to a certain
domineering authority in his language, rendered all the more difficult
to endure by the sarcasm with which he sometimes embittered his words,
as though he had dipped them in gall before pronouncing them,--but this
apparent abandonment of reserve, this almost touching assumption of
candour, were phases of his histrionical ability which he had never
till now displayed in her presence.

"Monsignor," she said after a little silence, "I sincerely ask your
pardon if I have wronged you, even in a thought! I had no real
intention of doing so, and if anything I have said has seemed to you
unduly aggressive or unjust, I am sorry! But you yourself began to
scold"--and she smiled--"and I am not in the humour to be scolded!
Though, to speak quite frankly, I have always been more or less
prepared for a little trouble on the subject of my intended marriage
with Mr. Aubrey Leigh,--I have felt and known all along that it would
incur the Pope's displeasure . . ."

Here Gherardi uncovered his eyes and looked at her fully.

"But there you are mistaken!" he said gently, with a smile that was
almost paternal. "I know of nothing in recent years that has given the
Holy Father greater satisfaction!"

She glanced at him quickly but said nothing, whereat he was secretly
annoyed. Why did she not express her wonder and delight at the Pope's
lenity, as almost any other woman in her position would have done? Her
outward appearance was that of child-like ultra-femininity,--how was it
then that he felt as if she were mentally fencing with him, and that
her intellectual sword-play threatened to surpass his own?

"Nothing," he repeated suavely, "has given the Holy Father greater
satisfaction! For very naturally, he looks upon you as one of his most
faithful children, and rejoices that by the power of perfect love--love
which is an emanation of the Divine Spirit in itself--you have been
chosen by our Lord to draw so gifted and brilliant a man as Aubrey
Leigh out of the error of his ways and bring him into the true fold!"



XXXIV.

Still the Countess Sylvie was silent. Bending a quick scrutinising
glance upon her, he saw that her eyes were lowered, and that the
violets nestling near her bosom moved restlessly with her quickened
breath, and he judged these little signs of agitation as the favourable
hints of a weakening and hesitating will.

"Aubrey Leigh," he went on slowly, "has long been an avowed enemy of
our Church. In England especially, where many of the Protestant clergy,
repenting of their recusancy--for Protestantism is nothing more than a
backsliding from the true faith--are desirous of gradually, through the
gentler forms of Ritualism, returning to the Original source of Divine
Inspiration, he has taken a great deal too much upon himself in the
freedom of his speeches to the people. But we are bound to remember
that it is not against OUR Church only that he has armed himself at all
points, but seemingly against all Churches; and when we examine,
charitably and with patience, into the sum and substance of his work
and aim, we find its chief object is to purify and maintain--not to
destroy or deny--the Divine teaching of Christ. In this desire we are
one with him--we are even willing to assist him in the Cause he has
espoused--and we shall faithfully promise to do so, when we receive him
as your husband. Nay, more--we will endeavour to further his work among
the poor, and carry out any scheme for their better care, which he may
propose to us, and we may judge as devout and serviceable. The Church
has wide arms,--she stretches far, and holds fast! The very fact of a
man like Aubrey Leigh voluntarily choosing as his wife the last scion
of one of the most staunch Roman Catholic families in Europe, proves
the salutary and welcome change which your good influence has brought
about in his heart and mind and manner and judgment,--wherefore it
follows, my dear child, that in his marriage with you he becomes one of
us, and is no longer outside us!"

With a swift and graceful imperiousness, Sylvie suddenly rose and faced
him.

"It is time we understood each other, Monsignor," she said quietly. "It
is no good playing at cross purposes! With every respect for you, I
must speak plainly. I am fully aware of all you tell me respecting my
descent and the traditions of my ancestors. I know that the former
Counts Hermenstein were faithful servants of the Church. But they were
all merely half-educated soldiers; brave, yet superstitious. I know
also that my father, the late Count, was apparently equally loyal to
the Church,--though really only so because it was too much trouble for
him to think seriously about anything save hunting. But I--Sylvie--the
last of the race, do not intend to be bound or commanded by the
trammels of any Church, in the face of the great truths declared to the
world to-day! My faith in God is as my betrothed husband's faith in
God,--my heart is his,--my life is his! From henceforth we are
together; and together we are content to go, after death, wherever God
shall ordain, be it Hell or Heaven!"

"Wait!" said Gherardi in low fierce accents, his eyes glittering with
mingled rage and the admiration of her beauty which he could ill
conceal. "Wait! If you care nothing for yourself in this matter, is it
possible that you care nothing for him? Have you thought of the results
of such rashness as you meditate? Listen!" and he leaned forward in his
chair, his dark brows bent and his whole attitude expressive of a
relentless malice--"Your marriage, without the blessing of the Church
of your fathers, shall be declared illegal!--your children pronounced
bastards! Wherever the ramifications of the Church are spread (and they
are everywhere) you, the brilliant, the courted, the admired Sylvie
Hermenstein, shall find yourself not only outside the Church, but
outside all Society! You will be considered as 'living in sin';--as no
true wife, but merely the mistress of the man with whom you have
elected to wander the world! And he, when he sees the finger of scorn
pointed at you and at his children, he also will change--as all men
change when change is convenient or advantageous to themselves;--he
will in time weary of his miserable Christian-Democratic theories,--and
of you!--yes, even of you!" And Gherardi suddenly sprang up and drew
nearer to her. "Even of YOU, I say! He will weary of your beauty--that
delicate fine loveliness which makes me long to possess it!--me, a
priest of the Mother-Church, whose heart is supposed to beat only for
two things--Power and Revenge! Listen--listen yet a moment!" and he
drew a step nearer, while Sylvie held her ground where she stood,
unflinchingly, and like a queen, though she was pale to the very
lips--"What of the friend you love so well, Angela Sovrani, who has
dared to paint such a picture as should be burnt in the public
market-place for its vile heresy! Do you think SHE will escape the
wrath of the Church? Not she! We in our day use neither poison nor cold
steel--but we know how to poison a name and stab a reputation! What!
You shrink at that? Listen yet--listen a moment longer! And remember
that nothing escapes the vigilant eye of Rome! At this very moment I
can place my hand on Florian Varillo, concerning whom there is a rumour
that he attempted the assassination of his betrothed wife,--an inhuman
deed that no sane man could ever have perpetrated"--here Sylvie uttered
a slight exclamation, and he paused, looking at her with a cold
smile--"Yes, I repeat it!--a deed WHICH NO SANE MAN COULD HAVE
PERPETRATED! The unfortunate, the deeply wronged Florian Varillo, is
prepared to swear, and I AM PREPARED TO SWEAR WITH HIM, that he is
guiltless of any such vile act or treachery--and also that he painted
more than half of the great picture this woman Sovrani claims as her
own work! Whilst strongly protesting against its heresy and begging her
to alter certain figures in the canvas, still he gave her for love's
sake, all his masculine ability. The blasphemous idea is hers--but the
drawing, the colouring, the grouping, are HIS!"

"He is a liar!" cried Sylvie passionately. "Let him prove his lie!"

"He shall have every chance to prove it!" answered Gherardi calmly. "I
will give him every chance! I will support what you call his lie! _I_
SAY IT IS A TRUTH! No woman could have painted that picture! And mark
you well--the mere discussion will be sufficient to kill the Sovrani's
fame!"

Heedless of his ecclesiastical dignity--reckless of everything
concerning herself-Sylvie rushed up to him and laid one hand on his arm.

"What! Are you a servant of Christ," she said half-whisperingly, "or a
slave of the devil?"

"Both," he answered, looking down upon her fair beauty with a wicked
light shining in his eyes. "Both!" and he grasped the little soft hand
that lay on his arm and held it as in a vice. "You are not wanting in
courage, Contessa, to come so close to me!--to let me hold your hand!
How pale you look! If you were like other women you would scream--or
summon your servants, and create a scandal! You know better! You know
that no scandal would ever be believed of a priest attached to the
Court of Rome! Stay there--where you are--I will not hurt you! No--by
all the raging fire of love for you in my heart, I will not touch more
than this hand of yours! Good!--Now you are quite still--I say again,
you have courage! Your eyes do not flinch--they look straight into
mine--what brave eyes! You would search the very core of my intentions?
You shall! Do you not think it enough for me--who am human though
priest--to give you up to the possession of a man I hate!--A man who
has insulted me! Is it not enough, I say, to immolate my own passion
thus, without having to confront the possibility of your deserting that
Church for whose sake I thus resign you? For had this Aubrey Leigh
never met you, I would have MADE you mine! Still silent?--and your
little hand still quiet in mine?--I envy you your nerve! You stand
torture well, but I will not keep you on the rack too long! You shall
know the worst at once--then you shall yourself judge the position. You
shall prove for yourself the power of Rome! To escape that power you
would have, as the Scripture says, to 'take the wings of the morning
and fly into the uttermost parts of the sea.' Think well!--the fame and
reputation of Angela Sovrani can be ruined at my command,--and equally,
the sanctity and position of her uncle, Cardinal Bonpre!"

With a sudden movement Sylvie wrenched her hand away from his, and
stood at bay, her eyes flashing, her cheeks crimsoning.

"Cardinal Bonpre!" she cried. "What evil have you in your mind against
him? Are you so lost to every sense of common justice as to attempt to
injure one who is greater than many of the Church's canonized saints in
virtue and honesty? What has he done to you?"

Gherardi smiled.

"You excite yourself needlessly, Contessa," he said. "He has done
nothing to me personally,--he is simply in my way. That is his sole
offence! And whatever is in my way, I remove! Nothing is easier than to
remove Cardinal Bonpre, for he has, by his very simplicity, fallen into
a trap from which extrication will be difficult. He should have stopped
in his career with the performance of his miracle at Rouen,--then all
would have been well; he should not have gone on to Paris, there to
condone the crime of the Abbe Vergniaud, and THEN come on to Rome. To
come to Rome under such circumstances, was like putting his head in the
wolf's mouth! But the most unfortunate thing he has done on his
ill-fated journey, is to have played protector to that boy he has with
him."

"Why?" demanded Sylvie, growing pale as before she had been flushed.

"Do not ask why!" said Gherardi. "For a true answer would only anger
you. Suffice it for you to know that whatever is in the way of Rome
must be removed,--SHALL be removed at all costs! Cardinal Bonpre, as I
said before, is in the way--and unless he can account fully and frankly
for his strange companionship with a mere child-wanderer picked out of
the streets, he will lose his diocese. If he persists in denying all
knowledge of the boy's origin he will lose his Cardinal's hat. There is
nothing more to be said! But--there is one remedy for all this
mischief--and it rests with YOU!"

"With me?" Sylvie trembled,--her heart beat violently. She looked as
though she were about to swoon, and Gherardi put out his arm to support
her. She pushed him away indignantly.

"Do not touch me!" she said, her sweet voice shaken with something like
the weakness of tears. "You tempt me to kill you,--to kill you and rid
the world of a human fiend!"

His eyes flashed, and narrowed at the corners in the strange snake-like
way habitual to them.

"How beautiful you are!" he said indulgently, "There are some people in
the world who do not admire slight little creatures like you, all fire
and spirit enclosed in sweetness--and in their ignorance they escape
much danger! For when a man stoops to pick up a small flower half
hidden in the long grass, he does not expect it to half-madden him with
its sweetness--or half-murder him by its sting! That is why you are
irresistible to me, and to many. Yes--no doubt you would like to kill
me, bella Contessa!--and many a man would like to be killed by you! If
I were not Domenico Gherardi, servant of Mother-Church, I would
willingly submit to death at your hands. But being what I am, I must
live! And living, I must work--to fulfil the commands of the Church.
And so faithful am I in the work of our Lord's vineyard, that I care
not how many grapes I press in the making of His wine! I tell you
plainly that it rests with you to save your friend Angela Sovrani, and
the saintly Cardinal likewise. Keep to the vows you have sworn to Holy
Church,--vows sworn for you in infancy at baptism, and renewed by
yourself at your confirmation and first Communion,--bring your husband
to Us! And Florian Varillo's mouth shall be closed--the Sovrani's
reputation shall shine like the sun at noonday; even the rank heresy of
her picture shall be forgiven, and the Cardinal and his waif shall go
free!"

Sylvie clasped her hands passionately together and raised them in an
attitude of entreaty.

"Oh, why are you so cruel!" she cried. "Why do you demand from me what
you know to be impossible?"

"It is not impossible," answered Gherardi, watching her closely as he
spoke. "The Church is lenient,--she demands nothing in haste--nothing
unreasonable! I do not even ask you to bring about Aubrey Leigh's
conversion before your marriage. You are free to wed him in your own
way and in his,--provided that one ceremonial of the marriage takes
place according to our Catholic rites. But after you are thus wedded,
you must promise to bring him to Us!--you must further promise that any
children born of your union be baptized in the Catholic faith. With
such a pledge from you, in writing, I will be satisfied;--and out of
all the entanglements and confusion at present existing, your friends
shall escape unharmed. I swear it!"

He raised his hand with a lofty gesture, as though he were asserting
the truth and grandeur of some specially noble cause. Sylvie, letting
her clasped hands drop asunder with a movement of despair, stood gazing
at him in fascinated horror.

"The Church!" he went on, warming with his own inward fervour. "The
Rock, on which our Lord builds the real fabric of the Universe!" And
his tall form dilated with the utterance of his blasphemy. "The
learning, the science, the theoretical discussions of men, shall pass
as dust blown by the breath of a storm-wind--but the Church shall
remain, the same, yesterday, to-day and forever! It shall crush down
kings, governments and nations in its unmoving Majesty! The fluctuating
wisdom of authors and reformers--the struggle of conflicting
creeds--all these shall sink and die under the silent inflexibility of
its authority! The whole world hurled against it shall not prevail, and
were all its enemies to perish by the sword, by poison, by disease, by
imprisonment, by stripes and torture, this would be but even justice!
'For many are called--but few are chosen.'"

He turned his eyes, flashing with a sort of fierce ecstasy, upon the
slight half-shrinking figure of Sylvie opposite to him. "Yes, bella
Contessa! What the Church ordains, must be; what the Church desires,
that same the Church will have! There is no room in the hearts or minds
of its servants for love, for pity, for pardon, for anything human
merely,--its authority is Divine!--and 'God will not be mocked'!
Humanity is the mere food and wine of sacrifice to the Church's
doctrine,--nations may starve, but the Church must be fed. What are
nations to the Church? Naught but children,--docile or
rebellious;--children to be whipped, and coerced, and FORCED to obey!
Thus for you, one unit out of the whole mass, to oppose yourself to the
mighty force of Rome, is as though one daisy out of the millions in the
grass should protest against the sweep of the mower's scythe! You do
not know me yet! There is nothing I would hesitate to do in the service
of the Church. I would consent to ruin even YOU, to prove the fire of
my zeal, as well as the fire of my love!"

He made a step towards her,--she drew herself to the utmost reach of
her elfin height, and looked at him straightly. Pale, but with her dark
blue eyes flashing like jewels, she in one sweeping glance, measured
him with a scorn so intense that it seemed to radiate from her entire
person, and pierce him with a thousand arrowy shafts of flame.

"You have stated your intentions," she said. "Will you hear my answer?"

He bent his head gravely, with a kind of ironical tolerance in his
manner.

"There is nothing I desire more!" he replied, "for I am sure that in
the unselfish sweetness of your nature you will do all you can to
serve--and save--your friends!"

"You are right!" she said, controlling the quickness of her breathing,
and forcing herself to speak calmly. "I will! But not in your way! Not
at your command! You have enlightened me on many points of which I was
hitherto ignorant--and for this I thank you! You have taught me that
the Church, instead of being a brotherhood united in the Divine service
of Christ, who was God-in-Man, is a mere secular system of avarice and
tyranny! You pretend to save souls for God! What do you care for MY
soul! You would have me wed a man with fraud in my heart,--with the
secret intent to push upon him the claims of a Church he abhors,--and
this after he has made me his wife! You would have me tell lies to him
before the Eternal! And you call that the way to salvation? No,
Monsignor! It is the wealth of the Hermensteins you desire!--not the
immortal rescue or heavenly benefit of the last of their children! You
will support the murderer Varillo in his lie to ruin an innocent
woman's reputation! You would destroy the honour and peace of an old
man's life for the sake of furthering your own private interests and
grudges! And you call yourself a servant of Christ! Monsignor, if you
are a servant of Christ, then the Church you serve must be the shadow
of a future hell!--not the promise of a future heaven! I denounce
it,--I deny it!--I swear by the Holy Name of our Redeemer that I am a
Christian!--not a slave of the Church of Rome!"

Such passion thrilled her, such high exaltation, that she looked like
an inspired angel in her beauty and courage, and Gherardi, smothering a
fierce oath, made one stride towards her and seized her hands.

"You defy me!" he said in a hoarse whisper. "You dare me to my worst?"

She looked up at his dark cruel face, his glittering eyes, and
shuddered as with icy cold,--but the spirit in that delicate little
body of hers was strong as steel, and tempered to the grandest issues.

"I dare you to do your worst!" she said, half-sobbingly,--half-closing
her eyes in the nervous terror she could not altogether control. "You
can but kill me--I shall die true!"

With a sort of savage cry, Gherardi snatched her round the waist, but
scarcely had he done so when he was flung aside with a force that made
him reel back heavily against the wall, and Aubrey Leigh confronted him.

"Aubrey!" cried Sylvie. "Oh, Aubrey!"

He caught her as she sprang to him, and held her fast,--and with
perfect self-possession he eyed the priest disdainfully up and down.

"So this," he said coldly, "is the way the followers of Saint Peter
fulfil the commands of Christ! Or shall we say this is the way in which
they go on denying their Master? It is a strange way of retaining
disciples,--a still stranger way of making converts! A brave way too,
to intimidate a woman!"

Gherardi, recovering from the shock of Aubrey's blow, drew himself up
haughtily.

"I serve the Church, Mr. Leigh!" he said proudly. "And in that high
service all means are permitted to us for a righteous end!"

"Ah!--the old Jesuitical hypocrisy!" And Aubrey smiled bitterly. "Lies
are permitted in the Cause of Truth! One word, Monsignor! I have no
wish to play at any game of double-dealing with you. I have heard the
whole of your interview with this lady. It is the first time I have
ever played the eavesdropper--but my duty was to protect my promised
wife, if she needed protection--and I thought it was possible she might
need it--from YOU!"

Gherardi turned a livid paleness, and drew a quick breath.

"I know your moves," went on Aubrey quietly, "and it will be my
business as well as my pleasure to frustrate them. Moreover, I shall
give your plot into the care of the public press--"

"You will not dare!" cried Gherardi fiercely. "But--after all, what
matter if you do!--no one will believe you!"

"Not in Rome, perhaps," returned Aubrey coolly. "But in England,--in
America,--things are different. There are many honest men who dislike
to contemplate even a distant vision of the talons of Rome hovering
over us--we look upon such mischief as a sign of decay,--for only where
the carcasses of nations lie, does the vulture hover! We are not dead
yet! And now, Monsignor,--as your interview with the Countess is
ended--an interview to which I have been a witness--may I suggest the
removal of your presence? You have made a proposition--she has rejected
it--the matter is ended!"

Civilly calm and cold he stood, holding Sylvie close to him with one
embracing arm, and Gherardi, looking at the two together thus,
impotently wished that the heavy sculptured and painted ceiling above
them might fall and crush them into a pulp before him. No shame, no
sense of compunction moved him,--if anything, he raised his head more
haughtily than before.

"Aubrey Leigh," he said, "Socialist, reformer, revolutionist--whatever
you choose to call yourself!--you have all the insolence of your race
and class,--and it is beneath my dignity to argue with you. But you
will rue the day you ever crossed my path! Not one thing have I
threatened, that shall not be performed! This unhappy lady whose mind
has been perverted from Holy Church by your heretical teachings, shall
be excommunicated. Henceforth we look upon her as a child of sin, and
we shall publicly declare her marriage with you illegal. The rest can
be left with confidence, to--Society!"

And with a dark smile which made his face look like that of some
malignant demon, he turned, and preserving his proud inflexibility of
demeanour, without another look or gesture, left the apartment.

Then Aubrey, alone with his love, drew her closer, and lifted her fair
face to his own, looking at it with passionate tenderness and
admiration.

"You brave soul!" he said. "You true woman! You angel of the covenant
of love! How shall I ever tell you how I worship you--how I revere
you--for your truth and courage!"

She trembled under the ardour of his utterance, and her eyes filled
with tears.

"I was not afraid!" she said. "I should have called Katrine,--only I
knew that if I once did so, she also would be involved, and he would be
unscrupulous enough to ruin my name with a few words in order to defend
himself from all suspicion. But you, Aubrey?--how did it happen that
you were here?"

"I was here from the first!" he replied triumphantly. "I followed on
Gherardi's very heels. Your Arab boy admitted me--he was in my secret.
He showed me into the anteroom just outside, where by leaving a corner
of the door ajar I could see and hear everything. And I listened to
your every word! I saw every bright flash of the strong soul in your
brave eyes! And now those eyes question me, sweetheart,--almost
reproachfully they seem to ask me why I did not interfere between you
and Gherardi before? Ah, but you must forgive me for the delay! I
wanted to drink all my cup of nectar to the dregs--I could not lose one
drop of such sweetness! To see you, slight fragile blossom of a woman,
matching your truth and courage against the treachery and malice of the
most unscrupulous priestly tool ever employed by the Vatican, was a
sight to make me strong for all my days!" He kissed her passionately.
"My love! My wife! How can I ever thank you!"

She raised her sweet eyes wonderingly.

"Did you doubt me, Aubrey?" "No! I never doubted you. But I wondered
whether your force would hold out, whether you might not be
intimidated, whether you might not temporize, which would have been
natural enough--whether you might not have used some little social art
or grace to cover up and disguise the absoluteness of your resolve--but
no! You were a heroine in the fight, and you gave your blows straight
from the hilt, without flinching. You have made me twice a man, Sylvie!
With you beside me I shall win all I might otherwise have lost, and I
thank God for you, dear!--I thank God for you!"

He drew her close again into his arms, pressing her to his heart which
beat tumultously with its deep rejoicing,--no fear now that they two
would ever cease to be one! No danger now of those miserable so-called
"religious" disputes between husband and wife, which are so eminently
anti-Christian, and which make many a home a hell upon earth,--disputes
which young children sometimes have to witness from their earliest
years, when the mother talks "at" the father for not going to Church,
or the father sneers at the mother for being "a rank Papist"! Nothing
now, but absolute union in spirit and thought, in soul and
intention--the rarest union that can be consummated between man and
woman, and yet the only one that can engender perfect peace and
unchanging happiness.

And presently the lovers' trance of joy gave way to thought for others;
to a realization of the dangers hovering over the good Cardinal, and
the already ill-fated Angela Sovrani, and Aubrey, raising the golden
head that nestled against his breast, kissed the sweet lips once more
and said--

"Now, my Sylvie, we must take the law into our own hands! We must do
all we can to save our friends. The Cardinal must be thought of first.
If we are not quick to the rescue he will be sent 'into retreat,' which
can be translated as forced detention, otherwise imprisonment. He must
leave Rome to-night. Now listen!"

And sitting down beside her, still holding her hand, he gave her an
account of his meeting with Cyrillon Vergniaud, otherwise "Gys
Grandit," and told her of the sudden passion for Angela that had fired
the soul of that fiery writer of the fiercest polemics against
priestcraft that had as yet startled France.

"Knowing now all the intended machinations of Gherardi," continued
Aubrey, "what I suggest is this,--that you, my Sylvie, should confide
in the Princesse D'Agramont, who is fortunately for us, an enemy of the
Vatican. Arrange with her that she persuades Angela to return under her
escort at once to Paris. Angela is well enough to travel if great care
be taken of her, and the Princesse will not spare that. Cyrillon can go
with them--I should think that might be managed?"

He smiled as he put this question. Sylvie smiled in answer and replied
demurely--

"I should think so!"

"But the Cardinal," resumed Aubrey, "and--and Manuel--must go to-night.
I will see Prince Sovrani and arrange it. And Sylvie--will you marry me
to-morrow morning?"

Her eyes opened wide and she laughed.

"Why yes, if you wish it!" she said. "But--so soon?"

"Darling, the sooner the better! I mean to take every possible method
of making our marriage binding in the sight of the world, before the
Vatican has time to launch its thunders. If you are willing, we can be
married at the American Consulate to-morrow morning. You must remember
that though born of British parents, I do not resign my American
citizenship, and would not forego being of the New World for all the
old worlds ever made! The American Consul knows me well, and he will
begin to make things legal for us to-morrow if you are ready."

"BEGIN to make things legal?" echoed Sylvie smiling. "Will he do no
more than begin?"

"My sweetheart, he cannot. He will make you mine according to American
law. In England, you will again be made mine according to English law.
And then afterwards we will have our religious ceremony!"

Sylvie looked at him perplexedly, then gave a pretty gesture of playful
resignation.

"Let everything be as you wish and decide, Aubrey," she said." I give
my life and love to you, and have no other will but yours!"

He kissed her.

"I accept the submission, only to put myself more thoroughly at your
command," he said tenderly,--"You are my queen,--but with powerful
enemies against us, I must see that you are rightfully enthroned!"

A few minutes' more conversation,--then a hurried consultation with
Madame Bozier, and Sylvie, changing her lace gown for a simple
travelling dress, walked out of the Casa D'Angeli with the faithful
Katrine, and taking the first carriage she could find, was driven to
the Palazzo where the Princesse D'Agramont had her apartments. Allowing
from ten to fifteen minutes to elapse after her departure, Aubrey Leigh
himself went out, and standing on the steps of the house, looked up and
down carelessly, drawing on his gloves and humming a tune. His quick
glance soon espied what he had been almost certain he should see,
namely, the straight black-garmented figure of a priest, walking slowly
along the street on the opposite side, his hands clasped behind his
back, and his whole aspect indicative of devout meditation.

"I thought so!" said Aubrey to himself. "A spy set on already! No time
to lose--Cardinal Bonpre must leave Rome at nightfall."

Leisurely he crossed the road, and walking with as slow a step as the
priest he had noticed, came opposite to him face to face. With
impenetrable solemnity the holy man meekly moved aside,--with equally
impenetrable coolness, Aubrey eyed him up and down, then the two passed
each other, and Aubrey walked with the same unhasting pace, to the end
of the street,--then turned--to see that the priest had paused in his
holy musings to crane his neck after him and watch him with the most
eager scrutiny. He did not therefore take a carriage at the moment he
intended, but walked on into the Corso,--there he sprang into a fiacre
and drove straight to the Sovrani Palace. The first figure he saw
there, strolling about in the front of the building, was another
priest, absorbed in apparently profound thoughts on the sublimity of
the sunset, which was just then casting its red glow over the Eternal
City. And with the appearance of this second emissary of the Vatican
police, he realised the full significance of the existing position of
affairs.

Without a moment's loss of time he was ushered into the presence of the
Cardinal, and there for a moment stood silent on the threshold of the
apartment, overcome by the noble aspect of the venerable prelate, who,
seated in his great oaken chair, was listening to a part of the Gospel
of Saint Luke, read aloud in clear sweet accents by Manuel.

"A good man out of the good treasure of his heart bringeth forth that
which is good; and an evil man out of the evil treasure of his heart
bringeth forth that which is evil; for of the abundance of the heart
his mouth speaketh.

"And why call ye me, Lord, Lord, and do not the things which I say?

"Whosoever cometh to me, and heareth my sayings, and doeth them, I will
show you to whom he is like:

"He is like a man which built an house, and digged deep, and laid the
foundation on a rock: and when the flood arose, the stream beat
vehemently upon that house, and could not shake it: for it was founded
upon a rock.

"But he that heareth, and doeth not, is like a man that without a
foundation built an house upon the earth; against which the stream did
beat vehemently, and immediately it fell; AND THE RUIN OF THAT HOUSE
WAS GREAT."

And emphasizing the last line, Manuel closed the book; then at a kindly
beckoning gesture from the Cardinal, Aubrey advanced into the room,
bowing with deep reverence and honour over the worn old hand the
prelate extended.

"My lord Cardinal," he said without further preface, "you must leave
Rome to-night!"

The Cardinal raised his gentle blue eyes in wondering protest.

"By whose order?"

"Surely by your own Master's will," said Aubrey with deep earnestness.
"For he would not have you be a victim to treachery!"

"Treachery!" And the Cardinal smiled. "My son, traitors harm themselves
more than those they would betray. Treachery cannot touch me!"

Aubrey came a step nearer.

"Monsignor, if you do not care for yourself you will care for the boy,"
he said in a lower tone, with a glance at Manuel, who had withdrawn,
and was now standing at one of the windows, the light of the sunset
appearing to brighten itself in his fair hair. "He will be separated
from you!"

At this the Cardinal rose up, his whole form instinct with resolution
and dignity.

"They cannot separate us against the boy's will or mine," he said.
"Manuel!"

Manuel came to his call, and the Cardinal placed one hand on his
shoulder.

"Child," he said softly, "they threaten to part me from you, if we stay
longer here. Therefore we must leave Rome!"

Manuel looked up with a bright flashing glance of tenderness.

"Yes, dear friend, we must leave Rome!" he said. "Rome is no place for
you--or for me!"

There was a moment's silence. Something in the attitude of the old man
and the young boy standing side by side, moved Aubrey deeply; a sense
of awe as well as love overwhelmed him at the sight of these two
beings, so pure in mind, so gentle of heart, and so widely removed in
years and in life,--the one a priest of the Church, the other a waif of
the streets, yet drawn together as it seemed, by the simple spirit of
Christ's teaching, in an almost supernatural bond of union. Recovering
himself presently he said,

"To-night then, Monsignor?"

The Cardinal looked at Manuel, who answered for him.

"Yes, to-night! We will be ready! For the days are close upon the time
when the birth of Christ was announced to a world that does not yet
believe in Him! It will be well to leave Rome before then! For the
riches of the Pope's palace have nothing to do with the poor babe born
in a manger,--and the curse of the Vatican would be a discord in the
angels' singing--'Glory to God in the highest, and on earth PEACE,
GOODWILL TOWARDS MEN'!"

His young voice rang out, silver clear and sweet, and Aubrey gazed at
him in wondering silence.

"To-night!" repeated Manuel, smiling and stretching out his hand with a
gentle authoritative gesture. "To-night the Cardinal will leave Rome,
and _I_ will leave it too--perchance for ever!"



XXXV.

During these various changes in the lives of those with whom he had
been more or less connected, Florian Varillo lay between life and death
in the shelter of a Trappist monastery on the Campagna. When he had
been seized by the delirium and fever which had flung him, first
convulsed and quivering, and then totally insensible, at the foot of
the grim, world-forgotten men who passed the midnight hours in digging
their own graves, he had been judged by them as dying or dead, and had
been carried into a sort of mortuary chapel, cold and bare, and lit
only by the silver moonbeams and the flicker of a torch one of the
monks carried. Waking in this ghastly place, too weak to struggle, he
fell a-moaning like a tortured child, and was, on showing this sign of
life, straight-way removed to one of the cells. Here, after hours of
horrible suffering, of visions more hideous than Dante's Hell, of
stupors and struggles, of fits of strong shrieking, followed by weak
tears, he woke one afternoon calm and coherent,--to find himself lying
on a straight pallet bed in a narrow stone chamber, dimly lighted by a
small slit of window, through which a beam of the sun fell aslant,
illumining the blood-stained features of a ghastly Christ stretched on
a black crucifix directly opposite him. He shuddered as he saw this,
and half-closed his eyes with a deep sigh.

"Tired--tired!" said a thin clear voice beside him. "Always tired! It
is only God who is never weary!"

Varillo opened his eyes again languidly, and turned them on a monk
sitting beside him,--a monk whose face was neither old nor young, but
which presented a singular combination of both qualities. His high
forehead, white as marble, had no furrows to mar its smoothness, and
from under deep brows a pair of wondering wistful brown eyes peered
like the eyes of a lost and starving child. The cheeks were gaunt and
livid, the flesh hanging in loose hollows from the high and prominent
bones, yet the mouth was that of a youth, firm, well-outlined and sweet
in expression, and when he smiled as he did now, he showed an even row
of small pearly teeth which might have been envied by many a fair woman.

"Only God who is never weary!" he said, nodding his head slowly, "but
we--you and I--we are soon tired!"

Varillo looked at him dubiously; and a moment's thought decided him to
assume a certain amount of meekness and docility with this evident
brother of some religious order, so that he might obtain both sympathy
and confidence from him, and from all whom he might be bound to serve.
Ill and weak as he was, the natural tendency of his brain to scheme for
his own advantage, was not as yet impaired.

"Ah, yes!" he sighed, "I am very tired!--very ill! I do not know what
has happened to me--nor even where I am. What place is this?"

"It is a place where the dead come!" responded the monk. "The dead in
heart! the dead in soul--the dead in sin! They come to bury themselves,
lest God should find them and crush them into dust before they have
time to say a prayer! Like Adam and his wife, they hide themselves
'from the presence of the Lord among the trees of the garden.'"

Varillo raised himself on one elbow, and stared at the pale face and
smiling mouth of the speaker in fear and wonder.

"'A place where the dead come!'" he echoed. "But you are alive--and so
am I!"

"You may be--I am not," said the monk quietly. "I died long ago! People
who are alive say we are men, though we know ourselves to be ghosts
merely. This place is called by the world a Trappist monastery,--you
will go out of it if indeed you are alive--you must prove that first!
But we shall never come out, because we are dead. One never comes out
of the grave!"

With an effort Varillo tried to control the tremor of his nerves, and
to understand and reason out these enigmatical sentences of his
companion. He began to think--and then to remember,--and by and by was
able to conjure up the picture of himself as he had last been conscious
of existence,--himself standing outside the gates of a great building
on the Campagna, and shaking the iron bars to and fro. It was a
Trappist monastery then?--and he was being taken charge of by the
Trappist Order? This fact might possibly be turned to his account if he
were careful. He lay down once more on his pillow and closed his eyes,
and under this pretence of sleep, pondered his position. What were they
saying of him in Rome? Was Angela buried? And her great picture? What
had become of it?

"How long have I been here?" he asked suddenly.

The monk gave a curious deprecatory gesture with his hands.

"Since you died! So long have you been dead!"

Varillo surveyed him with a touch of scorn.

"You talk in parables--like your Master!" he said with a feeble attempt
at a laugh. "I am not strong enough to understand you! And if you are a
Trappist monk, why do you talk at all? I thought one of your rules was
perpetual silence?"

"Silence? Yes--everyone is silent but me!" said the monk--"I may
talk--because I am only Ambrosio,--mad Ambrosio!--something wrong
here!" And he touched his forehead. "A little teasing demon lives
always behind my eyes, piercing my brain with darts of fire. And he
obliges me to talk; he makes me say things I should not--and for all
the mischief he works upon me I wear this--see!"--And springing up
suddenly he threw aside the folds of his garment, and displayed his
bare chest, over which a coarse rope was crossed and knotted so
tightly, that the blood was oozing from the broken flesh on either side
of it. "For every word I say, I bleed!"

Varillo gave a nervous cry and covered his eyes.

"Do not be afraid!" said Ambrosio, drawing his robe together again, "It
is only flesh--not spirit--that is wounded! Flesh is our great
snare,--it persuades us to eat, to sleep, to laugh, to love--the spirit
commands none of these things. The spirit is of God--it wants neither
food nor rest,--it is pure and calm,--it would escape to Heaven if the
flesh did not cramp its wings!"

Varillo took his hand from his eyes and tossed himself back on his
pillow with a petulant moan.

"Can they do nothing better for me than this?" he ejaculated. "To place
me here in this wretched cell alone with a madman!"

Ambrosio stood by the pallet bed looking down upon him with a sort of
child-like curiosity.

"No better than this?" he echoed. "Would you have anything better?
Safe--safe from the world,--no one can find you or follow you--no one
can discover your sin--"

"Sin! What sin!" demanded Varillo fiercely. "You talk like a fool--as
you own yourself to be! I have committed no sin!"

"Good--good!" said Ambrosio. "Then you must be canonized with all the
rest of the saints! And St. Peter's shall be illuminated, and the Pope
shall be carried in to see you and to lay his hands upon you, and they
shall shout to him, 'Tu es Petrus!' and no one will remember what kind
of a bruised, bleeding, tortured, broken-down Head of the Church stood
before the multitude when Pilate cried 'Ecce homo!'"

Varillo stared at him in unwilling fascination. He seemed carried
beyond himself,--it was as though some other force spoke through him,
and though he scarcely raised his voice, its tone was so clear,
musical, and penetrative that it seemed to give light and warmth to the
cold dullness of the cell.

"You must not mind me!" he went on softly, "My thoughts have all gone
wrong, they tell me,--so have my words. I was young once--and in that
time I used to study hard and try to understand what it was that God
wished me to do with my life. But there were so many things--so much
confusion--so much difficulty--and the end is--here!" He smiled. "Well!
It is a quiet end,--they say the devil knocks at the gate of the
monastery often at midnight, but he never enters in,--never--unless
perchance you are he!"

Varillo turned himself about pettishly.

"If I were he, I should not trouble you long," he said. "Even the devil
might be glad to make exit from such a hole as this! Who is your
Superior?"

"We have only one Superior,--God!" replied Ambrosio. "He who never
slumbers or sleeps--He who troubles Himself to look into everything,
from the cup of a flower to the heart of a man! Who shall escape the
lightning of His glance, or think to cover up a hidden vileness from
the discovery of the Most High?"

"I did not ask you for pious jargon," said Varillo, beginning to lose
temper, yet too physically weak to contend with the wordy vagaries of
this singular personage who had evidently been told off to attend upon
him. "I asked you who is the Head or Ruler of this community? Who gives
you the daily rule of conduct which you all obey?"

Ambrosio's brown eyes grew puzzled, and he shook his head.

"I obey no one," he said. "I am mad Ambrosio!--I walk about in my
grave, and speak, and sing, while others remain silent. I would tell
you if I knew of anyone greater than God,--but I do not!"

Varillo uttered an impatient groan. It was no good asking this creature
anything,--his answers were all wide of the mark.

"God," went on Ambrosio, turning his head towards the light that came
streaming in through the narrow window of the cell, "is in that
sunbeam! He can enter where He will, and we never know when we shall
meet Him face to face! He may possess with His spirit the chaste body
of a woman, as in our Blessed Lady,--or He may come to us in the form
of a child, speaking to the doctors in the temple and arguing with them
on the questions of life and death. He is in all things; and the very
beggar at our gates who makes trial of our charity, may for all we
know, be our Lord disguised! Shall I tell you a strange story?"

Varillo gave a weary sign of assent, half closing his eyes. It was
better this crazed fool should talk, he thought, than that he should
lie there and listen, as it were, to the deadly silence which in the
pauses of the conversation could be felt, like the brooding heaviness
of a thick cloud hanging over the monastery walls.

"It happened long ago," said Ambrosio. "There was a powerful prince who
thought that to be rich and strong was sufficient to make all the world
his own. But the world belongs to God,--and He does not always give it
over to the robber and spoiler. This prince I tell you of, had been the
lover of a noble lady, but he was false-hearted; and the false soon
grow weary of love! And so, tiring of her beauty and her goodness, he
stabbed her mortally to death, and thought no one had seen him do the
deed. For the only witness to it was a ray of moonlight falling through
the window--just as the sunlight falls now!--see!" And he pointed to
the narrow aperture which lit the cell, while Florian Varillo,
shuddering in spite of himself, lay motionless. "But when the victim
was dead, this very ray of moonlight turned to the shape of a great
angel, and the angel wore the semblance of our Lord,--and the glory and
the wonder of that vision was as the lightning to slay and utterly
destroy! And from that hour for many years, the murderer was followed
by a ray of light, which never left him; all day he saw it flickering
in his path,--all night it flashed across his bed, driving sleep from
his eyes and rest from his brain!--till at last maddened by remorse he
confessed his crime to a priest, and was taken into a grave like this,
a monastery,--where he died, so they say, penitent. But whether he was
forgiven, the story does not say!"

"It is a stupid story!" said Varillo, opening his eyes, and smiling in
the clear, candid way he always assumed when he had anything to hide.
"It has neither point nor meaning."

"You think not?" said Ambrosio. "But perhaps you are not conscious of
God. If you were, that sunbeam we see now should make you careful, lest
an angel should be in it!"

"Careful? Why should I be careful?" Varillo half raised himself on the
bed. "I have nothing to hide!"

At this Ambrosio began to laugh.

"Oh, you are happy--happy!" he exclaimed. "You are the first I ever
heard say that! Nothing to hide! Oh, fortunate, fortunate man! Then
indeed you should not be here--for we all have something to hide, and
we are afraid even of the light,--that is why we make such narrow holes
for it; we are always praying God not to look at our sins,--not to
uncover them and show us what vile souls we are--we men who could be as
gods in life, if we did not choose to be devils--"

Here he suddenly broke off, and a curious grey rigidity stole over his
features, as if some invisible hand were turning him into stone. His
eyes sparkled feverishly, but otherwise his face was the lace of the
dead. The horrible fixity of his aspect at that moment, so terrified
Varillo that he gave a loud cry, and almost before he knew he had
uttered it, another monk entered the cell. Varillo gazed at him
affrightedly, and pointed to Ambrosio. The monk said nothing, but
merely took the rigid figure by its arm and shook it violently. Then,
as suddenly as he had lost speech and motion, Ambrosio recovered both,
and went on talking evenly, taking up the sentence he had broken
off--"If we did not choose to be as devils, we might be as gods!" Then
looking around him with a smile, he added, "Now you are here, Filippo,
you will explain!"

The monk addressed as Filippo remained silent, still holding him by the
arm, and presently quietly guiding him, led him out of the cell. When
the two brethren had disappeared, Varillo fell back on his pillows
exhausted.

"What am I to do now?" he thought. "I must have been here many
days!--all Rome must know of Angela's death--all Rome must wonder at my
absence--all Rome perhaps suspects me of being her murderer! And
yet--this illness may be turned to some account. I can say that it was
caused by grief at hearing the sudden news of her death--that I was
stricken down by my despair--but then--I must not forget--I was to have
been in Naples. Yes--the thing looks suspicious--I shall be tracked!--I
must leave Italy. But how?"

Bathed in cold perspiration he lay, wondering, scheming, devising all
sorts of means of escape from his present surroundings, when he became
suddenly aware of a tall dark figure in the cell,--a figure muffled
nearly to its eyes, which had entered with such stealthy softness and
silence as to give almost the impression of some supernatural visitant.
He uttered a faint exclamation--the figure raised one hand menacingly.

"Be silent!" These words were uttered in a harsh whisper. "If you value
your life, hold your peace till I have said what I come to say!"

Moving to the door of the cell, the mysterious visitor bolted it across
and locked it--then dropped the disguising folds of his heavy mantle
and monk's cowl, and disclosed the face and form of Domenico Gherardi.
Paralysed with fear Varillo stared at him,--every drop of blood seemed
to rush from his heart to his brain, turning him sick and giddy, for in
the dark yet fiery eyes of the priest, there was a look that would have
made the boldest tremble.

"I knew that you were here," he said, his thin lips widening at the
corners in a slight disdainful smile. "I saw you at the inn on the road
to Frascati, and watched you shrink and tremble as I spoke of the
murder of Angela Sovrani! You screened your face behind a paper you
were reading,--that was not necessary, for your hand shook,--and so
betrayed itself as the hand of the assassin!"

With a faint moan, Varillo shudderingly turned away and buried his head
in his pillow.

"Why do you now wish to hide yourself?" pursued Gherardi. "Now when you
are an honest man at last, and have shown yourself in your true colors?
You were a liar hitherto, but now you have discovered yourself to be
exactly as the devil made you, why you can look at me without fear--we
understand each other!"

Still Varillo hid his eyes and moaned, and Gherardi thereupon laid a
rough hand on his shoulder.

"Come, man! You are not a sick child to lie cowering there as though
seized by the plague! What ails you? You have done no harm! You tried
to kill something that stood in your way,--I admire you for that! I
would do the same myself at any moment!"

Slowly Varillo lifted himself and looked up at the dark strong face
above him.

"A pity you did not succeed!" went on Gherardi, "for the world would
have been well rid of at least one feminine would-be 'genius,' whose
skill puts that of man to shame! But perhaps it may comfort you to know
that your blow was not strong enough or deep enough, and that your
betrothed wife yet lives to wed you--if she will!"

"Lives!" cried Florian. "Angela lives!"

"Ay, Angela lives!" replied Gherardi coldly. "Does that give you joy?
Does your lover's heart beat with ecstasy to know that she--twenty
times more gifted than you, a hundred times more famous than you, a
thousand times more beloved by the world than you--lives, to be crowned
with an immortal fame, while you are relegated to scorn and oblivion!
Does that content you?"

A dull red flush crept over Varillo's cheeks,--his hand flenched the
coverlet of his bed convulsively.

"Lives!" He muttered. "She lives! Then it must be by a miracle! For I
drove the steel deep . . . deep home!"

Gherardi looked at him curiously, with the air of a scientist watching
some animal writhing under vivisection.

"Perhaps Cardinal Felix prayed for her!" he said mockingly, "and even
as he healed the crippled child in Rouen he may have raised his niece
from the dead! But miracle or no miracle, she lives. That is why I am
here!"

"Why--you--are--here?" repeated Varillo mechanically.

"How dull you are!" said Gherardi tauntingly. "A man like you with a
dozen secret intrigues in Rome, should surely be able to grasp a
situation better! Angela Sovrani lives, I tell you,--I am here to help
you to kill her more surely! Your first attempt was clumsy,--and
dangerous to yourself, but--murder her reputation, amico, murder her
reputation!--and so build up your own!"

Slowly Varillo turned his eyes upon him. Gherardi met them
unflinchingly, and in that one glance the two were united in the spirit
of their evil intention.

"You are a man," went on Gherardi, watching him closely. "Will you
permit yourself to be baffled and beaten in the race for fame by a
woman? Shame on you if you do! Listen! I am prepared to swear that you
are innocent of having attempted the murder of your affianced wife, and
I will also assert that the greater part of her picture was painted by
you, though you were, out of generosity and love for her, willing to
let her take the credit of the whole conception!"

Varillo started upright.

"God!" he cried. "Is it possible! Will you do this for me?"

"Not for you--No," said Gherardi contemptuously. "I will do nothing for
you! If I saw you lying in the road at my feet dying for want of a drop
of water, I would not give it to you! What I do, I do for myself--and
the Church!"

By this time Varillo had recovered his equanimity. A smile came readily
to his lips as he said--

"Ah, the Church! Excellent institution! Like charity, it covers a
multitude of sins!"

"It exists for that object," answered Gherardi with a touch of ironical
humor. "Its own sins it covers,--and shows up the villainies of those
who sin outside its jurisdiction. Angela Sovrani is one of these,--her
uncle the Cardinal is another,--Sylvie Hermenstein--"

"What of her?" cried Varillo, his eyes sparkling. "Is her marriage
broken off?"

"Broken off!" Gherardi gave a fierce gesture. "Would that it were! No!
She renounces the Church for the sake of Aubrey Leigh--she leaves the
faith of her fathers--"

"And takes the wealth of her fathers with her!" finished Varillo,
maliciously. "I see! I understand! The Church has reason for anger!"

"It has reason!" echoed Gherardi. "And we of the Church choose you as
the tool wherewith to work our vengeance. And why? Because you are a
born liar!--because you can look straight in the eyes of man or woman,
and swear to a falsehood without flinching!--because you are an
egotist, and will do anything to serve yourself--because you have
neither heart nor conscience--nor soul nor feeling,--because you are an
animal in desires and appetite,-because of this, I say, we yoke you to
our chariot wheels, knowing you may be trusted to drive over and
trample down the creatures that might be valuable to you if they did
not stand in your way!"

Such bitterness, such scorn, such loathing were in his accents, that
even the callous being he addressed was stung, and made a feeble
gesture of protest.

"You judge me harshly," he began--

Gherardi laughed.

"Judge you! Not I! No judgment is wanted. I read you like a book
through and through,--a book that should be set on Nature's Index
Expurgatorius, as unfit to meet the eyes of the faithful! You are a low
creature, Florian Varillo,--and unscrupulous as I am myself, I despise
you for meanness greater than even I am capable of! But you are a
convenient tool, ready to hand, and I use you for the Church's service!
If you were to refuse to do as I bid you, I would brand you through the
world as the murderer you are! So realize to the full how thoroughly I
have you in my power. Now understand me,--you must leave this place
to-morrow. I will send my carriage for you, and you shall come at once
to me, to me in Rome as my guest,--my HONOURED guest!" And he
emphasized the word sarcastically. "You are weak and ill yet, they tell
me here,--so much the better for you. It will make you all the more
interesting! You will find it easier to play the part of injured
innocence! Do you understand?"

"I understand," answered Varillo with a faint shudder, for the strong
and relentless personality of Gherardi overpowered him with a sense of
terror which he could not wholly control.

"Good! Then we will say no more. Brief words are best on such burning
matters. To-morrow at six in the afternoon I will send for you. Be
ready! Till then--try to rest--try to sleep without dreaming of a
scaffold!"

He folded his mantle around him again and prepared to depart.

"Sleep," he repeated. "Sleep with a cold heart and quiet mind! Think
that it is only a woman's name--a woman's work--a woman's honour, that
stand in your way,--and congratulate yourself with the knowledge that
the Church and her Divine authority will help you to remove all three!
Farewell!"

He turned, and unlocked the door of the cell. As he threw it open, he
was confronted by the monk Ambrosio, who was outside on the very
threshold.

"What are you doing here?" he demanded suspiciously. "I had a permit
from the Superior to speak to your charge alone."

"And were you not alone?" returned Ambrosio smiling. "I was not with
you! I was here as sentinel, to prevent anyone disturbing you. Poor
Ambrosio--mad Ambrosio! He is no good at all except to guard the dead!"

Gherardi looked at him scrutinizingly, and noted the lack-lustre eyes,
the helpless childish expression, of the half-young, half-old face
confronting his own.

"Guard the dead as much as you please," he said harshly. "But take heed
how you spy on the living! Be careful of the sick man lying yonder--we
want him back with us in Rome to-morrow."

Ambrosio nodded.

"Back in Rome--good--good!" he said. "Then he is living after all! I
thought he was dead in his sins as I am,--but you tell me he lives, and
will go back to Rome!--Oh yes--I will take care of him--good care!--do
not fear! I know how to guard him so that he shall not escape you!"

Gherardi looked at him again sharply, but he was playing with his long
rosary and smiling foolishly, and there seemed no use in wasting
further speech upon him. So, muffling himself in his cloak, he strode
away, and Ambrosio entered the cell.

"You shall have meat and wine presently," he said, approaching the bed
where Florian lay. "The devil has given orders that you shall be well
fed!"

Varillo looked up and smiled kindly. He could assume any expression at
command, and it suited his purpose just now to be all gentleness.

"My poor friend!" he said compassionately. "Your wits are far astray!
Devil? Nay--he who has just left us is more of a saint!"

Ambrosio's brown eyes flashed, but he maintained a grave and immovable
aspect.

"The devil has often mocked us in saint's disguise," he said slowly. "I
tell the porter here every night to keep the gates well locked against
him,--but this time it was no use; he has entered in. And now we shall
have great work to get him out!"

Varillo resting his head on one arm, studied him curiously.

"You must have lived a strange life in the world!" he said. "That is if
you were ever in the world at all. Were you?"

"Oh yes, I was in the world," replied Ambrosio calmly. "I was in the
midst of men and women who passed their whole lives in acts of cruelty
and treachery to one another. I never met a man who was honest; I never
saw a woman who was true! I wondered where God was that He permitted
such vile beings to live and take His name in vain. He seemed lost and
gone,--I could not find Him!"

"Ah!" ejaculated Florian languidly. "And did yon discover Him here? In
this monastery?"

"No--He is not here, for we are all dead men," said Ambrosio. "And God
is the God of the living, not the God of the dead! Shall I tell you
where I found him?" And he advanced a step or two, raising one hand
warningly as though he were entrusted with some message of doom--"I
found Him in sin! I tried to live a life of truth in a world of lies,
but the lies were too strong for me,--they pulled me down! I fell--into
a black pit of crime--reckless, determined, conscious wickedness,--and
so found God--in my punishment!"

He clasped his hands together with an expression of strange ecstasy.

"Down into the darkness!" he said. "Down through long vistas of shadow
and blackness you go, glad and exultant, delighting in evil, and
thinking 'God sees me not!' And then suddenly at the end, a sword of
fire cuts the darkness asunder,--and the majesty of the Divine Law
breaks your soul on the wheel!"

He looked steadfastly at Varillo.

"So you will find,--so you must find, if you ever go down into the
darkness."

"Ay, if I ever go," said Florian gently. "But I shall not."

"No?--then perhaps you are there already?" said Ambrosio smiling, and
playing with his rosary. "For those who say they will never sin have
generally sinned!"

Varillo held the same kind look of compassion in his eyes. He was fond
of telling his fellow-artists that he had a "plastic" face,--and this
quality served him well just now. He might have been a hero and martyr,
from the peaceful and patient expression of his features, and he so
impressed by his manner a lay-brother who presently entered to give him
his evening meal, that he succeeded in getting rid of Ambrosio
altogether.

"You are sure you are strong enough to be left without an attendant?"
asked the lay-brother solicitously, quite captivated by the gentleness
of his patient. "There is a special evening service to-night in the
chapel, and Ambrosio should be there to play the organ--for he plays
well--but this duty had been given to Fra Filippo--"

"Nay, but let Ambrosio fulfil his usual task," said Varillo
considerately. "I am much better--much stronger,--and as my good friend
Monsignor Gherardi desires me to be in Rome to-morrow, and to stay with
him till I am quite restored to health, I must try to rest as quietly
as I can till my hour of departure."

"You must be a great man to have Domenico Gherardi for a friend!" said
the lay-brother wistfully.

Here Ambrosio suddenly burst into a loud laugh.

"You are right! He is a great man!--one of the greatest in Rome, or for
that matter in the world! And he means to be yet greater!" And with
that he turned on his heel and left the cell abruptly.

Varillo, languidly sipping the wine that had been brought to him with
his food, looked after him with a pitying smile.

"Poor soul!" he said gently.

"He was famous once," said the lay-brother, lowering his voice as he
spoke. "One of the most famous sculptors in Europe. But something went
wrong with his life, and he came here. It is difficult to make him
understand orders, or obey them, but the Superior allows him to remain
on account of his great skill in music. On that point at least he is
sane."

"Indeed!" said Varillo indifferently. He was beginning to weary of the
conversation, and wished to be alone. "It is well for him that he is
useful to you in some regard. And now, my friend, will you leave me to
rest awhile? If it be possible I shall try to sleep now till morning."

"One of us will come to you at daybreak," said the lay-brother. "You
are still very weak--you will need assistance to dress. Your clothes
are here at the foot of the bed. I hope you will sleep well."

"Thank you!" said Varillo, conveying an almost tearful look of
gratitude into his eyes--"You are very good to me! God bless you!"

The lay-brother made a gentle deprecatory gesture of his hands and
retired, and Varillo was left to his own reflections. He lay still,
thinking deeply, and marvelling at the unexpected rescue out of his
difficulties so suddenly afforded him.

"With Gherardi to support me, I can say anything!" he mused, his heart
beating quickly and exultingly. "I can say anything and swear anything!
And even if the sheath of my dagger has been found, it will be no
proof, for I can say it is not mine. Any lie I choose to tell will have
Gherardi's word to warrant it!--so I am safe--unless Angela speaks!"

He considered this possibility for a moment, then smiled.

"But she never will! She is one of those strange women who endure
without complaint,--she is too lofty and pure for the ways of the
world, and the world naturally takes vengeance upon her. There is not a
man born that does not hate too pure a woman; it is his joy to degrade
her if he can! This is the way of Nature; what is a woman made for
except to subject herself to her master! And when she rises superior to
him--superior in soul, intellect, heart and mind, he sees in her
nothing but an abnormal prodigy, to be stared at, laughed at,
despised--but never loved! The present position of affairs is Angela's
fault, not mine. She should not have concealed the work she was doing
from her lover, who had the right to know all her secrets!"

He laughed,--a low malicious laugh, and then lay tranquilly on his
pillows gazing at the gradually diminishing light. Day was
departing--night was coming on,--and as the shadows lengthened, the
solemn sound of the organ began to vibrate through the walls of the
monastery like far-off thunder growing musical. With a certain sensuous
delight in the beautiful, Varillo listened to it with pleasure; he had
no mind to probe the true meaning of music, but the mere sound was
soothing and sublime, and seemed in its gravity, to match the "tone" of
the light that was gradually waning. So satisfied was he with that
distant pulse of harmony that he began weaving some verses in his head
to "His Absent Lady,"--and succeeded in devising quite a charming lyric
to her whose honour and renown he was ready to kill. So complex, so
curious, so callous, yet sensuous, and utterly egotistical was his
nature, that had Angela truly died under his murderous blow, he would
have been ready now to write such exquisite verses in the way of a
lament for her loss, as should have made a world of sentimental women
weep, not knowing the nature of the man.

The last glimpse of day vanished, and the cell was only illuminated by
a flickering gleam which crept through the narrow crevice of the door
from the oil lamp outside in the corridor. The organ music ceased--to
be followed by the monotonous chanting of the monks at their evening
orisons,--and in turn, these too came to an end, and all was silent.
Easily and restfully Florian Varillo, calling himself in his own mind
poet, artist, and lover of all women rather than one, turned on his
pillow and slept peacefully,--a calm deep sleep such as is only
supposed to visit the innocent and pure of conscience, but which in
truth just as often refreshes the senses of the depraved and dissolute,
provided they are satisfied with evil as their good. How many hours he
slept he did not know, but he was wakened at last by a terrible sense
of suffocation, and he sat up gasping for breath, to find the cell full
of thick smoke and burning stench. The flickering reflection of the
lamp was gone, and as he instinctively leaped from his bed and grasped
his clothes, he heard the monastery bell above him swinging to and fro,
with a jarring heavy clang. Weak from the effects of his illness, and
scarcely able to stand, he dragged on some of his garments, and rushing
to the door threw it open, to be met with dense darkness and thick
clouds of smoke wreathing towards him in all directions. He uttered a
loud shriek.

"Fire!"

The bell clanged on slowly over his head, but otherwise there was no
response. Stumbling along, blinded, suffocated, not knowing at any
moment whether he might not be precipitated down some steep flight of
stairs or over some high gallery in the building, he struggled to
follow what seemed to be a cooling breath of air which streamed through
the smoke as though blowing in from some open door, and as he felt his
way with his hands on the wall he suddenly heard the organ.

"Thank God!" he thought, "I am near the chapel! The fire has broken out
in this part of the building--the monks do not know and are still at
prayer. I shall be in time to save them all! . . ."

A small tongue of red flame flashed upon his eyes--he recoiled--then
pressed forward again, seeing a door in front of him. The organ music
sounded nearer and nearer; he rushed to the door, half choked and
dizzy, and pushing it open, reeled into the organ loft, where at the
organ, sat the monk Ambrosio, shaking out such a storm of music as
might have battered the gates of Heaven or Hell. Varillo leaped
forward--then, as he saw the interior of the chapel, uttered one
agonized shriek, and stood as though turned to stone. For the whole
place was in flames!--everything from the altar to the last small
statue set in a niche, was ablaze, and only the organ, raised like a
carven pinnacle, appeared to be intact, set high above the blazing
ruin. Enrapt in his own dreams, Ambrosio sat, pouring thunderous
harmony out of the golden-tubed instrument which as yet, with its
self-acting machinery, was untouched by the flames, and Varillo
half-mad with terror, sprang at him like a wild beast

"Stop!" he cried "Stop, fool! Do you not see--can you not
understand--the monastery is on fire!"

Ambrosio shook him off, his brown eyes were clear and bright,--his
whole expression stern and resolved.

"I know it," he replied. "And we shall burn--you and I--together!"

'Oh, mad brute!" cried Varillo. "Tell me which way to go!--where are
the brethren?"

"Outside!" he answered "Safe!--away at the farther end of the garden,
digging their own graves, as usual! Do you not hear the bell? We are
alone in the building!--I have locked the doors,--the fire is kindled
inside! We shall be dead before the flames burst through!"

"Madman!" shrieked Varillo, recoiling as the thick volumes of smoke
rolled up from the blazing altar. "Die if you must!--but I will not!
Where are the windows?--the doors?--"

"Locked and bolted fast," said Ambrosio, with a smile of triumph.
"There is no loophole of escape for you! The world might let you go
free to murder and betray,--but I--Ambrosio,--a scourge in the Lord's
hand--I will never let you go! Pray--pray before it is too late! I
heard the devil tempt you--I heard you yield to his tempting! You were
both going to ruin a woman--that is devil's work. And God told me what
to do--to burn the evil out by flame, and purify your soul! Pray,
brother, pray!--for in the searching and tormenting fire it will be too
late! Pray! Pray!"

And pressing his hands again upon the organ he struck out a passage of
chords like the surging of waves upon the shore or storm-winds in the
forest, and began to sing,

   "Confutatis maledictis
    Flammis acribus addictis
    Voci me cum benedictis!"

Infuriated to madness but too physically weak to struggle with one who,
though wandering in brain, was sound in body, Varillo tried to drag him
from his seat,--but the attempt was useless. Ambrosio seemed possessed
by a thousand electric currents of force and resolution combined. He
threw off Varillo as though he were a mere child, and went on singing--

   "Oro supplex et acclinis
    Cor contritum quasi cinis:
    Gere curam mei finis.
     .    .   .    .
    Lacrymosa dies illa,--"

Driven to utter desperation, Varillo stood for a moment inert,--then,
suddenly catching sight of a rope hanging from one of the windows close
at hand, he rushed to it and pulled it furiously. The top of the window
yielded, and fell open on its hinge--the smoke rushed up to the
aperture, and Florian, still clinging to the rope, shouted,
"Help!--Help!" with all the force he could muster. But the air blowing
strongly against the smoke fanned the flames in the body of the
chapel,--they leaped higher and higher,--and--seeing the red glow
deepening about him, Ambrosio smiled.--"Cry your loudest, you will
never be heard!" he said--"Those who are busy with graves have done
with life! You had best pray while you have time--let God take you with
His name on your lips!"

And as the smoke and flame climbed higher and higher and began to
wreathe itself about the music gallery, he resumed his solemn singing.

   "Lacrymosa dies illa,
    Qua resurgat ex favilla
    Judicandus homo reus
    Huic ergo parce, Deus:
    Pie Jesu Domine
    Dona eis requiem!"

But Varillo still shrieked "Help!" and his frenzied cries were at last
answered. The great bell overhead ceased ringing suddenly,--and its
cessation created an effect of silence even amid the noise of the
crackling fire and the continued grave music of the organ. Then came a
quick tramp of many feet--a hubbub of voices--and loud battering knocks
at the chapel door. Ambrosio laughed triumphantly.

"We are at prayers!" he cried--"We admit no one! The devil and I are at
prayers!"

Varillo sprang at him once more.

"Madman! Show me the way!" he screamed. "Show me the way down from this
place or I will strangle you!"

"Find your own way!" answered Ambrosio--"Make it--as you have always
made it!--and follow it--to Hell!"

As he spoke the gallery rocked to and fro, and a tall flame leaped at
the organ like a living thing ready to seize and devour. Still the
knocking and hammering continued, and still Ambrosio played wild
music--till all at once the chapel door was broken open and a group of
pale spectral faces in monk's cowls peered through the smoke, and then
retreated again.

"Help!" shrieked Varillo--"Help!"

But the air rushing through the door and meeting with that already
blowing through the window raised a perfect pyramid of flame which rose
straight up and completely encircled the organ. With a frightful cry
Varillo rushed to Ambrosio's side, and cowering down, clung to his
garments.

"Oh, God!--Oh, God! Have mercy!--"

"He will have mercy!" said Ambrosio, still keeping his hands on the
organ-keys and drawing out strange plaintive chords of solemn
harmony--"He will have mercy--be sure of it! Ambrosio will ask Him to
be merciful!--Ambrosio has saved you from crime worse than
death,--Ambrosio has cleansed you by fire! Ambrosio will help you to
find God in the darkness!"

Smoke and flame encircled them,--for one moment more their figures were
seen like black specks in the wreathing columns of fire--for one moment
more the music of the organ thundered through the chapel,--then came a
terrific crash--a roar of the victorious flames as they sprang up high
to the roof of the building, and then--then nothing but a crimson glare
on the Campagna, seen for miles and miles around, and afterwards
described to the world by the world's press as the "Burning Down of a
Trappist Monastery" in which no lives had been lost save those of one
Fra Ambrosio, long insane, who was supposed to have kindled the
destructive blaze in a fit of mania,--and of a stranger, sick of
malarial fever, whom the monks had sheltered, name unknown.



XXXVI.

The same night which saw the red glare of the burning monastery
reflected from end to end of the Campagna, like the glow of some
gigantic pagan funeral pyre, saw also the quiet departure of Cardinal
Bonpre and his "foundling" Manuel from Rome. Innocent of all evil,
their escape was after the manner of the guilty; for the spies of the
Vatican were on guard outside the Sovrani Palace, and one priest after
another "relieved the watch" in the fashion of military sentries. But
like all too cunning schemers, these pious detectives overreached the
goal of their intention, and bearing in mind the fact of the Cardinal's
unsuspecting simplicity, it never occurred to them to think he had been
put on his guard so soon, or that he would take advantage of any secret
way of flight. But the private door of Angela's studio through which
Florian Varillo had fled, and the key of which he had thrown into the
Tiber, had been forced open, and set in use again, and through this the
harmless prelate, with his young companion, passed without notice or
hindrance, and under the escort of Aubrey Leigh and Cyrillon Vergniaud,
reached the railway station unintercepted by any message or messenger
from the Papal court, and started for Paris and London. When the train,
moving slowly at first from the platform, began to rush, and finally
darted swiftly out of sight, Aubrey breathed more easily.

"Thank God!" he said. "They are safe for the present! England is a free
country!"

"Is it?" And Vergniaud smiled a little. "Are you sure? England cannot
dispute the authority of the Vatican over its own sworn servants. Are
you not yourself contending against the power of Rome in Great Britain?"

"Not only against Rome do I contend," replied Aubrey. "My battle is
against all who seek to destroy the true meaning and intention of
Christianity. But so far as Romanism is concerned,--we have a monarch
whose proudest title is Defender of the Faith--that is Defender of the
Faith against Papal interference."

"Yes? And yet her bishops pander to Rome? Ah, my dear friend!--your
monarch is kept in ignorance of the mischief being worked in her realm
by the Papal secret service! Cardinal Bonpre in London is as much under
the jurisdiction of the Pope as if he still remained in Rome, and
though he may be able to delay the separation between himself and the
boy he cherishes, he will scarcely avert it!"

"Why should they wish to part that child from him I wonder!" said
Aubrey musingly.

Cyrillon shrugged his shoulders.

"Who can tell! They have their reasons, no doubt. Why should they wish
to excommunicate Tolstoi? But they do! Believe me, there is a time of
terror coming for the religious world--especially in your great English
Empire. And when your good Queen dies, the trouble will begin!"

Aubrey was silent for some minutes.

"We must work, Cyrillon!" he said at last, laying a hand on his
friend's shoulder. "We must work and we must never leave off working!
One man may do much,--all history proves the conquering force of one
determined will. You, young as you are, have persuaded France to listen
to you,--I am doing my best to persuade England to hear me. We are only
two--but others will follow. I know it is difficult!--it is harassing
and often heartbreaking to insist on Truth when the whole world's press
is at work bolstering up false gods, false ideals, false art, false
sentiment,--but if we are firm--if we hold an unflinching faith, we
shall conquer!"

"You are brave!" said Cyrillon with a glance of mingled trust and
admiration. "But you are an exception to the majority of men. The
majority are cruel and treacherous, and stupid as well. Dense stupidity
is hard to fight against! Who for example, do you suppose, will
understand the lesson of Donna Sovrani's great picture?"

"All the New World!" said Aubrey, with enthusiasm,--"It is for the New
World--not the Old. And that reminds me to-day the picture is on view
to the art-critics and experts for the first time. I prophesy it will
be sold at once!"

"That would make her father happy," said Cyrillon slowly. "But she--she
will not care!"

Aubrey looked at him attentively.

"Have you seen her?"

"Yes. For a moment only. I called at the Sovrani Palace and her father
received me. We talked for some time together. I think he knows who
dealt the murderous blow at his daughter, but he says nothing positive.
He showed me the picture. It is great--sublime! I could have knelt
before it! Then he took me to see Her--and I would have knelt still
more readily! But--she is changed!"

"And--are you?" asked Aubrey with a slight smile.

"Changed? I? No--I shall never change. I loved her at first sight--I
love her still more now. Yet I see the truth--she is broken-hearted!"

"Time and great tenderness will heal the wound," said Aubrey gently.
"Meanwhile have patience!"

Cyrillon gave him a look more eloquent than speech, and by mutual
consent they said no more on the subject of Angela just then.

Next morning at the American Consulate, Sylvie, Comtesse Hermenstein,
was quietly married by civil law to Aubrey Leigh. The ceremony took
place in the presence of the Princesse D'Agramont, Madame Bozier, and
Cyrillon Vergniaud. When it was over the wedded lovers and their
friends returned to the Sovrani Palace, there to join Angela who had
come down from her sick room to grace the occasion. She looked as fair
and fragile as the delicate "Killmeny" of the poet's legend, just
returned from wondrous regions of "faery," though the land poor Angela
had wandered away from was the Land of Sweet Delusion, which enchanted
garden she would never enter again. Pale and thin, with her beautiful
eyes drooping wearily under their dreamy tired lids, she was the very
ghost of her former self;--and the child-like way in which she clung to
her father, and kept near her father always, was pathetic in the
extreme. When Sylvie and Aubrey entered, with their three companions,
she advanced to greet them, smiling bravely, though her lips quivered.

"All happiness be with you, dear!" she said softly, and she slipped a
chain of fine pearls round Sylvie's neck. "These were my mother's
pearls,--wear them for my sake!"

Sylvie kissed her in silence,--she could not say anything, even by the
way of thanks,--her heart was too full.

"We shall be very lonely without you, darling," went on Angela. "Shall
we not, father?" Prince Pietro came to her side, and taking her hand
patted it consolingly--"But we shall know you are happy in England--and
we shall try and come and see you as soon as I get strong,--I want to
join my uncle and Manuel. I miss Manuel very much,--he and my father
are everything to me now!"

She stretched out her hand to Aubrey, who bent over it and kissed it
tenderly.

"You are happy now, Mr. Leigh?" she said smiling.

"Very happy!" said Aubrey. "May you be as happy soon!"

She shook her head, and the smile passed from her eyes and lips,
leaving her face very sorrowful.

"I must work," she said. "Work brings content--if it does not insure
joy." Her gaze involuntarily wandered to her great picture, "The Coming
of Christ," which now, unveiled in all its splendour, occupied one end
of her studio, filling it with a marvellous colour and glow of light.
"Yes, I must work! That big canvas of mine will not sell I fear! My
father was right. It was a mistake"--and she sighed--"a mistake
altogether,--in more ways than one! And what is the use of painting a
picture for the world if there is no chance to let the world see it?"

Prince Pietro looked at her benevolently.

"Your father was right, you think? Well, Angela mia, I think I had
better be the first to own that your father was wrong! The picture is
already sold;--that is if you consent to sell it!"

Angela turned very white. "If I consent to sell it? Sell it--to whom?"

Sylvie put a caressing arm around her. "Your father had the news this
morning," she said, "and we all decided to tell it to you as soon as we
came back from the Consulate. A wedding-surprise on our parts, Angela!
You know the picture was on view for the first time yesterday to some
of the critics and experts in Rome?"

Angela made a faint sign of assent. Her wistful eyes were full of
wonder and anxiety.

"Well, among them was a purchaser for America--Oh, you need not look at
me, my dear!--I have nothing to do with it! You shall see the letter
your father received--and you shall decide; but the end of the whole
matter is, Angela, that if you consent, the picture will be bought, not
by any private purchaser, but by the American nation."

"The American nation!" repeated Angela. "Are you really, really sure of
this?"

"Quite sure!" said Sylvie joyously. "And you must say good-bye to it
and let it go across the wide ocean--out to the New World all alone
with its grand and beautiful message,--unless you go with it and show
the Americans something even more perfect and beautiful in yourself
than the picture!--and you must be content to take twenty thousand
pounds for it, and be acknowledged as the greatest painter of the age
as well! This will be hard work, Angela!--but you must resign yourself!"

She laughed for pure delight in her friend's triumph,--but Angela
turned at once to her father.

"Dearest father!" she said softly. "I am glad--for your sake!"

He folded her in his arms, too deeply moved to speak, and then as he
felt her trembling, he led her to a chair and beckoned to Cyrillon
Vergniaud who had stood apart, watching the little scene in silence.

"Come and talk to this dear girl!" he said. "She is not at all a good
hostess to-day! She ought to entertain the bride and bridegroom
here,--but it seems as if she needed to be entertained herself!" And
then, as Cyrillon obeyed him, and drew near the idol of his thoughts
with such hesitating reverence as might befit a pilgrim approaching the
shrine of a beloved saint, he turned away and was just about to speak
to the Princesse D'Agramont when a servant entered and said hurriedly--

"Monsignor Gherardi desires to see Cardinal Bonpre!"

There was a dead pause. The group of friends looked at one another in
embarrassment. Angela rose from her chair trembling and glanced
instinctively at her picture--and for a moment no one seemed quite
certain what should be done next. The Princesse D'Agramont was the
first to recover her self-possession.

"Angela must not be here," she said. "She is not strong enough to stand
a scene. And no doubt Gherardi has come to make one! We will leave him
to you, Mr. Leigh--and to Gys Grandit!"

She withdrew at once with Angela, and in another moment Gherardi was
ushered in. He glanced quickly around him as he made his formal
salutation,--his eyes rested for a moment on Sylvie and Aubrey
Leigh--then he addressed himself to Prince Pietro.

"I am sorry to intrude upon you, Prince!" he said. "I have an urgent
matter to discuss with Cardinal Bonpre, and must see him at once."

"I regret that it is not in my power to gratify your desire,
Monsignor," said Prince Sovrani with stiff courtesy. "My brother-in-law
the Cardinal left Rome last night"

"Left Rome! Left Rome!" exclaimed Gherardi. "Who gave him permission to
leave Rome!"

"Was permission necessary?" asked Aubrey, stepping forward.

"I did not address you, sir," returned Gherardi haughtily. "I spoke to
Prince Sovrani."

"Prince Sovrani might well decline to answer you," said Aubrey
undauntedly. "Were I to make him acquainted with the fiendish plot you
have contrived against his daughter's fame and honour, he would
scarcely allow you to cross his threshold!"

Gherardi stood still, breathing quickly, but otherwise unmoved.

"Plot?" he echoed. "You must be mad! I have no plot against anyone. My
business is to uphold the cause of truth and justice, and I shall
certainly defend the name of the great artist who painted that
picture"--and he pointed to Angela's canvas--"Florian Varillo! Dead as
he is, his memory shall live!"

"Dead!" cried Prince Sovrani, springing forward. "Dead! Make me sure of
that, and I will praise God even for your lying tongue, if it could for
once speak such a welcome truth!"

Gherardi drew back amazed, instinctively recoiling from the flashing
eyes and threatening figure of the irate nobleman.

"Speak!" cried Sovrani again. "Tell me that the murderer of my child's
youth and joy is dead and gone to hell--and I will sing a Laus Deo at
St. Peter's! I will pay you a thousand pounds in masses to keep his
soul safe with the devil to whom it has gone!"

"Prince Sovrani, you are in ignorance of the facts," said Gherardi
coldly. "And you speak in an anger, which if what you suspect were
true, would be natural enough, but which under present circumstances is
greatly misplaced. The unfortunate Florian Varillo has been ill for
many days at a Trappist monastery on the Campagna. He had gone out
towards Frascati on a matter connected with some business before
starting for Naples, and as he was returning, he was suddenly met by
the news of the assassination of his betrothed wife--"

"And he knew nothing of it--" interposed Sovrani grimly. "Of course--he
knew nothing!"

"He knew nothing--how should he know!" responded Gherardi calmly--"The
terrible shock threw him into a delirium and fever--he was found in a
dead swoon and taken into the monastery for shelter. I saw him there
only yesterday."

He paused. No one spoke.

"He was to have come to Rome to-day, and a full explanation of his
absence would have been given. But last night the monastery was set on
fire--"

"Thank God!" said Sovrani.

Gherardi looked at him with an air of admirably affected sorrowful
reproach.

"I grieve for your injustice and cruelty, Prince!" he said--"Some
natural regret there should surely be in your mind at the tragic end of
one so highly gifted--one whom you had accepted as your future
son-in-law. He met with a terrible death! The monastery was set on
fire, as I have told you--but the doors had all been previously locked
within, it is supposed by one of the monks named Ambrosio, who was
subject to fits of insanity--with the tragic result that he and Varillo
perished in the flames, there being no possibility of rescue."

"Then the guillotine is saved unnecessary soiling," said Sovrani
fiercely. "And you, Monsignor Gherardi, should have a special
'Jubilate' sung for the world being well-rid of an exceptionally damned
and damnable villain!"

There was something terrific in the aspect of Sovrani's face and
threatening attitude, and for a moment Gherardi hesitated to go on with
his prepared sequence of lies. Rallying his forces at last with an
effort he made a very good assumption of his most authoritative manner.

"Prince, I must ask you to be good enough to hear me patiently," he
said. "Your mind has been grossly abused, and you are not aware of the
true position of affairs. You imagine with some few gossips in Rome,
that Florian Varillo, your daughter's betrothed husband, was guilty of
the murderous attack upon her life--you are mistaken!"

"Mistaken!" Prince Pietro laughed scornfully. "Prove my mistake!--prove
it!"

"I give you my word!" said Gherardi. "And I also swear to you that the
picture yonder, which, though offensive to the Church and blasphemous
in its teaching, is nevertheless a great masterpiece of painting, is
the work of the unfortunate dead man you so greatly wrong!"

"Liar!" And Cyrillon Vergniaud sprang forward, interposing himself
between Sovrani and the priest. "Liar!"

Gherardi turned a livid white.

"Who is this ruffian?" he demanded, drawing his tall form up more
haughtily than before. "A servant of yours?"

"Ay, a servant of his, and of all honest men!" returned Cyrillon. "I am
one whom your Church has learned to fear, but who has no fear of
you!--one whom you have heard of to your cost, and will still hear
of,--Gys Grandit!"

Gherardi glanced him up and down, and then turned from him in disgust
as from something infected by a loathly disease.

"Prince Sovrani!" he said. "I cannot condescend to converse with a
street ranter, such as this misguided person, who has most regrettably
obtained admission to your house and society! I came to see your
brother-in-law Cardinal Bonpre,--who has left Rome, you tell
me--therefore my business must be discussed with you alone. I must ask
you for a private audience."

Sovrani looked at him steadily.

"And I must refuse it, Monsignor! If in private audience you wish to
repeat the amazing falsehood you have just uttered respecting my
daughter's work--I am afraid I should hardly keep my hands off you!
Believe me you are safest in company!"

Monsignor Gherardi paused a moment,--then turned towards Sylvie.

"Contessa," he said very deliberately. "You can perhaps arrange this
matter better than I can. Florian Varillo is dead--as I have told you;
and for stating what I believe to be the truth regarding him I have
been subjected to insult in your presence. I have known you for many
years and I knew your father before you,--I have no wish to either
distress or offend you,--do you understand? I am in your hands!"

Sylvie looked him full in the face. "My husband will answer you,
Monsignor," she said. "I am in his hands!" Gherardi turned as crimson
as he had before been pale. "Your husband!" He strode forward with a
threatening movement--then stopped short, as he confronted Aubrey
Leigh. "Your husband! So! You are married then!"--and he laughed
fiercely--"Married by the law, and excommunicated by the Church! A
pleasant position for the last of the Hermensteins! Contessa, by your
own act you have ruined the fortunes of your friends! I would have held
my peace at your will,--but now all Rome shall know the truth!" "The
truth according to the convenience of papal Rome?" queried Aubrey
Leigh--"The truth, as expounded to the Comtesse Hermenstein in your
interview with her yesterday?"

Gherardi looked him over with superb indifference.

"My interview with the Comtesse Hermenstein was a private one"--he
said,--"And if a spy was present, he must prove himself a spy. And we
of the Church do not accept a spy's testimony!"

White with indignation Aubrey sprang forward,--but Cyrillon Vergniaud
restrained him. "Patience!" he said in a low tone--"Let him have his
way for the moment--it will then be my turn!"

"My word is law in Rome!"--went on Gherardi--"Whatsoever I choose to
say will be confirmed and ratified by the greatest authority in the
world--the Pope! I am ready to swear that Florian Varillo painted that
picture,--and the Pope is ready to believe it! Who will admit such a
masterpiece to be a woman's work? No one! Each member of the house of
Sovrani can bear witness to the fact that no one ever saw Angela
Sovrani painting it! But I know the whole story--I was the last to see
Florian Varillo before his death--and he confessed the truth--that he
had worked for his betrothed wife in order to give her the greater
fame! So that he was not, and could not have been her assassin--"

"Then her assassin must be found!" said Prince Pietro suddenly. "And
the owner of this sheath--the sheath of the dagger with which she was
stabbed--must claim his property!" And holding up the sheath in
question before Gherardi he continued--

"This _I_ found! This _I_ traced! Varillo's servant admitted it to be
his master's--Varillo's mistress recognised it as her lover's--a slight
thing, Monsignor!--but an uncomfortable witness! And if you dare to
promulgate your lie against my daughter and her work, I will accuse you
in the public courts of complicity in an attempted murder! And I doubt
whether the Pope will judge it politic, or a part of national
diplomacy, to support you then!"

For a moment Gherardi was baffled. His dark brows met in a frown of
menace and his lips tightened with his repressed fury. Then,--still
managing to speak with the utmost composure, he said,

"You will permit me to look at this dagger-sheath--this proof on which
you place so much reliance?"

In the certainty of his triumph, old Sovrani was ready to place it in
the priest's extended hand, when young Vergniaud interposed and
prevented him.

"No! You can admire it from a distance, Monsignor! You are capable in
your present humour of tearing it to atoms and so destroying evidence!
As the 'servant' of Prince Sovrani, it is my business to defend him
from this possibility!"

Gherardi raised his dark eyes and fixed them, full of bitterest scorn,
on the speaker.

"So YOU are Gys Grandit!" he said in accents which thrilled with an
intensity of hatred. "You are the busy Socialist, the self-advertising
atheist, who, like a yelping cur, barks impotently under the wheels of
Rome! You--Vergniaud's bastard--"

"Give that name to your children at Frascati!" cried Cyrillon
passionately. "And own them as yours publicly, as my father owned me
before he died!"

With a violent start, Gherardi reeled back as though he had been dealt
a sudden blow, and over his face came a terrible change, like the grey
pallor of creeping paralysis. White to the lips, he struggled for
breath . . . he essayed to speak,--then failing, made a gesture with
his hands as though pushing away some invisible foe. Slowly his head
drooped on his breast, and he shivered like a man struck suddenly with
ague. Startled and awed, everyone watched him in fascinated silence.
Presently words came slowly and with difficulty between his dry lips.

"You have disgraced me!" he said hoarsely--"Are you satisfied?" He took
a step or two close up to the young man. "I ask you--are you satisfied?
Or--do you mean to go on--do you want to ruin me?--" Here, moved by
uncontrollable passion he threw up his hands with a gesture of despair.
"God! That it should come to this! That I should have to ask you--you,
the enemy of the Church I serve, for mercy! Let it be enough I
say!--and I--I also will be silent!"

Cyrillon looked at him straightly.

"Will you cease to persecute Cardinal Bonpre?" he demanded. "Will you
admit Varillo's murderous treachery?"

Gherardi bent his head.

"I will!" he answered slowly, "because I must! Otherwise--" He clenched
his fist and his eyes flashed fire-then he went on--"But beware of
Lorenzo Moretti! He will depose the Cardinal from office, and separate
him from that boy who has affronted the Pope. He is even now soliciting
the Holy Father to intervene and stop the marriage of the Comtesse
Sylvie Hermenstein with Aubrey Leigh,--and--they are married! No
more--no more!--I cannot speak--let me go--let me go--you have won your
way!--I give you my promise!"

"What is your promise worth?" said Vergniaud with disdain.

"Nothing!" replied Gherardi bitterly. "Only in this one special
instance it is worth all my life!--all my position! You--even you, the
accursed Gys Grandit!--you have me in your power!"

He raised his head as he said this,--his face expressed mingled agony
and fury; but meeting Cyrillon's eyes he shrank again as if he were
suddenly whipped by a lash, and with one quick stride, reached the
door, and disappeared.

There was a moment's silence after his departure. Then Aubrey Leigh
spoke.

"My dear Grandit! You are a marvellous man! How came you to know
Gherardi's secrets?"

"Through a section of the Christian-Democratic party here"--replied
Cyrillon--"You must not forget that I, like you, have my disciples!
They keep me informed of all that goes on in Rome, and they have
watched Domenico Gherardi for years. We all know much--but we have
little chance to speak! If England knew of Rome what France knows, what
Spain knows,--what Italy knows, she would pray to be given a second
Cromwell! For the time is coming when she will need him!"



XXXVII.

A few days later the fashionable world of Europe was startled by the
announcement of two things. One was the marriage of Sylvie, Countess
Hermenstein, to the "would-be reformer of the clergy," Aubrey Leigh,
coupled with her renunciation of the Church of her fathers. There was
no time for that Church to pronounce excommunication, inasmuch as she
renounced it herself, of her own free will and choice, and made no
secret of having done so. Some of her Hungarian friends were, or
appeared to be, scandalized at this action on her part, but the
majority of them treated it with considerable leniency, and in some
cases with approval, on the ground that a wife's religion ought to be
the same as that of her husband. If love is love at all, it surely
means complete union; and one cannot imagine a perfect marriage where
there is any possibility of wrangling over different forms of creed.
The other piece of news, which created even more sensation than the
first, was the purchase of Angela Sovrani's great picture, "The Coming
of Christ," by the Americans. As soon as this was known, the crowd of
visitors to the artist's studio assumed formidable proportions, and
from early morning till late afternoon, the people kept coming and
going in hundreds, which gradually swelled to thousands. For by-and-by
the history of the picture got about in disjointed morsels of
information and gossip which soon formed a consecutive and fairly
correct narration. Experts criticized it,--critics "explained" it--and
presently nothing was talked of in the art world but "The Coming of
Christ" and the artist who painted it, Angela Sovrani. A woman!--only a
woman! It seemed incredible--impossible! For why should a woman think?
Why should a woman dare to be a genius? It seemed very strange! How
much more natural for her to marry some decent man of established
position and be content with babies and plain needlework! Here was an
abnormal prodigy in the ways of womanhood,--a feminine creature who
ventured to give an opinion of her own on something else than
dress,--who presumed as it were, to set the world thinking hard on a
particular phase of religious history! Then, as one after the other
talked and whispered and commented, the story of Angela's own private
suffering began to eke out bit by bit,--how she had been brutally
stabbed m her own studio in front of her own picture by no other than
her own betrothed husband Florian Varillo, who was moved to his
murderous act by a sudden impulse of jealousy,--and how that same
Varillo had met with his deserts in death by fire in the Trappist
monastery on the Campagna. And the excitement over the great picture
became more and more intense--especially when it was known that it
would soon be taken away from Rome never to be seen there again. Angela
herself knew little of her rapidly extending fame,--she was in Paris
with the Princesse D'Agramont who had taken her there immediately after
Monsignor Gherardi's visit to her father. She was not told of Florian
Varillo's death till she had been some days in the French capital, and
then it was broken to her as gently as possible. But the result was
disastrous. The strength she had slowly regained seemed now to leave
her altogether, and she was stricken with a mute despair which was
terrible to witness. Hour after hour, she lay on a couch, silent and
motionless,--her large eyes fixed on vacancy, her little white hands
clasped close together as though in a very extremity of bodily and
mental anguish, and the Princesse D'Agramont, who watched her and
tended her with the utmost devotion, was often afraid that all her care
would be of no avail, and that her patient would slip through her hands
into the next world before she had time to even attempt to save her.
And Cyrillon Vergmaud, unhappy and restless, wandered up and down
outside the house, where this life, so secretly dear to him, was poised
as it were on the verge of death, not daring to enter, or even enquire
for news, lest he should hear the worst.

One cold dark afternoon however, as he thus paced to and fro, he saw
the Princesse D'Agramont at a window beckoning him, and with a
sickening terror at his heart, he obeyed the signal.

"I wish you would come and talk to her!" said the Princesse as she
greeted him, with tears in her bright eyes. "She must be roused from
this apathy. I can do nothing with her. But I think YOU might do much
if you would!"

"I will do anything--anything in the wide world!" said Cyrillon
earnestly. "Surely you know that!"

"Yes--but you must not be too gentle with her! I do not mean that you
should be rough--God forbid!--but if you would speak to her with
authority--if you could tell her that she owes her life and her work to
the world--to God--"

She broke off, not trusting herself to say more. Cyrillon raised her
hand to his lips.

"I understand!" he said. "You know I have hesitated--because--I love
her! I cannot tell her not to grieve for her dead betrothed, when I
myself am longing to take his place!"

The Princesse smiled through her tears.

"The position is difficult I admit!" she said, with a returning touch
of playfulness--"But the very fact of your love for her should give you
the force to command her back to life. Come!"

She took him into the darkened room where Angela lay--inert, immovable,
with always the same wide-open eyes, blank with misery and desolation,
and said gently,

"Angela, will you speak to Gys Grandit?"

Angela turned her wistful looks upon him, and essayed a poor little
ghost of a smile. Very gently Cyrillon advanced and sat down beside
her,--and with equal gentleness, the Princesse D'Agramont withdrew.
Cyrillon's heart beat fast; if he could have lifted that frail little
form of a woman into his arms and kissed away the sorrow consuming it,
he would have been happy,--but his mission was that of a friend, not
lover, and his own emotions made it hard for him to begin. At last he
spoke

"When are you going to make up your mind to get well, dear friend?"

She looked at him piteously.

"Make up my mind to get well? I shall never be well again!"

"You will if you resolve to be," said Cyrillon. "It rests with you!"

She was silent.

"Have you heard the latest news from Rome?" he asked after a pause.

She made a faint sign in the negative.

Cyrillon smiled.

"The Church has with all due solemnity anathematized your picture as an
inspiration of the Evil One! But it is better that it should be so
anathematized than that it should be reported as not your own work.
Between two lies, the emissaries of the Vatican have chosen the one
least dangerous to themselves."

Angela sighed wearily.

"You do not care?" queried Cyrillon. "Neither anathema nor lie has any
effect on you?"

She raised her left hand and looked dreamily at the circlet of rubies
on it--Florian Varillo's betrothal ring.

"I care for nothing," she said slowly. "Nothing--now he is gone!"

A bitter pang shot through Cyrillon's heart. He was quite silent.
Presently she turned her eyes wistfully towards him.

"Please do not think me ungrateful for all your kindness!--but--I
cannot forget!"

"Dear Donna Sovrani, may I speak to you fully and, frankly--as a
friend? May I do so without offence?"

She looked at him and saw how pale he was, how his lips trembled, and
the consciousness that he was unhappy moved her to a faint sense of
compunction.

"Of course you may!" she answered gently. "I know you do not hate me."

"Hate you!" Cyrillon paused, his eyes softening with a great tenderness
as they rested upon her. "Who could hate you?"

"Florian hated me," she said. "Not always,--no! He loved me once! Only
when he saw my picture, then his love perished. Ah, my Florian! Had I
known, I would have destroyed all my work rather than have given him a
moment's pain!"

"And would that have been right?" asked Cyrillon earnestly. "Would not
such an act have been one of selfishness rather than sacrifice?"

A faint color crept over her pale cheeks.

"Selfishness?--"

"Yes! Your love for him was quite a personal matter,--but your work is
a message to the world. You would have sacrificed the world for his
sake, even though he had murdered you!"

"I would!" she answered, and her eyes shone like stars as she spoke.
"The world is nothing to me; love was everything!"

"That is your way of argument," said Cyrillon. "But it is not God's
way!"

She was silent, but her looks questioned him.

"Genius like yours," he went on, "is not given to you for yourself
alone. You cannot tamper with it, or play with it, for the sake of
securing a little more temporal happiness or peace for yourself. Genius
is a crown of thorns,--not a wreath of flowers to be worn at a feast of
pleasure! You wished your life to be one of love,--God has chosen to
make it one of suffering. You say the world is nothing to you,--then my
dear friend, God insists that it shall be something to you! Have you
the right--I ask you, have you the right to turn away from all your
fellow mortals and say--'No--because I have been disappointed in my
hope and my love, then I will have nothing to do with life--I will turn
away from all who need my help--I will throw back the gifts of God with
scorn to the Giver, and do nothing simply because I have lost what I
myself specially valued!'"

Her eyes fell beneath his straight clear regard, and she moved
restlessly.

"Ah you do not know--you do not understand!" she said. "I am not
thinking of myself--indeed I am not! But I feel as if my work--my
picture--had killed Florian! I hate myself!--I hate everything I have
ever done, or could ever possibly do. I see him night and day in those
horrible flames!--Oh God! those cruel flames!--he seems to reproach
me,--even to curse me for his death!"

She shuddered and turned her face away. Cyrillon ventured to take her
hand.

"That is not like you, dear friend!" he said, his rich voice trembling
with the pity he felt for her. "That is not like your brave spirit! You
look only at one aspect of grief--you see the darkness of the cloud,
but not its brighter side. If I were to say that he whom you loved so
greatly has perhaps been taken to save him from even a worse fate, you
would be angry with me. You loved him--yes; and whatever he did or
attempted to do, even to your injury, you would have loved him still
had he lived! That is the angel half of woman's nature. You would have
given him your fame had he asked you for it,--you would have pardoned
him a thousand times over had he sought your pardon,--you would have
worked for him like a slave and been content to die with your genius
unrecognized if that would have pleased him. Yes I know! But God saw
your heart--and his--and with God alone rests the balance of justice.
You must not set yourself in opposition to the law; you,--such a
harmonious note in work and life,--must not become a discord!"

She did not speak. Her hand lay passively in his, and he went on.

"Death is not the end of life. It is only the beginning of a new school
of experience. Your very grief,--your present inaction, may for all we
know, be injuring the soul of the man whose loss you mourn!"

She sighed.

"Do you think that possible--?"

"I do think it very possible," he answered. "Natural sorrow is not
forbidden to us,--but a persistent dwelling on cureless grief is a
trespass against the law. Moreover you have been endowed with a great
talent,--it is not your own--it is lent to you to use for others, and
you have no right to waste it. The world has taken your work with joy,
with gratitude, with thanksgiving; will you say that you do not care
for the world?--that you will do nothing more for it?--Because one
love--one life, has been taken from you, will you discard all love, all
life? Dear friend, that will not be reasonable,--not right, nor just,
nor brave!"

A wistful longing filled her eyes.

"I wish Manuel were here!" she said plaintively. "He would understand!"

"Manuel is with Cardinal Bonpre in London," replied Cyrillon. "I heard
from Aubrey yesterday that they are going about together among the
poor, doing good everywhere. Would you like to join them? Your friend
Sylvie would be glad to have you stay with her, I am sure."

She gave a hopeless gesture.

"I am not strong enough to go--" she began.

"You will be strong enough when you determine to be," said Cyrillon.
"Your frightened soul is making a coward of your body!"

She started and drew her hand away from his gentle clasp.

"You are harsh!" she said, looking at him straightly. "I am not
frightened--I never was a coward!"

Something of the old steady light came back to her eyes, and Cyrillon
inwardly rejoiced to see it.

"My words seem rough," he said, "but truly they are not so. I repeat,
your soul is frightened--yes! frightened at the close approach of God!
God is never so near to us as in a great sorrow; and when we feel His
presence almost within sight and touch, we are afraid. But we must not
give way to fear; we must not grovel in the dust and hide ourselves as
if we were ashamed! We must rise up and grow accustomed to His glory,
and let Him lead us where He will!"

He paused, for Angela was weeping. The sound of her low sobbing smote
him to the heart.

"Angela--Angela!" he whispered, more to himself than to her. "Have I
hurt you so much?"

"Yes, yes!" she murmured between her tears. "You have hurt me!--but you
are right--you are quite right! I am
selfish--weak--cowardly--ungrateful too;--but forgive me,--have
patience with me!--I will try--I will try to bear it all more
bravely--I will indeed!"

He rose from her side and paced the room, not trusting himself to
speak. She looked at him anxiously and endeavoured to control her sobs.

"You are angry?"

"Angry!" He came back, and lifting her suddenly, but gently like a
little child, he placed her in an easy sitting position, leaning cosily
among her pillows. "Come!" he said smiling, as the colour flushed her
cheeks at the swiftness of his action--"Let the Princesse D'Agramont
see that I am something of a doctor! You will grow weaker and weaker
lying down all day--I want to make you strong again! Will you help me?"

He looked into her eyes, and her own fell before his earnest, reverent,
but undisguisedly tender glance.

"I will try to do what you wish," she said. "If I fail you must forgive
me--but I will honestly try!"

"If you try, you will succeed"--said Cyrillon, and bending down, he
kissed the trembling little hands--"Ah! forgive me! If you knew how
dear your life is--to--to many, you would not waste it in weeping for
what cannot be remedied by all your tears! I will not say one word
against the man you loved--for YOU do not say it, and you are the most
injured;--he is dead--let him rest;--but life claims you,--claims me
for the moment;--our fellow-men and women claim our attention, our
work, our doing for the best and greatest while we can,--our duty is to
them,--not to ourselves! Will you for your father's sake--for the
world's sake--if I dared say, for MY sake!--will you throw off this
torpor of sorrow? Only you can do it,--only you yourself can command
the forces of your own soul! Be Angela once more!--the guiding angel of
more lives than you know of!--"

His voice sank to a pleading whisper.

"I will try!" she answered in a low voice--"I promise!--"

And when the Princess D'Agramont entered she was surprised and
overjoyed to find her patient sitting up on her couch for the first
time in many days, talking quietly with the Perseus she had sent to
rescue the poor Andromeda from the jaws of a brooding Melancholia which
might have ended in madness or death. With her presence the
conversation took a lighter tone--and by-and-by Angela found herself
listening with some interest to the reading of her father's last letter
addressed to her kind hostess.

"Angela's picture is gone out of Rome"--he wrote--"It was removed from
the studio in the sight of an enormous crowd which had assembled to
witness its departure. The Voce Della Verita has described it as a
direct inspiration of the devil, and suggests the burning-down of the
studio in which it was painted, as a means of purifying the Sovrani
Palace from the taint of sulphur and brimstone. La Croix demands the
excommunication of the artist, which by the way is very likely to
happen. The Osservatore Romano wishes that the ship specially chartered
to take it to America, may sink with all on board. All of which kind
and charitable wishes on the part of the Vatican press have so
augmented the fame of 'The Coming of Christ' that the picture could
hardly be got through the crush of people craning their necks to get a
glimpse of it. It is now en route via Bordeaux for London, where it is
to be exhibited for six weeks. As soon as I have finished
superintending the putting by of a few home treasures here, I shall
join you in Paris, when I hope to find my dear girl nearly restored to
her usual self. It will please her to know that her friend the charming
Sylvie is well and very happy. She was married for the second time
before a Registrar in London, and is now, as she proudly writes, 'well
and truly' Mrs. Aubrey Leigh, having entirely dropped her title in
favour of her husband's plainer, but to her more valuable designation.
Of course spiteful people will say she ceased to be Countess
Hermenstein in order not to be recognized too soon as the 'renegade
from the Roman Church,' but that sort of thing is to be expected.
Society never gives you credit for honest motives, but only for
dishonest ones. We who know Sylvie, also know what her love for her
husband is, and that it is love alone which inspires all her actions in
regard to him. Her chief anxiety at present seems to be about Angela's
health, and she tells me she telegraphs to you every day for news--"

--"Is that true?" asked Angela, interrupting the reading of her
father's letter. "Does Sylvie in all her new happiness, actually think
of me so much and so often?"

"Indeed she does!" replied the Princess D'Agramont. "Chere enfant, you
must not look at all the world through the cloud of one sorrow! We all
love you!--we are all anxious to see you quite yourself again!"

Angela's eyes filled with tears as they rested on her friend's kindly
face, a face usually so brilliant in its animated expression, but now
saddened and worn by constant watching and fatigue.

"You are far too good to me," she said in a low voice--"And I am most
unworthy of all your attention."

Loyse D'Agramont paid no heed to this remark, but resumed reading the
Prince Sovrani's epistle--

"Let me see! . . .  Sylvie--yes--here it is--'She telegraphs to you
every day for news, which is apparently the only extravagance she is
guilty of just now. She and her husband have taken rooms in some very
poor neighbourhood of London, and are beginning work in real earnest.
Our good Felix and his cherished foundling have been with them into
many wretched homes, cheering the broken-hearted, comforting the sick,
and assuring all those who doubt it that there is a God in spite of
priest-craft,--and I have received an English paper which announces
that Mr. Aubrey Leigh will give one of his famous "Addresses to the
People" on the last day of the year. I should like to hear him, though
my very slight knowledge of English would be rather against me in the
comprehension of what he might say. For all other news you must wait
till we meet. Expect me in Paris in a few days, and ask my Angela to
rouse herself sufficiently to give her old father a smile of welcome.
My compliments to "Gys Grandit," and to you the assurance of my devoted
homage. Pietro Sovrani.'"

The Princesse folded up the letter and looked wistfully at Angela.

"You will give him the smile of welcome he asks for, will you not,
little one?" she asked. "You are all he has in the world, remember!"

"I do remember," murmured Angela. "I know!"

"Aubrey and his wife are 'beginning work in real earnest'!" said
Cyrillon. "And how much their work will mean to the world! More than
the world can at present imagine or estimate! It seems to be a settled
thing that the value of great work shall never be recognised during the
worker's lifetime, but only afterwards--when he or she who was so
noble, so self-sacrificing, or so farseeing, shall have passed beyond
the reach of envy, scorn and contumely, into other regions of existence
and development. The finest deeds are done without acknowledgment or
reward, and when the hero or heroine has gone beyond recall, the whole
world stands lamenting its blindness for not having known or loved them
better. Donna Sovrani"--and his voice softened--"will also soon begin
again to work, like Aubrey and Sylvie, 'in real earnest.' Will she not?"

Angela raised her eyes, full of sadness, yet also full of light.

"Yes," she said. "I will! I will work my grief into a glory if I can!
And the loss of world's love shall teach me to love God more!"

Loyse D'Agramont embraced her.

"That is my Angela!" she said. "That is what I wanted you to feel--to
know--for I too have suffered!"

"I know you have--and I should have remembered it!" said Angela,
penitently. "But--I have been frozen with grief--paralysed in brain and
heart, and I have forgotten so many things!" She trembled and closed
her eyes for a moment,--then went on--"Give me a little time--a few
more days!--and I will prove that I am not ungrateful for your love--"
She hesitated, and then turning, gave her hand to Cyrillon,--"or for
your friendship."

He bent over the little hand and kissed it reverently, and soon
afterwards took his leave, more light of heart, and more hopeful in
spirit, than he had been for many days. He felt he could now go on with
his work, part of which was the task of distributing the money his
father had left him, among the poor of Paris. He considered that to
leave money to the poor after death is not half such a Christian act as
to give it while alive. Distributors, secretaries, lawyers, and
red-tapeism come in with the disposal of wealth after we are gone;--but
to give it to those in need with our own hands--to part with it freely
and to deny ourselves something in order to give it,--that is doing
what Christ asked us to do. And whether we are blessed or cursed by
those whom we seek to benefit, none can take away from us the sweet
sense of peace and comfort which is ours to enjoy, when we know that we
have in some small measure tried to serve our Divine Master, for the
"full measure" of content, "pressed down and running over" which He has
promised to those who "freely give," has never yet been known to fail.

And Cyrillon Vergniaud was given this happiness of the highest, purest
kind, as with the aid of the wondering and reluctant Monsieur Andre
Petitot, he gave poor families comfort for life, and rescued the sick
and the sorrowful,--and all he reserved to himself from his father's
large fortune was half a million francs. For he learned that most of
the money he inherited had come to the late Abbe through large bequests
left to him by those who had believed in him as a righteous priest of
spotless reputation, and Cyrillon's conscience would not allow him to
take advantage of money thus obtained, as he sternly told himself, "on
false pretences."

"My father would not have wished me to keep it after his public
confession," he said. "And I will not possess more than should have
been spared in common justice to aid my mother's life and mine. The
rest shall be used for the relief of those in need. And I know,--if I
told Angela--she would not wish it otherwise!"

So he had his way. And while his prompt help and personal supervision
of the distribution of his wealth brought happiness to hundreds of
homes, he was rewarded by seeing Angela grow stronger every day. The
hue of health came gradually back to her fair cheeks,--her eyes once
more recovered their steadfast brightness and beauty, and as from time
to time he visited her and watched her with all the secret passion and
tenderness he felt, his heart grew strong within him.

"She will love me one day if I try to deserve her love," he thought.
"She will love me as she has never loved yet! No woman can understand
the true worth of love, unless her lover loves her more than himself!
This is a joy my Angela has not yet been given,--it will be for me to
give it to her!"



XXXVIII.

With the entry of Angela's great picture "The Coming of Christ" into
London, where it became at once the centre of admiration, contention
and general discussion, one of the most singular "religious" marriage
ceremonies ever known, took place in a dreary out-lying district of the
metropolis, where none but the poorest of the poor dwell, working from
dawn till night for the merest pittance which scarcely pays them for
food and lodging. It was one of Aubrey Leigh's "centres," and to serve
his needs for a church he had purchased a large wooden structure
previously used for the storing of damaged mechanical appliances, such
as worn-out locomotives, old railway carriages, and every kind of
lumber that could possibly accumulate anywhere in a dock or an engine
yard. The building held from three to four thousand people closely
packed, and when Leigh had secured it for his own, he was as jubilant
over his possession as if the whole continent of Europe had subscribed
to build him a cathedral. He had the roof mended and made rainproof,
and the ground planked over to make a decent flooring,--then he had it
painted inside a dark oak colour, and furnished it with rows of
benches. At the upper end a raised platform was erected, and in the
centre of that platform stood a simple Cross of roughly carved dark
wood, some twelve or fifteen feet in height. There was no other
adornment in the building,--the walls remained bare, the floor
unmatted, the seats uncushioned. No subscriptions were asked for its
maintenance; no collection plate was ever sent around, yet here,
whenever Leigh announced a coming "Address," so vast a crowd assembled
that it was impossible to find room for all who sought admittance. And
here, on one cold frosty Sunday morning, with the sun shining brightly
through the little panes of common glass which had been inserted to
serve as windows, he walked through a densely packed and expectant
throng of poor, ill-clad, work-worn, yet evidently earnest and reverent
men and women, leading his fair wife Sylvie, clad in bridal white, by
the hand, up to the platform, and there stood facing the crowd. He was
followed by Cardinal Bonpre and--Manuel. The Cardinal wore no outward
sign of his ecclesiastical dignity,--he was simply attired in an
ordinary priest's surtout, and his tall dignified figure, his fine
thoughtful face and his reverend age, won for him silent looks of
admiration and respect from many who knew nothing of him or of the
Church to which he belonged, but simply looked upon him as a friend of
their idolized teacher, Aubrey Leigh. Manuel passed through the crowd
almost unnoticed, and it was only when he stood near the Cross, looking
down upon the upturned thousands of faces, that a few remarked his
presence. The people had assembled in full force on this occasion, an
invitation having gone forth in Leigh's name asking them "to be
witnesses of his marriage," and the excitement was intense, as Sylvie,
veiled as a bride, obeyed the gentle signal of her husband, and took
her seat on the platform by the side of the Cardinal on the left hand
of the great Cross, against which Manuel leaned lightly like a child
who is not conscious of observation, but who simply takes the position
which seems to him most natural. And when the subdued murmuring of the
crowd had died into comparative silence, Aubrey, advancing a little to
the front of the Cross, spoke in clear ringing tones, which carried
music to the ears and conviction to the heart.

"My friends! I have asked you all here in your thousands, to witness
the most sacred act of my human life--my marriage! By the law of this
realm,--by the law of America, the country of my birth,--that marriage
is already completed and justified,--but no 'religious' ceremony has
yet been performed between myself and her whom I am proud and grateful
to call wife. To my mind however, a 'religious' ceremony is necessary,
and I have chosen to hold it here,--with you who have listened to me in
this place many and many a time,--with you as witnesses to the oath of
fidelity and love I am about to take in the presence of God! There is
no clergyman present--no one to my knowledge of any Church denomination
except a Cardinal of the Church of Rome who is my guest and friend, but
who takes no part in the proceedings. The Cross alone stands before you
as the symbol of the Christian faith,--and what I swear by that symbol
means for me a vow that shall not be broken either in this world, or in
the world to come! I need scarcely tell you that this is not the usual
meaning of marriage in our England of to-day. There is much blasphemy
in the world, but one of the greatest blasphemies of the age is the
degradation of the sacrament of matrimony,--the bland tolerance with
which an ordained priest of Christ presumes to invoke the blessing of
God upon a marriage between persons whom he knows are utterly unsuited
to each other in every way, who are not drawn together by love, but
only by worldly considerations of position and fortune. I have seen
these marriages consummated. I have seen the horrible and often tragic
results of such unholy union. I have known of cases where a man,
recognized as a social blackguard of the worst type, whose ways of life
are too odious to be named, has been accepted as a fitting mate for a
young innocent girl just out of school, because he is a Lord or a Duke
or an Earl. Anything for money! Anything for the right to stand up and
crow over your neighbours! When an inexperienced girl or woman is
united for life to a loathsome blackguard, an open sensualist, a
creature far lower than the beasts, yet possessed of millions, she is
'congratulated' as being specially to be envied, when as a matter of
strict honesty, it would be better if she were in her grave. The
prayers and invocations pronounced at such marriages are not
'religious,'--they are mere profanity! The priest who says 'Those whom
God hath joined together let no man put asunder,' over such immoral
wedlock, is guilty of a worse sacrilege than if he trampled on the
bread and wine of Christ's Communion! For marriage was not intended to
be a mere union of bodies,--but a union of souls. It is the most sacred
bond of humanity. From the love which has created that bond, is born
new life,--life which shall be good or evil according to the spirit in
which husband and wife are wedded. 'The sins of the fathers shall be
visited on the children,'--and the first and greatest sin is bodily
union without soul-love. It is merely a form of animal desire,--and
from desire alone no good or lofty thing can spring. We are not made to
be 'as the beasts that perish'--though materialists and sensualists
delight in asserting such to be our destiny, in order to have ground
whereon to practise their own vices. This planet, the earth, is set
under our dominion; the beasts are ours to control,--they do not
control us. Our position therefore is one of supremacy. Let us not
voluntarily fall from that position to one even lower than the level of
beasts! The bull, the goat, the pig, are moved by animal desire alone
to perpetuate their kind--but we,--we have a grander mission to
accomplish than theirs--we in our union are not only responsible for
the Body of the next generation to come, but for the brain, the heart,
the mind, and above all the Soul! If we wed in sin, our children must
be born in sin. If we make our marriages for worldly advantage, vanity,
blind desire, or personal convenience, our children will be moulded on
those passions, and grow up to be curses to the world they live in.
Love, and love only of the purest, truest, and highest kind, must be
the foundation of the marriage Sacrament,--love that is prepared to
endure all the changes of fate and fortune--love that is happy in
working and suffering for the thing beloved--love that counts nothing a
hardship,--neither sickness, nor sorrow, nor poverty, provided it can
keep its faith unbroken!"

He paused--there was a slight stir among the audience, but otherwise
not a sound. Sylvie sat quiet, a graceful, nymph-like figure, veiled in
her cloudy white--Cardinal Bonpre's mild blue eyes raised to the
speaker's face, were full of rapt attention--and Manuel still leaning
against the great Cross seemed absorbed in dreamy and beautiful
thoughts of his own.

"I should like," went on Aubrey with increasing warmth and passion, "to
tell you what I mean by 'faith unbroken.' It is the highest form of
love,--the only firm rock of friendship. It leaves no room for
suspicion,--no place for argument--no cause for contradiction. It is
the true meaning of the wedding-ring. Apart from marriage altogether,
it is the only principle that can finally civilize and elevate man. So
long as we doubt God and mistrust our fellows, so long must corruption
sway business, and wars move nations. The man who gives us cause to
suspect his honesty,--the man who forces us to realize the existence of
treachery, is a worse murderer than he who stabs us bodily to death;
for he has tainted our soul; he has pushed us back many steps on our
journey Godward, and has made us wonder and question whether in truth a
God can exist who tolerates in His universe such a living lie! It is
only when we have to contemplate a broken faith that we doubt God! For
a broken faith is an abnormal prodigy in the natural scheme of the
universe--a discord in the eternal music of the stars! There are no
treacheries, no falsifying of accounts, in the Divine order of the Law.
The sun does not fail to rise each morning, whether clouds obscure the
sky or not,--the moon appears at her stated seasons and performs her
silver-footed pilgrimage faithfully to time--the stars move with
precision in their courses,--and so true are they to their ordainment,
that we are able to predict the manner in which they will group
themselves and shine, years after we have passed away. In the world of
Nature the leaves bud, and the birds nest at the coming of Spring; the
roses bloom in Summer--the harvest is gathered in Autumn,--the whole
marvellous system moves like a grand timepiece whose hands are never
awry, whose chimes never fail to ring the exact hour,--and in all the
splendour of God's gifts to us there is no such thing as a broken
faith! Only we,--we, the creatures He has endowed with 'His own
image,'--Free-will,--break our faith with Him and with each other. And
so we come to mischief, inasmuch as broken faith is no part of God's
Intention. And when two persons, man and woman, swear to be true to
each other before God, so long as life shall last, and afterwards break
that vow, confusion and chaos result from their perjury, and all the
pestilential furies attending on a wrong deed whip them to their
graves! In these times of ours, when wars and rumours of wars shake the
lethargic souls of too-exultant politicians and statesmen with anxiety
for themselves if not for their country, we hear every day of men and
women breaking their marriage vows as lightly as though God were not
existent,--we read of princes whose low amours are a disgrace to the
world--of dukes and earls who tolerate the unchastity of their wives in
order that they themselves may have the more freedom,--of men of title
and position who even sell their wives to their friends in order to
secure some much-needed cash or social advantage,--and while our law is
busy night and day covering up 'aristocratic' crimes from publicity,
and showing forth the far smaller sins of hard-working poverty, God's
law is at work in a totally different way. The human judge may excuse a
king's vices,--but before God there are neither kings nor commoners,
and punishment falls where it is due! Christ taught us that the
greatest crime is treachery, for of Judas He said 'it were better for
that man that he had never been born,' and for the traitor and perjurer
death is not the end, but the beginning, of evils. Against the man who
accepts the life of a woman given to him in trust and love, and then
betrays that life to misery, all Nature arrays itself in opposition and
disaster. We, as observers of the great Play of human existence, may
not at once see, among the numerous shifting scenes, where the
evil-doer is punished, or the good man rewarded,--but wait till the
end!--till the drop-curtain falls--and we shall see that there is no
mistake in God's plan--no loophole left for breaking faith even with a
child,--no 'permit' existing anywhere to destroy the life of the soul
by so much as one false or cruel word! It is with a deep sense of the
exact balance of God's justice, that I stand before you to-day, my
friends, and ask you without any accepted ritual or ceremonial to hear
my vows of marriage. She to whom I pledge my word and life, is one who
in the world's eyes is accounted great, because rich in this world's
goods,--but her wealth has no attraction for me, and for my own self I
would rather she had been poor. Nevertheless, were she even greater
than she is,--a crowned queen with many kingdoms under her control, and
I but the poorest of her servants, nothing could undo the love we have
for each other,--nothing could keep our lives asunder! Love and love
only is our bond of union--sympathy of mind and heart and spirit;
wealth and rank would have been but causes of division between us if
love had not been greater. The world will tell you differently--the
world will say that I have married for money--but you who know me
better than the world, will feel by my very words addressed to you
to-day that my marriage is a true marriage, in which no grosser element
than love can enter. My wife's wealth remains her own--settled upon her
absolutely and always, and I am personally as poor as when I first came
among you and proved to you that hard work was a familiar friend. But I
am rich in the possession of the helpmate God has given me, and with
the utmost gratitude and humility I ask you to bear witness to the fact
that this day before you and in the presence of the symbol of the
Christian faith, I take my oath to be true to her and only her while
life shall last!"

Here going to where Sylvie stood, he took her by the hand, and led her
to the front of the platform. Then he turned again to his eager and
expectant audience.

"In your presence, my friends, and in the presence of God and before
the Cross, I take Sylvie Hermenstein to be my wedded wife! I swear to
devote myself to her, body and soul,--to cherish her first and last of
all human creatures,--to be true to her in thought, word and deed,--to
care for her in sickness as in health, in age as in youth,--to honour
her as my chiefest good,--and to die faithful to her in this
world,--hoping by the mercy of God to complete a more perfect union
with her in the world to come! In the name of Christ, Amen!"

And then Sylvie threw back her veil and turned her enchanting face upon
the crowd,--a face fairer than ever, irradiated by the love and truth
of her soul,--and the people gazed and wondered, and wondering held
their breath as her clear accents rang through the silence.

"In your presence, and in the presence of God and before the Cross, I
take Aubrey Leigh to be my wedded husband! I swear to devote myself to
him body and soul, to cherish him first and last of all human
creatures,--to be true to him in thought, word and deed,--to care for
him in sickness as in health, in age as in youth,--to honour him as my
chiefest good,--and to die faithful to him in this world,--praying God
in His mercy to complete a more perfect union with him in the world to
come. In the name of Christ, Amen!"

Then Aubrey, taking his wife's hand, placed for the first time on her
finger the golden wedding-ring.

"In the presence of you all, before God, I place this ring upon my
wife's hand as a symbol of unbreaking faith and loyalty! I pledge my
life to hers; and promise to defend her from all evil, to shelter her,
to work for her, and to guard her with such tenderness as shall not
fail! I swear my faith; and may God forsake me if I break my vow!"

And Sylvie without hesitation, responded in her sweet clear voice.

"In the presence of you all, before God, I take this ring and wear it
as a symbol of my husband's trust in me, and a token of his love! I
pledge my life to his; and promise to uphold the honour of his
name,--to obey him in every just and rightful wish,--to defend his
actions,--to guard his home in peace and good report,--and to surround
him with such tenderness as shall not fail! I swear my faith; and may
God forsake me if I break my vow!"

There followed a deep and almost breathless silence. Then Aubrey spoke
once more, standing before the throng with Sylvie by his side and her
hand clasped in his.

"I thank you all, my friends! Strange and unlike all marriage
ceremonies as ours is to-day, I feel that it is a sacred and a binding
one! Your thousands of eyes and ears have heard and seen us swear our
marriage vows--your thousands of hearts and minds have understood the
spirit in which we accept this solemn sacrament! I will ask you before
we go, to kneel down with us and repeat 'The Prayer of Heart-searching'
which I have said with you so often, and to then quietly disperse."

In one moment the vast crowd was kneeling, and Cardinal Bonpre's aged
eyes filled with tears of emotion as he saw all these human beings,
moved by one great wave of sympathy, prostrate themselves before the
simple Cross where the wedded lovers knelt also, and where Manuel alone
stood, like one who is too sure of God to need the help of prayer.

And Aubrey, thrilled to the heart by the consciousness that all the
members of that huge congregation were with him in his ideal dream of
Christian Union, offered up this supplication--

"All-powerful God! Most loving and beneficent Creator of the Universe!
We Thy creatures, who partake with Thee the endowment of immortality,
now beseech Thee to look upon us here, kneeling in adoration before
Thee! Search our hearts and souls with the light of Thy revealing Holy
Spirit, and see if in any of us there is concealed an unworthy thought,
or doubt, or distrust, or scorn of Thy unfailing goodness! We ask Thee
to discover our sins and imperfections to ourselves, and so instruct us
as to what is displeasing to Thee, that we may remedy these wilful
blots upon Thy fair intention. Give us the force and fervour, the
wisdom and truth, to find and follow the way Thou wouldst have us
go,--and if our strength should fail, constrain us, oh God, to come to
Thee, whether we learn by sorrow or joy, by punishment or
pity;--constrain us, so that we may find Thee, whatever else we lose!
Let the great searchlight of Thy truth be turned upon the secret
motives of our hearts and minds, and if there be one of us in whom such
motives be found false, impure, cruel or cowardly, then let Thy just
wrath fall upon the misguided creature of Thy love, and teach him or
her, obedience and repentance! We pray that Thou wilt punish us, oh
God, when we have sinned, that we may know wherein we have offended our
dear Father;--and equally, when we have sought to serve Thee
faithfully, may we receive Thy blessing! Make us one with Thee in Thy
perfect plan of good; teach us how to work Thy will in the fulfilment
of peace and joy; make our lives of use to this world, and our deaths
gain to the next, and let the glory of Thy love encompass us, guide us,
and defend us now and forever, through Christ our Lord, Amen."

After he had ceased, there was a deep silence for many minutes, then
all the people as if moved by one impulse, rose from their knees, and
standing, sang the following stanzas, which Aubrey had taught them when
he first began to preach among them his ideals of love and labour.

     If thou'rt a Christian in deed and thought,
     Loving thy neighbour as Jesus taught,--
     Living all days in the sight of Heaven,
     And not ONE only out of seven,--
     Sharing thy wealth with the suffering poor,
     Helping all sorrow that Hope can cure,--
     Making religion a truth in the heart,
     And not a cloak to be worn in the mart,
     Or in high cathedrals and chapels and fanes,
     Where priests are traders and count the gains,--
       All God's angels will say, "Well done!"
       Whenever thy mortal race is run.
          White and forgiven,
          Thou'lt enter heaven,
       And pass, unchallenged, the Golden Gate,
       Where welcoming spirits watch and wait
       To hail thy coming with sweet accord
       To the Holy City of God the Lord!


     If Peace is thy prompter, and Love is thy guide,
     And white-robed Charity walks by thy side,--
     If thou tellest the truth without oath to bind,
     Doing thy duty to all mankind,--
     Raising the lowly, cheering the sad,
     Finding some goodness e'en in the bad,
     And owning with sadness if badness there be,
     There might have been badness in thine and in thee,
     If Conscience the warder that keeps thee whole
     Had uttered no voice to thy slumbering soul,--
       All God's angels will say, "Well done!"
       Whenever thy mortal race is run.
          White and forgiven,
          Thou'lt enter heaven,
       And pass, unchallenged, the Golden Gate,
       Where welcoming spirits watch and wait
       To hail thy coming with sweet accord
       To the Holy City of God the Lord!

     If thou art humble, and wilt not scorn.
     However wretched, a brother forlorn,--
     If thy purse is open to misery's call,
     And the God thou lovest is God of all,
     Whatever their colour, clime or creed,
     Blood of thy blood, in their sorest need,--
     If every cause that is good and true,
     And needs assistance to dare and do,
     Thou helpest on through good and ill,
     With trust in Heaven, and God's good will,--
       All God's angels will say, "Well done!"
       Whenever thy mortal race is run.
       White and forgiven, Thou'lt enter heaven,
     And pass, unchallenged, the Golden Gate,
     Where welcoming spirits watch and wait
     To hail thy coming with sweet accord
     To the Holy City of God the Lord!

[Footnote: By the late Charles Mackay, LL.D., F.S.A.]

The effect of the last eight-line chorus sung by thousands of voices,
was marvellous. Such a spirit of exaltation pervaded the music that the
common wooden shed-like building in which these followers of one
earnest man asserted their faith in God rather than in a Church, seemed
to take upon itself all the architectural beauty of a temple costing
millions of money. When the singing ceased, Aubrey raised his hand, and
while his audience yet remained standing, pronounced the blessing.

"God be with you all, my friends!--in your hearts and lives and daily
conduct! May none of you here present shadow His brightness by one dark
deed or thought of evil! I will ask you to pray that God may be with me
too, and with my beloved wife, the future partner of all my work, my
joys and sorrows, that we may in our union make our lives useful to you
and to all others who seek our help or care. God's blessing be upon us
all in the name of Christ our Saviour!"

And with one accord the people answered "Amen!"

Then this brief service over, they began to disperse. Without any
scramble or rush, but in perfect order and with quiet and reverent
demeanour, they left their seats and began to make their way out. None
of them were seen gossiping together, or smiling or nodding over each
other's shoulders as is very often the case when a congregation
disperses from a fashionable church. For these people in their worship
of the Creator, found something reverent, something earnest, something
true, valuable and necessary to daily living,--and though there were
two peaceful-looking constables stationed at the door of egress, their
services were not required to either keep order or compel any of those
thousands of poor to "move on." They kept order for themselves, and
were too busy with practical life and thought, to hang about or gossip
on the way to their various homes. Several members of the congregation
on hearing that their friend Leigh was going to take his marriage vows
before them all, had provided themselves with flowers, and these
managed to pass in front of the platform where, simply and without
ostentation, they handed up their little bouquets and clusters of such
blossoms as they had been able to obtain and afford in winter,--violets
especially, and white chrysanthemums, and one or two rare roses. These
floral offerings meant much sacrifice on the part of those who gave
them,--and the tears filled Sylvie's eyes as she noted the eagerness
with which poor women with worn sad faces, and hands wrinkled and brown
with toil, handed up their little posies for her to take from them, or
laid them with a touching humility at her feet. What a wonderful
wedding hers was, she thought!--far removed from all the world of
fashion, without any of the hypocritical congratulations of "society"
friends,--without the sickening, foolish waste, expense and
artificiality, which nowadays makes a marriage a mere millinery parade.
She had spoken her vows before thousands whom her husband had helped
and rescued from heathenism and misery, and all their good wishes and
prayers for her happiness were wedding gifts such as no money could
purchase. With a heart full of emotion and gratitude she watched the
crowd break up and disappear, till when the last few were passing out
of the building, she said to her husband--

"Let us leave the flowers they have given me here, Aubrey,--here, just
at the foot of the Cross where you have so often spoken to them. I
shall feel they will bring me a blessing!"

"It shall be as you wish, sweetheart!" he answered tenderly,--"and I
must thank you for having entered so readily into the spirit of this
strange marriage before my poor friends, Sylvie,--for it must have
seemed very strange to you!--and yet believe me,--no more binding one
was ever consummated!" He took her hand and kissed it,--then turned to
Cardinal Bonpre, who had risen and was gazing round the bare common
building with dreamy eyes of wistful wonderment.

"I thank you too, my dear friend! You have learned something of my work
since we came to London, and I think you understand thoroughly the true
sanctity and force of my marriage?"

"I--do!--I do understand it!" said the Cardinal slowly. "And I wish
with all my heart that all marriage vows could be so solemnly and truly
taken! But my heart aches--my heart aches for the world! These
thousands you have helped and taught are but a few,--and they were as
you have told me, little better than heathen when you came amongst them
to tell them the true meaning of Christ's message--what of the millions
more waiting to know what the Church is failing to teach? What have the
priests of the Lord been doing for nearly two thousand years, that
there should still be doubters of God!"

Over his face swept a shadow of deep pain, and at that moment Manuel
left the Cross where he had been leaning and came up and stood beside
him. The Cardinal looked at his waif wistfully.

"What did you think of this service, my child?"

"I thought that the Master of all these His servants could not be very
far away!" answered Manuel softly,--"And that if He came suddenly, He
would find none sleeping!"

"May it prove so!" said Aubrey fervently. "But we own ourselves to be
unprofitable servants at best,--we can only try to fulfil our Lord's
commands as nearly to the letter as possible,--and we often fail;--but
we do honestly make the effort. Shall we go now, my lord Cardinal? You
look fatigued."

Bonpre sighed heavily. "My spirit is broken, my son!" he answered. "I
dare not think of what will happen--what is beginning to happen for the
Christian world! I shall not live to see it; but I have sinned, in
passing my days in too much peace. Dwelling for many years away in my
far-off diocese, I have forgotten the hurrying rush of life. I should
have been more active long ago,--and I fear I shall have but a poor
account to give of my stewardship when I am called to render it up.
This is what troubles both my heart and my conscience!"

"Dear friend, you have no cause for trouble!" said Sylvie earnestly.
"Among all the servants of our Master surely you are one of the most
faithful!"

"One of the most faithful, and therefore considered one of the most
faithless!" said Manuel. "Come, let us go now,--and leave these bridal
flowers where the bride wishes them to be,--at the foot of the Cross,
as a symbol of her husband's service! Let us go,--the Cardinal has need
of rest."

They returned to their respective homes,--Aubrey and his wife to a
little tenement house they had taken for a few weeks in the district in
order that Sylvie might be able to see and to study for herself the sad
and bitter lives of those who from birth to death are deprived of all
the natural joys of happy and wholesome existence,--whose children are
born and bred up in crime,--where girls are depraved and ruined before
they are in their teens,--and where nothing of God is ever taught
beyond that He is a Being who punishes the wicked and rewards the
good,--and where in the general apathy of utter wretchedness, people
decide that unless there is something given them in this world to be
good for, they would rather be bad like the rest of the folks they see
about them. The Cardinal and Manuel dwelt in rooms not very far away,
and every day and every hour almost was occupied by them in going among
these poor, helpless, hopeless ones of the world, bringing them comfort
and aid and sympathy. Wherever Manuel went, there brightness followed;
the sick were healed, the starving were fed, the lonely and desolate
were strengthened and encouraged, and the people who knew no more of
the Cardinal than that "he was a priest of some sort or other," began
to watch eagerly for the appearance of the Cardinal's foundling, "the
child that seemed to love them," as they described him,--and to long
for even a passing glimpse of the fair face, the steadfast blue eyes,
the tender smile, of one before whom all rough words were silenced--all
weeping stilled.

But on this night of all--the night of Sylvie's "religious" marriage,
the Cardinal was stricken by a heavy blow. He had expected some
misfortune, but had not realized that it would be quite so heavy as it
proved. The sum and substance of his trouble was contained in a
"confidential" letter from Monsignor Moretti, and was worded as
follows--

"My Lord Cardinal,--It has come to the knowledge of the Holy Father
that you have not only left Rome without signifying the intention of
your departure to the Vatican as custom and courtesy should have
compelled you to do, but that instead of returning to your rightful
diocese, you have travelled to London, and are there engaged in working
with the socialist and heretic Aubrey Leigh, who is spreading
pernicious doctrine among the already distracted and discordant of the
poorer classes. This fact has to be coupled with the grave offence
committed against the Holy Father by the street-foundling to whom you
accord your favour and protection, and whose origin you are unable to
account for; and the two things taken together, constitute a serious
breach of conduct on the part of so eminent a dignitary of the Church
as yourself, and compel the Holy Father most unwillingly and
sorrowfully to enquire whether he is justified in retaining among his
servants of the Holy See one who so openly betrays its counsels and
commands. It is also a matter of the deepest distress to the Holy
Father, that a picture painted by your niece Donna Angela Sovrani and
entitled 'The Coming of Christ,' in which the Church itself is depicted
as under the displeasure of our Lord, should be permitted to
contaminate the minds of the nations by public exhibition. Through the
Vatican press, the supreme Pontiff has placed his ban against this most
infamous picture, and all that the true servants of the Church can do
to check its pernicious influence, will be done. But it cannot be
forgotten that Your Eminence is closely connected with all these
regrettable events, and as we have no actual proof of the authenticity
of the miracle you are alleged to have performed at Rouen, the Holy
Father is reluctantly compelled to leave that open to doubt. The
Archbishop of Rouen very strenuously denies the honesty of the mother
of the child supposed to be healed by you, and states that she has not
attended Mass or availed herself of any of the Sacraments for many
years. We are willing to admit that Your Eminence may personally have
been unsuspectingly made party to a fraud,--but this does not free you
from the other charges, (notably that of exonerating the late Abbe
Vergniaud,) of which you stand arraigned. Remembering, however, the
high repute enjoyed by Your Eminence throughout your career, and taking
into kindly consideration your increasing age and failing health, the
Holy Father commissions me to say that all these grievous backslidings
on your part shall be freely pardoned if you will,--Firstly,--repudiate
all connection with your niece, Angela Sovrani, and hold no further
communication with her or her father Prince Sovrani,--Secondly,--that
you will break off your acquaintance with the socialist Aubrey Leigh
and his companion Sylvie Hermenstein, the renegade from the Church of
her fathers,--and Thirdly,--that you will sever yourself at once and
forever from the boy you have taken under your protection. This last
clause is the most important in the opinion of His Holiness. These
three things being done, you will be permitted to return to your
diocese, and pursue the usual round of your duties there to the end.
Failing to fulfil the Holy Father's commands, the alternative is that
you be deprived of your Cardinal's hat and your diocese together.

"It is with considerable pain that I undertake the transcribing of the
commands of the Holy Father, and I much desired Monsignor Gherardi to
follow you to London and lay these matters before you privately, with
all the personal kindness which his friendship for you makes possible,
but I regret to say, and you will no doubt regret to learn, that he has
been smitten with dangerous illness and fever, which for the time being
prevents his attention to duty. Trusting to hear from you with all
possible speed that Your Eminence is in readiness to obey the Holy
Father's paternal wish and high command, I am,

"Your Eminence's obedient servant in Christ,

"Lorenzo Moretti."

The Cardinal read this letter through once--twice--then the paper
dropped from his hands.

"My God, my God! why hast Thou forsaken me!" he murmured. "What have I
done in these few months! What must I do!"

A light touch on his arm roused him. Manuel confronted him.

"Why are you sorrowful, dear friend? Have you sad news?"

"Yes, my child! Sad news indeed! I am commanded by the Pope to give up
all I have in the world! If it were to give to my Master Christ I would
give it gladly,--but to the Church--I cannot!"

"What does the Pope ask you to resign?" said Manuel.

"My niece Angela and all her love for me!--my friendship with this
brave man Aubrey Leigh who works among the outcast and the poor,--but
more than all this,--he asks me to give You up--you! My child, I
cannot!"

He stretched his thin withered hands out to the slight boyish figure in
front of him.

"I cannot! I am an old man, near--very near--to the grave--and I love
you! I need you!--without you the world is dark! I found you all
alone--I have cared for you and guarded you and served you--I cannot
let you go!" The tears filled his. eyes and rolled down his worn
cheeks. "I cannot lose my last comfort!" he repeated feebly. "I cannot
let You go!"

Silently the boy gave his hands into the old man's fervent clasp, and
as Bonpre bent his head upon them a sense of peace stole over him,--a
great and solemn calm. Looking up he saw Manuel earnestly regarding him
with eyes full of tenderness and light, and a smile upon his lips.

"Be of good courage, dear friend!" he said. "The time of trial is hard,
but it will soon be over. You must needs part from Angela!--but
remember she has great work still to do, and she is not left without
love! You must also part from Aubrey and his wife--but they too are
given high tasks to fulfil for God's glory--and,--they have each other!
Yes!--you must part with all these things, dear friend--they are not
yours to retain;--and if you would keep your place in this world you
must part with Me!"

"Never!" cried Bonpre, moved to sudden passion. "I cannot! To me the
world without you would be empty!"

As he spoke these words a sudden memory rang in his brain like a chime
from some far-distant tower echoing over a width of barren land. "For
me the world is empty!" had been the words spoken by Manuel when he had
first found him leaning against the locked Cathedral door in Rouen. And
with this memory came another, the vision he had seen of the end of the
world, and the words he had heard spoken by some mysterious voice in
his sleep,--"The light shineth in darkness and the darkness
comprehendeth it not!" And still he looked pleadingly, earnestly,
almost fearingly, into the face of his foundling.

"We must speak of this again," said Manuel then, gently. "But to-night,
for at least some hours, you must rest! Have patience with your own
thoughts, dear friend! To part with earthly loves is a sorrow that must
always be;--Angela is young and you are old!--she has her task to do,
and yours is nearly finished! You must part with Aubrey Leigh,--you
cannot help him,--his work is planned,--his ways ordained. Thus, you
have no one to command your life save the Church,--and it seems that
you must choose between the Church and me! To keep Me, you must forego
the Church. To keep the Church you must say farewell to Me! But think
no more of it just now--sleep and rest--leave all to God!"

The Cardinal still looked at him earnestly.

"You will not leave me? You will not, for a thought of saving me from
my difficulties, go from me? If I sleep I shall find you when I wake?"

"I will never leave you till you bid me go!" answered Manuel. "And if I
am taken far from hence you shall go with me! Rest, dear friend--rest,
true servant of God! Rest without thought--without care--till I call
you!"



XXXIX.

The night darkened steadily down over London,--a chill dreary night of
heavy fog, half-melting into rain. Cardinal Bonpre, though left to
himself, did not rest at once as Manuel had so tenderly bidden him to
do, but moved by an impulse stronger than any worldly discretion or
consideration, sat down and wrote a letter to the Supreme Pontiff,--a
letter every word of which came straight from his honest heart, and
which he addressed to the Head of his Church directly and personally,
without seeking the interposition of Lorenzo Moretti. And thus he
wrote, in obedience to the dictate of his own soul--

"Most Holy Father!--I have this day received through Monsignor Moretti
the text of certain commands laid by Your Holiness upon me to fulfil if
I would still serve the Church, as I have in all truth and devotion
served it for so many years. These commands are difficult to realise,
and still more difficult to obey,--I would rather believe that Your
Holiness has issued them in brief anger, than that they are the result
of a reasonable conviction, or condition of your own heart and
intellect. In no way can I admit that my conduct has been of a nature
to give offence to you or to the Holy See, for I have only in all
things sought to obey the teaching of our Lord Jesus Christ, upon whose
memory our faith is founded. Your Holiness desires me, first, to cease
every communication with the only relatives left to me on earth,--my
brother-in-law Pietro Sovrani and his daughter, the daughter of my dead
sister, my niece Angela. You demand the severance of these bonds of
nature, because my niece has produced a work of art, for which she
alone is responsible. I venture most humbly to submit to Your Holiness
that this can scarcely be called true Christian justice to me,--for,
whereas on the one side I cannot be made answerable for the thoughts or
the work of a separately responsible individual, on the other hand I
should surely not be prohibited from exercising my influence, if
necessary, on the future career of those related to me by blood as well
as endeared to me by duty and affection. My niece has suffered more
cruelly than most women; and it is entirely owing to her refusal to
speak, that the memory of Florian Varillo, her late affianced husband,
is not openly branded as that of a criminal, instead of being as now,
merely under the shadow of suspicion. For we know that he was her
assassin,--all Rome feels the truth,--and yet being dead, his name is
left open to the benefit of a doubt because she who was so nearly slain
by him she loved, forgives and is silent. I submit to Your Holiness
that this forgiveness and silence symbolise true Christianity, on the
part of the poor child who has fallen under your displeasure,--and that
as the Christian Creed goes, your pity and consideration for her should
somewhat soften the ban you have set against her on account of the work
she has given to the world. As a servant of Holy Church I deeply
deplore the subject of that work, while fully admitting its merit as a
great conception of art,--but even on this point I would most humbly
point out to Your Holiness that genius is not always under the control
of its possessor. For being a fire of most searching and persuasive
quality it does so command the soul, and through the soul the brain and
hand, that oftentimes it would appear as if the actual creator of a
great work is the last unit to be considered in the scheme, and that it
has been carried out by some force altogether beyond and above
humanity. Therefore, speaking with all humility and sorrow, it may
chance that Angela Sovrani's picture 'The Coming of Christ' may contain
a required lesson to us of the Church as well as to certain sections of
certain people, and that as all genius comes from God, it would be well
to enquire earnestly whether we do not perhaps in these days need some
hint or warning of the kind to recall us from ways of error, ere we
wander too far. But, having laid this matter straightly before Your
Holiness, I am nevertheless willing to accede to your desire, and see
my young niece and her father no more. For truly there is very little
chance of my so doing, as my age and health will scarcely permit me to
travel far from my diocese again, if indeed I ever return to it. The
same statement will apply with greater force to the friendship I have
lately formed with him whom you call 'heretic,'--Aubrey Leigh. Your
Holiness is mistaken in thinking that I have assisted him in his work
among the poor and desolate of London--though I would it had been
possible for me to do so! For I have seen such misery, such
godlessness, such despair, such self-destruction in this great English
city, the admitted centre of civilization, that I would give my whole
life twice, ay, three times over again to be able to relieve it in ever
so small a degree. The priests of our Church and of all Churches are
here,--they preach, but do very little in the way of practice, and few
like Aubrey Leigh sacrifice their personal entity, their daily life,
their sleep, their very thoughts, to help the suffering of their
fellow-men. Holy Father, the people whom Aubrey Leigh works for, never
believed in a God at all till this man came among them. Yet there are
religious centres here, and teachers--Sunday after Sunday, the message
of the Gospel is pronounced to inattentive ears and callous souls, and
yet all have remained in darkest atheism, in hopeless misery, till
their earnest, patient, sympathising, tender brother, the so-called
'atheist,' came to persuade them out of darkness into light, and made
the burdens of their living lighter to bear. And will you not admit him
as a Christian? Surely he must be; for as our Lord Himself declares,
'Not every man that shall say unto Me Lord, Lord, shall enter into the
kingdom of heaven, but he that doeth the will of My Father which is in
heaven.' And of a certainty, the will of the Father is that the lost
should be found, the perishing saved, the despairing comforted,--and
all these things Aubrey Leigh has done, and is yet doing. But I do not
work with him--I am here to look on--and looking on, to regret my lost
youth!

"Touching the miracle attributed to me at Rouen, I have gone over this
ground so often with Your Holiness, both by letter and personally while
in Rome, that it seems but foolish to repeat the story of my complete
innocence in the matter. I prayed for the crippled child, and laid my
hands upon him in blessing. From that day I never saw him--never have
seen him again. I can bear no witness to his recovery,--your news came
from persons at Rouen, and not from me. I am as unconscious of having
healed the child as I am innocent of having any part in the
disappearance of the man Claude Cazeau. The whole thing is as complete
a mystery to me as it is to Your Holiness or to any of those who have
heard the story. I fully and freely admit, as I have always fully and
freely admitted, that I condoned and forgave the sin of the Abbe
Vergniaud, and this, not only because the man was dying, but because we
are strictly commanded to forgive those who truly repent. And on this
point, I cannot even to you, Most Holy Father, admit that I have been
wrong.

"And now coming to the last part of Your Holiness' expressed desire,
wherein you ask me to part from the boy I rescued,--the child Manuel,
who is all alone in the world,--I cannot acknowledge it to be a
Christian act to desert anyone whom we have once befriended. The boy is
young, and far too gentle to fight the world or to meet with such love
and consideration as his youth and simplicity deserve. I will not
disguise, however, from Your Holiness that I have been often much
troubled in mind regarding his companionship with me,--for foolish as
you may judge my words, I feel that there is something in him not
altogether of earth,--that he speaks at times as a wise prophet might
speak,--or as an Angel sent to warn the world of swiftly-coming
disaster! Of the strangely daring spirit in which he addressed himself
to Your Holiness at the Vatican it is not for me to discourse--I cannot
explain it or condone it, for I was overcome with amazement and fear,
and realized the position no more than did Your Holiness at the time,
or than did those of your confidants immediately around us. It was
indeed a matter that went beyond us all.

"But the chief end of this letter is arrived at--Your Holiness asks me
to part with this boy. With the deepest regret at the rupture you
threaten to cause between myself and Holy Church if I disobey this
command, I must still utterly refuse to do so. So long as the child
looks upon me as a friend, so long will I be one to him. So long as he
will accept the shelter of my roof, so long shall he receive it. I
would rather break with a dozen Churches, a dozen forms of creed, than
be untrue to a child who trusts me! That is my answer to Your Holiness,
and in giving it I add the sincere expression of my sorrow to cause you
displeasure or pain. But I venture to pray you, Holy Father, to pause
and consider deeply before you eject me from the Church for so simple
and plain a matter. Let me as one who is nearing the grave in company
with yourself--as one who with yourself must soon stand on that dark
brink of the Eternal from which we see the Light beyond--let me most
humbly yet most earnestly point out to you the far more serious things
than my offence, which are threatening Rome to-day. The people of all
lands are wandering away from faith, and wars and terrors are
encompassing the land. The lust of gold and pride of life are now the
chief objects of man's existence and desire, and there was hardly ever
a time in history when utter indifference to the laws of God was more
openly exhibited than it is just now. The sin of unbelief and all the
evils attendant on that sin are steadily increasing, and the Church
seems powerless to stop the approaching disaster. Is it, that knowing
herself to be weak, she does not make the attempt to be strong? If this
is so, she must fall, and not all the getting-in of gold will help her!
But you, Holy Father--you might arrest all this trouble if you would!
If you would change the doctrines of Superstition for those of
Science--if you would purify our beautiful creed from pagan observances
and incredible idolatries--if you would raise the Church of Rome like a
pure white Cross above the blackening strife, you might save the
sinking ship of faith even now! So little is needed!--simplicity
instead of ostentation--voluntary poverty instead of countless riches,
spiritual power instead of the perpetual cry for temporal power,--the
doctrine of Christ instead of the doctrine of Church Councils--and the
glad welcoming and incorporation of every true, beautiful, wise and
wonderful discovery of the age into the symbolic teaching of our Creed.
Holy Father, if this is not done, then things old must disappear to
make room for things new,--and a new Church of Christ must rise from
the ashes of Rome! We cannot but call to mind the words of St. John,
'Repent and do the first works, or else I will come quickly and remove
thy candlestick from its place.' 'Do the first works.' Holy Father,
those first works, as exemplified in Christ Himself, were love,
charity, pity and pardon for all men! With all my heart I beseech Your
Holiness to let these virtues simplify and sustain our Church,--and so
raise it a burning and shining light of loving-kindness and universal
tolerance,--so shall it be the true city set on a hill which shall draw
all men to its shelter! But if unjust judgment, intolerance, cruelty
and fanaticism, should again be allowed, as once before in history, to
blot its fairness and blight its reputation, then there is not much
time left to it,--inasmuch as there is a force in the world to-day
likely to prove too strong for many of us,--a mighty combat for Truth,
in which conflicting creeds will fight their questions out together
with terrible passion and insistence, bringing many souls to grief and
pitiful disaster. You, Holy Father, can arrest all this by making the
Church of Rome, Christian rather than Pagan--by removing every touch of
idolatry, every recollection of paid prayers, and by teaching a lofty,
pure and practical faith such as our Redeemer desired for us, so that
it may be a refuge in the storm, a haven wherein all the world shall
find peace. This is for you and for those who come after you to do,--I,
Felix Bonpre, shall not be here to see the change so wrought, for I
shall have gone from hence to answer for my poor stewardship,--God
grant I may not be found altogether wanting in intention, though I may
have been inadequate in deed! And so with my earnest prayer for your
health and long continuance of life I bid you farewell, asking you
nothing for myself at all but a reasonable judgment,--unprejudiced and
calm and Christlike,--which will in good time persuade you that it
would be but a cruelty to carry out your indignation against me by
depriving me of that diocese where all my people know and love
me,--simply because I have befriended a child, and because having once
befriended him I refuse to desert him. But if your mind should remain
absolutely fixed to carry out your intentions I can only bow my head to
your will and submit to the stroke of destiny, feeling it to be my
Master's wish that I should suffer something for His sake, and knowing
from His words that if I 'offend one of these little ones,' such as
this friendless boy, 'it were better for me that a millstone were hung
about my neck and I myself drowned in the depths of the sea!' Between
the Church doctrine and Christ's own gospel, I choose the gospel;
between Rome's discipline and Christ's command I choose Christ's
command,--and shall be content to be glad or sorrowful, fortunate or
poor, as equally to live or die as my Master, and YOUR Master, shall
bid. For we all are nothing but His creatures, bound to serve Him, and
where we serve Him not there must be evil worse than death.

"So in all humbleness still awaiting a more reasonable decision at your
hands, I am, Most Holy Father,

"Your faithful servant and brother in Christ,

"Felix Bonpre."

This letter finished, signed and sealed, the Cardinal addressed it and
enclosed it under cover to one of the secretaries at the Vatican who he
knew might be trusted to deliver it personally into the Supreme
Pontiff's own hands. Then stretching out his arms wearily he closed his
eyes for a moment with a sigh of mingled relief and fatigue. The night
was very cold, and though there had been a fire in the room all day, it
had died down in the grate, and there were only a few little dull
embers now glowing at the last bar. The chill of the air was deepening,
and a shiver ran through the spare, fragile form of the venerable
prelate as he rose at last from his chair and prepared to take his
rest. His sleeping room was a very small one, adjoining that in which
he now stood, and as he glanced at his watch and saw that time had gone
on so rapidly that it was nearly eleven o'clock, he decided that he
would only lie down for two or three hours.

"For there is much to do yet," he mused. "This one letter to the Pope
will not suffice. I must write to Angela,--to say farewell to her, poor
child!--and give her once more my blessing--and then I must prepare the
way at home--for myself, and also for Manuel." He sighed again as the
vision of his own house in the peaceful old-world French town far away,
floated before his mental sight,--almost he heard the sweet chiming of
the bells in his own Cathedral tower; which like a pyramid of delicate
lace-work, always seemed held up in the air by some invisible agency to
let the shafts of sunlight glimmer through,--once more he saw the great
roses in his garden, pink and white and cream and yellow, clambering
over the walls and up to the very roof of his picturesque and peaceful
home--the white doves nesting in the warm sun--the ripe apples hanging
on the gnarled boughs, the simple peasantry walking up his garden
paths, coming to him with their little histories of pain and
disappointment and sorrow; which were as great to them as any of the
wider miseries of sufferers more beset with anguish than themselves. He
thought of it all sorrowfully and tenderly,--his habit was ever to
think of others rather than himself,--and he wondered sadly, as he
considered all the bitterness and hardships of the poor human creatures
who are forced into life on this planet,--why life should be made so
cruel and hard for them,--why sudden and unprepared death should snap
the ties of tenderest love--why cruelty and treachery should blight the
hopes of the faithful and the trusting--why human beings should always
be more ready to destroy each other than to help each other--why, to
sum all up, so merciful and divine a Being as Christ came at all into
this world if it were not to make the world happier and bring it nearer
to heaven!

"The ways of the Infinite Ordainment are dark and difficult to
understand," he said. "And I deserve punishment for daring to enquire
into wisely-hidden mysteries! But, God knows it is not for myself that
I would pierce the veil! Nothing that concerns myself at all
matters,--I am a straw on the wind,--a leaf on the storm--and whatever
God's law provides for me, that I accept and understand to be best. But
for many millions of sad souls it is not so--and their way is hard! If
they could fully understand the purpose of existence they would be
happier--but they cannot--and we of the Church are too blind ourselves
to help them, for if a little chink of light be opened to us, we
obstinately refuse to see!"

He went to his sleeping room and threw himself down on his bed dressed
as he was, too fatigued in body and mind to do more than utter his
brief usual prayer, "If this should be the sleep of death, Lord Jesus
receive my soul!" And as he closed his eyes he heard the rain drop on
the roof in heavy slow drops that sounded like the dull ticking of a
monstrous clock piecing away the time;--and then he slept, deeply and
dreamlessly,--the calm and unconscious and refreshing slumber of a
child.

How long he slept he did not know, but he was wakened suddenly by a
touch and a voice he knew and loved, calling him. He sprang up with
almost the alacrity of youth, and saw Manuel standing beside him.

"Did you call me, my child?"

"Yes, dear friend!" And Manuel smiled upon him with a look that
conveyed the brightness of perfect love straight from the glance into
the soul. "I need you for myself alone to-night! Come out with me!"

The Cardinal gazed at him in wonder that was half a fear.

"Come out with me!"

Those had been the words the boy had used to the Pope, the Head of the
Church, when he had dared to speak his thoughts openly before that
chiefest man of all in Rome!

"Come out with me!"

"Now, in the darkness and the rain?" asked the Cardinal wonderingly.
"You wish it? Then I will come!"

Manuel said nothing further, but simply turned and led the way. They
passed out of the little tenement house they inhabited into the dark
cold street,--and the door closed with a loud bang behind them, shut to
by the angry wind. The rain began to fall more heavily, and the small
slight figure of the waif and stray he had befriended seemed to the
Cardinal to look more lonely and piteous than ever in the driving fog
and darkness.

"Whither would you go, my child?" he asked gently. "You will suffer
from the cold and storm--"

"And you?" said Manuel. "Will you not also suffer? But you never think
of yourself at all!--and it is because you do not think of yourself
that I know you will come with me to-night!--even through a thousand
storms!--through all danger and darkness and pain and trouble,--you
will come with me! You have been my friend for many days--you will not
leave me now?"

"Neither now nor at any time," answered Bonpre firmly and tenderly. "I
will go with you where you will! Is it to some sad home you are taking
me?--some stricken soul to whom we may give comfort?"

Manuel answered not,--but merely waved his small hand beckoningly, and
passed along up the street through the drifting rain, lightly and
aerially as though he were a spirit,--and the Cardinal possessed by
some strange emotion that gave swiftness to his movements and strength
to his will, followed. They met scarcely a soul. One or two forlorn
wayfarers crossed their path--a girl in rags,--then a man half-drunk
and reeling foolishly from side to side. Manuel paused, looking at them.

"Poor sad souls!" he said. "If we could see all the history of their
lives we should pity them and not condemn!"

"Who is it that condemns?" murmured Bonpre gently.

"No one save Man!" responded Manuel. "God condemns nothing--because in
everything there is a portion of Himself. And when man presumes to
condemn and persecute his fellow-men, he is guilty of likewise
condemning and persecuting his Maker, and outraging that Maker in his
own perverted soul!"

The boy's voice rang out solemn and clear,--and the heavy fog drifting
densely through the street, seemed to the Cardinal's keenly awakened
and perturbed senses as though it brightened into a golden vapour round
that childish figure, and illumined it with a radiation of concealed
light. But having thus spoken, Manuel turned and went on once
more,--and faithfully, in a mental ravishment which to himself was
inexplicable, the venerable Felix followed. And presently they came to
the plain and uncomely wooden edifice where Aubrey Leigh and his bride
had plighted their vows that morning. The door was open--Aubrey would
always have it so, lest any poor suffering creature might need a
moment's rest, and resting thankfully, might see the Cross and
perchance find help in prayer.

"Do you remember," said Manuel then, "when you found me outside the
great Cathedral, how the doors were barred against me? This door is
always open!"

He entered the building, and the Cardinal followed, wondering and
deeply agitated. It should have been dark within, but instead of
darkness, a soft light pervaded it from end to end, a warm and delicate
radiance, coloured with a rose glory as of sunset--and Bonpre seeing
this stopped, seized with a sudden fear. He looked about him--on either
side the huge unadorned barn-like place was empty,--he and Manuel stood
alone together as it were in the cold vast void. Before them towered
the Cross on its raised platform, and below that Cross was the sloping
footway leading to it, where lay many of the buds and leaves and
blossoms of Sylvie's bridal flowers given to her by the poor, and
yet--in this empty desolate shed there was a sense of warmth and
consolation, and the light that illumined it was as the light of
Heaven! Trembling in every limb, the Cardinal turned to his
companion--words were on his lips, but they faltered and refused to be
spoken aloud. And Manuel gently touching him said--

"Follow me!"

Straight up through the centre of this place hallowed by the prayers of
the poor and the broken-hearted, the light child-figure moved, the old
man following,--till at the footway leading to the Cross he paused.

"Here will we pray together!" he said,--and as he spoke a smile lighted
his eyes and rested on his lips--a smile which gave his fair face the
aspect of a rapt angel of wisdom and beauty. "Here will we ask the
Father which is in Heaven--the Father of all worlds--whether we shall
part now one from the other, or still remain--together!"

As he spoke a rush of music filled the air,--and the Cardinal sank
feebly on his knees, overcome by a great wave of awe and terror which
engulfed his soul--for it was the same divine, far-reaching,
penetrative music which had once before enthralled his ears in the
Cathedral at Rouen. Kneeling he clasped his worn hands, and in all the
dizziness and confusion of his brain, raised his eyes for help to the
great Cross, bare of all beauty, save for the flowers of Sylvie's
strange bridal that lay at its foot. And as he looked he saw a
marvellous Vision!--a Dream of Angels standing on either side of that
symbol of salvation!--of angels tall and white and beautiful, whose
towering pinions glowed with the radiant light of a thousand mornings!
Amazed and awe-stricken at this great sight, he uttered a faint cry and
turned to his child companion.

"Manuel!"

"I am here," answered the clear young voice. "Be not afraid!"

And now the music of the unseen choir of sound seemed to grow deeper
and fuller and grander,--and Felix Bonpre, caught up, as it were, out
of all earthly surroundings, and only made conscious of the growing
ascendency of Spirit over Matter, saw the bare building around him
beginning to wondrously change its aspect. Slowly, as though a wind
should bend straight trees into an arching round, the plain walls took
on themselves a form of perfect architectural beauty,--like swaying
stems of flowers or intertwisted branches, the lines formed
symmetrically, and through the shadowy sculptured semblance came the
gleam of "a light that never was on sea or land,"--the dazzling light
of thousands of shining wings!--of thousands of lustrous watchful
eyes!--of thousands of dazzling faces, that shone like stars or were
fair as flowers! The Vision grew more and more beautiful--more and more
full of light--and through veils of golden vapour, great branching
lilies seemed to grow and blossom out, filling the air with perfume,
and in their flowering beauty perfected the airy semblance of this
wondrous Place of Prayer built by spiritual hands--and like a far-off
echo of sweetness falling from unseen heights there came a musical
whisper of the chorus sung by the poor--

   "All God s angels will say, 'Well done!'
    Whenever thy mortal race is run.
       White and forgiven,
       Thou'lt enter heaven,
    And pass, unchallenged, the Golden Gate,
    Where welcoming spirits watch and wait
    To hail thy coming with sweet accord
    To the Holy City of God the Lord!"

A convulsive trembling seized the Cardinal's mortal frame--but the soul
within him was strong and invincible. With hands outstretched he turned
to Manuel,--and lo!--the boy was moving away from him--moving slowly
but resolutely up towards the Cross! Breathless, speechless, the aged
Felix watched him with straining uplifted eyes,--and as he watched, saw
his garments grow white and glistening, and a great light began to
shine about him--till reaching the foot of the Cross He turned,--and
then--He was no more a child! All the glory of the "Vision Beautiful"
shone full upon the dying body and escaping soul of Christ's faithful
servant!--the Divine Head crowned with thorns!--the Divine arms
stretched out against the beams of the great Cross!--the Divine look of
love and welcome!--and with a loud cry of ecstasy Felix Bonpre extended
his trembling hands.

"Master! Master!" he murmured. "Did not my heart burn within me when
Thou didst talk with me by the way!"

Yearning towards that Mystic Glory he clasped his hands, and in the
splendour of the dream, and through the pulsations of the solemn music
he heard a Voice--the Voice of his child companion Manuel, but a Voice
grown full of Divine authority while yet possessing all human
tenderness.

"Well done, thou good and faithful servant! Because thou hast been
faithful over a few things, I will make thee ruler over many things!
Enter thou into the joy of thy Lord!"

And at that Voice--and in the inexplicable beauty of that Look of Love,
Felix Bonpre, "Prince of the Roman Church," whose faithfulness Rome
called in question, gave up his mortal life,--and with a trembling sigh
of death and delight intermingled, fell face forward at the foot of the
Cross, where the radiance of his Master's Presence shone like the sun
in heaven! And as he passed from death to life, the Vision faded--the
light grew dim,--the arches of the heavenly temple not made with hands
melted away and rolled up like clouds of the night dispersing into
space--the last dazzling Angel face, the last branch of Heavenly
flowers--vanished--and the music of the spheres died into silence. And
when the morning sun shone through the narrow windows of that Place of
Prayer dedicated only to the poor, its wintry beams encircled the
peaceful form of the Dead Cardinal with a pale halo of gold,--and when
they came and found him there and turned his face to the light--it was
as the face of a glorified saint, whom God had greatly loved!

.     .     .     .     .     .     .     .     .    .

And of the "Cardinal's foundling"--what of Him? Many wondered and
sought to trace Him, but no one ever heard where He had gone.
Now,--when the Cardinal himself has been laid to rest in the shadow of
his own Cathedral spires--and the roses which he loved so well are
growing into a crimson and white canopy over his quiet grave, there are
those who wonder who that lonely child wanderer was,--and whether He
ever will return? Some say He has never disappeared,--but that in some
form or manifestation of wisdom, He is ever with as, watching to see
whether His work is well or ill done,--whether His flocks are fed, or
led astray to be devoured by wolves--whether His straight and simple
commands are fulfilled or disobeyed. And the days grow dark and
threatening--and life is more and more beset with difficulty and
disaster--and the world is moving more and more swiftly on to its
predestined end--and the Churches are as stagnant pools, from whence
Death is far more often born than Life.

And may we not ask ourselves often in these days the question,--

"When the Son of Man cometh, think ye He shall find faith on earth?"



Appendix.

Relics of Paganism in Christianity as Approved by English Bishops.

The Archbishop of Canterbury, on being questioned as to certain Roman
observances carried on at St. Bartholomew's, Dover, admitted "There may
be irregularities," but added "they do not appear to be of any
importance." One of these "unimportant irregularities" was the
introduction of the Confessional.

The Archbishop of York considers the use of incense, which is a relic
of paganism, "a most beautiful and significant symbol of Divine
Service"--and though the services at Christ Church, Doncaster, are
known to be but a very slightly modified form of the Romish ritual, His
Grace has not seen fit to interfere. The parish church of
Hensall-cum-Heck, in the Archbishop's diocese, is entirely Roman
Catholic, and the Vicar, Mr. E. H. Bryan, might from his practices, be
a priest of Rome endeavouring by secret methods to "convert" his parish
to the Holy See.

The Bishop of London sanctions the use of incense and permits
children's Masses and hymns to the Virgin.

The Bishop of Chester advises the Rev. W. C. Reid, Vicar of Coppenhall,
to use incense preceding the service of Holy Communion.

The Bishop of Chichester ignores the fact that at St. Bartholomew's,
Brighton, seven hundred confessions were heard before Christmas, 1898,
and that ten thousand were heard in that parish last year.

The Bishop of Lincoln preached at "High Mass" at St. Mary Magdalene,
Paddington, on January 7, 1899. The only difference in the service on
this occasion from that of the Roman Church was the use of the English
language instead of Latin.

The Bishop of Oxford, on being appealed to by parishioners on January
11, 1900, attending at the Church of St. John, Cowley, Oxford, and
asked to suppress the Romish practices carried on there, which were
totally out of keeping with the simplicity of true Christian worship,
gave them no redress.

The Bishop of St. Aibans, charged in the House of Lords with favouring
practices not lawful in the Church of England, declined to answer. On
this point the Daily Telegraph wrote--"Does the Bishop of St. Albans
understand that he is responsible to the State as well as to his own
conscience? Has he any inkling of the notorious fact that the proper
administration of a diocese is not a private or a personal matter, but
an onerous public task, for which he is rightly held accountable?"





*** End of this LibraryBlog Digital Book "The Master-Christian" ***

Copyright 2023 LibraryBlog. All rights reserved.



Home